126 58
English Pages 344 [422] Year 2012
I
O X F O R D MONOGRAPHS ON CLASSICAL A R C H A E O L O G Y Edited by JOHN BENNET
JOHN
J. J. C O U L T O N
DONNA
BOARDMAN
R. R. R. S M I T H
MARGARETA
KURTZ STEINBY
O X F O R D MONOGRAPHS ON CLASSICAL A R C H A E O L O G Y The series includes self-contained interpretative studies of the art and archaeology of the ancient Mediterranean world. Authoritative volumes cover subjects from the Bronze Age to late antiquity, with concentration on the central periods, areas, and material categories of the classical Greek and Roman world. Other titles in the series include: The Odrysian Kingdom of Thrace Orpheus Unmasked Ζ. H. Archibald Hellenistic Engraved Gems Dimitris Plantzos Naukratis Trade in Archaic Greece Astrid Möller The Late Mannerists in Athenian Vase-Painting Thomas Mannack Chryselephantine Statuary in the Ancient Mediterranean World Kenneth D. S. Lapatin Approaches to the Study of Attic Vases Beazley and Pottier Philippe Rouet The Protogeometric Aegean The Archaeology of the Late Eleventh and Tenth Centuries B C Irene S. Lemos Brickstamps of Constantinople Volume i: Text Volume 2: Illustrations Jonathan Bardili R o m a n Theatres A n Architectural Study Frank Sear Late Classical and Hellenistic Silver Plate from Macedonia Eleni Zimi Komast Dancers in Archaic Greek A r t Tyler Jo Smith
THE TEMPLE OF ATHENA AT ASSOS Bonna Daix Wescoat
I
OXFORD UNIVERSITY
PRESS
OXFORD U N I V E R S I T Y PRESS
Great Clarendon Street, Oxford, 0x2 6DP, United Kingdom Oxford University Press is a department of the University of Oxford. It furthers the University's objective of excellence in research, scholarship, and education by publishing worldwide. Oxford is a registered trade mark of Oxford University Press in the U K and in certain other countries © Bonna Daix Wescoat 2012 The moral rights of the author have been asserted First Edition published in 2012 Impression: 1 All rights reserved. N o part of this publication may be reproduced, stored in a retrieval system, or transmitted, in any form or by any means, without the prior permission in writing of Oxford University Press, or as expressly permitted by law, by licence or under terms agreed with the appropriate reprographics rights organization. Enquiries concerning reproduction outside the scope of the above should be sent to the Rights Department, Oxford University Press, at the address above You must not circulate this work in any other form and you must impose this same condition on any acquirer British Library Cataloguing in Publication Data Data available Library of Congress Cataloguing in Publication Data Data available ISBN 978-0-19-814382-6 Printed in Great Britain on acid-free paper by CPI Group (UK) Ltd, Croydon, C R o 4 Y Y Links to third party websites are provided by Oxford in good faith and for information only. Oxford disclaims any responsibility for the materials contained in any third party website referenced in this work.
TABLE OF CONTENTS Acknowledgements List of Plates List of Figures Fold-out Figures List of Tables Technical Abbreviations
and Conventions
Bibliographic Abbreviations ι. Introduction 2. History of the Building, its Early Visitors, and its Excavation Descriptions of the temple by early travellers to Assos
vii ix xiii xvii xviii xix xxi ι 7 8
The American excavations, 1881-83
13
Subsequent research, 1896-2006
17
3. Building Materials and Technical Aspects of Construction
19
Materials
19
Technical aspects of construction
19
4. Description and Reconstruction of the Original Building
31
Access and orientation
31
Foundation and krepis
31
Restored plan
38
Elevation of the peristasis
40
Colonnade
41
Entablature
56
Geison and tympanon
75
Dimensions of the elevation in light of Clarke's proposed Assian foot measurement
82
Ceiling and roof
83
Elevation of the sekos
90
5. Major Repairs
100
Evidence for the repairs
100
Repairs to the colonnade and entablature
101
Repairs to the roof
122
6. Hellenistic Renovations
125
7. The Sculpture
127
Introduction Sculptured epistyle
127 133
Reliefs A i and A2: confronted sphinxes
133
Reliefs A 1 4 and A 1 5 : battle of rival bulls
138
Reliefs A 9 to Α 1 3 : lions savaging prey
141
Reliefs A 5 - A 8 : the rout of the centaurs on Mt Pholoe
151
Relief A3 : Herakles wrestling Triton
158
Relief A4: symposion
164
vi
TABLE OF
CONTENTS
Sculptured metopes
173
Metope M3: confronted sphinxes
173
Metope M4: boar
174
Metope M7: galloping centaur
175
Metope M5: Europe on the Zeus Bull
176
Metope M8: quarrelling heroes
179
Metope M i : chase scene
181
Metope M i o : supplication scene
184
Metope M2: runners
186
Metope M6: horse legs
188
Metope M9: horse and rider
188
Iconographie themes 8. Arrangement of the Sculpture
190 192
Placement of the sculptured epistyle blocks
192
Placement of the sculptured metopes
198
9. Significance of the Temple within the Development of Archaic Architecture and Architectural Decoration
201
Historical circumstances
201
Archaeological context
202
Doric architecture and northeast Greece
203
The temple within the context of archaic architecture
204
Anatolian, East Greek, and Aegean connections
225
Significant architectural features of the first major repair
231
Chronological and regional implications of the architectural sculpture
232
Reconciling the evidence
235
List of References for the Tables
267
APPENDICES I. Catalogue of Sculptured Blocks II. Concordance for Catalogue Numbers of Sculptured Blocks
270 277
III. Earlier Proposals for the Arrangement of the Sculptured Epistyle
278
IV. Catalogue of Other Important Architectural Material from the Akropolis
284
Works
293
Index
Cited
311
ACKNOWLEDGEMENTS I am indebted to many colleagues, friends, and institutions for their support over the long history of this project on the Temple of Athena at Assos. M y interest in the temple began with a suggestion made by Sir John Boardman in passing, quite literally, a cast of the relief of symposiasts (our A4) in the O x f o r d Cast Gallery. I was fortunate in my early years at O x f o r d to work with both Sir John and Martin Robertson, but m y greatest debt, of course, remains to Jim Coulton, whose sharp, practical, and elegant mind was a strong guiding force both at the time I was writing my D.Phil, and in subsequent years. U m i t Serdaroglu kindly allowed me to participate in the renewed research and excavations at Assos in the 1980s and 1990s. Efforts in the region of the temple brought to light a great deal of material that I am grateful to be able to include here. The remains of the temple are now in four museums on three continents: Alain Pasquier of the Musée du Louvre, Nu§in Asgari of the Istanbul Archaeology Museums, and §akire Erkahnli of the Çanakkale Archaeological Museum kindly allowed me to study, measure, and photograph the sculptured reliefs in their collections. Hearty thanks go as well to Cornelius Vermeule III, John Herrmann, and Mary C o m s t o c k of the Museum of Fine Arts, Boston, w h o not only allowed me to study all the material from Assos, but also shared with me the original notes and drawings of Joseph Thacher Clarke and Francis Henry Bacon. A t Assos I benefitted from generous help. Mrs C e g d e m Turker of the Çanakkale Archaeological Museum kindly aided in measuring the temple and its blocks while serving as m y representative. Emory graduate students Lisa Burkhalter, Robert Thurlow, and D a w n Smith also helped to measure and record parts of the temple. I am especially indebted to Jenk Vural Yurdatap, then a student at K a d i k ö y Anadolu Lisesi, whose help was invaluable and whose company was delightful. A t Emory, graduate students A m y Sowder, Cecily Boles, Alison Hight, and D e v o n Stewart, and SIRE (Scholarly Inquiry and Research at Emory) students Desirée Gonzales, Alexandra Morrison, and Chase Jordan, as well as Rebecca Levitan helped with important aspects of completing the manuscript. Many colleagues were kind enough to serve as listeners, readers, and critiquers of drawings; I am especially grateful to Frederick Cooper, Robin Rhodes, Manolis Korres, Eric 0 s t b y , Klaus Nohlen, Wolf Koenigs, Margaret Miles, and N a n c y Klein for discussing aspects of the architecture with me; to Clemente Marconi, Judith Barringer, Jasper Gaunt, Rush Rehm, Sheramy Bundrick, John Oakley, and Thomas Carpenter for their insights on aspects of the sculpture; to Cynthia Patterson for her comments on historical circumstance; to Brian Rose for his observations on archaeological context; and to Alan Johnston for his w o r k on the inscribed capital. M y thanks also to friends and colleagues w h o helped and encouraged me along the way, including Thomas Lyman, Molly Michala Lyman, James R. McCredie, Sarah McPhee, James Meyer, Kathleen Carroll, Robert Ousterhout, C l a y t o n Spencer, Steven Holtzman, A n d r e w Robertson, and Ashton Carter. Needless to say, the peculiarities of interpretation remain the reflection of my o w n intellectual obstinacy, and the mistakes will be mine as well. I drew and inked the field drawings, block drawings, and reconstructions presented here, with contributions on some of the fold-out figures from Robert Wurtheimer (also responsible for drafting Figures 10, 12, 13, and 52), Brian E Jan, Y o n g K. Kim, Leah Solk, and H u g h H. W. Green. Claire Zimmerman helped me design the layout of the drawings,
Vili
ACKNOWLEDGEMENTS
and Carol Stein provided invaluable advice on the best translation from ink on mylar to digital file. Michael C . Page generously made the new map of the Troad. I also took the photographs; my thanks to Danny Smart for printing many of them and to Frank Jackson for key help with scanning negatives. A m y Benson Brown and Maggie Popkin reviewed the manuscript and provided innumerable suggestions that have improved it; Brian Hughes helped with proofreading. I owe a great deal to Hilary O'Shea, D o r o t h y McCarthy, Taryn Campbell, Kathleen Fearn, and Desirée Kellerman of O x f o r d University Press for their kind and diligent w o r k in seeing the manuscript to publication. Having had the good fortune to w o r k with Phyllis Williams Lehmann, William L. MacDonald, and Helen Searing as an undergraduate at Smith College, I was lucky enough to receive a Marshall Scholarship to continue study in England. I remain indebted to Smith College and the Marshall A i d Commemoration Commission for launching me on my way. A grant from the Craven Committee of O x f o r d University helped with my first trip to Assos. Subsequent summer research grants from the Meyerstein Fund, Brasenose College O x f o r d , the Jean Fine Spahr Scholarship for Graduates of Smith College, the American Research Institute in Turkey, the American Philosophical Society, and the American Council of Learned Societies, as well as E m o r y University Research C o m mittee funds, allowed me to w o r k at Assos over several summers in the 1980s and 1990s. A Getty Postdoctoral Fellowship in A r t History and the Humanities, taken at Harvard University, underwrote the generous gift of time to write. Some of the drawings were completed during a year as N E H Rome Prize Fellow at the American Academy in Rome. A grant from Emory's University Research Committee provided the subvention that allowed for the large-scale drawings in this volume. Much of this book revolves around measure and comparison. Its existence, however, relies on the immeasurable and the incomparable support I have received from m y family. The gentle encouragement of my parents, James and Bonna B. Wescoat; the creative discussions with my siblings, Jim, Martha, and Andrew; and the enduring interest, patience, and fortitude of my husband, Bailey Green, and our children, Hugh and Abigail, surpass all for which anyone could hope. Bonna D . Wescoat Palaiopolis, Samothrace 2009
LIST OF PLATES ι a.
View of Assos from the north, with Pa§akoy in the foreground and Lesbos in the background. Photograph by author.
ib. ic.
View of Assos from the west, with reconstructed columns from the Temple of Athena visible on the summit. Photograph by author. View of Assos from the sea, with reconstructed columns of the temple visible from the summit. Photograph by author.
id.
View of the akropolis from the south, with the theatre in the foreground and the agora in the middle ground. Photograph by author.
2.
Krepidoma of the temple from the north, as exposed in 1983, with remains of Byzantine houses in the middle ground. Photograph by author.
3a.
Northeast corner of the krepidoma, from the north, showing dressed-down bedrock foundation and first step. Photograph by author.
3b.
Southwest corner of the temple, showing rusticated masonry and paving flags. Photograph by author.
4.
Sounding made in the pteron at the southwest corner, October 1987. Photograph by author.
5.
Southern cliffs of the akropolis preserving quarry marks. Photograph by author.
6.
Bedrock directly north of temple, with remains of wedge-shaped cuttings. Photograph by author.
7.
Bedrock north of temple, with evidence of quarrying. Photograph by author.
8.
Modern quarrying on the south cliffs of the akropolis. Photograph by author.
9.
Tooling on the top of the first step course. Photograph by author.
10.
Tooling on the top surface of column drum C D 4 . Photograph by author.
11.
Marks of the drove on the echinus of capital C 1 7 . Photograph by author.
12.
Epistyle backer A B 7 ; point and tooth-head hammer marks. Photograph by author.
13.
Southeast corner of the euthynteria with pry marks for first step-course. Photograph by author.
14.
Clamp cutting on the euthynteria near the southwest corner. Photograph by author.
15.
Clamp cutting on stylobate block S66. Photograph by author.
16.
Northern first step course; clamp preserved in situ. Photograph by author.
17.
Northern first step course; clamp and protective fillets preserved in situ. Photograph by author.
18.
Northern first step course; clamp and wedge-shaped hole preserved in situ. Photograph by author.
19.
Column drum C D 6 4 with mason's mark. Photograph by author.
20.
C o l u m n drum C D 3 7 with mason's mark. Photograph by author.
21.
C o l u m n drum C D 59 with mason's mark. Photograph by author.
22.
Epistyle block A 1 6 with mason's mark, omikron. Photograph by author.
23.
Epistyle block A32 with mason's mark,psi. Photograph by author.
xii
LIST OF PLATES 24. 25.
Epistyle block A 3 6 w i t h mason's mark, iota. Photograph by author. Epistyle backing block A B 10 with mason's mark, upsilon, nu, or
lambda.
Photograph b y author. 26.
Epistyle backing block A B 16 with mason's mark, tau. Photograph b y author.
27.
V i e w of the switch-back road leading up to the akropolis f r o m the east. Photograph b y author.
28.
Detail of the foundations for the road leading toward the akropolis f r o m the east.
29.
Southwest corner of the krepis f r o m the west, showing rusticated masonry.
Photograph b y author. Photograph b y author. 30.
Southwest corner of the krepis f r o m the south, showing rusticated masonry. Photograph by author.
31a.
Detail of rusticated masonry along the south flank. Photograph b y author.
31b.
Detail of rusticated masonry and juncture with bedrock along south side.
31c.
Detail of rusticated masonry along the south flank. Photograph b y author.
32.
V i e w of the foundations for the south anta wall and pronaos column, f r o m
Photograph by author.
the south. Photograph b y author. 33.
C o l u m n drum C D 3 8 , showing the effect of erosion. Photograph by author.
34.
H o l l o w e d - o u t c o l u m n drum used as a mortar b y the villagers. Photograph
35.
Capital C i . Photograph b y author.
36.
Capital C 1 2 (right) and C 1 3 (left). Photograph by author.
b y author.
37.
Capital C 5 . Photograph by author.
38.
Capital C 3 1 . Photograph by author.
39.
Capital C 4 , with 18 flutes. Photograph b y author.
40.
Capital C24, s h o w i n g treatment of bed surface. Photograph by author.
41.
Capital C23, s h o w i n g treatment of top surface. Photograph b y author.
42.
Capital C 1 5 , showing treatment of top surface. Photograph by author.
43.
Capita] C 1 2 , with holes for metal attachment. Photograph b y author.
44a. 44b. 45.
Capital C 1 0 , w i t h inscription on abacus. Photograph by author. Capital C 1 0 , detail of inscription. Photograph by author. Fragments of several epistyle blocks recovered near the southwest corner of the temple. In the foreground, A36a and b. Photograph b y author.
46. 47a.
Epistyle block A42. Photograph by author. Epistyle block A28, showing stain mark left b y the capital on the bed surface. Photograph by author.
47b.
Epistyle block A 2 1 , showing treatment of back surface, including quarry marks. Photograph b y author.
48.
Triglyph block T8. Photograph b y author.
49.
Triglyph block T2, side view. Photograph b y author.
50.
Triglyph blocks T 1 2 and T 1 3 . Photograph b y author.
51.
Coi'ner epistyle backing block A B 12. Photograph by author.
52.
Epistyle backing block A B 2 . Photograph b y author.
53.
Southern geison block L G i , side view. Photograph b y author.
xii L I S T O F P L A T E S 54·
Southern geison block L G 1 2 . Photograph by author.
55·
Southern geison block L G 2 5 . Photograph by author.
5 6.
End of the southeast corner geison block. Photograph by author.
57·
Remains of an antefix. Photograph b y author.
a,b.
Fragment of sima tile. Photograph by author.
59·
Remains of ornamental eaves tile. Photograph by author.
6o.
Lion's head waterspout. C o u r t e s y M u s e u m of Fine Arts, Boston.
6i.
Fragment B23, possibly belonging to the anta capital. Photograph b y author.
6 2.
Wall block W 3 7 . Photograph by author.
63.
Wall block W50. Photograph b y author.
64.
Wall block W 1 5 . Photograph by author.
65.
Wall block W 5 . Photograph b y author.
66.
Fragment of the northwest corner geison block. Photograph b y author.
; 7 a.
Southwest corner geison block. Photograph b y author.
7b.
Southwest corner geison block, top surface. Photograph b y author.
68.
T w o fragments of horizontal geison block H G 9 , s h o w i n g U-shaped lifting channel and socket. Photograph b y author.
69.
T o p surface of horizontal geison block H G 7 . Photograph by author.
70.
T y m p a n o n block Tp3, front side. Photograph b y author.
71·
T y m p a n o n block Tp3, back side. Photograph b y author.
72.
T y m p a n o n blocks Tp6 and T p 7 , as rebuilt in the late fortification wall. Photograph b y author.
73·
T y m p a n o n block T p j , showing residual clamp cuttings and a nail hole f o r the roof tile. Photograph b y author.
74·
Raking geison block R G 2 . Photograph b y author.
75·
Raking geison block R G 1 3 , detail of the profile. Photograph by author.
76.
Relief A i : C o n f r o n t e d sphinxes. C o u r t e s y Museum of Fine Arts, Boston.
77·
Relief A i : C o n f r o n t e d sphinxes. Original right fragment in Istanbul with cast of remains n o w in Boston. C o u r t e s y Deutsches Archäologisches Institut, Istanbul.
78.
Relief A z : C o n f r o n t e d sphinxes. Fragments in Istanbul. C o u r t e s y Deutsches Archäologisches Institut, Istanbul.
79·
Relief A2: C o n f r o n t e d sphinxes. C o u r t e s y Musée du Louvre.
80.
Relief Α 1 4 : T w o bulls locking horns. C o u r t e s y Musée du Louvre.
81.
Relief A 1 5 : T w o bulls locking horns. C o u r t e s y Musée du Louvre.
82.
Relief A9: Lioness bringing d o w n a bull. C o u r t e s y Musée du Louvre.
83.
Relief A n : Lioness attacking a deer. C o u r t e s y Musée du Louvre.
84.
Relief A i o : L i o n devouring supine deer. C o u r t e s y Deutsches Archäologisches Institut, Istanbul.
85.
Relief A i o : L i o n and lioness devouring supine deer. Photograph by author.
86.
Relief A i o : detail. Photograph by author.
87.
Relief A 1 2 : L i o n attacking a stag. C o u r t e s y Musée du Louvre.
88.
Relief Α 1 2 : detail. Photograph by author.
89.
Relief A 1 3 : L i o n harassing a boar, w i t h metopes M 2 (left) and M5 (right). C o u r t e s y Deutsches Archäologisches Institut, Istanbul.
xii
LIST OF PLATES 90.
Relief A i 3 a : detail. Photograph by author.
91.
Relief A i ß b : Lion squaring off w i t h boar. Photograph b y author.
92.
Relief A 5 : Herakles pursuing human-legged centaurs. C o u r t e s y M u s e u m of Fine Arts, Boston.
93.
Relief A6: Galloping centaurs, with metopes M8 (left) and M i (right). C o u r t e s y Deutsches Archäologisches Institut, Istanbul.
94.
Relief A 7 : Galloping centaurs. C o u r t e s y Musée du Louvre.
95a.
Relief A8: Galloping centaurs. C o u r t e s y Musée du Louvre.
95 b.
Relief A8: detail of central centaur. Photograph b y author.
96.
Relief A48: Galloping centaurs. Photograph b y author.
97.
Relief A48: detail. Photograph by author.
98.
Relief A3: Herakles wrestling Triton. C o u r t e s y Musée du Louvre.
99.
Relief A 3 : Herakles wrestling Triton, oblique view. Photograph b y author.
100a.
Relief A 3 : detail of Herakles and Triton. Photograph by author.
100b.
Relief A 3 : detail of central Nereids, Triton's fishy body, and Herakles. Photograph by author.
100c. 101.
Relief A 3 : detail of fleeing Nereids. Photograph by author. Relief A4: Symposion. C o u r t e s y Musée du Louvre.
102a.
Relief A4: detail of symposiasts, right side. Photograph b y author.
102b.
Relief A4: detail of left t w o symposiasts. Photograph b y author.
102c.
Relief A4: detail of servant and left symposiast. Photograph b y author.
103.
M e t o p e M3: C o n f r o n t e d sphinxes. C o u r t e s y Musée du Louvre.
104.
M e t o p e M4: Boar. C o u r t e s y Musée du Louvre.
105a.
M e t o p e M 7 : Centaur. C o u r t e s y Musée du Louvre.
105b.
M e t o p e M 7 : Centaur, seen f r o m below. Photograph by author.
106.
M e t o p e M5: Europe on the Zeus Bull. Photograph by author.
107.
M e t o p e M8: Quarrelling heroes. Photograph by author.
108.
M e t o p e M r : Chase. Photograph by author.
109.
M e t o p e M2: Runners. Photograph b y author.
110a.
M e t o p e M i o : Three-figured composition. Photograph b y author,
nob.
M e t o p e M i o : Three-figured composition, seen frontally. Photograph by author.
HI.
M e t o p e M9: Rider on horseback. Photograph by author.
112.
M e t o p e M6: Equine hind hoofs. C o u r t e s y Istanbul Archaeological Museum.
LIST OF FIGURES ι.
Map of the Troad; Michael C . Page.
2
2.
Site plan after Clarke, Bacon, and Koldewey 1902-21, p. 139.
3
3.
C o i n image of Athena Polias, Waddington tetradrachm reverse, Cabinet
4.
East façade of the temple, proposed by Charles Texier; Texier 1849, pi. 112.
11
5.
Plan of the temple, based on J. T. Clarke's field drawing; after Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, p. 141.
12
Reconstructed east elevation of the temple, proposed by J. T. Clarke; after Clarke, Bacon, and Koldewey, p. 145.
13
des Médailles; after Babelon vol. 2, pi. 163,28.
6. 7.
7
Reconstruction of the temple, proposed by Felix Sartiaux; after Sartiaux 1915, p. 191, fig. 32.
14
8.
Detail of southwest corner of krepis showing area of excavation.
15
9.
Sections through excavated trench in southwest corner.
16
10.
Isometric reconstruction of setting the southern geison.
21
11.
Different types of cutting for the lifting hooks on the southern geison: a) L G 1 2 ; b) L G 4 ; c) LG36; d) L G 1 5 .
22
12.
Isometric reconstruction of setting the northern geison.
23
13.
Isometric reconstruction of setting the epistyle.
25
14.
First step, N 1 0 / 1 1 E , illustrating setting and clamping techniques.
26
15.
Clamp cuttings on the krepis: a) euthynteria, W i S ; b) S5; c) Si.
27
16.
Mason's marks on the column drums.
29
17.
Mason's marks on epistyle facers and backers.
30
18.
N e w l y recovered southern and western stylobate blocks S14, Si8, S62/S72, S2, and S61.
36
19.
N e w l y recovered eastern stylobate blocks S4, S36, S21, S69, Si 5, and S12.
37
20.
C o l u m n drums from the four different positions: C D 3 6 , C D 1 2 , C D 5 , and C D 4 .
42
21.
C o l u m n drums C D 4 2 and C D 4 3 , with cuttings, possibly for a screen.
43
22.
Column drum C D 10 and capital C4, belonging to a column with 18 flutes.
44
23.
Schematic diminution of column drums.
46
24.
Restored column.
47
Find-spots of the capitals.
48
25. 26a.
26b.
Representative capitals from the three groups: C18, C 5 , C i ; diminution of the flute width from the bottom of the shaft to the neck of the capital.
49
Inscribed capital C 1 0 .
50
27.
Profile of Group A capital, C24, overlain on the profile of Group C capital, C 3 .
51
28.
Graph of the ratio of C a p H t — A b H t to EchHt, showing different capital groups.
55
29.
Find-spots of epistyle blocks.
57
30.
Plain epistyle blocks A36, A31/32/35.
61
31.
Plain epistyle blocks A30/53, A28/29.
62
xiv
LIST OF FIGURES
32.
Plain epistyle blocks A 1 6 , A22, A25.
63
33.
Plain epistyle block A21/33.
64
34.
Find-spots of sculptured metopes.
66
35.
Triglyphs, T 6 , T 8 , T i .
68
36.
Backing blocks f o r the epistyle A B 5, A B ι.
70
37.
Backing blocks f o r the epistyle A B 6 , A B 3 , A B 16.
71
38.
Backing blocks f o r the epistyle A B 12, A B 18.
72
39.
Backing blocks for the epistyle A B 17, A B 10, A B 2 .
73
40.
Backing block for the epistyle A B 13; possible backing blocks for the frieze B i 5 , Β ι ι , B19.
41a.
U p p e r surfaces of corner capitals C24, C 2 , and C 9 , s h o w i n g the construction of the epistyle.
41b.
74 76
Plan oblique s h o w i n g the construction of the southwest corner of the epistyle.
77
42.
Find-spots of lateral geison blocks.
78
43.
Lateral geison block L G 2 1 , f r o m the southern side.
80
44.
Southeast corner geison block.
81
45.
Corinthian pan tiles R T i , RT2, RT5, RT9; Corinthian pan tiles RT3, RT4, R T 1 4 , R T 1 5 , R T 1 6 ; Corinthian cover tiles R T 1 2 , R T 1 1 , RT6; Lakonian cover tiles R T 7 , RT8.
84
46a.
Antefix: actual state, above; restored, below.
86
46b.
Fragment of raking sima; three possible restorations.
87
46c.
Eaves tile: actual state, above; restored, below.
88
47.
Restored central akroterion.
89
48.
Southern pronaos support, showing weather markings. T h e position of the rotated column drum is marked in grey. Dashed lines represent the position of the epistyle.
91
49.
B l o c k B23, so-called anta capital.
92
50.
Wall blocks W 5 , W 6 , W 2 7 , W 1 5 , W 1 8 , W50, W 3 7 .
95
51.
Large ashlar blocks Β 1 7 , W 3 2, W 3 3.
96
52.
Reconstruction of the threshold and door jambs.
98
53.
B l o c k B24, tuff repair to the hawksbeak c r o w n moulding of the horizontal geison.
101
54.
Undecorated epistyle block A42.
102
55.
Lateral geison block L G 2 4 , f r o m the northern side.
104
56.
Southwestern and northwestern corner geison blocks.
106
57.
Northeastern corner geison block.
107
58.
Find-spots of horizontal geison blocks.
109
59.
Horizontal geison blocks f r o m eastern side: H G i , H G 2 , H G 4 , H G 1 7 .
no
60.
Horizontal geison blocks from the western side: H G 6 , H G 7 , H G 9 .
HI
61.
Profiles of hawksbeak c r o w n on the geison: a) S E C G horizontal profile close to the corner; b) S E C G horizontal profile; c) N W C G profile along the flank; d) N W C G profile along flank close to the façade; e) N W C G profile of horizontal crown; f) R G i 1; g) R G 1 3 ; h) N W C G raking profile.
115
62.
Find-spots of t y m p a n o n blocks.
116
63.
T y m p a n o n blocks Τ ρ ί ο , T p i 3 , T p i 2 , Tp2.
117
xiv L I S T O F F I G U R E S 64·
T y m p a n o n blocks Tp3, T p 4 .
65-
T y m p a n o n blocks T p j , Tp8.
66.
Raking geison blocks R G 4 , R G 3 , R G 5 , and profiles of the hawksbeak on the soffit.
6γ.
A i : C o n f r o n t e d sphinxes.
68.
A i : C o n f r o n t e d sphinxes.
69-
Α 1 4 : T w o bulls locking horns.
7°·
A 1 5 : T w o bulls locking horns.
71·
A9: Lioness bringing d o w n a bull.
72·
A i o : Lion and lioness devouring a supine deer.
73·
A n : Seated lion; lioness attacking a deer.
74·
A 1 2 : L i o n bringing d o w n a stag.
75-
A 1 3 : T w o lions harassing a boar.
76-
Ay. Herakles pursuing human-legged centaurs.
77·
A 6 : Galloping centaurs.
78.
Ay: Galloping centaurs.
79·
A8/48: Galloping centaurs.
8ο.
A 3 : Herakles wrestling Triton.
8ι.
A4: F o u r men at symposion.
82.
M3: C o n f r o n t e d sphinxes.
83.
M4: Grazing boar.
84.
M 7 : Galloping centaur.
85·
M5: Europe on the Zeus Bull.
86.
M8: Quarrelling heroes.
87.
M i : Chase; Peleus Chasing Thetis (?)
88.
M i o : Supplication scene with three
§9-
M2: T w o runners.
9°·
M 6 and M9: M a n on horseback.
9ΐ.
C o m p a r i s o n of profiles of the hawksbeak geison c r o w n , after Shoe 1936, pis. L.7, LIII.I,
2, 4, 7, 8,
11;
figures.
Schwandner 1985, fig. 76; Schuller 1991, fig. 31:
1)
Temple of Artemis, K o r k y r a ; 2) Building A , Athens; 3) Peisistratid Telesterion, Eleusis; 4) Temple of A p o l l o , Eretria; 5) A k r o p o l i s M u s e u m , A t h e n s 7613; 6 and 7) Syracusan Treasury, O l y m p i a (called Selinuntine Treasury by Shoe); 8) Second Temple of Hera Akraia, Perachora; 9) Temple of Artemis, Paros; 10) Tegea M u s e u m (after Shoe, but not the Temple of Artemis Knakeatis, as listed b y Shoe). Below, profiles of hawksbeak c r o w n f r o m the temple at Assos: a) S E C G horizontal profile close to the corner; b) S E C G horizontal profile; c) N W C G profile along the flank; d) N W C G profile along flank close to the façade; e) N W C G profile of horizontal crown; f) R G i 1; g) R G 1 3 ; h) N W C G raking profile. 92.
C o m p a r i s o n of the restored elevations, scaled to the same w i d t h at the entablature and aligned at the level of the epistyle: a.) Η - T e m p l e in Athens (after Schuchhardt 1935, fig. 9); b.) Temple of A t h e n a at Assos; c.) O l d Temple of Athena, A t h e n s (after Riemann 1950, fig. 1); d.) Temple D at Selinous (after H u l o t and Fougères 1910, fig. 234); e.) Tavole Paladine at Metapontion (after Mertens 2006, fig. 364); f.) Temple of Athena at Makistos (after Nakasis 2004, pl. XII).
xiv 93.
LIST OF FIGURES Profiles of hawksbeaks on the soffit of the raking geison, after Shoe 1936, pi. L I I . i , 3, 4, 7, 8; and Schuller 1991, fig. 3 1 : 1 ) O l d Temple of Athena, Athens; 2) Second Temple of Hera Akraia, Perachora; 3) Temple of Athena, Assos; 4) Second Temple of Aphaia, Aegina; 5) Megarian Treasury, O l y m p i a ;
94.
6) Athenian Treasury, Delphi; 7) Temple of Artemis, Paros.
234
Clarke's proposal for the reconstruction of the sculptured epistyle.
279
95.
Sartiaux's first proposal for the reconstruction of the sculptured epistyle.
281
96.
Sartiaux's second proposal for the reconstruction of the sculptured epistyle.
282
97.
B l o c k Β ι, found east of the temple.
287
98.
B l o c k B2 (above), f o u n d east of the temple. B20 (below), originally belonging to the geison but reçut for a different purpose.
288
99.
Rusticated blocks B3, B i 8 , B21, B5, found east of the temple.
289
B l o c k B4 (above), possibly a door jamb. B l o c k B22 (lower left) and block B 1 6 (lower right), found east of the temple.
290
100. 101.
B l o c k B8 (above), possibly reworked. B l o c k B9 (middle), part of a w i n d o w frame? Block Β 1 4 (below) with lewis cutting, found on the akropolis but not belonging to the temple.
291
FOLD-OUT FIGURES ι.
Actual state plan, 1986.
2.
State elevation from the west (above) and from the south (below).
3.
Schematic state plan with dimensions of all blocks in situ, and evidence for setting the first step-course.
4.
Plan of the stylobate distinguishing blocks in situ, blocks in situ or known at the time of the American excavation, and newly discovered blocks that can be restored to their original positions.
5.
Restored plan.
6.
Profiles of the capitals.
7.
Plan view of capital tops showing position of epistyle blocks.
8.
Proposed position of blocks in the entablature of the façades.
9a.
Proposed position of blocks in the entablature of the flanks.
9b.
Alternative position of blocks in the entablature of the flanks at the east
10.
Proposed position of blocks in the entablature of the pronaos.
11.
Plan view of geison blocks.
12.
Proposed position of blocks in the tympana.
13.
Reconstructed east façade.
14.
Split lateral section through the pteron and cella showing the original
end of the building.
(south) and repaired (north) design of the pronaos and flanks. 15.
Reconstructed west façade.
16.
Reconstructed pronaos, three options.
17.
Reconstructed south elevation.
18.
Reconstructed north elevation.
LIST OF TABLES ι a.
Dimensions of stylobate blocks
34
ib.
Proposed plans for the axial spacing on the façades
39
Dimensions of column drums
45
Dimensions of capitals
52
2. 3a. 3 b.
Proportions of capitals
53
3c.
Features of epistyle indicated on capitals
54
4a.
Dimensions of epistyle blocks
58
4b.
Technical markings on epistyle blocks
59
4c.
Possible joins between decorated epistyle blocks
60
Dimensions of metopes
66
6.
Dimensions of triglyphs
67
7.
Dimensions of epistyle backers
75
8.
Dimensions of southern geison blocks
79
9.
Dimensions of wall blocks
5.
94
10.
Dimensions of northern geison blocks
105
11.
Dimensions of horizontal geison blocks
112
Dimensions of tympanon blocks
120
12a. 12b.
Original geison features preserved on tympanon blocks
120
Dimensions of raking geison blocks
122
14a.
Features of archaic doric temple plans, mainland and islands
241
14b.
Features of archaic doric temple plans, Magna Graecia and Sicily
243
13.
15 a.
Proportional relationships of archaic Doric temple plans, mainland and islands
245
15 b.
Proportional relationships of archaic Doric temple plans, Magna Graecia and Sicily
247
16a.
Proportions of archaic columns, mainland and islands
249
16b.
Proportions of archaic columns, Magna Graecia and Sicily
251
17a.
Proportions of archaic capitals, mainland and islands
252
17b.
Proportions of archaic capitals, Magna Graecia and Sicily
254
18a.
Features of the epistyle and frieze, mainland and islands
255
18b.
Features of the epistyle and frieze, Magna Graecia and Sicily
257
19a.
Proportions of the epistyle and frieze, mainland and islands
259
19b.
Proportions of the epistyle and frieze, Magna Graecia and Sicily
261
20a.
Features and proportions of the geison, mainland and islands
262
20b.
Features and proportions of the geison, Magna Graecia and Sicily
264
21 a.
Geison mouldings, mainland and islands
265
2ib.
Geison mouldings, Magna Graecia and Sicily
266
TECHNICAL ABBREVIATIONS AND CONVENTIONS
BLOCK
CODES
The following codes are used to classify blocks found on the akropolis: A AB Β C CD HG LG M RG RT S Τ Typ W
epistyle (architrave) facers epistyle (architrave) backers miscellaneous blocks found on the akropolis, some of which clearly do not belong to the temple, and others whose assignment remains in question capital column drum horizontal geison block lateral geison block metope raking geison block roof tile stylobate block triglyph tympanon wall block
ABBREVIATIONS
USED
IN T H E
TABLES
The following abbreviations and conventions are used in Tables 1 - 2 1 : Ab Ann Β b c. Cap col(s) Ech F Dim Ht L LD LT Ν
abacus annulets back buried approximately (within 0.005 capital column(s) echinus face rate of diminution height length lower diameter lower taenia neck
m·)
XX
T E C H N I C A L A B B R E V I A T I O N S AND
CONVENTIONS
>
not preserved projection from the vertical side thickness triglyph upper diameter upper taenia width indicates direction of construction based on positive evidence indicates direction of construction based on negative evidence for Tables 1 - 1 3 , indicates the dimension is inclusive of more than one measurement for Tables 14-21, indicates a restored dimension or feature, for which there is firm evidence dimension calculated across broken but joining fragments dimension incomplete
?
evidence uncertain
np Proj S Th Trig UD UT W L —• R [ L - >R]
[] [] 0
The find-spot of each block is located according to a grid overlaid on Clarke's site plan of the akropolis (see, e.g. Fig. 25). The grid serves to illustrate general relationships, bearing in mind that the ancient material was much moved about by the subsequent dwellers, even as late as the mid-twentieth century. The tables include the important dimensions and certain features of all identifiable temple blocks. Measurements are recorded to the third decimal except in instances where it would suggest a false accuracy, for example in the case of the projecting back surface of the epistyle blocks. While only representative examples from each course are included in full block drawings, drawings of virtually all the extant blocks on the akropolis are included in the fold-out plates of the reconstructed courses. The architectural material surviving on the akropolis indicates additional monuments. Appendix IV discusses other important andesite blocks found on the akropolis that are not part of the temple. The shorthand nomenclature for the restored position of a block or column first indicates the side, then the position from a particular direction; thus W2S indicates a position on the west side, second from the south. The site is described as it was until 1986, prior to the restoration campaigns, which have necessarily dramatically altered the site and access to the remains.
BIBLIOGRAPHIC ABBREVIATIONS References in the notes are given in the author-date-page format. For references in standard works such as ABV, ARV, and CorVP, I use the traditional form of citation with page number followed by object number. AA ABL ABV ARV2 ActaArchArtHist Agora AJA AM AMS AntK ArchCl Arch De It ArchEph ASAtene AttiCSMG A ttiMagna Grecia AvP AZ Babelon Β ABesch BCH BMMA BMFA BSA CAH C o o k , Zeus Corinth CorVP CVA DL
Archäologischer
Anzeiger.
C . Η. E. Haspels. Attic Black-figured Lekythoi, Paris, 1936. J. D . Beazley. Attic Black-figure Vase-painters, O x f o r d , 1956. J. D . Beazley. Attic Red-figure Vase-painters, 2nd edn, O x f o r d , 1963. Acta ad archaeologiam et artium historiam pertinentia. The Athenian Agora. Results of Excavations Conducted by the American School of Classical Studies at Athens, Princeton, from 1953. American Journal of Archaeology. Mitteilungen des Deutschen Archäologischen Instituts, Athenische Abteilung. Asia Minor Studien. Antike Kunst. Archeologia Classica. Archaiologikon Deltion. Archaiologike Ephemeris. Annuario della Scuola archeologica di Atene e delle Missioni italiane in Oriente. Atti del convegno di studi sulla Magna Grecia. Atti e memorie della Società Magna Grecia. Altertümer von Pergamon, Berlin, from 1885. Archäologische Zeitung. E. Babelon. Traité des monnaies grecques et romaines, vols. I-IV, Paris, 1901—32. Bulletin antieke beschaving. Bulletin de correspondance hellénique. Bulletin of the Metropolitan Museum of Art, New York. Bulletin of the Museum of Fine Arts, Boston. Annual of the British School at Athens. Cambridge Ancient History. A . B. C o o k . Zeus: A Study in Ancient Religion, 3 vols., Cambridge, 1914-40. Corinth. Results of Excavations Conducted by the American School of Classical Studies at Athens, Cambridge, Mass., from 1929. D . A m y x . Corinthian Vase-Painting of the Archaic Period, Berkeley, 1988. Corpus vasorum antiquorum. F. Brommer. Denkmälerlisten zur griechischen Heldensage, Übrige Helden, Marburg, 1976.
vol. III,
XXII
BIBLIOGRAPHIC
ABBREVIATIONS
EAD
Exploration archéologique de Délos d'Athènes, Paris, from 1909.
faite
par
l'École
française
EtThas EVP FdD FdXanthos
Etudes thasiennes, École française d'Athènes, Paris, from 1944. J. D . Beazley. Etruscan Vase-painting, O x f o r d , 1947. Fouilles de Delphes, École française d'Athènes, Paris, from 1908. Fouilles de Xanthos, Institut française d'archéologie d'Istanbul, Paris, from 1958.
FgrHist
F. Jakoby. Die Fragmente der griechischen Historiker, 1926.
Leiden, from
Heldensage3
Β. Graef and E. Langlotz. Die Antiken Vasen von der Akropolis zu Athen, Berlin, 1925-33. F. Brommer. Vasenlisten zur griechischen Heldensage, 3rd edn, Marburg, 1973.
Hesperia
Hesperia. Journal Athens.
Graef-Langlotz
IstMitt JbBerlMus Jdl JHS Kerameikos Korkyra Larisa I Larisa II
of the American
School of Classical Studies at
Istanbuler Mitteilungen. Jahrbuch der Berliner Museen. Jahrbuch des Deutschen Archäologischen Instituts. Journal of Hellenic Studies. Kerameikos, Ergebnisse der Ausgrabungen, Berlin, from 1939. G . Rodenwaldt et al. Korkyra, archaische Bauten und Bildwerke, vols. I and II, Berlin, 1939-40. J. Boehlau and K. Schefold, eds. Larisa am Hermos; Die Ergebnisse der Ausgrabungen, 1902-1934, vol. I, Die Bauten, Stockholm, 1940. L. Kjellberg in J. Boehlau and K. Schefold, eds. Larisa am Hermos; Die Ergebnisse der Ausgrabungen, 1902-1934, vol. II: Die Architektonischen Terrakotten, Stockholm, 1940.
LIMC LS AG2
Lexicon Iconographicum Mythologiae Classicae, Zurich, 1981-99. L. A . Jeffery. Local Scripts of Archaic Greece, rev. edn by Alan Johnston, O x f o r d , 1989.
Meded Milet
Mededeelingen van het Nederlands Historisch Instituut te Rome. Milet: Ergebnisse der Ausgrabungen und Untersuchungen seit dem Jahre 1899, Berlin, from 1906.
MMAukt
Kunstwerke Basel. Monumenti
MonAnt MonPiot NumAntCl ÖJh OlForsch Olympia Olympiabericht OpAth OpRom Paralipomena
der Antique.
Auktion
Münzen
und Medaillen
A.
G.
antichi.
Monuments et mémoires. Fondation E. Piot. Numismatica e antichità classiche. Quaderni ticinesi. Jahreshefte des Österreichisch en archäologischen Instituts in Wien. Deutsches Archäologisches Institut. Olympische Forschungen, Berlin, from 1944. E. Curtius, F. Adler et al. Olympia. Die Ergebnisse der von dem Deutschen Reich veranstalteten Ausgrabung, 5 vols., Berlin, 1890-97. Bericht über die Ausgrabungen in Olympia, Berlin, from 1937. Opuscula atheniensia. Opuscula romana. J. D . Beazley. Paralipomena: Additions to Attic Black-figure Painters and to Attic Red-figure Vase-Painters, O x f o r d , 1971.
Vase-
BIBLIOGRAPHIC
ABBREVIATIONS
XX111
PECS Prakt Preller-Robert 4
Princeton Encyclopedia of Classical Sites, Princeton, 1976. Praktika tes en Athenais Arch aiolo gike s Etaireias. L. Preller and C . Robert. Griechische Mythologie, 4th edn, 4 vols., Berlin, 1894-1926.
RA RE
Revue archéologique. Pauly-Wissowa. Paulys Realencyclopädie der classischen Altertumswissenschaft. Revue des études anciennes. W. H. Roscher, ed. Ausführliches Lexikon der griechischen und römischen Mythologie, 10 vols., Leipzig, 1884-1937. Mitteilungen des Deutschen Archäologischen Instituts, Römische Abteilung.
REA Roscher RM
Necropolis Excavations in the Necropolis of Salamis, London and Nicosia, from 1967. Samos Deutsches Archäologisches Institut. Samos, Bonn, from 1961. Archaeological Exploration of Sardis, Monograph, Cambridge, Mass., Sardis M from 1958. Salamis,
Sardis R
Archaeological from 1958.
SBMünchen
Sitzungsberichte, Bayerische Akademie der Wissenschaften (München), Philosophisch-historische Klasse. Studi etruschi.
StEtr ThesCRA Troy
Exploration
of Sardis, Report, Cambridge, Mass.,
Thesaurus Cultus et Rituum Antiquorum, Los Angeles, 2004-06. Troy: Excavations Conducted by the University of Cincinnati, 19321938, ed. C . W. Biegen with the collaboration of J. L. Caskey and M. Rawson, Princeton, 1950- .
1
Introduction The ancient city of Assos rises from the sea to the summit of the finest natural citadel along the rugged coast of the southern Troad. The precipitous cliffs of the akropolis form a natural temenos for the archaic Doric temple that spectacularly crowns the summit, elevated and articulated within the landscape and the polis. The place commands panoramic vistas northward over the fertile valley of the Touzla River, westward along the southern coastline of the Troad and the Aegean Sea, eastward up the Gulf of Adramyttion and Kara D a g (Mount Ida), and southward across the Straits of Mytilene to the island of Lesbos. Here, one can make out the promontory of Methymna on Lesbos, mother city to Assos, and follow the coast of Asia Minor at least as far south as the modern town of Ayvalik (Fig. i). From these vantages on both land and far out to sea, the temple appears fully silhouetted against the sky and yet deeply rooted to its place, for it was constructed entirely of purplish-black andesite, quarried from the site on which it stands. Such a powerful union of nature and building goes to the heart and essence of ancient Greek architectural thinking (Pis. 1-2; Fig. 2). The harmony of the temple with its site, however, stands in marked contrast to the dissonance of its design within our perception of Greek architecture. The temple is an architectural hapax, the only k n o w n archaic Doric temple in Asia Minor. Moreover, its unrestrained design, especially the exceptional sculptured epistyle, has earned the temple nothing but notoriety. Because the design decisions chosen for this building are not the ones that weave the narrative of Greek architecture, the temple at Assos has found, at best, an uneasy place in the anti-narrative. Since its discovery, it has served mainly as a well-preserved foil for the paradigms of mainland Doric architecture, the negative exemplar against which good Doric style stands out. Even as he published new finds from the temple in 1897, Richard N o r t o n levelled the harshest criticisms against the building and in the process condemned all of Asia Minor: What the position of these sculptures does s h o w is that the Asiatic Greeks did not understand the use of sculpture for architectural decoration. The w o r k of the sculptors at Ephesus shows the same misconception, and from this early time d o w n to the very end, Asiatic
inimitable quality of the w o r k of Greece proper, showing, as only contrasts can show, the superb attainments of the Grecian sculptors and how widely-spread and civilizing their influence was. 1
We find such sweeping criticism misguided today, but even broad-minded scholars of the twentieth century, such as Gottfried Gruben and Martin Robertson, have dismissed the temple at Assos as a provincial building 'unverständig zusammengewürfelt' (thrown together without understanding), or as 'an experiment happily not often repeated'. 2 The temple does indeed clash violently with the Vitruvian notion of propriety (1.2.5-7); it cannot help but challenge modernist expectations. However, following the postmodern architectural environment of the late twentieth century, the temple generates new interest of the kind that brings to mind Robert Venturi's 'Gentle Manifesto' on the value and beauty of an 'unresolved' architecture: I like elements which are hybrid rather than 'pure,' compromising rather than 'clean,' accommodating rather than excluding, vestigial as well as innovating, inconsistent and equivocal rather than direct and clear. I am for messy vitality over obvious u n i t y . . . I am f o r richness of meaning rather than clarity of m e a n i n g ; . . . an architecture of complexity and c o n t r a d i c t i o n . . . must e m b o d y the difficult unity of inclusion rather than the easy unity of exclusion. M o r e is not less. 3
Precisely what makes the temple at Assos interesting is its 'messy vitality'. Its curiosities of form and ornament do not signal eccentric manipulations of established orders; rather, they are the outcome of a deliberate attempt to explore their possibilities. The so-called Vitruvian flaws of the temple constitute its historical importance and provide invaluable insight into early concepts of architectural order in an environment far less firmly fixed than the traditional narrative admits. The entire project is a bold experiment, conceived without the benefit or constraint of a strong local tradition and bearing no strict allegiance to a single external tradition. Those who designed the temple drew upon a full range of ideas current in the world of archaic Greek architecture and explored some of their possibilities. Architect, patron, and sculptor seem almost to be 'thinking out loud'. Thus our interest in this building lies
sculptors continued to make the same m i s t a k e . . . T h e sculptures are not beautiful; they are not even of very deep interest... T h e y are the work
of a provincial school in a country where the Fine Arts never
attained their noblest development. T h e y emphasize, however, the
N o r t o n 1897, p. 514. Gruben 2001, p. 402; C . M . Robertson 1975, pp. 81-2. See also Langlotz 197$, p. 120. 1
2
3
Venturi 1966, pp. 22-3.
27 I N T R O D U C T I O N
Ρ
'' T U
R A C K
IMBROS
•ilion
T B
Skepsis
&ε >* mmm Ε MI.
Ä LESBOS
I d a
mdros
yf
Adramyttio/i
,
i_m os
Phokaia
L Y D I A
CHIOS
Smyrna FIGURE I. M a p o f the T r o a d ; M i c h a e l C . P a g e .
Sardis
28 I N T R O D U C T I O N
VILLAGE
OF
DEH RAM
TURKISH HOUSES A
A.
MEDIAEVAL
W A L L IN WHICH S P H I N X E S
EASTERN FRONT B. C.
BOWMAN CENTAUR
D.
FOUND
WEHE
FOUND
Jlllf'n·
^ '
HERE
METOPE.
E.
SPHINX
FROM
WESTERN
LION A N D E O A R H I N D QUA R Τ ER 5
F. G . G .
MEDI/E.VAL
H.H.EARLY J . J . K.
RELIEF OF LION
TEMPLE TURKISH
FRONT
TURKISH
A N D THE.. RELIEF
_J
TOWERS
FORTI F I C A T I O N
POLYGONAL K.
OFTEMPLE
RELIEF"
FROM
WALLS
OF
MASONRY
CAPITALS WALL
BUILT MADE
INTO
WALL
OFTEMPLE
BLOCKS MEDI/CVAL TOWER. HELLENIC FOUN OATu
HOUSES"
MCDi^evAt. (SHAVE! CISTERNS;
LEDGE
TEMPL6
DEBRIS
MEDI/EVAL
•'vSy «"«Il rrs HIGHEST POI
REMAINS MEOILEVAL
, ROUGH MODCRN Ι
NCCOSlME. ^
M / ROCKY Cl
'V/l/l/J/n'iiii
hîST.tfllî
FIGURE 2. Site plan after Clarke, Bacon, and Koldewey 1902-21, p. 139.
ÎLOCKÎ'
INTRODUCTION
4
in issues far more significant than its novelty. The temple at
A further reason the Temple of Athena at Assos attracts our
Assos should be understood, in all its peculiarities, as an inte-
attention is its extraordinary state of preservation. A l t h o u g h
gral part of early G r e e k religious architecture, not as an isolated
not a single block above the stylobate survived in situ, the sheer
tangent off the path to classical design. Within its milieu, the
amount of material evidence that remains—albeit scattered
temple emerges at the very least as a pioneering attempt to graft
around the site and in museums on three continents—enables
indigenous East G r e e k decoration on to an imported D o r i c
us to have a better sense of this building than almost any other
superstructure. While the hybrid solution achieved at A s s o s is
archaic temple built outside the G r e e k West and before c.500
unique, the impetus behind it is symptomatic of the broadly
BC. Extensive evidence exists f o r virtually every part of the
creative period in G r e e k architectural design prior to the late
building; the challenge lies in making it w o r k coherently.
archaic period (advent, c.530), w h e n intraregionally
shared
T h u s far the temple has been k n o w n chiefly f r o m the w o r k
principles of design and decoration take root. 4 A n d , in fact,
of the nineteenth-century excavators and later scholars using
designers of this building initiate concerns of order and orna-
their record. In their excellent but brief excavation (1881-83),
ment that persist throughout the history of G r e e k architecture
Joseph Thacher C l a r k e and Francis H e n r y Bacon identified the
and manifest in such paradigmatic monuments as the Par-
major features of the temple but were unable to explore all the
thenon or the so-called T o m b of Philip II at Vergina. 5
material. T h e y drew and published only a fraction of the non-
T h e temple's 'messy vitality' extends perhaps even more to
sculptural blocks f r o m the temple. 6 Their reconstruction of the
its iconography than its architecture. T h e scenes that festooned
plan and the sculptured epistyle drew criticism, chiefly for its
at least part of the epistyle and frieze courses seem, on first
failure to resolve the a w k w a r d arrangement of sculpture carved
analysis, to be a similarly peculiar combination of the banal and
on blocks of w i d e l y varying lengths. In 1 9 1 3 - 1 4 , Felix Sartiaux
the unanticipated. T h e paratactic assemblage of fabulous crea-
attempted to respond to these difficulties, especially those
tures, animal combats, mythological scenes, and less specific
imposed b y the unequal lengths of the sculptured epistyle
depictions of human activity represents an especially w i d e
blocks, b y proposing a reconstruction based on graduated
range of subjects. T h e programme, if such a concept even
intercolumnar spacings across the façades. 7 His proposal has
applies, appears to be little more than an arbitrary gathering
had important implications for other archaic D o r i c monu-
of unrelated scenes f r o m the potpourri of current archaic im-
ments, but it lacked confirmation in the architectural record. 8
agery. T o do justice to the temple at Assos, however, w e must start
W h e n I began w o r k i n g on the temple, m y aim was to find confirmation of the plan, w h i c h could then lead to the recon-
f r o m the certainty that, as the principal civic and sacred monu-
structed sequence of sculpture. T h e
ment of a prosperous polis, both its design and sculptural
extended chiefly over seven seasons between 1979 and 1987
fieldwork
for this study
decoration were determined to fix the city's relationship to
and w a s aided b y the concurrent w o r k of the late D r U m i t
the deity and the larger G r e e k world. A s the city temple, it
Serdaroglu, w h o conducted excavations on the akropolis and
served not only as an expression of contemporary civic identity
generously allowed some of his results to be included here. The
and pride but also as a reflection of certain cultural values that,
f o l l o w i n g account includes all material that could be gathered
presumably, were intended to survive its builders. While dedi-
in advance of his project to restore the temple. We had the
cated to the divinity, it was meant to be seen b y human beings
pleasure of discovering several new fragments of sculpture:
w h o s e responses were obviously important. F r o m these cir-
D r Serdaroglu unearthed the fragments of lions joining reliefs
cumstances, w e can derive t w o very basic premises. First, the
A i o and A 1 3 , while I discovered the centaurs joining relief A 8
scenes depicted on the building served a purpose and thus had a
and a new metope, M i o . In the course of recording the archi-
meaning b e y o n d their decorative value. Secondly, the choice of
tectural remains in full detail, it soon became apparent that the
design features and imagery might have been naive but could
extensive remains reflected a complex and contradictory struc-
hardly have been haphazard. W h a t w e witness is a conscious
ture, w i t h the rhythm of the entablature (at least parts of it)
attempt not only to integrate architectural styles but also to
in serious conflict with the design of the plan. Moreover,
merge iconographie traditions as well. W h e n viewed in the
careful analysis of the surviving material revealed a more c o m -
light of archaic religious imagery, such disparate images do
plicated building history than previously supposed. T h e temple
f o r m a coherent iconographie corpus that aims to articulate
suffered serious damage soon after it had been completed;
the central relationships of the goddess to the polis and the
large parts of the surviving entablature, therefore, belong not
polis to the rest of the G r e e k world. Like the act of building the
to the original structure but to its restoration. This state of
temple, the appropriation of images f o r its decoration becomes a f o r m of self-definition. Clarke 1882; Clarke 1898; Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, pp. 139-68. Sartiaux 1915. * Sartiaux's suggestion has been used to bolster the possibility of a similar arrangement in other archaic Doric temples, e.g. the Temple of Athena at Karthaia ( 0 s t b y 1980, pp. 218-23 a r , d n n · i o 8 - 9 ) , or the H - T e m p l c in Athens (1974, p. 650, fig. 10). 6
F o r this period in architectural sculpture, R i d g w a y 1993, pp. 273-415; Marconi 2007. 4
5 Yet another position for a frieze within Doric design appears in the recently discovered tomb at A g i o s Athanasios: Tsimbidou-Avloniti 2005, pp. 114-42, pis. 27, 30-1, 32-7.
7
INTRODUCTION
5
affairs explains in part w h y scholars have been unable to fit all
connection to each other or to the architecture. 1 0 Equally
of the blocks of the sculptured epistyle on to the building
central to the present study is h o w the reliefs fit on the building, and whether or not they belonged to the first or the second
simultaneously. M y first objective in the w o r k presented here has been to document the extensive remains of the building and f r o m them
phase, as described above. F r o m this basis w e m a y
then consider the temple in
to reconstruct as precisely as possible the design of the temple.
relation to early G r e e k architectural design, aiming to under-
The infelicities are highlighted rather than glossed. T o clarify
stand not only w h e n and under what influence it w a s built, but
the t w o important building phases, the material is segregated
also the multifaceted process b y w h i c h such an unusual design
into t w o chapters, 'Description and Reconstruction of the
emerged, as well as its implications for our understanding of
Original Building', and ' M a j o r Repairs'. These chapters intro-
early G r e e k architecture. Architectural monuments are usually
duce and interpret the material evidence; aspects of the restored
treated as finished products, f o r good reason. Reconstructing
design that require some degree of speculation are clearly
the process of designing a building must account f o r the elusive
indicated. Because the evidence for techniques of construction
and dynamic qualities of time, intention, and decision-making.
is rich and varied, that material has been set out in a separate
T h e design of the temple at Assos demands such an approach;
chapter preceding the description of the architecture, 'Building
its chief interest lies in the interaction of external influence and
Materials and Technical Aspects of Construction'.
local interpretation and innovation b y w h i c h the building came
In proposing a reconstruction for the architecture and sculp-
to include its various components. T h e p h e n o m e n o n forms a
ture, I have favoured the surviving architectural and technical
key aspect in our understanding of the political and cultural
evidence over compositional expectations, even w h e n the re-
dynamics of the region in the sixth century, and is explored in
sults seem
disquieting. 9
T h e inconsistencies must be a c k n o w -
ledged; it may be that they are not completely exceptional f o r
Chapter 9, 'Significance of the Temple within the Development of Archaic Architecture and Architectural D e c o r a t i o n ' .
Doric architecture preceding the final decades of the sixth
To investigate decisions concerning design and iconography
century BC. Furthermore, they dramatically reveal the kind of
means addressing the individuals w h o made them. But here,
difficulties encountered by designers and masons in trying to
not surprisingly, w e have imperfect knowledge even of w h o
build D o r i c f o r the first time. It seemed best to let the archi-
assumed w h i c h responsibilities. 1 1 Since the temple at Assos is a
tecture speak f o r itself and see w h a t emerged f r o m the process.
city temple, the programme must have been overseen by civic
O u r understanding of the design of the sculptured epistyle
and religious authorities acting o n behalf of the city. N o t h i n g is
is, of course, complicated b y the extensive repairs made to
k n o w n of the government of Assos in the Archaic period; civic
the upper building, repairs that surely required some replace-
authority m a y have rested with an individual ruler or a leading
ment reliefs. Segregating original f r o m new material, with
family or group of families, or, less likely, with a w i d e r group of
certain notable exceptions, can become highly subjective; in
citizens. Such persons w e r e responsible for the m a j o r decisions
Chapter 8, 'Arrangement of the Sculpture', I have favoured a
affecting the commission and
minimal approach. I could find no w a y to resolve all the
appointed the individual(s) w h o actually designed and oversaw
financing.
Presumably, they
inherent awkwardness in stringing together the scenes. Some
the construction of the temple. In this book, the term architect
creature's face will inevitably stare at another's backside. We
refers to the individual w h o made the major decisions affecting
k n o w very little about the w a y in w h i c h transitions f r o m one
the placement of the building and its design. T h o s e w h o actu-
subject to another were resolved in high archaic frieze sculp-
ally constructed the building are called masons. It is assumed
ture, and proposing a more extensive programme for the repair,
that civic or religious authorities planned the sculptural pro-
in order to resolve some of the difficulties, w o u l d mask the
gramme and a designer ( w h o may have been either the architect
problem rather than see it as a starting point for coming to
or one of the sculptors) composed and coordinated the series of
terms with aspects of high archaic composition.
scenes. Finally, the sculptors (one of w h o m may also have been
A second objective has been to interpret the iconography of
the designer) are those w h o carved the reliefs.
the sculptural decoration: to present n e w l y discovered sculp-
Tables w i t h the dimensions and features of identifiable
ture; to understand in some instances w h a t the images repre-
temple b l o c k s as well as drawings of several examples are
sent and in other cases to reconstruct the original composition;
included.
to determine where the ideas f o r the imagery might have come
blocks f o u n d on the akropolis but not part of the temple.
from; and, more broadly, to understand h o w scenes might gain
Measurements are recorded to the third decimal between all
An
appendix
(IV)
catalogues
other
important
in meaning by their association on the building. I therefore
sharply w o r k e d surfaces, and to the second decimal w h e n a
follow a somewhat different trajectory f r o m that of Ursula
preserved surface is intentionally r o u g h or variable. Clarke's
Finster-Hotz, w h o s e iconographie study presents a thorough account of the scenes individually, leaving open their potential Finster-Hotz 1984. Burford 1969; Scranton 1969, pp. 2-34; C o u l t o n 1977, pp. 15-29; Hellmann 2002, pp. 32-55, 70-81; Svenson-Evers 1996 (literary and epigraphic testimonia for k n o w n archaic and classical architccts). 10 11
N o t e Gruben's (1996, p. 62) w r y comments on restoration by 'canonical' analogy.
6
INTRODUCTION
site plan of the akropolis serves as the guide f o r establishing
dismantling rather than reconstructing the building, of elimin-
the grid locations to identify the positions w h e r e blocks w e r e
ating possible organizations rather than finding an overarching
found. A l l dates are BC unless otherwise indicated. T h e site is
solution that confirms the meaning of each mark and every
described as it w a s until 1986, prior to the reconstruction
block. While the present account does not answer all the ques-
project that has necessarily altered the site and access to the
tions raised by the building and its site, I hope it will engage the
remains.
temple at Assos more fully in the larger narrative of archaic
In attempting to come to terms with the Temple of A t h e n a at Assos, I have found myself more frequently in the position of
G r e e k architecture and provide a basis u p o n w h i c h further solutions may be formulated.
32
History of the Building, its Early Visitors, and its Excavation A b o u t the worship of Athena at Assos we are not in doubt. Her head appears on the obverse of Assian coinage from the Classical period, and the reverse of a classical silver tetradrachm bears a remarkable representation of an archaic statue of Athena in the attitude associated with Athena Ilias and the Palladion (Fig. 3).1 The columnar figure standing on a base wears a veil and a long robe with vertical pleats. Fillets hang over her extended left hand, and in her right hand she bears a spear that rests on her shoulder and points toward the ground. The hieratic pose suggests an archaic cult statue. To this numismatic evidence we can add the oath sworn by the Assians on the accession of Caligula, AD 37, and recorded on a bronze tablet found below the Bouleuterion in 1881: ομνυμ€ν Δία παρθενον
Σωτήρα
καί deòv Καίσαρα
Σεβαστόν
και την πάτριον
άγνήν
evvorjaeιν
We swear by Zeus Soter and the deity Caesar Augustus, and by the pure Virgin w h o m our fathers worshipped . . .
This inscription remains our best testimonium for Athena as the first and principal deity worshipped at Assos. 2 A second
inscription from the Street of the Tombs recording Lollia Arlegilla as την της /7oA[i]àSoç Αθηνάς ÎépeLav καί νεωκόρον, 'the Priestess of Athena Polias, and keeper of her temple', connects the cult to the city and to a temple. 3 It must be the temple on the akropolis, magnificently positioned at the top and centre of Assos, and the physical manifestation of the cult that ensured civic well-being. According to the archaeological record, the temple was the city's earliest monumental stone building and remained the principal religious monument throughout antiquity. Although it required major repairs soon after it was built, and certain renovations in the Hellenistic period, the temple stood for some nine centuries without fundamental alterations to its design. It suffered no final catastrophe, but seems simply to have been abandoned as popular confidence in Christianity surpassed the need for a patron deity of the polis. 4 Circumstantial evidence—the construction of a Christian basilica in the lower city and the name of Maximus, a bishop from Assos, in the lists of the Third Council of Ephesos, AD 431—suggests the transition was accomplished by the early fifth century AD.5 Time, nature, and later inhabitants conspired to shake the temple gradually to the ground over the course of the following 15 centuries. The successive Byzantine walls that encircle the akropolis in ever-tighter rings and incorporate increasing numbers of temple blocks document the piecemeal demolition. In the latest wall, made almost entirely of material from the temple, the blocks have been pulled from their original positions and simply piled upright. 6 Capitals formed the southern
FIGURE 3. C o i n image of Athena Polias, Waddington tetradrachm reverse, Cabinet des Médailles; after Babelon vol. 2, pi. 163,28.
1 C o i n s with head of Athena: Babelon II.2, cols. 1267-74, pi. 163.28-35, 164.1-7; Wroth 1964a, pp. xxxiv-xxxvi, 36-8, pi. 7. F o r the representation of the
archaic statue, see L a C r o i x 1949, pp. 122-3, p t 9-4! Babelon II.2, cols. 1267-8, no. 2302, pi. 163.28; the coin has been dated from the last third of the fifth century to the fourth century BC. For other representations of statues of Athena on the coinage of nearby Ilion and Pergamon, see also Lacroix 1949, pp. 101-12, 124-7, pis· 7, 9; Babelon II.2, no. 2398, pi. 166.19; Wroth 1964b, p. 110, no. 4, pi. 23.3-4. The Assos representation is most closely related to the representations from Troy, especially in the position of the figure and the spear. Athena Ilias carries a distaff and spindle rather than fillets, and she wears a kalathos rather than a veil. Clarke 1882, pp. 133-5, p'· T> Stcrrett 1883, pp. 50-3, no. 26; Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, p. 66, fig. 17; Merkelbach 1976, pp. 51-9, no. 26.
3 Sterrett 1883, pp. 32-4, no. 14; Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, p. 262; Merkclbach 1976, pp. 30-5, no. 16. Leaf 1923, p. 291, calls it a temple of Apollo, without explanation. His identification perhaps comes from Schliemann 1884, p. 318, where it is suggested that Assos is the ancient Chryse, w i t h its sanctuary of Sminthean A p o l l o .
Contra Tcxier 1849, p. 206, 'Tout porte à penser que le monument ί été démoli exprès' ('Everything leads one to think that the monument w a s intentionally demolished'); and later Clarke 1880, p. 157, 'The early change to Christianity accounts, without doubt, for the entire overthrow of the larger monuments and temples, many of which bear the marks of wilful destruction'. C o m p a r e with the Temple Zeus at Nemea: C o o p e r 1983, pp. 41, 52. Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, pp. 2-3. The first wall encompasses the entire akropolis and includes the round towers; see Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, p. 139. The second wall runs between the large enceinte and the crude wall; only a small part of it is recorded on Bacon s plan of the akropolis (Bacon's plate 139, here Fig. 2), where it is labelled H and 5
6
IO
H I S T O R Y OF THE
BUILDING
side, while geison and t y m p a n o n blocks were fitted together to
ants permitted him to visit the agora, they kept him f r o m their
f o r m the western face (Fig. 2; wall labelled K K ) . A n epistyle
village near the akropolis, to Covel's severe disappointment:
block (A42) served as the threshold and t w o epistyle backers ( A B 5 , A B 6 ) became the jambs for the wall's western gate. Simple dwellings were built on and around the temple, some using w h o l e stylobate or epistyle blocks to form their foundation or walls (Pi. 2)/ O n e structure north of the temple's foundations re-employed t w o stylobate blocks f r o m the east end, S4 and S21, signalling the early destruction of that side of the building. T h e houses are not dated b y stratigraphie evidence, but the latest phases probably belong to the final Byzantine period under Machrames prior to
i3o6. H
T h e Turks
w h o subsequently occupied A s s o s did not live on the summit of the akropolis, but they continued to plunder the temple for construction material, or for making tools such as mortars and grinding stones. Early travellers' accounts that concentrate chiefly on the wreckage of the temple nevertheless indicate that at least part of the building still stood in the early nineteenth century. B y the time of the American excavation in the 18 80s, however, not a block above the stylobate remained in situ.
The Turks were horribly afraid of us by reason of Gerely's late prancks. They let us come up to ye town but would not let us walk about to see anything, which I much desired, because I have been certainly informed that many Grave stones and inscriptions are there. They brought us cold water and affronted us not after I had shew my Boyourdes; and we might have seen what we wanted had we had a dragoman yt understood to work them into good nature. 10
M o r e than a century later, Marie-Gabriel-Florent-Auguste de Choiseul Gouffier, French nobleman and ambassador to the Porte between 1784 and 1792, passed by Assos in 1785 while making a geographical survey of the western coast of Turkey. H e lingered at the site only long enough to experience the beauty of the landscape and to f o r m a poetic impression of the monuments. His imaginative plan and rendering of the site concoct three huge D o r i c temples in the agora but none on the akropolis. 1 1 T h e earliest brief but informative descriptions of the temple on the akropolis belong to the first quarter of the nineteenth century. T h e journal entry made b y the intrepid and erudite topographer C o l o n e l William Martin Leake in 1800 concisely summarizes the ancient remains, calling particular attention to
DESCRIPTIONS
OF T H E T E M P L E BY
TRAVELLERS TO
EARLY
ASSOS
A s s o s had lost all contemporary importance by the time the city came under the dominion of the O t t o m a n Empire around AD 1330. T h e Turkish cartographer Piri Re'is described and mapped the harbour of Assos in 1521, but he did not mention the remarkably well-preserved ancient monuments that stood
the peculiar architectural sculptures he found scattered on the akropolis: The ruins of Assos, at Behram Kalesi, opposite to Molivo, the antient Methymna in Mytilene. The ruins are extremely curious. There is a theatre in very perfect preservation; there are also the remains of several temples, at one of which are figures in low relief, in a very antient style of art, sculptured upon the hard granite of Mount Ida, which forms the materials of the buildings. O n the western side of the
fully visible in the virtually empty landscape of the upper city. 9
city the remains of wall and towers, with a gate, are in complete
T h e monuments were, however, k n o w n to European travellers
preservation; without the wall is seen the cemetery, with numerous
at least b y the seventeenth century. T h e Englishman John T.
sarcophagi, some of which are of gigantic dimensions, still standing in
C o v e l , then chaplain to Sir James Harvey, ambassador of
their places, and an antient causeway leading to the gate. The whole
Charles II to the Sublime Porte, stopped at Assos on his return
gives, perhaps, the most perfect idea of a Greek city that anywhere
in 1677 f r o m A t h o s to Constantinople. A l t h o u g h the inhabit-
exists. 12
A year later another Englishman, D r Leigh H u n t , described the temple and its sculpture in closer detail. H i s journal entry identified as an early fortification of polygonal masonry. Other sections of the wall are constructed of carefully fitted temple blocks and represent an intermediate phase of post-antique fortification. There is some confusion over the date of the third, more crudely constructed wall built almost exclusively of temple blocks, which runs between the t w o cisterns (G). Clarke (1882, p. 28) dates the wall to the Greek War of Independence, 1821-27, but later (Clarke 1898, pp. 46-7), he reassigns the wall and 'hovels' to the last Byzantine occupation between the Seljuk and O t t o m a n conquests, AD 1097-c. 1330. Unfortunately, neither Texier nor Clarke recorded datable material from the Byzantine structures that they removed from the temple's foundations. The latest fortification wall no longer survives, having been partially dismantled by Texier in 1835, further broken up by Clarke and Bacon in 1881-83, a n c ! completely disassembled by U m i t Serdaroglu in the 1980s and 1990s for his reconstruction project. 7 Clarke 1898, pp. 46-7, as well as Serdaroglu's excavation described in this chapter. 8 Pachymcnes v. 26; from J. M . C o o k 1973, pp. 247, 373-4. A l s o J. M. C o o k 1988, p. 13, for Greeks at Assos after the conquest. 9
Piri Re'is 1988, vol. 1, 71a, 74a (map), 313 (transi.).
indicates that some of the temple's columns were then in situ: . . . the columns are about three feet in diameter; parts of the shafts remain on their original site, so that a person conversant with ancient architecture might easily trace the plan and different details. 13
10 T h e C o v e l Papers, British Library, A d d . MS. 22914, ff. 5 χb— 5 3. For most of the text, sec Sartiaux 1915, A n n e x 1, pp. 149-50. H e omits the final paragraph concerning the akropolis, given here.
Choiseul G o u f f i e r 1809, pp. 86-8. Leake 1820, pp. 253-5; Leake 1824, pp. 128-9. O v e r the course of the nineteenth century, many travellers recorded their visits to Assos; only those whose accounts make a significant contribution toward our understanding of the history and remains of the archaic temple are discussed here. For additional accounts see Clarke 1882, pp. 5—15; Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, pp. 3-5; Sartiaux 1915, pp. 4-8, and notes. 11
12
13
H u n t 1817, p. 127.
HISTORY OF THE In his d e s c r i p t i o n of the s c u l p t u r e , w e r e c o g n i z e the left half of relief A 3 as a p r o c e s s i o n to sacrifice w i t h three n a k e d
figures
m a r c h i n g in the same d i r e c t i o n w h i l e a n o t h e r l o o k s (Pi. 100c; F i g . 80). T w o bulls
fighting
back
m u s t be A 1 4 , w h i l e
three horses r u n n i n g c o u l d be A 7 (Pis. 80, 94; Figs. 69, 78). H i s d e s c r i p t i o n of ' t w o w i n g e d sphinxes, resting each of t h e m a f o o t o n a k i n d o f c a n d e l a b r u m p l a c e d b e t w e e n t h e m ' suggests that relief A 2 m a y h a v e b e e n c o m p l e t e at this time (Pis. 7 8 - 9 ; Fig· 68). 1 4 L a s t l y , he m e n t i o n s a s y m p o s i o n w i t h a y o u t h p r e senting a c u p t o a b e a r d e d m a n , i n d i c a t i n g the left side of relief A 4 (Ρ1· 102c; F i g . 81). A f e w y e a r s later the P o l i s h
Count
E d u a r d R a c z y h s k i l i k e n e d the site to a c o n s t r u c t i o n
zone,
w i t h all the b l o c k s of the t e m p l e laid o u t as if a b o u t t o be set up.
15
BUILDING
9
the south side I found in this stone quarry a relief representing a lion biting a deer in the back. S u r e l y the ' g r e a t granite p o s t s ' are the t w o u p r i g h t epistyle b a c k e r s that f o r m e d the gate near the n o r t h w e s t end of the t e m p l e d e s c r i b e d a b o v e , w h i c h w o u l d m e a n that v o n R i c h t e r s a w the l e f t f r a g m e n t of A 3 , d e s c r i b e d as
figures
with out-
stretched hands; p o s s i b l y a p a r t of A 4 in the figure h o l d i n g a cup; and, relief A 1 4 , t w o o x e n w i t h l o c k e d h o r n s , all built into this s t r u c t u r e near the n o r t h w e s t c o r n e r of the t e m p l e (Pis. i o o c , i o 2 c , 80; Figs. 8 0 - 1 , 69). T h e l i o n biting t h e b a c k of a stag m u s t be Α 1 2 , w h i c h he f o u n d to the s o u t h (PI. 87; F i g . 74). D u r i n g the n e x t t w o decades, several o t h e r antiquarians gave a c c o u n t s of the s c u l p t u r e . T h e m o s t t h o r o u g h w a s that of the G e r m a n aristocrat A n t o n P r o k e s c h v o n O s t e n , w h o in J u l y
T h e G e r m a n scholar O t t o Friedrich v o n Richter not only
1826 d e s c r i b e s 11 s u b j e c t s of the 20 s c u l p t u r e d reliefs (called
describes the s c u l p t u r e d reliefs he s a w d u r i n g his visit in June
m e t o p e s ) h e s a w w i t h i n the latest w a l l s and d o w n t h e southeast
1816, b u t also gives s o m e i n d i c a t i o n of their l o c a t i o n .
slope:
c o m m e n t s p r o v i d e vital i n f o r m a t i o n f o r the
find-spots
His
of the
sculptures n o w in the L o u v r e : . . . und oben auf dem Gipfel des Berges ein Thor, aus einem Paar großen Granit-Pfosten bestehend; darin finden sich zwei Steine mit Reliefs über einander. Das untere enthält drei vorschreitende Figuren, mit ausgestreckten Händen, denen eine vierte etwas, das einem Becher
Ich fand dieser Metopen theils innerhalb der Burg, theils herausgeworfen, unter dem südöstlichen Thurme an 20, worunter 11 noch nicht verstümmelt, folgende Gegenstände vorstellen: 1) Z w e i kämpfende Stiere; 2) Zwei Kentauren im Kampfe; 3) Vier Figuren, wovon die erste eine weibliche, diese winket, die anderen folgen; 4) Ein
und es also nicht zeichnen konnte, stellt zwei große Ochsen vor, die
Hirsch, den ein L ö w e so eben am Rücken erfaßt und niederreißet; 5) Zwei geflügelte Sphinxe, sich gegenüber ruhend; 6) Eine geflügelte Sphinx; 7) Drei Kentauren; 8) Ein sitzender Amor, der die Hand auf den Bogen stützt; 9) Ein Stier, das Haupt zur Erde neigend; 10) Ein
mit den Stirnen an einander stoßen. Daneben häufen sich cannelirte
Mahl. Zwei Männer sitzen gegen einander über auf Polstern; der links
Säulen und Fundamente des Tempels
sitzende reicht dem Gaste mit der Rechten eine A r t Kuchen, während er mit der linken die Schaale über die eigene rechte Seite zurückhält. Der andere legt die Rechte wie zur Versicherung auf die Brust, und hat in der Linken eine Vase; 11) Abermal ein Mahl. Zwei Männer ruhen,
ähnlich sieht, entgegen hält
Das darauf liegende Relief, unter
welches ich mich durch die Disteln auf dem Rücken schieben mußte,
A n der Südseite fand ich in
diesem Steinbruche ein Relief, einen L ö w e n darstellend, der einem Hirsch in den Rücken beißt. 1 6 . . . and above on the crest of the citadel stood a gate made from a pair of great granite posts; therein were found t w o stones with reliefs one above the other. The lower one includes three forward striding figures with outstretched hands, to w h o m a fourth holds out something that looks like a cup
The relief lying on top, under which I had to push
on my back through the thistles and therefore could not draw, represents two great oxen, butting each other with their foreheads. N e x t to it are piled up fluted columns and the foundation of the temple
On
die gehenkelten Becher in der Hand, sich gegenüber, den linken Arm auf Kissen gestützt. Dem vorderen naht ein Knabe, und gießt Getränk aus ähnlichem Gefäß in eine runde Schaale. Hinter dem Knaben sieht man eine große Vase. Die runde Schaale ist das noch heut zu Tage im ganzen Orient gebräuchliche Trinkgeschirr. A u c h die große Vase, ein Vorrathsgefäß, ist in Griechenland und Kleinasien noch häufig im Gebrauche. 1 7 I found some 20 metopes partly within the citadel and partly thrown
14 According to Clarke and Bacon, w e can rule out A i , for two of its three fragments were embedded in mortar in the Byzantine wall until dislodged by Clarke and Bacon in 1881; see below, Appendix I, A i . Clarke 1882, p. 33, suggests that Texier also knew of the centre, as well as the right fragment of A2, for he describes and draws the relief correctly; see Texier 1849, p. 207, pi. 112. There is, however, an important discrepancy introduced by the illustrations to Eduard Raczynski's 1814 Polish record of his travels. T h e German translation of Raczynski includes only an illustration of the theatre at Assos. I have not been able to examine the Polish manuscript. However, individual plates, also engraved by Fuhrmann but captioned in Polish, which I have seen, include not only the engraving of the theatre, but also a view of the Doric tomb, the right fragment of the sphinx on A2, n o w in the Louvre, and the left fragment of A i , n o w in Boston. We must therefore assume that Raczynski knew of the right fragment of A t , and that Clarke and Bacon have somehow confused their data. Possibly only one fragment (the central piece) of A i was embedded in the Byzantine wall, and the find-spots of the right portion of A i and one of the t w o remaining pieces of Az were confused.
Raczynski 1825, p. 203. von Richter 1822, pp. 466-7.
out, under the southeast tower, of which eleven are still not mutilated. They present the following subjects: 1) two fighting oxen; 2) two centaurs in a battle; 3) four figures, of which the first is a female who beckons the others to follow; 4) a deer, which a lion seizes on the back and tears down; 5) two winged sphinxes, stationary toward one another; 6) one winged sphinx; 7) three centaurs; 8) a seated Eros, who rests his hand on a bow; 9) an ox with its head toward the ground; 10) a feast. T w o men sit across from one another on cushions; the one sitting to the left presents with his right hand a kind of pastry to the guest, while he holds in his left a cup over his right side. The other puts his right hand to his breast as an assurance, and he has in his left hand a vase; and 11) yet again a feast. T w o men recline against one another, with handled cups in their hands, their left arms propped up on cushions. A youth approaches the man in front and pours drink from a similar vessel into a round cup. Behind the youth one sees a large 17
Prokesch von Osten 1837, pp. 400-1.
IO
H I S T O R Y OF T H E
vase. The round cup is still today a common drinking vessel in the whole Orient. Also the large vase, a storage vessel, is still often in use in Greece and Asia Minor.
In this series w e recognize the bulls of A 1 4 ; the middle fragment of A8; the left f o u r Nereids of relief A 3 ; relief A 1 2 ; the paired sphinxes of M3; the right side p r o b a b l y of A 2 ; the preserved fragment of Ay; possibly Herakles in the left fragment of A 5 ; the bull of relief A 1 5 ; and, the right and left sides of relief A 4 (Pis. 80, 95a, 100c, 87, 103, 79, 94, 92, 81, 102a, 102c; Figs. 69, 79, 80, 74, 82, 68, 78, 76, 70, 81). Prokesch von O s t e n also mentions foundations and other architectural members, including the unusual column drum with 18 flutes. T h e most imaginative account comes f r o m the French traveller, Jean Joseph François Poujoulat, w h o s e colourful account f r o m a visit to A s s o s on 22-3 O c t o b e r 1830, is more accurate than it first appears and contains m u c h valuable information, albeit highly
embroidered. 1 8
Poujoulat begins his description
BUILDING
breuvage' ( Ί have recognized in the middle of a heap of ruins, a family scene, representing a dropsical man with an enormous head and flanks, seated on an elevated bed; next to the bed is a man with a long beard, w h o offers the sick one a beverage'), which sounds like the right fragment of the symposion, A 4 (PL 102a; Fig. 81). However, Poujoulat continues, 'une femme couverte d'un vêtement semblable au costume des femmes d'Orient, est assise en face du lit; derrière elle se trouvent quatre femmes debout devant une grande urne; une d'elles est dépouillée de ses vêtements' ('a w o m a n covered in clothing resembling the costume of w o m e n of the Orient is seated facing the bed; behind her are four w o m e n standing in front of a great urn; one of them is casting off her clothing'). If w e eliminate the seated woman, this description appears to be a conflation of the left fragment of A 4 with the left end of A 3 , a mistake also made by the more discerning von Richter, and one that suggests that these fragments were found adjacent to one another.
of the iconography with the general comment, Έ η parcourant
T h e French architect Jean-Nicolas H u y o t , w h o examined
ces précieux débris, j'assistais tour-à-tour à des danses, à des
the ruins in M a y 1817) created the earliest surviving drawings
banquets, à des sacrifices.' ('In going over these precious re-
of the sculpture and architectural members. 1 9 H e sketched the
mains, I witnessed b y turns dances, banquets, and sacrifices.')
site in watercolour and made accurately measured drawings of
N e x t he describes a scene for w h i c h there is no evidence at all:
the temple, including a capital, triglyph, geison, and three
'Ici des femmes mollement étendues sur des lits ou des divans,
fragmentary reliefs that he assigned to the 'interior of the
présentent leurs coupes à des esclaves qui leur versent à boire,
portico'. In his drawings of centaurs, symposiasts, and a
tandis que leurs longs cheveux, qui sont leur seul vêtement,
sphinx, w e recognize A 7 , the left t w o fragments of A 4 , and
flottent négligemment sur leurs épaules' ('Here w o m e n indo-
the right side of A 2 (Pis. 94, 102c, 79; Figs. 78, 81, 68). H e also
lently outstretched on beds or divans, present their cups to
mentions 'une cérémonie avec des prêtres égyptiens' ('a cere-
slaves w h o p o u r drinks for them, while their long hair, w h i c h
m o n y w i t h Egyptian priests'), w h i c h p r o b a b l y is the left side of
is their only clothing, floats negligently on their shoulders').
A 3 , and bulls, w h i c h must be A 1 4 (Pis. 100c, 80; Figs. 80, 69).
T h e next description, 'là d'autres femmes s'avancent en ca-
H u y o t notes that he was unable to measure the height of the
dence, les unes derrière les autres, en battant des mains, ou
column because drums had been reused in the crude fortifica-
folâtrant ensemble sur des tapis ou sur le gazon' ('there other
tion walls discussed above, but he gives accurate measurements
w o m e n advance in step, one behind the other, clapping their
of the upper and l o w e r diameter. H u y o t did not mention the
hands or frolicking together on either carpets or grass') is
plan of the temple, and the fact that he sketched it w i t h a
recognizable as the left side of relief A 3 (Pi. 100c; Fig. 80).
southern orientation on his topographical plan of the site sug-
This description is f o l l o w e d by, 'plus loin sont des groupes
gests he did not have a good idea of its position.
entourés de coupes et d'urnes' ('further on are groups sur-
Encouraged by the accounts of H u y o t , the French architect
rounded b y cups and urns'), w h i c h could be a part of A 4 (PI.
Charles Texier undertook the first formal investigation of the
102c; Fig. 81). 'J'ai vu deux femmes, placées en face l'une de
temple in June 1835. 20 A t this time, some of the cella wall and
l'autre, dont la partie inférieure se termine en queue de poisson
perhaps a f e w of the lowest column drums w e r e still in place,
c o m m e la f e m m e dont parle Horace; près de là, deux boeufs
but the foundation was obscured b y accumulated earth as well
dont les têtes se touchent et qui entrelacent leurs cornes.' ( Ί
as late Byzantine structures built directly on the floor of the
saw t w o w o m e n , placed one facing the other, w h o s e lower part
temple. With the help of French sailors, Texier dislodged
terminated in a fishtail like the w o m a n of w h o m
the r o w of capitals that had been built into the southern stretch
Horace
speaks; near there, t w o oxen w h o s e heads are touching and
of the latest fortification wall. H e also exposed the stylobate
are crossing their horns.') This account surely indicates the
along one of the flanks (probably the southern), but not the
central section of A 3 and the entire relief A 1 4 (Pis. 100b, 80;
façade, w h i c h was apparently underneath more modern (that
Figs. 80, 69). Poujoulat goes on, 'J'ai reconnu au milieu d'un tas
is, Byzantine) construction. 2 1 His excavations also must have
de décombres, une scène de famille, représentant un hydropique, avec une tête et des flancs énormes, assis sur un lit élevé; à côté du lit est un h o m m e à longue barbe, qui offre au malade un
19 Bibliothèque Nationale, H u y o t notebook 664, pp. 47-52. The unpublished sketchbook and journal include accurate and comprehensive sketches and plans of all the major monuments, as well as several fine views.
Texier 1849, pp. 200-2, 205-7, pis. 108-15. Texier himself does not mention that any of the columns were in situ, but Clarac 1841, p. 1151 states that Texier based his plan on'l'emplacement et les traces 20 21
1S
Poujoulat 1834, pp. 218-19.
IO H I S T O R Y O F T H E
BUILDING
--l^rAl
FIGURE 4. East façade of the temple, proposed by Charles Texier; Texier 1849, pi. 112,
revealed several sculptures that had not been described by
The monument is utterly destroyed, but the construction of a Greek
earlier travellers, including A 9 , lion bringing d o w n a bull;
temple is so logical that when one possesses one part of it, the rest
A n , lion crushing a doe; the left fragment of a centaur on
follows naturally.
A8; M4, boar; and M 7 , galloping centaur (Pis. 82-3, 95a,
Paradoxically, the reconstruction he published in 1849 was the
i04~5a-b; Figs. 71, 73, 79, 83-4). Additionally, he must have
first to demonstrate the most illogical aspect of the temple's
exposed the right fragment of A 3 with Herakles and Triton,
design—that the large sculptured reliefs belonged to the epi-
w h i c h goes unmentioned in previous accounts but is drawn by
style (Fig. 4). This fact was so extraordinary to Texier that he
Charles Fellows three years later (Pi. 100a; Fig. 80). In his later
urged the A c a d é m i e des Beaux-arts to form a commission to
edition of Texier's account, R. Popplewell Pullan, w h o visited
examine the issue. 23 A s for the patron deity, Texier saw enough
Assos on 18 O c t o b e r 1861, only adds that Texier's digging
marine iconography in the sculpture to associate the temple
unearthed many fragments of tile. 22
with Poseidon.
Texier identified and drew various parts of the temple, but
F o l l o w i n g Texier, Sir Charles Fellows was one of the last
neither his measurements nor his rendering of architectural
antiquarians to see the impressive array of sculpture scattered
details reflect careful scrutiny of the evidence. His attitude
around the site during his visit in M a r c h 1838.
toward this and other ancient monuments is somewhat cavalier: O n every side lay columns, triglyphs, and friezes, of beautiful sculpC e monument est renversé de fond en comble; mais le construction
ture, every object speaking of the grandeur of this ancient city. In one
d'un temple grec est si logique, que lorsqu'on en possède une partie, le reste s'ensuit naturellement.
place I saw 30 Doric capitals placed up in a line for a f e n c e . . . T h e
de colonnes en partie debout' ('the placement and traces of columns, some of which are still upright')· For the foundations, sec Texier 1849, p. 206. 22
Pullan 1865, p. 38.
annexed plate will show one of the friezes, the subject of which 23 Leake 1824, p. 128, notes the feature but does not elaborate. Texier's reconstruction has had some life of its o w n , appearing in Durm 1892, pp. 109-10, fig. 83, and later in D . S. Robertson 1971, fig. 36.
Κ- — - (>9··ε)
k
Οθ ζ)
GS
ί
ì -a "ο ì4
1 g
CQ «Γ
3 u
-T3
U
ο
M
IO H I S T O R Y O F T H E
BUILDING
FIGURE 6. Reconstructed east elevation of the temple, proposed by J. T. Clarke; after Clarke, Bacon, and Koldewey, p. 145.
I cannot understand or describe [A3]; others represented bulls fight-
further archaeological w o r k at the site. Fortunately, the temple
ing, sphinxes crouching, and a variety of animals, well executed,
escaped the systematic dismantling of monuments in the lower
although upon a coarse material. 24
city (theatre, gymnasium, and city gates) undertaken to provide
Six months later, the French scholar Désiré Raoul-Rochette
building material for the docks of the arsenal in Istanbul in
received permission f r o m Sultan M a h m u d II to remove one
1864. The French government managed to stop the plundering
capital and 13 sculptured blocks to the Musée du Louvre. 2 3 His
and to negotiate a claim to all further discoveries of ancient art
cache included, f r o m the epistyle: the right half of A2,
at Assos, but no one t o o k advantage of the opportunity. 2 6
con-
fronted sphinxes; A 3 , Herakles and Triton; A 4 , symposion; A 7 and A8, running centaurs; A 9 , A n , and A 1 2 , lions bringing d o w n herbivores; A 1 4 and A i 5, confronted bulls; and f r o m the
T H E
A M E R I C A N
E X C A V A T I O N S ,
1 8 8 1 - 3
frieze: M 3 , confronted sphinxes; M4, boar; and, M 7 , centaur. Unfortunately, these blocks were sawed off to a thickness of
W h e n the American architects Joseph Thacher C l a r k e and
0.15 m. to facilitate their installation in the walls of the Louvre,
Francis H e n r y Bacon examined the site 15 years later, in June
thus destroying architectural evidence crucial for the building's
1879, Assos had again become a forgotten city. D e e p l y im-
construction. N e i t h e r Raoul-Rochette nor Texier undertook
pressed b y the architectural significance and excellent state of
Fellows 1839, pp. 47-8. The 30 capitals are those exposed by Texier. Clarac 1841, pp. 1149-66, for an early account of the reliefs at the Louvre.
26
Sartiaux 1915, pp. 7-8. Sartiaux 191S, pp. 28-9.
IO
H I S T O R Y OF T H E
BUILDING
FIGURE 7. Reconstruction of the temple, proposed b y Felix Sartiaux; after Sartiaux 1915, p. 191, fig. 32,
the monuments, Clarke convinced the n e w l y formed A r c h a e o -
bedrock at levels between 0.60 and 0.80 m. b e l o w the upper
logical Institute of America to support a large-scale excavation
surface of the stylobate (approximately 0.05 to 0.25 m. b e l o w
of the entire city. 2 7 T w o years later, on 19 A p r i l 1881, he and
the bed of the first step). 30 Soundings were also made in the
Bacon inaugurated the first A m e r i c a n expedition to the Medi-
pronaos at places lacking paving slabs (labelled A A on Clarke's
terranean. In three intensive campaigns lasting until the sum-
first plan). 3 1 T h e excavators cut additional trenches from the
mer of 1883, they surveyed the entire site and excavated the
foundation outward toward the circuits of the Byzantine for-
akropolis, agora, theatre, and western nekropolis. 2 8 Investiga-
tifications, w h i c h they partially dismantled in search of sculp-
tion of the archaic D o r i c temple on the akropolis began on 6
tured
A u g u s t 1881, directed b y Clarke, with the first trench striking
fragments of six sculptured reliefs f r o m the epistyle and t w o
blocks.
During
this
first
season,
they
discovered
the then completely buried foundation of the temple. In the six
decorated metopes. 3 2 T h e y inventoried t w o fragments of A i
weeks devoted to excavating this area, the Americans cleared
and one fragment of Az, confronted sphinxes; t w o fragments
approximately 1.50 m. of accumulated debris f r o m the foun-
of A 5 , comprising the nearly complete relief of Herakles rout-
dation, removing bones, ashes, and 'other refuse'. T h e y also
ing centaurs; one fragment of A 6 , galloping centaurs; one
dismantled the late Byzantine structures that had been built
fragment of A i o , lion attacking supine deer; and, one fragment
directly on the krepis of the temple. 2 9 A trench was cut around
of A 1 3 , lion attacking a boar (Pis. 76, 78, 92-3, 84, 89;
the entire foundation d o w n to the top of the euthynteria and to
Figs. 67-8, 76, 72, 75). T h e y also discovered t w o important
the level of the first course of the foundation at the southwest
metopes: M i , man chasing y o u t h or maiden; M8, quarrelling
corner. Within the temple, the Americans dug at three positions
heroes (Pis. 93, 107-8; Figs. 87, 86). O t h e r architectural finds
along the northern and southern pteroma, reaching u n w o r k e d
included a fragment of an antefix, a piece of ornamental roof
Clarke 1880, pp. 145-63. For the first campaign, Clarke 1882, pp. 14-35; Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, pp. 5-6; Mendel 1914, pp. 3-4; and Sartiaux 1915, pp. 9-10. For the first day of excavation, see Bacon's account in An Archaeological Expedition to Asia Minor, Letters and Journals of Francis H. Bacon. Unpublished manuscript, p. 17. I am grateful to D r Lenore Keene C o n g d o n for making her copy of the journal available to mc. For excerpts, see C o n g d o n 1974, pp. 83-95. F ° r tf 10 difficulties experienced by the team, see Allen 2002.
30 Clarke 1882, p. 82, in positions marked by daggers on pi. 7. Clarke did not define the level from which he measured the depth, but the dimensions he gives for the trench at the southwest corner suggest that he was w o r k i n g from the top surface of the stylobate. Clarke 1898, p. 56, states that bedrock was reached at levels 'not more than half a meter below the pavement of the naos'.
27
28
2 9 Clarke 1882, p. 30; Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, p. 6; Texier (1849, pp. 205-6) mentions the same structures.
3 1 See C l a r k e 1882, p. 83, pi. 7. These trenches, according to Clarke, revealed a lower foundation intended to support pedestals. However, pedestals would not require special foundations, particularly underneath the paving. The so-called foundations were probably dressed-down bedrock. >2
Clarke 1882, p. 83, pis. 2, 7. T h e position of their trenches is marked on pi. 2.
f IO
H I S T O R Y OF T H E
llllllllül ! I I I I
0
1
1
1
1
BUILDING
C
A
C
A
1
1
2
3
1
1
1
4
1
5m
FIGURE 8. Detail of southwest corner of krepis s h o w i n g area of excavation.
tiling, and a fragment of lion's head waterspout (Pis. 57, 59-60;
fication
Figs. 46a, c). The excavators convincingly identified the patron
fragments of architectural sculpture, including the remaining
walls and surrounding areas produced several more
deity of the temple as A t h e n a Polias, based on the repeated
fragment of A i , confronted sphinxes; t w o large fragments
occurrence of her image on the city's coinage and the discovery
completing A 6 , galloping centaurs; and, a fragment of a met-
of the t w o inscriptions cited at the beginning of this chapter. 33
ope, M6, with equine hoofs (Pis. 77, 93, 112; Figs. 67, 77, 90).
T h e results of the first campaign were published in a prelim-
Additional discoveries included a fragment of a terracotta sima,
inary report in 1882. T h e same year, C l a r k e undertook a second
a lion's p a w identified by the excavators as part of an akroter-
campaign, digging at the temple for three weeks in A p r i l and
ion in the f o r m of a griffin, and a fourth century BC inscription
May. G e r m a n architect Robert K o l d e w e y joined the exped-
listing items kept within the temple (PL 58a-b; Fig. 46b). 35
ition, and although he and Bacon focused chiefly on the agora
During the second campaign, C l a r k e uncovered
ceramic
and nekropolis respectively, they helped C l a r k e with his inves-
material f r o m sealed contexts beneath the floor of the pteroma,
tigation of the temple and contributed drawings to the final
w h i c h he described as 'a number of rude sherds of p o t t e r y . . . all
reports (Figs. 2, 5-6). 3 4 Further investigation of the late forti-
unglazed, several being of the lustrous, rubbed variety met with in the t w o oldest "cities " of Hissarlik'. 3 6 H e added that
3 j For coinage, see H . W. Bull in Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y PP· 2 95 - 3°4> nos. 35-47, 49-121» 135, 146.
1902-21,
34 For the second campaign, Clarke 1898, pp. 1-39; Clarke, Bacon, and Koldew e y 1902-21, pp. 6-9; Mendel 1914, pp. 3-4; Sartiaux 1915, pp. 10-14. Clarke drew the state plan and the restored elevation, which Bacon then redrew for the final folio volume. Bacon also drew the sculptures. K o l d e w e y drew the sections and the coffered ceiling blocks, even though he doubted they belonged to the temple.
3 5 Sterrett 1883, pp. 4-6, no. Ill; Clarke 1898, p. 48; Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, p. 168; Merkelbach 1976, pp. 3-5, no. 3. 3 6 Clarke 1898, pp. 72-3. For comparative material from Ilion, see Schliemann 1880, pp. 218-20; Schliemann 1884, pp. 30-8, 130-8; Biegen et al. 1950, pp. 52-3, 220-1.
IO
H I S T O R Y OF THE
BUILDING
5m
Γΐ ( , Ί
Earth with few working chips Packing of working chips Earth without working chips
FIGURE 9. Sections through excavated trench in southwest corner.
'nothing was brought to light w h i c h tended to contradict
of a black-glazed roof tile, and a bronze coin of Gargara struck
the opinion advanced by the writer in regard to the date of
in the first half of the fourth century BC. T h e last securely
the original construction', that is, mid-fifth century BC. U n f o r -
establishes a terminus post quem for renovations to the floor
tunately, the material was neither described nor illustrated,
and roof.
and none of it survives today. Explorations were also made
T h e results of the second A m e r i c a n campaign appeared in a
underneath the cement of the mosaic in the cella, where the
second excavation report by C l a r k e in 1898. T h e task of p u b -
excavators f o u n d fragments of a moulded vessel shaped as a
lishing the folio volume and finished drawings, however, fell
tragic mask, the handle of a 'delicately painted' vase, a fragment
entirely to Bacon. Sections of this w o r k , with an abbreviated
IO H I S T O R Y O F T H E
BUILDING
text on the temple based on Clarke's account, appeared f r o m
even though his co-excavators disagreed. Moreover, his recon-
1902-21. 3 7
struction failed to convince because it neglected the significant
T h e Americans did not excavate on the akropolis during their
differences in the lengths and intercolumnar spacings sug-
third and final campaign in 1883. A t the close of their investi-
gested by the sculptured blocks of the epistyle (Figs. 6, 94).
gations, two-thirds of the discoveries f r o m the temple, includ-
Felix Sartiaux soon challenged Clarke's publication, offering
ing f o u r reliefs (A2, A 6 , A i o , and A 1 3 ) and three metopes ( M i ,
in 1913 and 1914 a new arrangement of the sculpture. Sartiaux
M6, and M8) were taken to the Archaeological M u s e u m in
advanced a date for the temple in the third quarter of the
Istanbul. T h e excavators' awards included t w o reliefs f r o m the
sixth century BC, which has enjoyed general if not unanimous
epistyle ( A i and A5), the lion's head waterspout, and the frag-
acceptance. 4 2 In proposing that the temple had unequal col-
mentary terracotta antefix and sima, all of w h i c h were given by
umnar spacings
the Archaeological Institute of America to the M u s e u m of Fine
fundamental questions concerning the extent t o which the
across the façade, Sartiaux's w o r k
raised
Arts in Boston. Additional architectural members forming the
temple may have been influenced by Ionic architectural design
complete elevation of the temple were taken to the harbour and
(Figs. 7, 95-6). Sartiaux's hypothesis, however, lacked con-
crated for shipment to America, but permission to remove the
firmation
blocks was never granted. Ten years later, some of the objects,
site (see A p p e n d i x III).
in the larger architectural record preserved at the
including a raking geison block and a triglyph from the temple, were sent to the Archaeological M u s e u m in Istanbul. T h e handsome D o r i c capitals, column drums, and geison blocks were
SUBSEQUENT
abandoned at the harbour. O n his return to Assos in 1904,
RESEARCH,
1896-2006
Bacon lamented that the remains of the great Temple of A t h e n a
F o l l o w i n g the American excavation, full-scale archaeological
were ' n o w lying at the port half covered w i t h debris and trod-
research on the temple and at Assos in general ceased f o r nearly
den b y dogs and camels'. 3 8 T h e capitals remained at the harbour
a century. 4 3 Between the close of this w o r k and renewed efforts
for nearly a century; in 1982, t w o (C30 and C 3 1 ) w e r e at last
at the site, A s s o s languished in relative if not a l w a y s peaceful
returned to the akropolis. T h e other architectural members
obscurity. D u r i n g the Second World War, troops occupied the
have currently vanished. 3 9
temple platform; the elliptical depression in the centre of the
T h e American excavations p o w e r f u l l y documented Leake's
cella marks their foxhole. T h e temple was again commandeered
claim that Assos embodied the most perfect idea of a Greek
by the Turkish a r m y — r e p l e t e w i t h anti-aircraft artillery—dur-
city. Their sweeping investigation of the agora, nekropolis, and
ing the C y p r u s Crisis of 1974. M u c h has disappeared since the
city walls still remains the only significant record of these
time of the A m e r i c a n excavation: in the late 1940s most of the
monuments, and their efforts on the akropolis secured for the
northern and all of the southern stylobate was torn up to build
temple a prominent if not perfectly understood place in G r e e k
a windmill, n o w itself a ruin on the summit of the akropolis.
architectural history. Clarke's study not only included a close
O t h e r stylobate blocks were pillaged for use in the olive-oil
examination of the sculpture and its reconstruction but also
factories of nearby villages. O f
paid special attention to materials and techniques of construc-
k n o w n to the C l a r k e - B a c o n team, more than half the triglyphs,
tion. Joseph Silas Diller's geological survey and John H e n r y
many of the plain metopes, most of the paving of the pteroma,
the architectural
material
Haynes's photographic documentation that accompany the
and the entire mosaic f r o m the cella have also disappeared.
A m e r i c a n reports pioneered the more comprehensive method
Notwithstanding such damage, w h e n the present w o r k began
of archaeological research taken for granted today. 4 0
in 1979, the site appeared much as it was left b y the American
Clarke's interpretation of the temple proved less successful than his architectural description. Swayed b y the correlation
excavators, w h o s e trenches had themselves become topographical features of the w i n d s w e p t surface of the akropolis.
in absolute dimensions between the Athenian Hephaisteion
Despite the early A m e r i c a n excavators' intention 'to leave
and the Assian Temple of Athena, C l a r k e set his analysis
nothing henceforth to be done u p o n the site of A s s o s — e v e n
against the backdrop of
b y the most careful gleaner', their three years of research over
fifth-century
developments in A t h -
ens. 41 H e insisted on a mid-fifth century date for the temple, Clarke 1898; Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21. Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, p. 124. 3 9 Other material from the agora appears to have been built into buildings in the area, but I could not identify blocks specifically belonging to the temple. During the summer of 1987, a dredge working in the harbour retrieved t w o fluted column drums, probably from monuments built at the harbour or possibly the agora. I briefly accompanied M s Emcl Akalin, then student of Istanbul University, during her underwater survey of the mole in 1988; none of the many submerged ancient blocks appear to belong to the temple. 37
38
Clarke 1882, pp. 166-215; Clarke 1898, p. 3. For the early history of archaeological photography: Schubert and Grunaeur-von Hoerschelman 1978, pp. 11-26. 40
41
Clarke 1882, pp. 103-4; Clarke 1898, pp. 292-334.
the entire ancient city could not help but o v e r l o o k some important material. 4 4 D u r i n g his visit to the site in 1896, Wilhelm D ö r p f e l d f o u n d several architectural sculptures, including the right fragment of A i , confronted sphinxes, and metopes M2 and M5, runners and Europe on the Zeus bull (Pis. 79, 89, 109, 106; Figs. 67, 89, 85). A n o t h e r metope depicting an equestrian
Sartiaux 191 J. During the 1960s and early 1970s, restorations were made on the Greek and Byzantine city walls, the old mosque, and the Turkish bridge. 44 Clarke 1898, p. 20. 42 4j
IO
H I S T O R Y OF THE
BUILDING
(M9) was found in 1973 (PI. i n ; Fig. 90). 45 Such important but
fragments joined to complete relief A i o , lions devouring a doe,
isolated finds, however, could not supply the kind of additional
and the third established the design of A 1 3 as t w o lions attack-
information needed to understand the architectural design of
ing a boar (Pis. 85, 90; Figs. 72, 75). 48 Excavation along the
the temple, to clarify its building programme, and to determine
southern stretch of fortification disinterred the several capitals
its date.
first noted b y Texier.
With the hope of resolving some of these issues, I returned to
In subsequent seasons f r o m 1983 to 1987, I w o r k e d in con-
the site exactly a century after Clarke and Bacon had made their
junction w i t h D r Serdaroglu, compiling a catalogue of extant
first survey. A preliminary survey of the akropolis in A u g u s t
temple blocks, making measured drawings, and rendering a
1979 and a more extensive investigation in July 1980 revealed
new state plan and elevation (Fold-out Figs. 1-3). In 1983,
that the surviving architectural material was far more extensive
Serdaroglu dismantled the ruined windmill. Fie excavated the
than Clarke recorded. 4 6 We found yet another sculptured met-
covering of soil immediately north of the foundation d o w n to
ope, depicting three figures ( M i o ) , exposed in what remained of
bedrock in an area c. 0.0 to 8.6 m. f r o m the face of the northern
the latest fortification wall (PI. 1 i o a - b ; Fig. 88). F r o m the many
euthynteria and c.0.0 to 13 m. f r o m the northeast corner. D u r -
reçut blocks, it became clear that the temple had sustained major
ing the summer of 1985, he concentrated on the area near the
repairs to its entablature. Moreover, cuttings for foundations in
southwest corner of the temple, where excavation exposed
the bedrock north of the temple, and a wide range of isolated
the f o u r courses of the foundation that support this corner of
blocks found mainly to the east, proved that other ancient
the krepidoma and also revealed a hitherto unrecorded stone
structures once existed on the akropolis as well (Appendix IV).
platform (PI. 3b). W o r k continued at the southwest corner
That same year, excavations resumed under the direction of
in 1987, w h e n w e opened a small trench inside this corner of
D r U m i t Serdaroglu. D u r i n g campaigns in 1980-82, he re-
the temple's foundations between the outer krepis and toicho-
moved the earth that had accumulated on the krepidoma
bate (Pi. 4; Figs. 8-9). T h e sounding revealed the building's
(Pis. 2 - 3 a - b ) . Excavation along both flanks of the temple
internal construction, but the f e w sherds it produced did not
revealed more of the Byzantine houses partly uncovered by
provide diagnostic evidence for dating the temple. M y further
Clarke. O n e of the capitals built into the later fortification wall
surface investigation of the eastern slopes of the akropolis
south of the temple was discovered to have an archaic A c o l i c
in 1987 brought to light a large fragment of sculptured epistyle
inscription cut onto its abacus (PI. 44a-b; Fig. 26b). 47 T o the
with centaurs, w h i c h joins the part of relief A 8 taken to Paris
west, excavation exposing the lowest course of the latest forti-
nearly 150 years earlier (Pis. 96-7; Fig. 79). A f t e r 1988, Serdar-
fication wall brought to light three additional sculptured frag-
oglu focused w o r k on the akropolis towards his reconstruction
ments f r o m the epistyle, all part of the lion series and joining
of the building, a project that has continued under the direction
reliefs discovered b y Clarke and Bacon a century earlier. T w o
of D r Nurettin Arslan.
43 In a letter to Francis Bacon dated 16 January 1897 (now in the Museum of Fine Arts, Boston), Wilhelm Dörpfeld and Paul Wolters include a plan that mentions a metope with a horse, suggesting they also may have been aware of the horse and rider on M9. 4 6 Wescoat 1981; 1982; 1986; 1987; 1988. 47 Johnston and Wescoat 1988.
48
Serdaroglu 1983; Serdaroglu 1990; Serdaroglu 1995, pp. 82-90.
44
Building Materials and Technical Aspects of Construction M A T E R I A L S
Except for the ceiling, roof work, and certain repairs, the entire temple at Assos was constructed of the same purplish-grey volcanic andesite porphyry that forms the promontory of the akropolis. 1 The choice to work in local andesite meant significant savings in the cost of material, transport, and labour; in fact, this excellent building stone has remained the material of choice at Assos throughout its history The intermediate igneous rock is comprised of large, glassy-white porphyritic crystals of feldspar set in a more finely grained purplish-grey ground-mass that often includes smaller crystals of mica and iron-bearing minerals.2 Its two sets of joint planes, one approximately horizontal and the other vertical, create the naturally rectilinear formations seen to best effect in the spectacular vertical cliffs on the southern side of the akropolis (Pi. 5). The feldspar crystals generally align parallel to each other and to the joint planes, making the stone easy to quarry and shape into ashlar blocks (PI. 8). The size and concentration of porphyritic crystals produce a rough surface along the lines of fracture, but the stone takes a sharp edge and achieves an excellent finish when smoothed with abrasives. It responds less well to the curved surfaces and decorative detail of relief sculpture. Intricate detail is impossible, but broadly modelled surfaces can be worked with a combination of drove and abrasives. The durable surface and uniform density of the stone do not require a final layer of protective plaster, and in fact none of the many surviving blocks bears evidence that a layer of plaster was applied. 3 The blocks protected beneath the soil maintain a remarkably fresh finish, but those exposed over the last century have suffered considerable weathering. Curved surfaces have been especially vulnerable to calving thick layers of surface stone
(Pi. 33). T w o types of lichen, greenish-grey endolithic (crustose) lichen on the summit of the akropolis and brilliant yellowish-orange foliose (parmelia) lichen on the eastern slopes, have also begun to decompose the exposed blocks and blur their originally fine finish. In addition to andesite, a softer, more finely grained and more easily worked volcanic tuff was used to carve one metope (Mio, Pl. 110), some of the smallest architectural members (tympanon T p i 3 , Fig. 63; hawksbeak repair, B24, Fig. 53), and the threedimensional sculptures associated with the roof (volute akroterion, lion's paw, and lion's head waterspout; PI. 60, Fig. 47). The nail hole running through the tuff hawksbeak suggests that it was a replacement piece. Since all the other metopes were carved from andesite, the tuff metope must be a replacement as well. Probably all of these tuff fragments belong to the extensive repair made to the building in the late Archaic period. The ceiling and roof tree were made of wood, as is clear from sockets cut into the geison. Certain elements that no longer survive, such as the epikranitis, might also have been of wood rather than stone; the regular and ornamental roof tiles were made of terracotta. The range in fabric and colour of the handful of surviving fragments attests to several ancient roofs, perhaps not all belonging to the temple. Most of the fabrics have a coarse-grained aggregate that often includes pulverized andesite. For the finer plastic w o r k on the face of the one surviving antefix, however, a veneer of purified, bright orange terracotta was fired on to the main coarse-grained body (PL 57). Metalwork in the building was confined to clamps and pins. The several surviving clamps in the krepis are of iron encased in lead. Presumably iron was also the material of choice for the nails used to secure the roof tiles.
T E C H N I C A L J. S. Dillcr, conducting the first geological survey, called the rock trachyte but later identified it as andesite; Clarke 1882, pp. 166-215, and Clarke 1898, pp. 50-4. For discussions of Assian stone in antiquity, see Gaiser 1985, pp. 28-36, 93-100.
A S P E C T S
O F
C O N S T R U C T I O N
1
Andesite p o r p h y r y contains little or no quartz and is comprised predominantly of plagioclasc phcnocrysts, hornblende, augite, and biotite; Blatt, Tracy, and O w e n s 2006, pp. 42-6, 83-4, figs. 2 - 1 9 B , 4-22, 4-23 (the last for an upheaved plug similar to the akropolis at Assos). Clarke 1882, p. 31, identifies greyish discolouration on the krepis as stains caused by the leaching lime of 'stucco priming'. T h e residue is more likely to be from a simple whitewash, as suggested under the discussion of colour.
Quarrying and stonework The masons quarried the stone directly from the acropolis, thus eliminating both the cost of the material and its transport.
4
Scranton 1969, pp. 14-16 (cost of transport); Korres 1995, 2000 (quarrying and
transport); Hellmann 2002, pp. 56-9 (generally).
20
B U I L D I N G M A T E R I A L S AND T E C H N I C A L
ASPECTS
T h e y w o r k e d especially in the area immediately north and west
sometimes slightly curved striations, indicative of the drove,
of the temple, w h i c h satisfied the double purpose of generating
appear on exposed surfaces such as the echinus of the capital
building material while making a level terrace f o r the structure.
and the soffit of the epistyle (Pis. 1 1 - 1 2 ) . 1 0 N o n e of the blocks
T h e exposed bedrock in this area bears several sets of the small
shows indications of having been w o r k e d with a small-toothed
(c.0.04 b y 0.1 ο m.), closely spaced rectangular slots made for
(claw) chisel. 1 1 O n some of the capitals, the masons used a drill
the metal or w o o d e n wedges used to split slabs of stone f r o m
to set off the echinus f r o m the abacus. Several capitals have
the native rock (PI. 6).5 Masons also quarried from the northern
shallow drill holes in the centre of each capital's bed surface,
side of the promontory, leaving artificial shelves in the bedrock
w h i c h secured the horizontal arm of an architectural compass
(PI. 7). T h e > - s h a p e d channels cut around blocks appearing o n
used to strike off the circumferences of the echinus, annulets,
the cliffs just b e l o w the temple s h o w further evidence of
and neck (Fig. 26a). T h e compass point was held in place by a
quarrying, although not necessarily for the temple (PL 5). T h e
rectangular plate fitted into a slight depression cut in the bed
convenience of the quarry m a y also have lessened the need to
surface of the capital (PL 40). 12
order blocks of more standardized dimension, for the masons
A l l blocks f r o m the temple have anathyrosis on their vertical
could quarry opportunistically and compensate as they w e n t
joint surfaces. In addition, the epistyle backers and wall blocks
along.
have anathyrosis on the top surface; the epistyle (facer and
M a n y of the blocks retain quarry-dressed surfaces where a tight join was unnecessary (for example, the inner faces of
backer) and capitals have anathyrosis on the bed surface; and, the column drums have anathyrosis on both joint surfaces.
epistyle or stylobate blocks or the tops of geison blocks), and several still bear the rectangular wedge-holes as well (for ex-
Lifting and setting
ample, A 2 1 / A 3 3 , PL 47b; Fig. 33; or L G 2 1 , Fig. 43). T o shape and prepare the blocks, the masons used the punch, facing
N o block below the level of the entablature bears evidence of
hammer, and drove (a broad flat chisel)—tools w i d e l y k n o w n
lifting with complex m a c h i n e r y 1 3 T h e blocks of the geison and
in the sixth
century. 6
The inner areas of anathyrosis on the
tympanon, however, have cuttings that show they were hoisted
vertical joint surfaces of the geison and epistyle blocks, and
b y three different but related systems, all of w h i c h imply the use
on the inner bed surfaces of capitals, bear pockmarks left by the
of the crane w i t h a c o m p o u n d pulley system and winch. 1 4 T h e
punch. L o n g , irregular furrows also made by the punch (also
geison blocks f r o m the southern flank, w h i c h I argue belong to
called a point) appear on the inner bed surfaces of the column
the original construction, were raised by ropes or chains con-
drums, the epistyle backers, and the upper surface of the first
nected to iron hooks set into tapered horizontal sockets with
step course where it has been roughly dressed to receive the
shallow vertical channels (Figs. 1 0 - 1 1 , 43-4). T h e cuttings vary
stylobate blocks (Pis. 9 - 1 0 , 12-13). 7 T h e rustication on the
in shape, even on the same block, but most of the sockets
southern euthynteria bears the mark of a punch used to accen-
penetrate the block to a depth between 0.09 and 0.125
tuate the irregular ridges left b y the broader blows of a mallet
channels are mostly between 0.05 and 0.06 m. deep, although
m
· The
(Pis. 29-31). T h e sculptors also used the punch to define the
they can be as shallow as 0.025
contour of figures, but other evidence of tooling on the sculp-
helped to secure the shaft of the h o o k against the block, but
ture has been erased with an abrasive, such as emery. 8
they also helped to brace the block during lifting.' 3 In several
T h e masons used the facing hammer f o r most of the finer
m
· These channels not only
but not all instances, the channels on adjacent blocks were
unexposed w o r k , including the outer bands of anathyrosis (and sometimes the inner area as well), the relieving margins on the top surfaces of the capitals, the upper surface of the geison where the tiles rested, and the unexposed areas of the first step course (Pis. 10, 12, 42). 9 T h e fine r o w s of parallel and 5 Quarrying, Martin 1965, pp. 146-51; Orlandos 1966.II, pp. 16-20; Kozelj 1988a, pp. 20-33; Bessac 1988, pp. 43-4, fig. 3; K o z e l j 1988b, pp. 31-9, figs. 4, 5, 7, 8, 11, 12; Waelkins, D e Paepe, and Moens 1988, pp. 17-18, fig. 5; Waelkins, D e Paepe, and Moens 1990, pp. 60-5; Chiotis and Papadimitriou 1995, pp. 8-9, figs. 3— 6; Hellmann 2002, pp. 73-81. Specific studies, Koenigs 1972, pp. 381-3, figs. 2-3 (Naxos); Sodini, Lambraki, and K o z e l j 1980, pp. 8 1 - 1 3 7 (Thasos); A m a n d r y 1981, pp. 714-21 (Delphi); Daux and Hansen 1987, pp. 25-32 (Siphnian Treasury, Delphi). b In general, Bessac 1986.
A vertical strike causes the pockmark; an oblique blow creates the furrow; Casson 1933, pp. 174-8; Martin 1965, p. 180; A d a m 1966, pp. 3 - 1 7 ; Bessac 1988, pp. 47-8, fig. 8. Working blocks generally, Daux and Hansen 1987, pp. 32-42. 8 Abrasives, A d a m 1966, pp. 78-9. 9 Orlandos 1966.II, fig. 41; Ginouvès and Martin 1985, p. 69, pis. 6.1, 36.8; Bessac 1988, p. 50, fig. 13 (diamond pointed hammer); N y l a n d e r 1970, p. 25, n . i o for the possible use of the edged hammer as well. 7
10 A d a m 1966, pp. 23-5; Bessac 1988, pp. 47-8, fig. 9; Richter τ 943, pp. 188-93. The drove continued in use into the fifth century, e.g., on the classical Temple of Poseidon at Isthmia (Broneer 1971, p. 58, pi. 16b) or the classical temple at Kalapodi (Felsch et al. 1980, p. 104, fig. 92). 1 1 Martin 1965, p. 182; A d a m 1966, pp. 18-22; Orlandos 1966.Π, pp. 50-2. T h e toothed chisel, introduced around the middle of the sixth century, was well suited for working marble or limestone but would have been less effective on the gritty crystalline andésite. 12 The holes are c.0.005 ni. in diameter and 0.003 1 0 ° - 0 0 5 m · deep. The rectangular cuttings, clearly visible on capitals C6, C 1 2 , C 1 3 , C 1 9 , C 2 1 , C22, C24, and C 3 1 , are c.0.045 by 0.075 m · C o m p a r e ICorres 1995, pp. 28-9, 50-1. O n the architectural compass, Martin 1965, p. 188; Orlandos 1966.II, pp. 65-6, fig. 60; Koenigs 1980a, p. 25, fig. 8 (idea on a larger scale). The capitals were not turned on a lathe, contra Clarke 1898, pp. 77-9. 13 Contra Clarke 1898, p. 63, fig. 6. T h e cuttings of triangular section on the first step are for shifting. 14 Lifting, C o u l t o n 1974a, pp. 1 - 1 9 ; Daux and Hansen 1987, p. 42, figs. 25-6. Clarke 1898, pp. 126-8, figs. 20, 25, restores coffered ceiling blocks with lewis cuttings to the temple, but they do not belong. O n the akropolis, a lewis cutting appears on only one block of undetermined function and provenance (see A p p e n dix IV, B14, Fig. 101). lD
M y thanks to J. J. C o u l t o n for this observation.
21 B U I L D I N G M A T E R I A L S A N D T E C H N I C A L
ASPECTS
aligned and together created a broad enough space to remove
stances, the blocks
the iron h o o k after the block w a s set flush against its neighbour.
sides. 1 7 H o w e v e r , the unusual combination of U - c h a n n e l and
F o r blocks having shallower channels, the h o o k w o u l d have to
socket makes good sense, especially when w o r k i n g with an-
be removed before the block was set flush. The final shifting
desite. T h e more fragile U - s h a p e d channel was o n l y necessary
w o u l d occur while the block was slightly raised at either end,
on the side of the block that had to be set next to a block
using the wedge-shaped cutting on the adjacent block and a side
already in place; on the clear side the lifting device was easily
have the U-shaped
channel
on
both
pry-hole on the joint face, and the bed shift-hole on the free
removable. T h e square socket and w o o d e n peg avoided the
face. It could then be lowered gently into place.
very real danger of shearing the weight-bearing stone inside
O n the other three sides, w h i c h I argue belong to a major
the U-shaped channel (as attested on both the northeast and
repair, the geison blocks were raised using a modified version of the U-shaped channel system. T h e lifting rope or chain was wrapped around a U - s h a p e d channel cut into the left joint face of the block and then looped around a w o o d e n peg set into a deep, square socket (c.0.07 m. to 0.09 m. square) on the opposite joint face (Figs. 12, 55-7, 59-60). 16 In most archaic in-
16 For archaic examples of lifting using sockets, Orlandos 1966.II, p. 96; add the Temple of Aphrodite at Akrai: Bernabò Brea 1986, pp. 39-40, fig. 35. Sockets
without release channels in the lateral face of cornice blocks have been interpreted in three ways: (1) for horizontal dowels ( D y g g v e 194S, p. 102, fig. 116; Orlandos
1966.II, p. 96); (2) for pegs to aid in transporting (Koldewey and Puchstein 1899, p. 120, fig. 98, epistyle blocks from Temple F at Selinous); and, (3) for different forms of lifting device, e.g., for (a) lifting tongs (Orlandos 1966.II, p. 96; Martin 1965, pp. 2x3-15, fig. 93); or (b) w o o d e n pegs to hold lifting ropes ( C o o p e r 1983, p. 5 j, Temple of Zeus at Nemea). A t Assos, interpretation (3b) makes best sense. For the U-shaped channel, Martin i965,pp. 2 i o - n , f i g s . 89-90, pi. 22.2; Orlandos 1966.II, p. 93, figs. 97.6 and 9.99; C o u l t o n 1974a, pp. 7-9, fig- 1; Bankel 1993, pp. 109-10, figs. 9, 10, 22, 35, 53, 57, pis. 22.2, 29.3, 78; Mertens 1993, fig· supplement 11. 1 7 K o l d e w e y and Puchstein (1899, p. 225) note that not all the blocks of the O l y m p i e i o n at Akragas have U-shaped channels on both sides; sometimes the opposite side has no cutting.
47 B U I L D I N G M A T E R I A L S A N D T E C H N I C A L
ASPECTS
23 B U I L D I N G M A T E R I A L S A N D T E C H N I C A L
ASPECTS
southwest corner blocks (Figs. 56-7). T h e risk seems to have
The masons pried the blocks of all courses into position with
been particularly acute for the thin blocks of the raking geison,
levers. M o s t commonly, they cut the pry-hole w i t h one vertical
where in both surviving instances ( R G 2 and R G 4 ) a broken
face and one slightly angled face. T h e shape and position of the
U - c h a n n e l has been overcut with a square socket (Fig. 66).
side pry-holes on the krepidoma, the pry-holes cut on the
T o hoist the t y m p a n o n blocks, the masons set w o o d e n pegs
capitals to set the epistyle, and those cut on the epistyle to set
into slightly angled sockets cut into each vertical joint face
the frieze, demonstrate that the masons pushed t o w a r d , rather
above the centre point of gravity (Figs. 63-5). T h e system
than away from, the vertical face. 1 8 T h e y pried f r o m a position
provided a secure and balanced lifting procedure but no
quite close to the final position of the block (usually between
method for removing the lifting device. Instead, the block
0.02 and 0.07 m.) and held the lever in an oblique rather than
had to be set at some distance from its neighbour and then pried into place, a procedure confirmed b y the number and wide spacing of the pry marks found on the horizontal geison (Figs. 59-60; F o l d - o u t Figs. 11-2).
18 See also Fraisse and Llinas 1995, figs. 830-1 (Delos); Wurster 1971, ρ· ι*4> η.59, fig. 10 (Temple of A p o l l o , Aegina). T h e technique of pushing toward the vertical face is clearly demonstrated in the fallen wall-courses of the Temple of Herakles at Akragas.
24
BUILDING
MATERIALS
vertical position. The system risked slippage but had the advantage of applying horizontal and upward pressure, thus minimizing friction. A different but equally well-known technique was employed for setting the blocks in the first step course and the southern geison. The masons cut a wedge-shaped shift-hole on the upper joint face of the block already in position and a corresponding pry-hole on the vertical face of contact of the adjoining block. A lever inserted through the shift-hole on the block already in place held one end of the adjoining block in a raised position. A second lever, inserted into a rectangular shift-hole on the bed surface at the opposite end, and a third lever, working against the projecting boss on its face, held the block raised on the other sides. From this position the block could be manoeuvred easily into place by masons using a simple pry-hole as purchase (Fig. io). 1 ' When guiding the block was more important than moving it, for example in positioning the face of the epistyle, the masons used a slightly different system. They cut wedge-shaped side pry-holes, c.o.io to o.i 5 m. from the face of the block, with the vertical face away from the direction in which they were pushing. Using the face of the pry as a purchase, they held their levers vertically and, using a wooden chock, exerted a gentle pressure higher up on the block. Given the top-heavy shape of the epistyle blocks, this system provided the safest means of directing the block into position (Fig. 13). The masons also used the projecting bosses on the first step to shift the blocks back into position. In some instances, one mason raised the block by setting the lever against the base of the boss while two other masons pushed the block back into position using levers secured in side pry-holes near either end of the raised face. In other examples, they used the boss as a form of upomochlia, with the side pry-hole set directly beneath it (see plan, Fold-out Fig. i). 20 To set the stylobate blocks, masons used levers secured in shallow, rectangular shift-holes cut on the bed surface of one end. When shift-holes appear on both sides, they must have been used to help guide the block into position.21 Occasionally, the stylobate blocks have larger, wedge-shaped cuttings similar to those found on krepis blocks from other archaic temples 19 For shift-holes cut into the top surface of the block in place, with corresponding pry-hole in the joint face of the block in motion, note also Korres and Bouras 1983, p. 106; Bundgaard 1976, p. 63, fig. 36 (Parthenon); Paton and Stevens 1927, pp. 1 9 1 - 2 , fig. 1 1 7 (Erechthcion); Dinsmoor, Jr. 1976, p. 226, ill. 2 (Hephaisteion); Fraisse and Llinas 1995, figs. 825-7 (prostoon of the Oikos of the Naxians); Daux and Hansen 1987, pp. 42-7, figs. 27-34 (Siphnian Treasury, Delphi); Charbonneaux 1925, pp. 25-7, fig. 37, pis. 1 7 - 1 8 , fig. 37 (Marmaria tholos, Delphi). Shifting from the bottom of the block, Mertens 1984, p. 36, pi. 34 (Segesta); Hansen 1991, pp. 72-9. Generally, Martin 1965, pp. 234-8, figs. 1 1 0 - 1 1 ; Orlandos 1966.II, pp. 57-9, fig. 49; Nylander 1970, pp. 4 1 - 2 , 62-3, figs. 8-9 (Achaemenid parallels). 20 For bosses as shifting rather than lifting devices, Coulton 1974a, n. 24; Mertens 1984, p. 36, fig. 34. A similar system of side pry-holes appears in the Dörpfeld Foundation; Bundgaard 1974, pi. 69; Beyer 1977, p. 47, n. 9. 21 Koenigs 1972, p. 385, fig. 6, for the Hekatompedon at Naxos, where the marks are interpreted as cutting for levers to help balance the block as it was moved into position. Compare marks on the stylobate blocks from the temple at Segesta: Mertens 1984, p. 36, fig. 4b, pis. 20.3, 34.
AND
TECHNICAL
ASPECTS
(Si 8, Fig. 18),22 but the first step course does not have the long, rectangular depressions that would identify these marks as cuttings for a preliminary dowel. They must be larger versions of the flat, rectangular shift-holes, and, like them, used to manoeuvre the block into place. Flat, rectangular shift-holes regularly were cut into the bed surface of epistyle facers and backers (e.g., AB 17; Fig. 39).23 The number of shift-holes near both ends and on either side of each block suggests that lateral shifting was accomplished while the masons held the block in a slightly raised position, in order to reduce any friction that might tip the epistyle or topple the column. In some instances, the masons used this technique of controlling the bed surface of the block together with a lever controlling the upper joint face of the block. The same combination was used for the southern geison blocks (with greater emphasis on suspending the block at the top, Fig. 10), and occasionally in the frieze and binding wall courses (W37, Fig. 50).
Clamping, dowelling, and nailing Iron hook clamps of square section were used throughout the building (Pis. 16-8; Fig. 14).24 Hook clamps concealed by the superposed course were leaded into simple rectangular cuttings; five on the northern first step remain in situ in their original lead casing.25 Clamps on the stylobate and euthynteria that were meant to be seen, however, were leaded into various forms of decorative swallowtailed cuttings.26 Some of the cuttings have narrow waists and boldly flaring tails, others are of deep trapezoidal shape, and still others have a shallow flaring frame cut for only a thin layer of lead (Pis. 14-15; Fig. 15). In all instances, the deeper cutting for the crossbar confirms the use 22 For example, the Dörpfeld Foundation, the Old Temple of Dionysos in Athens, the Peisistratid Olympieion, and the second Temple of Aphaia at Aegina, as well as later in the wall-courses of the Parthenon, Propylaia, and the Temple of Arcs; Martin 1965, pp. 282-3, figs· I 2 4 - S · 23 Note similar although higher shift-hole cuttings on the sculptured reliefs from the tympanon of the Temple of Artemis on Korkyra: Korkyra II, figs. 1, 30, 44, 46b, 68, 75, 86, and pis. 9b, 20. 24 The temple has no simple swallowtailed clamps, contra Martin i965,pp. 246-7. 25 A rare but not unprecedented type in the Archaic period; note Temple of Athena at Poseidonia (Krauss 1959, pp. 24, 35, pis. 1 0 - 1 1 ) , Building C, Athens (Wiegand 1904, pp. 165-6, fig. 159), Old Temple of Dionysos in Athens (Weickert 1929, p. 93), and the Temple of Artemis in the Delion on Paros, where hook clamps in plain cuttings are combined with those in swallowtailed cuttings (Schuller 1991a, fig. 8, pis. 74-5). Kienast (1992, p. 35, n. 23, supplement 2, pis. 1 0 - 1 1 , 14) assigns the exposed hook clamps on the Genelaos monument to the original construction, but he demonstrates that they were not originally exposed on the top course of the monument. 26 Exposed clamps, often hook clamps set in swallowtailed cuttings, appear more frequently in the islands and western Anatolia than other areas; see Martin 1965, p. 240, n. 2; Hellström and Thieme 1982, pp. 1 8 - 1 9 , 2 4· Note also Grand Temple of Apollo at Delos: Courby 1931, pp. 90, 1 0 1 , figs. 108-12. Additional archaic examples from Asia Minor include: the inner threshold from the newly discovered Panionion at Mykale (Büsing 2007, pp. 157, 164-5, 49); the monument platform from Karaburun (Mcllink 1975, p. 350, ills. 2-3); Bin Tepe Chamber Tomb BT62.4 (Ratté 1989a, no. 3, pp. 1 3 - 1 4 , 169-76, figs. 45-6); late archaic Altar at Sardis (Hanfmann and Waldbaum 1975, pp. 93-5, figs. 204-7; Ratté 1989a, pp. 1 7 - 1 8 , 2 1 6 - 1 8 , no. 15, figs, H I , 115).
24
BUILDING
MATERIALS
vertical position. The system risked slippage but had the advantage of applying horizontal and upward pressure, thus minimizing friction. A different but equally well-known technique was employed for setting the blocks in the first step course and the southern geison. The masons cut a wedge-shaped shift-hole on the upper joint face of the block already in position and a corresponding pry-hole on the vertical face of contact of the adjoining block. A lever inserted through the shift-hole on the block already in place held one end of the adjoining block in a raised position. A second lever, inserted into a rectangular shift-hole on the bed surface at the opposite end, and a third lever, working against the projecting boss on its face, held the block raised on the other sides. From this position the block could be manoeuvred easily into place by masons using a simple pry-hole as purchase (Fig. io). 1 ' When guiding the block was more important than moving it, for example in positioning the face of the epistyle, the masons used a slightly different system. They cut wedge-shaped side pry-holes, c.o.io to o.i 5 m. from the face of the block, with the vertical face away from the direction in which they were pushing. Using the face of the pry as a purchase, they held their levers vertically and, using a wooden chock, exerted a gentle pressure higher up on the block. Given the top-heavy shape of the epistyle blocks, this system provided the safest means of directing the block into position (Fig. 13). The masons also used the projecting bosses on the first step to shift the blocks back into position. In some instances, one mason raised the block by setting the lever against the base of the boss while two other masons pushed the block back into position using levers secured in side pry-holes near either end of the raised face. In other examples, they used the boss as a form of upomochlia, with the side pry-hole set directly beneath it (see plan, Fold-out Fig. i). 20 To set the stylobate blocks, masons used levers secured in shallow, rectangular shift-holes cut on the bed surface of one end. When shift-holes appear on both sides, they must have been used to help guide the block into position.21 Occasionally, the stylobate blocks have larger, wedge-shaped cuttings similar to those found on krepis blocks from other archaic temples 19 For shift-holes cut into the top surface of the block in place, with corresponding pry-hole in the joint face of the block in motion, note also Korres and Bouras 1983, p. 106; Bundgaard 1976, p. 63, fig. 36 (Parthenon); Paton and Stevens 1927, pp. 1 9 1 - 2 , fig. 1 1 7 (Erechthcion); Dinsmoor, Jr. 1976, p. 226, ill. 2 (Hephaisteion); Fraisse and Llinas 1995, figs. 825-7 (prostoon of the Oikos of the Naxians); Daux and Hansen 1987, pp. 42-7, figs. 27-34 (Siphnian Treasury, Delphi); Charbonneaux 1925, pp. 25-7, fig. 37, pis. 1 7 - 1 8 , fig. 37 (Marmaria tholos, Delphi). Shifting from the bottom of the block, Mertens 1984, p. 36, pi. 34 (Segesta); Hansen 1991, pp. 72-9. Generally, Martin 1965, pp. 234-8, figs. 1 1 0 - 1 1 ; Orlandos 1966.II, pp. 57-9, fig. 49; Nylander 1970, pp. 4 1 - 2 , 62-3, figs. 8-9 (Achaemenid parallels). 20 For bosses as shifting rather than lifting devices, Coulton 1974a, n. 24; Mertens 1984, p. 36, fig. 34. A similar system of side pry-holes appears in the Dörpfeld Foundation; Bundgaard 1974, pi. 69; Beyer 1977, p. 47, n. 9. 21 Koenigs 1972, p. 385, fig. 6, for the Hekatompedon at Naxos, where the marks are interpreted as cutting for levers to help balance the block as it was moved into position. Compare marks on the stylobate blocks from the temple at Segesta: Mertens 1984, p. 36, fig. 4b, pis. 20.3, 34.
AND
TECHNICAL
ASPECTS
(Si 8, Fig. 18),22 but the first step course does not have the long, rectangular depressions that would identify these marks as cuttings for a preliminary dowel. They must be larger versions of the flat, rectangular shift-holes, and, like them, used to manoeuvre the block into place. Flat, rectangular shift-holes regularly were cut into the bed surface of epistyle facers and backers (e.g., AB 17; Fig. 39).23 The number of shift-holes near both ends and on either side of each block suggests that lateral shifting was accomplished while the masons held the block in a slightly raised position, in order to reduce any friction that might tip the epistyle or topple the column. In some instances, the masons used this technique of controlling the bed surface of the block together with a lever controlling the upper joint face of the block. The same combination was used for the southern geison blocks (with greater emphasis on suspending the block at the top, Fig. 10), and occasionally in the frieze and binding wall courses (W37, Fig. 50).
Clamping, dowelling, and nailing Iron hook clamps of square section were used throughout the building (Pis. 16-8; Fig. 14).24 Hook clamps concealed by the superposed course were leaded into simple rectangular cuttings; five on the northern first step remain in situ in their original lead casing.25 Clamps on the stylobate and euthynteria that were meant to be seen, however, were leaded into various forms of decorative swallowtailed cuttings.26 Some of the cuttings have narrow waists and boldly flaring tails, others are of deep trapezoidal shape, and still others have a shallow flaring frame cut for only a thin layer of lead (Pis. 14-15; Fig. 15). In all instances, the deeper cutting for the crossbar confirms the use 22 For example, the Dörpfeld Foundation, the Old Temple of Dionysos in Athens, the Peisistratid Olympieion, and the second Temple of Aphaia at Aegina, as well as later in the wall-courses of the Parthenon, Propylaia, and the Temple of Arcs; Martin 1965, pp. 282-3, figs· I 2 4 - S · 23 Note similar although higher shift-hole cuttings on the sculptured reliefs from the tympanon of the Temple of Artemis on Korkyra: Korkyra II, figs. 1, 30, 44, 46b, 68, 75, 86, and pis. 9b, 20. 24 The temple has no simple swallowtailed clamps, contra Martin i965,pp. 246-7. 25 A rare but not unprecedented type in the Archaic period; note Temple of Athena at Poseidonia (Krauss 1959, pp. 24, 35, pis. 1 0 - 1 1 ) , Building C, Athens (Wiegand 1904, pp. 165-6, fig. 159), Old Temple of Dionysos in Athens (Weickert 1929, p. 93), and the Temple of Artemis in the Delion on Paros, where hook clamps in plain cuttings are combined with those in swallowtailed cuttings (Schuller 1991a, fig. 8, pis. 74-5). Kienast (1992, p. 35, n. 23, supplement 2, pis. 1 0 - 1 1 , 14) assigns the exposed hook clamps on the Genelaos monument to the original construction, but he demonstrates that they were not originally exposed on the top course of the monument. 26 Exposed clamps, often hook clamps set in swallowtailed cuttings, appear more frequently in the islands and western Anatolia than other areas; see Martin 1965, p. 240, n. 2; Hellström and Thieme 1982, pp. 1 8 - 1 9 , 2 4· Note also Grand Temple of Apollo at Delos: Courby 1931, pp. 90, 1 0 1 , figs. 108-12. Additional archaic examples from Asia Minor include: the inner threshold from the newly discovered Panionion at Mykale (Büsing 2007, pp. 157, 164-5, 49); the monument platform from Karaburun (Mcllink 1975, p. 350, ills. 2-3); Bin Tepe Chamber Tomb BT62.4 (Ratté 1989a, no. 3, pp. 1 3 - 1 4 , 169-76, figs. 45-6); late archaic Altar at Sardis (Hanfmann and Waldbaum 1975, pp. 93-5, figs. 204-7; Ratté 1989a, pp. 1 7 - 1 8 , 2 1 6 - 1 8 , no. 15, figs, H I , 115).
lem 0
50 B U I L D I N G
M A T E R I A L S AND T E C H N I C A L
1
1
1
1
1
1 5
1
1
1
1 1 10
1
1
1
1 1 15
1
1
1
ASPECTS
1 1 20
1
1
1 1 25cm
FIGURE 14. First step, N i o / n E , illustrating setting and clamping techniques.
27 B U I L D I N G M A T E R I A L S A N D T E C H N I C A L
H
Ο
1
1
5
h
H
1
1
1-
10
ASPECTS
4—I—Ι-
15
20
25cm
FIGURE 15. Clamp cuttings on the krepis: a) euthynteria, WiS; b) S5; C) Si.
of full h o o k clamps rather than separate pegs held together b y
0.27 m. long, set in cuttings 0.25 to 0.29 m. long. A l o n g the
poured lead. 27 T h e exposed swallowtail cuttings appear for
epistyle and southern geison, the cuttings, on average 0.325 m.
their decorative value. T h e plain cuttings did not hold a differ-
long, suggest a larger clamp. 2 8 C l a m p i n g was more extensive in
ent type of clamp but were a simplified form relegated to the
the original than in the repaired areas of the building.
unexposed courses. M o s t of the clamps are between 0.22 and
T h e c o l u m n drums w e r e secured to each other b y wooden dowels set in round sockets, with a larger socket cut in the bed
1 7 Orlandos 1966.II,pp. 104-5,fig. 114;Martin 1965, pp. 248-55, 260,figs. 1 1 3 14 and pi. 24; also, D i n s m o o r 1913, pp. 8-10 and especially n. 1; N y l a n d c r 1966, pp. 130-46; Nylander 1970, pp. 63-7; Gruben 1972a, pp. 18-19. Additions to Martin and Orlandos include Kardaki temple on Korkyra (Johnson 1936, pp. 46-7); Massiliot Treasury, Delphi (Daux 1923, p. 76 and figs. 58, 59, 60, 61); Doric Treasury, Delphi (Daux 1923, p. 104 and figs. 80-2, 88-93, '03, 107); temple at Palati, N a x o s ('Hekatompedon', Gruben and Koenigs 1968, p. 703, figs. 12-13); Building B, Paros (Gruben 1972b, pp. 370-1, fig. 30a,b); Temple of Artemis in the Delion, Paros (Schuller 1991a, fig. 24, pis. 74-5); South Building at Aliki, Thasos (Servais 1980, p. 62, fig. 76); Heraion B, Delos (Plassart 1928, pp. 184-205,
surface and a smaller one on the top to allow for adjustment as
figs. 167, 201); Ionic temple at the Harbour Sanctuary, Emporio, C h i o s (Boardman 1967, pp. 64-9, pis. 13-14); Monuments H and F, Histria (Zimmermann 1991, pp. 149-51, pis. 42.b, 43.b); archaic A p o l l o temple, D i d y m a (Gruben 1963, pp. 143-4, fig. 41). 28 Calculated by measuring the distances of each socket from the joint face and taking the average.
28
B U I L D I N G M A T E R I A L S AND T E C H N I C A L
ASPECTS
the superposed drum was set in place (Pis. 10, 19; Figs. 20-1). 2 9
block of the epistyle kept that block in position while blocks
Generally, the sockets are small and shallow, suggesting that
were set adjacent to and on top of it. A f t e r construction was
their main purpose was to help centre the drums during the
completed, these dowels could be removed and the cuttings
setting process. j 0 While neither the top nor bottom drum was
w o u l d not be visible f r o m below.
dowelled to the capital or stylobate respectively, they have the
T h e masons used nails to mount decorative metal attach-
sockets nonetheless, presumably to receive a plug to aid in final
ments on the capitals ( C i , C 1 2 ) , triglyphs (T8), and epistyle
working. 3 1 T w o drums ( C D 2 and C D 2 4 ) , probably f r o m the
blocks ( A B 6 ) (Pis. 43, 48-50; Figs. 26a, 35, 37). Additionally,
same column, have larger rectangular sockets for a regular polos
nails of three different types (square, round, and rectangular)
and empolion; another drum ( C D 3 ) has a square socket on top
were used to secure the roof tiles to the geison. T h e y document
and a round one on the bed.
three successive terracotta roof systems for the building (Pis.
T h e only instance of dowelling between courses occurred at
54-5; Figs. 43-4, 55-7; F o l d - o u t Fig. 11). R o u n d pins secured
the corners of the pediment, where dowels braced and secured
the akroteria to the corner geison blocks in the original build-
the first block of the raking geison to the horizontal geison
ing (see southeast corner geison, PI. 56; Fig. 44).
(note the dowel hole on H G i and the corresponding slot cut in the bed of R G 5 , Figs. 59, 66). 32 In addition, t w o fragmentary raking geison blocks have d o w e l holes, probably to secure the central akroterion. In setting the epistyle, the masons may have w o r k e d with a
Setting lines and masons' marks The only preserved setting line on the temple defines the position of the sekos walls on the toichobate. 3 s Here, a sharp,
fox*m of preliminary dowel. T h e evidence consists of shallow,
clear line marks the outer face of the southern cella wall, all
wedge-shaped cuttings (in addition to conventional pry-holes)
faces of the southern anta, and the front face of the door wall
in the top surfaces of the capitals, 0.05-0.11 m. from the face of
(PI. 32; F o l d - o u t Fig. 1). N o incised setting lines survive on
the abacus, with their vertical face a w a y f r o m the epistyle.
blocks f r o m the entablature.
T h e y appear consistently (in twos and sometimes threes) on
Mason's marks survive on at least eight column drums and
the surface in front of the epistyle, and less consistently but
several blocks from the epistyle (Pis. 1 9-26; Figs. 16-17). 3 6 O n
fairly frequently behind the epistyle (Fig. 13, 26a; F o l d - o u t
the epistyle, they take the form of a letter or simple sign set on the
Fig. 7). 33 T h e marks are set perpendicular to, and on either
bed surface near the lateral joint. In this position, the marks
side of, the p r y - m a r k that signals the joint between adjacent
would have been of little value once the blocks were set. T h e y
epistyle blocks. These cuttings probably were used in levering
therefore must have functioned while the block was being pre-
(see above), but their flat, wedge-like shape seems unnecessary
pared and moved to the construction area. In t w o instances, the
for that purpose alone; their distance f r o m the face of the
same letter survives on both a facer and a backer, 37 suggesting that
epistyle suggests that they m a y have held temporary w o o d e n
the primary purpose of these letters was to match the t w o blocks
struts that w o u l d fit into the cutting and against the vertical
of the course, an especially important task since the thickness of
face of the epistyle. 3 4 Here, the struts w o u l d serve the purely
each facing block differed. T h e marks may have acted as some
temporary function of preventing an epistyle block f r o m shift-
form of numeration related to the assembly of the epistyle as well.
ing horizontally while the other blocks were being laid adja-
However, not enough survive to be certain of the series, and it is
cent to it. T h e preliminary d o w e l holes are more numerous in
difficult to k n o w h o w to integrate the unmarked blocks (e.g.,
front of the epistyle because the facing blocks were most
A42) or those with symbols within the possible order of the
frequently laid first. Preliminary dowels securing the backing
letters. 38 Unfortunately, only t w o of the sculptured blocks retain
2 9 The sockets on the upper surface are c.0.032-0.040 m. in diameter and c.0.023-0.045 m. deep. Sockets on the bed surface are c.0.04-0.05 m. in diameter and c.0.045-0.052 m. deep. The scale and configuration are not that of the standard poloi and empolia.
3 5 In contrast to the elaborate use of setting and measuring lines found, e.g., on the first Temple of Aphaia at Aegina: Schwandner 1985, p. 9, n. 25, 131, fig. 80; or the temple at Segesta: Mertens 1984, pp. 31-5, figs. 9-10, pis. 32-3.
Clarke 1882, p. 87, suggests the cutting held a peg for turning the drum on a lathe, but see Orlandos 1966.II, p. 66. For another instance where a base has a socket but was not dowelled to the stylobate, see the Stoa of the Athenians at Delphi: A m a n d r y 1953, pp. 40-4, pis. 24, 25.1, 2, 3, 6; 26.1, 2, 5. Sockets cut on the top of the abacus of Doric capitals from the Temple of Zeus at Nemea have no corresponding sockct on the bed surface of the epistyle; see Hill 1966, pp. 39-40, for a similar interpretation for these cuttings. T h e sockets are too shallow to secure a wooden axle for moving the drum.
36 There may have been more marks on the column drums; the best preserved blocks were incorporated into the reconstruction before the feature could be fully recorded. F o r earlier observations of mason's marks, Clarke 1898, pp. 92-5, fig. 13; Mendel 1914, pp. 14,16; Sartiaux 1915, p. 136, fig. 58. For mason's marks generally, Martin 1965, pp. 221-31; Orlandos 1966.II, pp. 84-7; Guarducci 1975, pp. 377-93; Hcllmann 2002, pp. 88-91. A d d O l y m p i a (Herrmann 1991, pp. 83-9); Temple of A p o l l o at Metapontion ( K o l d e w e y and Puchstein 1899, p. 38); first Temple of Aphaia at Aegina (Schwandner 1985, pp. 131-2, fig. 78, pi. 34); Temple of A p o l l o at C y r c n e (Pernier 1935, fig. 33).
C o m p a r e Temple of Artemis, Korkyra: Korkyra I, p. 28, figs. 10, 45. T h e cuttings are c.0.06-0.08 m. wide, c.0.045-0.075 m. long, and c.0.0050.015 m · deep.
37 The backer block with the letter φ (psi) recorded in Clarke 1898, fig. 13, could not be found at the site. The surviving letter on A31 is less rounded than Clarke's drawing of the letter on the backer.
34 For preliminary dowels, see Orlandos 191 j , pp. 175-8; Tschira i 9 4 i , p p . 1669; Martin 1965, pp. 282-3 and figs. 124-5; Orlandos 1966.II, pp. 121-2, fig. 139; N y l a n d e r 1970, p. 46, fig. 12. Clarke 1898, p. 90 interprets the cuttings as pry marks later used to support scaffolding.
38 O n the epistyle, the t w o marks bearing little relationship to a letter form are the curious paisley-like shape illustrated in Clarke 1898, fig. 13, and the mark on A i recorded in Mendel 1914, p. 14. The mark on A i is blocked by the museum installation, and the plain block could not be located at the site.
30
Martin 1965, pp. 291-6; Orlandos 1966.II, pp. 1 1 3 - 1 5 .
31
32 33
29 B U I L D I N G M A T E R I A L S A N D T E C H N I C A L
ASPECTS
CD37
CD42
CD46
CD73
CD59
CD64
CD70
CD10
H
1 h 5
H—I
1—I
1—I 10
h
1—Ι—Ι—I—I
15
1
I—
20
H—I—I 25cm
FIGURE 16. Mason's marks on the c o l u m n drums.
marks ( A i and A2), so they are not useful in reconstructing the
helped to guide the masons w h e n setting the adjacent block. 3 9
sculptured frieze. From the only block that preserves both ends
T h e fillets were dressed off only w h e r e they interfered with
and carries a mason's mark (A28/A29), it w o u l d appear that the
a superposed b l o c k or c o l u m n drum. O t h e r w i s e , they were
marks were set at one end only. In the t w o surviving pairs, the
left in place and, like the shifting bosses, assumed an orna-
letters appear at different ends of each block. Either it was unim-
mental role. Similar fillets remain on several of the plain
portant which side of the block was marked, or the system was
and sculptured epistyle blocks (Pis. 46, 92-3, 98; Figs. 33,
more complex, with blocks carrying marks matched on adjacent
54, 7 6 - 7 , 80; F o l d - o u t Figs. 8-9). M u c h rougher, boss-like
blocks. The first option seems more likely.
fillets appear near the b o t t o m of each joint face o n the tym-
T h e mason's marks on some of the top surfaces of the
panon b l o c k s (Pi. 70; Figs. 63-4). T h e s e fillets also provided
column drums are either simple letters or symbols set near
protection during the setting process, but because they were
the edge of the flute. T w o of the surviving symbols recur in
not visible f r o m b e l o w t h e y w e r e neither dressed up nor
drums of different size; most likely they identify drums desig-
cleaned o f f .
nated for the same column. T h e marks also may have indicated w h i c h side of the drum was to be set outward.
Direction of construction T h e position and shape of lifting marks, shift-holes, pry-holes,
Protective fillets T h e blocks of the stylobate and first step were given
and bevelled edges suggest that the masons only occasionally fillets
f o l l o w e d the standard procedure of w o r k i n g f r o m the corners
along the edges bordering the lateral joints in order to protect the b l o c k as it was set. O n the free side of each block, the vertical edge of the fillet was bevelled back to mark the plane of the course (Figs. 14, 18-19; F o l d - o u t Figs. 1 - 3 ) . It thus
3 9 For the role of the bevelled edge in determining the direction of lay, Hodge 1975, pp. 334-47; Ratté 1989a, pp. 47-8, 62-6, 77-82.
B U I L D I N G M A T E R I A L S AND T E C H N I C A L
3°
TTo( V ΤΔν G A2
A16
A18
•
AB10
A1 (not to scale) 0
H 1 h
5
H
Clarke 1898, fig. 13 1
1
1
t
A22
AB13
AB16
ASPECTS
1 1 10
1
1
1 h 15
A36
AB2
Clarke 1898, fig. 13 H 1 1 h 20
25cm
FIGURE 17. Mason's marks on epistyle facers and backers.
toward the centre of each side. 40 Each course was set in a
relief, such as Herakles' arrows on relief A 5 , were surely added
slightly different fashion, but on the w h o l e the masons w o r k e d
in paint, and it seems likely that other areas were delineated in
f r o m left to right, especially w h e n setting the upper entabla-
colour as well (PI. 92; Fig. 76). Today, traces of red pigment can
ture, or north to south, as in the case of the tympanon. Evi-
be found on the viae of several geison blocks, inside the
dence for the procedure is set out below under the description
mason's marks, and on the tuff hawksbeak. T h e first excavators
of each course. T h e method has implications for the w a y in
also f o u n d traces of the same colour on the annulets. 41 N o n e of
w h i c h the masons used their crane. Rather than set it up near
the coloured areas bear traces of plaster, but paint was often
the centre of the course, they w o u l d have to set it consistently
applied directly to stone in the Archaic period. 4 2 In addition,
to the right of all construction. T h e technique may account for
traces of white pigment at the joint where the stylobate once
some of the peculiar misalignments w e witness in coordinating
rested on the first step course suggest that at least parts of the
the spacing of the frieze with the colonnade.
building might, at one time, have been whitewashed (Pi. 9, upper left corner; PI. 18, lower left corner). Such a wash o n
Colour While neither plaster nor paint survives o n any of the architec-
the architectural sculpture w o u l d have allowed the painted sculptural detail to be much more visible.
tural sculpture, certain crucial features that are not carved in C o n t r a the theory that courses generally were laid from corners to centres, or that w o r k began at one corner and met at the one diagonally opposite, cf. Martin 1965, pp. 235-8; Orlandos 1966.II, pp. 95-6; H o d g e 1975, pp. 333-47; Daux and Hansen 1987, fig. 33. For starting in the middle of a course, note the classical Temple of Poseidon at Isthmia, Broneer 1971, pp. 57-8. 4υ
41 Clarke 1898, p. 83; note also the use of red on the annulets of the H-Temple: Wiegand 1904, p. 58. 12 Pfaff 2003b, p. 185, nn. 2 and 4. F o r a discussion of colour and further references; also Hoepfner 2002. F o r the well preserved evidence of colour on the architecture of the first and second temples of Aphaia at Aegina, Schwandner 1985, p. 130, frontispiece; Bankel 1993, pp. 1 1 1 - 1 2 , frontispiece; Bankel 2004, pp. 71-83.
55
Description and Reconstruction of the Original Building ACCESS AND
ORIENTATION
southwest of the temple. N o excavation was made below the pavement,
The archaic city of Assos remains to be found, and with it
and no date has been established
for its
construction. J
the original routes leading to the temple. Vertical cliffs define the akropolis on all but its northern side. The sheer drops to the south and west preclude easy access from these directions,
FOUNDATION
while ascent from the east is equally precipitous (Pis. i c - d ; Fig. 2). Foundations for a switchback road of undetermined date lead from the eastern terraces to the eastern face of the akropolis but end abruptly well below the summit, leaving a barely manageable climb (Pis. id, 27-8). 1 T h e route from the north circling westward around the highest outcropping to arrive at the southwest corner of the temple offers a gentler ascent, especially near the top of the akropolis. It must have served as one of the main approaches to the temple. F r o m this vantage, viewers could appreciate the entire building as they made their w a y towards its the eastern entrance.
AND
KREPIS
T h e temple at Assos belongs to the group of sacred buildings roughly 100 feet long (hekatompeda), a size that has importance already in the Geometric period. A t Assos the idea finds expression as one of the fully developed, smaller scale peripteral D o r i c temples, c.40-50 feet wide by c.90-100 feet long, here with a hexastyle peripteral colonnade with 13 columns on the flanks, resting on a krepidoma composed of euthynteria, one step, and the stylobate. T h e distyle in antis pronaos is axially aligned with the third column from the east on the flank, thus
coordinating
the cella with
the
pteron.
The
T o take maximum advantage of the site and provide the most
'pseudo-dipteral' arrangement at the eastern end creates a
rewarding views, the designers set the temple on a gently
deep pteroma, which together w i t h the lack of an opisthodo-
sloping area of bedrock south of and c.4.40 m. below the high-
mos, the marginally narrower width of the western end (see
est rock outcropping on the akropolis (c.234 m. above sea level;
below), and the wider intercolumniations of the façades, spa-
Pi. 2). It stands roughly 1 5 - 1 7 m. f r o m the face of the steep
tially and visually accentuates the eastern end of the building.
eastern cliffs, oriented slightly south of the east/west axis (15 0 14' 40" south of east). 2 For 4.00-6.40 m. north of the temple, the bedrock was quarried and rough-picked to create a level
Foundation
platform; outcrops to the west were similarly dressed d o w n
A good part of the krepis rests directly on levelled bedrock,
(PI. 3a). To the south, the terrain drops off significantly. A t the southwest corner of the temple, a paved area made of large, irregularly shaped flags loosely fitted together in a bedding of earth follows the natural slope of the bedrock to mark out the original ground level (PI. 3 b; Fold-out Fig. 1). The paving continues to c.4.25 m. west of the temple, where the last preserved flags rest on a shelf of bedrock at a level c.1.00 m. lower than the temple's euthynteria. The pavement is visible for C.1.80 m. south of the temple's foundations, where it enters a scarp of unexcavated earth. T h e region is much disturbed by post-antique construction, and several paving flags lie scattered ' N o t recorded on the site plan in Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, p. 139 (our Fig. 5). 2 Clarke (1898, pp. 5 5-6) calculated off the N o r t h Star. H e indicates magnetic north 5 degrees west of true north.
especially along the northern side, the northern part of the western side, and in the middle section of the southern side (marked with asterisks on Fold-out Fig. 3; see also Pis. 2~3a, 30, 31b; Figs. 8-9; Fold-out Figs. 1-2). A single course of squared blocks with quarry-dressed faces forms the 0.256 m. high euthynteria for the eastern, and parts of the northern, sides.4 The more irregular terrain along the southern side and southwest corner, however, required more construction between the outcrops of bedrock. Quarry-dressed blocks, c.0.36 m. high, 3 It may be compared, however, co the polygonally paved stone road at Old Smyrna; Akurgal 2007, p. 134, pi. 14.1, dated b y the excavators to the second half of the seventh cencury. 4 Furcher excavacion may reveal a more complex configuration; only the top surface of the euthynteria has been exposed on much of the eastern side and on che norchern side from c.13.10 to 26.58 m. from the eastern first step.
D E S C R I P T I O N AND R E C O N S T R U C T I O N OF T H E O R I G I N A L
32
support the fully exposed euthynteria f o r the eastern section of
BUILDING
temple and returned to its original position; only the t w o
the course. A t the southwest corner, where the akropolis slopes
adjacent eastern blocks are lost. C a r e f u l measuring of the
most sharply, the krepis stands on a platform of four courses
course reveals that the temple narrows slightly f r o m east to
(including the euthynteria), w h i c h continue along each side of
west to define a platform 30.875 m. long by 14.590 m. wide at
the foundation until they abut bedrock. F r o m the bottom to
the eastern end and 14.565 m. w i d e at the western end. 6 T h e
top, the courses measure 0.350 m., 0.295 m., 0.246 m., and
step height measures 0.282 m. along the western and southwest
0.256 m. high. 5
sides but diminishes to 0.275
m
·
at
the eastern end of the
T h e southern euthynteria and at least t w o of the additional
building; the tread width ranges between 0.278 and 0.281 m.
courses of the southwest corner foundation have richly decor-
T h e course bears no evidence of curvature, but the entire
ated faces. Clearly, these courses were meant to be fully ex-
platform
posed (Pis. 3b, 2 9 - 3 i a - c ; F o l d - o u t Fig. 2). T h e masons used
northwest to the southeast corners (elevations marked
slopes diagonally
downward
0.020 m. f r o m
t w o techniques to create three different kinds of pattern. M o s t
Fold-out Fig. i). 7
the on
commonly, they w o r k e d back into the face of the block, leaving
The first step course consists of rectangular facers of variable
raised edges to form a smooth margin defining the ashlar block.
length (0.928 to 3.101 m.) backed b y blocks with squared-off
H a m m e r blows created rough, circular cavities on the face of
front and side faces but rough and often irregular backs (0.755
many of the blocks. H o w e v e r , several blocks bear more intri-
to 1.923 m. long). A relatively straight joint runs lengthwise
cate workmanship, in w h i c h quasi-geometric patterns, includ-
through the façades and for the most part through the flanks, s
ing triangular, star, and h o n e y c o m b - l i k e motifs, were chiselled
but no attempt was made to have the facers break joints evenly
into the face of the stone. O n several blocks, the masons
with the backers or with the blocks of the stylobate. Excluding
w o r k e d in reverse technique, cutting a w a y the background to
the east side, almost all the facers are connected to the adjacent
make ridges that form triangular and star patterns as well as
block at either end by a single iron-hook clamp leaded into a
honeycomb-like motifs. In t w o places the bedrock abutting
purely rectangular cutting (Pis. 16-18; Fig. 14; F o l d - o u t Figs.
masonry is also dressed to appear as decorated ashlar (e.g.,
1,3). The backers are not clamped. A l l of the risers of the first
the l o w e r right corner of Pi. 31b). It is tempting to see the
step have projecting bosses of pyramidal, cylindrical, or conical
hands of different masons in the styles of rustication; their
shape, the number ranging from one to f o u r independently of
arbitrary combination suggests that the decoration may have
the block's length (Pis. 3a, 3 0 - 3 i a - c ; F o l d - o u t Figs. 1-2). T h e
been cut before the blocks were set in place.
risers and treads of the first step also retain the narrow fillets
T h e exposed foundation created an imposing sense of height
that protect the edge next to the joint surface f r o m damage
for the approaching viewer, and its treatment established an
during setting operations. T h e fillet at the free end of the block
emphatic distinction between the purely architectonic form of
is bevelled to mark the front plane of the course. The bosses
the building proper and the natural rock from w h i c h it
and fillets are clearly part of the construction process; scholars
emerged. T h e hammer-dressed patterning evoked the rustica-
assume that such aids were meant to be dressed off completely
tion of bedrock even in ashlar format; the technique had cur-
during the final stages of construction. H o w e v e r , their survival
rency especially in polygonal masonry elsewhere (see below,
in this (twice) fully completed building suggests that at the least
pp. 228-9). T h e decorative patterns are more sophisticated but
they did not offend, and more positively, that they were inten-
have the same effect of blending with the bedrock to create a
tionally left in place f o r their decorative value. 9
sharp visual contrast between the smoothly dressed krepis and rough-hewn
foundation.
Similar
patterns
appear
on
the
Setting the first step
temple's wall blocks as well, suggesting that the masons or
T h e direction of the wedge-shaped shift-holes cut along the top
designer sought to establish a strong textural distinction be-
joint face of most facing and backing blocks and the position of
tween the specific elements of the D o r i c order and those elem-
the bevelled fillet s h o w that the masons w o r k e d in several
ents that were generic, such as the foundation and walls.
crews, setting the outer course before the backing blocks
A t the southwest corner, the blocks of the euthynteria were connected to one another by fully exposed iron h o o k clamps leaded into swallowtailed cuttings (PI. 14; Fig. 15).
First step A single step and the stylobate complete the krepis. N e a r l y the entire first step course remains in situ (Fold-out Figs. 1-3). T h e bi'oken southeast corner block was recovered north of the
The lowest course was measured b y Clarke; the excavation of 1987 did not extend to the bottom of this course. 5
6 These measurements are closest to Clarke's first set, Clarke 1882, pp. 96-7, which give the length of the first step as 30.885 m. and of the stylobate as 30.335 m., rather than 30.86 and 30.31 m. as in Clarke 1898, p. 139, and Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, p. 141. Clarke notes a discrepancy of 0.054 m - in the length of the north and south flanks, but he does not identify the smaller side. Repeated measuring in 1984 yielded equal lengths but a slight diminution in width. 7 The southwest corner of the first step was established as level 0.0 m. T h e northwest corner is + 0.005 m · ! the northeast corner, 4- 0.001 m.; the southeast corner, — 0.015 m. s The joint between facers and backers on the northern flank breaks once at the eleventh block from the east. T h e joining on the southern flank varies. 9
Kalpaxis 1986, pp. 22-83.
33 D E S C R I P T I O N A N D R E C O N S T R U C T I O N O F T H E O R I G I N A L (Fold-out Fig. 3; outer arrows s h o w the direction f o r setting the
outer
course;
inner
arrows
show
the
direction
BUILDING
f r o m boldly flaring to trapezoidal; the shallow cavity for the
for
lead shows that they were meant to be ornamental (PL 15;
setting the backing blocks). T w o crews w o r k e d outward f r o m
Fig. 15). T h e different shapes could reflect the hands of differ-
the northeast corner, while t w o more crews began w i t h the
ent masons engaged to w o r k on certain sections of the course.
block N i i E and also w o r k e d outward in both directions. The
T h e various types of clamp cuttings f o u n d o n the krepis do not
t w o crews w o r k i n g toward each other rapidly met between
represent different building phases, nor is there reason to sus-
the seventh and eighth blocks on the northern side. T h e west-
pect that the exposed swallowtailed clamps are later reworking,
ward moving crew continued around the northwest corner,
because clamps also appear beneath the columns o n the stylo-
d o w n the western side, and around onto the southern side,
bate. T h e masons laid the krepidoma without interruption, and
eventually meeting the crew that w o r k e d d o w n the eastern
it stood without repair. 11
side at the block S 1 1 E . 1 0 T o lay the backing course, crews began w o r k f r o m the northern corners and proceeded in both
S e t t i n g the s t y l o b a t e
directions. T h e t w o crews w o r k i n g toward the centre of the
T h e shape and placement of the pry marks on the first step,
northern side met between blocks N 1 3 E and N 1 4 E . W o r k
coupled with the bevelled edges on the stylobate blocks, indi-
also started outwardly along the southern flank, with crews
cate that the masons set the stylobate b y w o r k i n g outward in
meeting at blocks S5E and S12W.
both directions f r o m both southern corners and f r o m the middle on the northern side, starting at the block N 9 E (note directional arrows, F o l d - o u t Fig. 4). T h e crews w o r k i n g from
Sty lob ate
the north then turned southward onto the façades to meet the
A t the time of the American excavation most of the flank
other crews near the southeast and northwest corners. The
stylobate was in situ, but after the Second World War the
several pry marks for the blocks N 2 E and N 3 E cut in opposite
villagers broke many blocks to build a windmill and reçut
directions suggest that masons had to reset these blocks. 1 2
others for use in olive-oil factories in neighbouring villages. Three blocks crudely hacked into circular forms were left on
Restored stylobate
the first step course (S8, S9, and S10). Today, only f o u r blocks
In the course of reassigning many of the dislodged and broken
of the northern side remain in place ( N 4 W to N 7 W ; compare
stylobate
Fig. 5 with the actual-state plan, Fold-out F i g . i ) .
Clarke's plan, 1 3 w e uncovered several additional blocks un-
blocks
to their
original positions
indicated
on
T h e stylobate consists of a single series of andesite blocks set
k n o w n to C l a r k e and Bacon that n o w clarify the plan of the
back 0.278-0.281 m. f r o m the riser of the first step to define a
façades. O n the flanks, the spacing of the pry marks on the first
platform 30.320 m. long and tapering in w i d t h f r o m 14.030 m.
step course corresponds within c.0.05 m. to the length of the
at the east end to 14.005 m. at the west end. T h e lengths of the
superposed stylobate blocks drawn on Clarke and Bacon's plan.
blocks range substantially and bear no specific relationship to
B y analogy, the pry marks at either end of the building should
the colonnade (Table ia; Figs. 5, 18-19; F o l d - o u t Figs. 1, 3-5).
also mark out the relative position of each stylobate block.
T h e blocks also vary in thickness and, on the southern flank, in
A l o n g with dressed d o w n surfaces and weather marks, these
shape as well. T h e lateral joints appear to have been intention-
pries indicate there were ten stylobate blocks at the eastern end
ally cut slightly out of square, so that the blocks w o u l d lock
and nine at the west (Fig. 5; F o l d - o u t Figs. 1,4). Several hitherto
together (note stylobate in situ, Fold-out Figs. 1, 3). T h e range
unrecorded blocks n o w can be assigned to the façades; together
is
they shed light on the arrangement of the colonnade. A t the
not f o r curvature, w h i c h C l a r k e and Bacon tested for and could
west end, block S61 (Fig. 18) probably belongs to the southwest
not detect, but instead partially compensates for the slope in
corner near where it was found. B o t h its length and the position
the first step course, with the tallest blocks belonging around
of the t w o clamps along its right side indicate that S14, discov-
the southeast corner.
ered south of the temple in area N / 9 , must be restored to the
in their height (from 0.275-0.294 m., with most 0.285
m·)
T h e raised fillet that protects the edges of each stylobate block was dressed off the top surface only where it coincided w i t h the placement of the column. A s on the first step blocks, the edge of the fillet on the free side of the block was bevelled back to the plane of the course. A d j a c e n t blocks near the corners were secured with pairs of clamps at either end; the other blocks were adjoined w i t h a single clamp or none at all. M o s t of the clamps on this course were f u l l y exposed, for the joints between blocks fell beneath the columns only b y chance. T h e swallowtailed cuttings are of several distinctive shapes Blocks S8E and S9E may have been set out of sequence.
" Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, p. 141, for the position of clamps underneath columns on the northern and southern stylobate. M o s t of these cuttings are badly damaged today. 12 The explanation of final setting offered by Hansen 1991, pp. 72-9, might apply here. 13 Certain errors in Clarke and Bacon's plans bear mention: 1) the position of the anta is drawn 4.88 m. rather than 4.95 m. from the face of the stylobate, with the result that the stylobate block S4E mistakenly appears to be aligned with the anta; 2) the plan is too wide at the western end; the first step block W i S is recorded as 3.25 m. rather than 3.042 m. long, and the pry mark is consequently placed c.o.i j m. north of its proper position. O n the w o r k i n g plan n o w in the Museum of Fine Arts, Boston, the architects record a single clamp cutting on the block N3W, which was inadvertently omitted in the final versions.
D E S C R I P T I O N
TABLE
A N D
R E C O N S T R U C T I O N
OF
T H E
O R I G I N A L
B U I L D I N G
ia. Dimensions of stylobate blocks
i
2
3
Number
Location
Position
4
5
Length
Height
2.000
0.278
6
Thickness
S1/S6/S66
SE of temple
S2W
S2
O/io
S8E
>0.93
0.294
s4 S5
M/io
E3N
temple
S3W
1-393 >0.65
0.285
S7 S8
temple
W3S?
>0.44
0.276
>0.86
N/9
S3W
>0.96
0.284
>0.96
S9
N/9
S7W
>1.04
0.284
>1.04
Sio
N/10
S8W
>0.98
0.290
>0.98
Sii
M/11
S3E
1.464
0.291
0.885
S12
K/12
E5N
1.272
0.287
0.982/1.040
S13 S14
O/lI
s4e
0.872/1.080
W2S
i-745 1.414
0.294
N/9
S15
O-P/10-11
E3S/W5S
>0.43
0.296
>0.42/0.47
S16
temple
S5E
>0.84
0.285
>0.85
S18
O/9-10
S9E
S19
temple
W4S
>0.42
0.285
>0.65/0.67
S20
temple
n3w?
>0.60
0.285
>0.645/0.67
S21
M/10-11
E2N
>0.771
0.290
S22a/b
temple
N9W
>0.786
0.280
S23
temple
0.280
>0.605
temple
S6W? ?
>0.77
S24
>0.668
0.284
>0.34
1.183
0.285
0.284
0.290
1.094 >0.94 0.915/0.935 1.130
1.032/1.070
I.II0/I.I60
1.100 >0.57
S26
temple
stylo?
>0.565
0.275
>0.83
S27 S28
windmill
S5W
>0.57
c.0.27
>0.66
temple
N3W
>0.63
0.285
>0.36
S29
temple
N2E/S2E
>0.39
0.288
>0.60
S30
temple
stylo?
0.273
>0.53
S31 S32
temple
stylo?
>0.69
temple
N 3 W?
>0.66
0.284
temple
W3S?
>0.55
0.282
N/9
S4W
>0.86
c.0.27
>0.64/0.67
S3 5
temple
S5E
>0.51
0.294
>0.523/0.573
S36
M/11
EIN(E4N,E6N)
>0.985
0.285
>0.895/0.915
S37 S38
windmill
N9E?
>0.70
0.275
>0.28/0.30
windmill
N9W
>0.79
0.285
>0.83
S39/S40
windmill
N8W
S41
windmill
N9E
S42
windmill
S43
windmill
S44
windmill
S45
windmill
S33 S34
0.645
c.i.23
>0.22
>0.50 >0.33 0.820/0.831
0.280
>0.86/0.90
>0.89
0.287
>0.83
n4e
>0.93
0.281
>0.86
N2E
>0.66
0.285
>0.86
N5E
>0.425
0.283
>0.805
>0.71
0.283
>0.79
>0.70
0.285
>0.81
>0.98
0.282
>0.80
>0.55
0.275
>0.80
S46a/b
windmill
S47
windmill
S48
windmill
S49
windmill
n3e? n4e n3e n4e n4e
S50
windmill
N2E
>0.43
0.280
>0.81
S51 S52
windmill
N8E
>0.73
0.285
>0.62
windmill
N7E?
>0.69
0.287
>0.81
S53
windmill
N5E
>0.385
0.287
>0.55/0.59
S54
windmill
N9E
>0.48
0.283
>0.81
S55
windmill
N9E?
>0.485
0.275
>0.82/0.855
S56
windmill
N9E?
>0.57
0.278
>0.78
S57
windmill
N6E
>0.55
0.281
>0.82
S58/S77
windmill
N2E
>0.43
0.280
>0.80
Sj9
N/8
S6W
>0.79
0.284
>0.64
>0.863
>0.16
>0.67
35 D E S C R I P T I O N A N D R E C O N S T R U C T I O N O F T H E O R I G I N A L
BUILDING
S 60 S6I
windmill
N6E
M/8
SWcorner?
S62/S72
L/ 3
S9W
S63
O/12
S64
O/12
N3E N3W?
>0.67
S65
M/12
N2E
>0.69
0.283
>0.27/0.31
S 67 S68
O/io
S2E
>0.77
0.295
>0.65
>0.83 >0.69 1.580 >0.43
0.285
>0.27
0.277 0.280
>1.00 >0.64/0.68
0.284
>0.31
0.285
>0.40
M/15
stylo?
>0.55
0.282
>0.61
S 69 S70
P-Q/io
E4N?
0.285
temple
?
>0.65 >0.28
>0.61 >0.15
S71 S73/S74
P/11 windmill
S5E
S75 S 76
windmill
N6E N6E
windmill
S78
O/12
S 79 S80
>0.09
>0.435 >0.84
0.294
>0.53
0.280 0.277 0.294
>0.75/0.80 >0.27
S7E
>0.41 >0.31
?
>0.40
0.281
windmill
N8E
>0.34
in situ
N4W
1.403/1.397
0.284
S81 S82
in situ
N5W
2.280/2.288
0.287
I.I3I 1.055
in situ
N6W
I.182/1.178
0.285
1.055
S83
in situ
N7W
1.814/1.827
0.284
I . I 10
c.0.28
>0.51 >0.41 >0.85
position W 2 S . 1 4 T h e dislodged stylobate block that C l a r k e
In addition, three other n e w l y found blocks, S2, S18, and
found west of the temple no longer survives, but on the basis
S62/72 (Fig. 18) can be assigned to three of the f o u r open
of its recorded dimensions, 1.72 m. long b y 1.15 m. wide, it can
positions on the southern side of the temple, S8E, S9E, and
be restored to the position W 3 N .
S 1 1 E , respectively. 1 7
F o r the eastern façade, the evidence is even stronger. B l o c k S4 (Fig. 19), built into a Byzantine house wall in area M / i o ,
To ich ο bate
takes a position on the eastern façade, E 3 N , with fragment S21 (Fig. 19), found in the same Byzantine building, adjacent in the
O n l y the toichobate today defines the temple's internal struc-
position E 2 N . T h e length and columnar depression of block
ture, w h i c h consisted of a distyle in antis pronaos and long,
S i 2 (Fig. 19), w h i c h had fallen d o w n the steep slope northeast
unobstructed cella. A t the time of Clarke and Bacon's excav-
of the temple (K/12), indicate that it can o n l y be restored to the
ation, all but t w o blocks near the northwest corner remained
position E 5 N . It has a shifting boss more characteristic of the
in situ (Fig. 5). Today, the t w o blocks north of the threshold
first step course, but w h i c h here may have been used in con-
and the three small blocks of the northern toichobate east of
junction with the channel cut through the first step course
the door wall are also gone (Fold-out Fig. 1). Constructed
b e l o w it (Fold-out Fig. 5; restored plan). 1 5 Blocks S4 and S i 2
independently of the stylobate, the toichobate rests on levelled
have small holes in the centre top surfaces, as does fragment
bedrock or on large, irregular foundation slabs fitted against
S36 (Fig. 19), w h i c h was f o u n d in the recent excavations north-
bedrock outcrops (see section, southwest corner, Fig. 9). A t the
east of the temple (Μ/11). It probably should be restored to the
antae ends, the juncture with the northern door wall, and again
eastern façade as well, and could belong to position Ε ι Ν , E 4 N ,
at the ninth block f r o m the northwest corner, the bedrock rises
E 6 N , or E 9 N . B l o c k Si 5, a small fragment with a columnar
high enough to form the toichobate itself (see asterisks on
marking found southeast of the temple ( O - P / 1 0 - 1 1 ) , can find a
Fold-out Fig. 3). Otherwise, the course consists of irregularly
position on either façade; its find-spot suggests it belonged to
shaped and u n d a m p e d blocks; their vertical joint faces fre-
the eastern façade in the position E 8 N . B l o c k S69, f o u n d south
quently are not set perpendicular to the course. T h e upper
of the temple, also appears to belong to the eastern side, E 7 N .
surface roughly corresponds to the level of the stylobate but,
T h e n o w - l o s t block that C l a r k e records as measuring 2.245
m·
b y 0.93 m. fits c o m f o r t a b l y in the position E 4 N . 1 6
like the first step course, it slopes diagonally f r o m the northwest to the southeast end, leaving the base of the northern anta 0.086 m. higher than that of the southern anta (note levels
14 The only other possible position for this block, N2W, must be eliminated because the adjoining block does not have two clamp cuttings. Clarke 1898, p. 68, identifies a different block for the western position, but its dimensions, 1.15 m. wide by 1.72 m. long, cannot fit next to the southwest corner block, as demonstrated by the position of the pry mark; see note above. 15 For the channel, see Clarke 1898, p. 67, fig. 8. Another fragment from the stylobate, S79, also has a projecting boss. 16 N o t E3S, contra Clarke 1898, p. 68.
on F o l d - o u t Fig. 1). T h e masons rectified the differences by adjusting the wall courses and levelling the paving stones (PI. 32).
17 The only possible join for Si 5 on the flank is with S59 at S j W . Although S18 is the correct length for the block N 3 E , the length of its partial fillet and the special cutting for a paving stone on its back face exclude it from that position.
60 D E S C R I P T I O N A N D R E C O N S T R U C T I O N
OF THE O R I G I N A L
BUILDING
„1.032
S 62/72
.284
1
S14
S2
Ο
H—I—I—h
.5
H—I 1
1—I
1—I
1 1 1.5
1—I—h
2
H—\
I 1 2.5
1
1 Ι-
3m
FIGURE I8. N e w l y recovered southern and western stylobate blocks S14, S18, S62/S72, S2, and S61.
61 D E S C R I P T I O N A N D R E C O N S T R U C T I O N O F T H E ORIGINAL Ml'i'i
1
•I 1iß-y 11 ι\V:i
i Ä
^v'ViV
BUILDING
S69
•vi Λ·»!.!" l v'i'l-l I
but the extremes were not on opposite sides, nor did the height increase and decrease consistently. T h e differences in vertical dimensions reflect slight variations, in part owing to present condition; they are not of sufficient consistency to document inclination. However, further research may reveal greater subtlety than I was able to record. 42 If anything, the column drums would seem to diminish slightly more rapidly at the bottom than at the top. There are, however, too few upper drums to make a reliable determination.
46D E S C R I P T I O N A N D R E C O N S T R U C T I O N
First drum: Second drum:
CD36 CD12
1.163
Third drum:
CD 5 CD4
0.804
Top drum:
OF T H E O R I G I N A L
BUILDING
1.237
0.914
Shaft Capital C5
4.118 0.462
Total
4.580
First drum:
CD7
Second drum:
CD59
1.225
Third drum:
CD 3
0.813
Top drum:
CD6
0.956
4.118 Capital C 6
0.486 4.604
1.098
Shaft
4.092
Capital C31
0.488
4.092 Capital C8
4*092
0.497
Capital C i
0.506
1.163
A
CD36
CD12 ι*—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I 0 .5 1 1.5
A /V
CD5 1
1 2
1—I
CD4 1—I
1 1 2.5
1
1—ι
FIGURE 20. Column drums from the four different positions: C D 3 6 , C D 1 2 , C D 5 , and C D 4 .
1 3m
46D E S C R I P T I O N A N D R E C O N S T R U C T I O N O F T H E O R I G I N A L
CD42
BUILDING
CD43
.818
0
Η—I—I—l·
.5
-I—ί—l· 1
Η—I—I—h 1.5
2
H—I—I—h
2.5
3m
FIGURE Z I . C o l u m n d r u m s C D 4 2 and C D 4 3 , w i t h c u t t i n g s , p o s s i b l y f o r a screen.
T h e range f o r the shaft, between 4.08 and 4.12 m., accords well with the height suggested by the sum of the average size of the drums for each position. C o m b i n e d with the range in height of the capitals, 0.447-0.52 m., the column w o u l d have stood between 4.567 m. and 4.60 m., or approximately
five
lower diameters high (4.57 m.). 43 43 This figure is significantly lower than the 4.78 m. height calculated by Clarke; see Clarke 1898, pp. 76-7, 139. His report does not specify the number of column drums he measured, nor h o w many he used to construct a single column. Although he does not say so, it appears that he restored the column to equal 15 of his proposed feet of 0.319 m. H e calculated the height of the shaft by determining an average rate of diminution of 1 in 15, which he then applied to his average lower and upper diameters (on arrises) of the shaft. The resulting shaft height of 4.30 m. is not a good fit with the extant evidence; the surviving drums w o u l d be too tall for shafts composed of five drums (average drum height, 0.86 m.)
Capital A remarkable 32 of the required 36 capitals survive today, many still lined in a r o w south of the temple w h e r e they once formed part of the latest fortification wall (Pis. 3 5~44a-b; Figs. 25-7; F o l d - o u t Fig. 6; Tables 3a-c). Clarke k n e w of and drew a
and too short for shafts composed of four drums (average drum height, 1.075 m.). Today, the drums are not well enough preserved to calculate the rate of diminution on arris for more than 20 drums and on flute for 32 drums. The best evidence in the bottom drums suggests an average rate of diminution on the flute of 14.765 and on the arris of 14.01. If applied to the difference between the upper and lower diameters of 0.298 m. on arris and 0.272 m. on flute, the calculated height of the shaft without the capital w o u l d be between 4.016 and 4.17 m.
46
D E S C R I P T I O N AND R E C O N S T R U C T I O N
OF T H E O R I G I N A L
BUILDING
CD10
1.256
h160H
I*—I 0 .215
1—I
1
W22-H027M—1.011
! II I I I II II II II I I IÌ II i I I I; I II II I I I 10 20 30 40cm FIGURE 22. Column drum C D 10 and capital C4, belonging to a column with 18 flutes.
1—I—I—I—I—I .5
D E S C R I P T I O N
TABLE
A N D
R E C O N S T R U C T I O N
OF
T H E
O R I G I N A L
B U I L D I N G
45
2. Dimensions of column drums 2
I
Number
Location
4
3
7 UD,
II
12
UD,
9 Flute L ,
10
LD,
Flute L ,
Dim,
Dim,
Arris
Flute
Arris
LD
UD
Flute
Arris
0.745 c 0.79
Position
Height
Flute
6
8
5 LD,
CD ι
M/8
2/3
0.963
0.733
0.805
0.677
CD 2
M/8
2
1.006
0.794
0.866
0.726
CD3
M/8
3
0.815
co.705
c.0.754
np
np
np
CD4
N/7-8
4
0.914
0.628
0.685
0.576
0.632
0.135
0.123/0.128
CD5
M/8
3
0.804
0.677
0.628
0.683
0.141
0.135
CD6
M/8
4?
0.956
np
0-733 np
CD/
M/8
I
1.098
0.851
0.913
CD8
M-N/8
I
0.912
0.852
0.914
CD9
N/8
?
c.0.505
np
np
0.851
0.913
>o.533 0.770
0.846
0.712 0.680
°-735 b
0.162
CD10
N/7
I
1.256
C D 11
M/ 7
2
1.204
CD12
M/7W
2
1.163
0.787 0.751
CD13
village
I
>0.450
0.841
c.0.77
CD14
village
2
CD15
L/6
2
CD16
L/6
CD17
Κ/7
CD18
village
CD19
J/12
4 2
CD21
I-J/io
CD22
L/12
ia ?
>0.58
CD23
F/z,village
3?
>0.62
CD24
2/3
CD25
Ρ/Ι Ι P/IX
CD26
>0.81 0.898
co.575 0-773 0.790
b b
np np
0.150
0.138/0.142
17.19
16.05
0.165
0.155/0.160
14.79
I3.24
17-57 16.4
17.245
CO. I
C.0.14
3
o.x8o
np
14.07
0.175/0.180
np
14.70
14.25
np
np
np
0.819
0.15 5/0.161
0.146/0.149
0.764
0.160/0.165
0.150/0.155
15-7 16.05
!3-5 14.68
co.85
0.172
>0.145
16.33
b
c 0.746
np
np
np
1.007
>0.745
np
>0.708
np
np
4
0.924
c 0.62 5
>0.66
co.575
np
0.130
0.122
4
b
np
c.0.57
b
b
b
c.0.145 18.5
b
b
>0.593
0.645
np
0.614
np
np
np
19.0
0.941
0.763
0.829
0.705
0.149
0.158
16.2
0.592
b
0.177/0.179
b
np
np
np
np
>0.545
C0.90
b
0.773 b
np
np
np
τ 3·5
np
np
0.710
0.762
I
ι.601
b
P/8
3?
0.837
np
np
>0.66
CD27
M/J
3
0.732
C0.68
co.73
co.63
CD28
O/lI
I
1.258
CD29
N/8
>0.653
J/12
3/4 2
0.788
CD30
1.350
>0.76
np
CD3I
P/6
3
c.0.69
c 0.75
b
b
CD32
O/7
4(?)
0.881
np
np
>0.55
np
np
np
CD33 CD34
O/8
3 2
I.IOO
0.687
0.740
0.625
0.677
0.145
0.135
τ7·7
17.46
C-D/9,mosque
0.788
0.790
0.858
0.738
0.807
0.165
0.160
15.15
15-45
CD35 CD36
K/IO
lb
0.729
0.811
>0.849
0.817
0.165
0.160
13.01
c.0.808
0.180
np
12.88
CD37
temple ?
0.721
0.150
0.135
I6.3
-
-
-
-
-
-
CD38
M/7
>0.63
0.851
0.915 >0.69
b 0.742
1.237
0.855
0.912
0.728
0.785
0.671
3? 2?
[0.750]
[0.698]
-
[0.600]
[1.060]
[0.770]
-
[0.720]
I
0.930
c o . 8 47
0.908
CD41
I/14 +
3
0.606
c 0.675
np
CD42
J-K/14
I
1.148
0.857
0.920
CD43
M14 +
I
1.234
0.840
1.065
C.0.13
14.64
0.157
15.15
np
np
14.87
np
0.150
0.140
CO.135
I3-°7
b
14.8
0.170 13.46
0.784
0.842
0.179
0.161
15.72
14.717
0.903
0.756
0.8x8
0.176
0.162
14.69
14.517
0.847
0.915
0.178
0.161/0.165
14-79
12.53
np
0-775 np
0.825
0.858
np
np
I
>0.83 >0.42
>0.64
np
>0.62 np
CD48
G/ 4
CD54
N/14 +
CD55
N/14 +
?
>0.42
np
np
>0.41
0.745
c 0.789
CD56
O/5
?
b
b
CD57
F/7
ia
°-579
0.851
0.913
CD58
N-O/8
I
I.3IO
0.851
0.912-0.9x5
CD59
N-O/8
2
1.225
b
b
C D 60
N/8
CD61
H-I/12
2/3 2
0.875
CD62
A/10
CD63
SE/temple
0.821
14.8
np
l(?) 2? ?
2
np
np
SE/temple
CO.892
np
np
co.63
SE/temple
ι or i b ?
np
0.180
CD47
1.027
b
0.180
0.175 0.131
co.85
CD46
>0.705
c.0.145
0.674 c o . 1 4
0.600
0.948
?
np
>0.640
I
I/14 +
c.0.775
>0.81
2/3
CD40
b
0.767
0.757 0.759
CD39
np
16.5
b
>0.865
>0.655
16.28
c 0.12 5
>0.666 NP
c o . 70 5
CO. 64 5
co.75
C.0.155
CO. I
c.0.145
np
np
>0.460
np
np
c.0.69
0.135/0.140
b
np
5
0.812
0.875
0.180
0.169
14.846
ΐ5· 2 3
0-775 0.694
co.835
0.180
0.170
I7.23
14-55
CO. 160
>0.127
c.0.75
np
0.638
np
np
np
>0.690
np
0.157
0.147
0.175
c 0.167
0.160
0.150
b
>0.864
0.781
0.788
co.855
np
>0.825 np
np
(icontinued)
4 6
D E S C R I P T I O N
T A B L E 2.
Continued
CD64
SE/temple
CD65
SE/temple
CD66 C D 67
AND
R E C O N S T R U C T I O N
ORIGINAL
B U I L D I N G
1.081
>0.725
>0.770
>0.660
>0.70
0.150
>0.67
c.0.72
c.0.615
0.665
0.145
temple
3 I
0.885 c o . 766
0.845
0.918
0.790
np
0.175
np
υ/ι
I
>0.340
np
np
np
np
0.175
np
ϋ
CD68
C/7
I
0.904
0.842
village
2
>0.957
0.793
CD70
SE/temple
c.0.58
>0.63
CD71
SE/temple
4? ?
>0.410
>0.74
CD72
SE/temple
?
>0.510
>0.68
CD
temple
3 3?
0.682
CD74
THE
2/3?
CD69
7 3
OF
Pashakoy
>0.904
0.140
0.830 np
np
CO.16
CO.61
c.0.64
np
np
np
np
np
np
np
np
np
np
np
np
c. 0.66 5
0.625
4.1 m - r 4.0-
c. O.I 7 7
0.165
0.140
0.664
16.09 13.92
0.783 0730
np
160
c.0.135
15.32 15.19
0.135
faces, w h i c h give this part of the capital a s t e p p e d The
flutes
begin
at t h e
base
of
a third
vertical
appearance. offset;
the
b e v e l l e d j o i n t b e t w e e n t h e c a p i t a l a n d t h e s h a f t s e r v e s as t h e o n l y n e c k i n g ring.45 In general, the flute stops are s q u a r e d - o f f
3.5--
o r s l i g h t l y b e v e l l e d . M i n o r d i f f e r e n c e s in detail, f o r
example
the treatment of the annulets or the n e c k i n g g r o o v e , appear in 3.0
the
-
specific
groups
of
capitals
identified
below.
Within
general design, h o w e v e r , there are o n l y three significant ations. O n e 2.5 -
while (drawn 2.0
capital, C 1 7 ,
diameter, short
-
another by
neck
and
capital,
Clarke
has f o u r annulets,
a smaller
abacus,
shallow
C4,
and n o w
has
and 18
quite
flutes.
The
the devi-
upper fluting,
third,
C33
lost), has a b u l b o u s p r o f i l e
and
very short neck. A fourth capital of standard shape, C 1 0 , bears a n a r c h a i c A e o l i c r e t r o g r a d e i n s c r i p t i o n a c r o s s its a b a c u s .
Technical treatment
1 . 5 --
T h e t e c h n i c a l t r e a t m e n t o f e a c h c a p i t a l is i d e n t i c a l , d e s p i t e t h e differences 1.0
-
in their p r o f i l e s
outlined
below.
The
top
lateral
edges of the abacus and the bed surface of the neck have
been
slightly b e v e l l e d t o set o f f the capital f r o m the e p i s t y l e a b o v e a n d the .50 Height
λ .50
.60
.70
.80
,90m
Diameter FIGURE 23. S c h e m a t i c d i m i n u t i o n o f c o l u m n d r u m s .
t h i r t y - t h i r d c a p i t a l as w e l l . 4 4 T h e y d i s p l a y a b o l d l y echinus
at
the an-
that
a sharply pronounced
project
in
slightly
V-shaped
spreading
shoulder, followed b y a broadly sweeping curve into t w o nulets
with
shaft below,
thus
protecting
the
vulnerable
edge
of
the
abacus a n d r e d u c i n g the w e i g h t of the epistyle that fell o n the
undercut
rings
cutting
with
vertical
44 Thirty-one capitals are now on the akropolis and one in the Louvre (inv. 2824). The American excavators recorded 20 capitals, Clarke 1882, pp. 86-9; Clarke 1898, pp. 77-84, fig. 10; Clarke, Bacon, and Koldewey 1902-21, pp. 159, 164. Bacon (Clarke, Bacon, and Koldewey 1902-21, p. 159) illustrates four profiles (without the abacus). Two (capitals Β and C ) are nearly identical, and the third (capital A ) is larger but of similar profile. The fourth (capital D) has a significantly more bulbous echinus, distinctive annulets, and a very short neck. Four profiles are also illustrated in Clarke 1898, fig. 10, 1-4, without scale or measurements. Fortu-
nately, the original drawings for both sets, done at 1:1 scale, are preserved in the papers of the excavation now in the Museum of Fine Arts, Boston. The capitals labelled 2 and 4 in the report correspond to capitals Β and D in the final folio. Since capital A corresponds to capital 1 in all respects except the height of the neck, it probably is the same capital; the change in the neck must be a correction. Capitals C and 3 are clearly different. The original drawings show that the peculiar angle at which the bed of the neck was drawn in the publications was meant as a bevelled edge, which does not exist in this form and which may have led to a certain distortion of the profile. The original drawings include the abacus of the capitals, and it is therefore possible to match the drawings with capitals now at the site. Capital A may be our C31 (labelled on the drawing, 'best preserved'). Capital Β is probably our C3. Capital C , labelled 'as N E of plan' must be C16. Capital 3 in the report is closest in form and dimensions to our C28 or C29. Capital D matches nothing visible at the site today. O n the original drawing, it is annotated as 'SW of plan'; the profile matches the capital illustrated in Clarke, Bacon, and Koldewey 1902-21, p. 165, fig. ι. A s it was very well preserved, it may have been the third capital taken to the harbour, intended for transport to America. According to local residents, the third capital was imbedded in the concrete paving near the end of the quay in the 1980s. It is included here as C33. 45 The bevelled edge extends between 0.012 to 0.018 m. from the outer surface (following the curve of the flutes) and opens the joint by 0.003 1 0 °-°°4 m ·» contra Clarke 1898, p. 77. Other rings could have been added in paint.
46D E S C R I P T I O N A N D R E C O N S T R U C T I O N
OF T H E O R I G I N A L
BUILDING
C6
CD4
CD5
CD12
CD36
Η—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—I .5 1 1.5 2 2.5 3m FIGURE 24. Restored column.
46
D E S C R I P T I O N AND R E C O N S T R U C T I O N OF T H E O R I G I N A L
5 Ο
Group A
Ο
Group Β
• / \
BUILDING
7.
6
(30)
Group C Profile damaged or buried
F I G U R E 25. F i n d - s p o t s o f t h e c a p i t a l s .
portion of the capital overhanging the shaft. The masons used an
distinguish the face f r o m the back of each capital b y the relative
architectural compass secured in a small hole on the bed surface
position of the pry marks used in shifting the epistyle and its
of the neck to strike off the circumference of the echinus,
backer into position. 4 7
annulets, and neck. T h e consistency in the curve of the echinus of each capital suggests that the masons used templates as well to
Decorative attachments
help define the profile. T w o forms, one to determine the profile
Several of the capitals preserve the holes for, and in some
of the echinus near the abacus, and a second to determine the
instances still have the ends of, metal pins that once secured
neck, annulets, and beginning of the echinus, could be rigged to
decorative attachments. Capital C 1 2 has holes for a three-
fit the length of the quarried block. Certain peculiarities of
pronged metal attaching instrument, one p r o n g set on the
execution, for example on capital C 5 , which has its echinus
lateral face of the abacus and the other t w o into the joint
offset (to one side) from the abacus by 0.005
meeting the echinus (Pi. 43). Capitals C i , C 1 0 , and C 2 1 have
m-> anc ^
C18,
which is completed with a high relieving margin, coupled with the markings from the compass, suggest that the capitals were measured and most likely carved upside-down.
6
We can
46 Normally, w e assume that the masons defined the abacus first and then apportioned the neck and echinus; C o u l t o n 1979, p. 93. However, the random
variation in the height of the abacus implies that here this clement was carefully defined only in the last stages of execution, to achieve the required height of the column. 47 The pry for the epistyle (on centre) is c.0.30-0.35 m. from the front face, while the pry for the epistyle backer is c.0.50 m. from the back face.
46D E S C R I P T I O N A N D R E C O N S T R U C T I O N
-1.232
Τ
OF T H E O R I G I N A L
1.184
1.184
FRONT
FRONT
,-V··
.192
g f m
.462I .175
j / r I
.620-
\\ \ I
C18
BUILDING
ι .624
r 1
C5 Η
1—I—h —ι—ι—ι—ι—I—I .5 1m
CD21
Η—I—I—I—I—I 5 10cm FIGURE 26a.
Representative capitals from the three groups: C18, C5, C i ; diminution of the flute width from the bottom of the shaft to the neck of
the capital.
holes for pins on the lateral face of the abacus. Capital C 1 8 has a
diameter of the shaft (Tables 3a and 3b). 48 These relationships
dowel hole on its top surface in front of the epistyle, and C i has
give the impression that the masons quarried blocks roughly
a clamp-like cutting behind the epistyle; both presumably se-
two-and-one-half times wider than high and carved capitals
cured metal attachments as well (Fig. 26a). Iron stains preserved
from them w i t h an eye chiefly toward completing the necessary
on the upper surface of several capitals (Fig. 26a; Fold-out Fig. 7), usually near the edge of the epistyle backer, suggest
4S
Range in length of abacus: 1.150 to 1.249 m. R a n g e in capital height: 0.456 to
nails in these positions as well, although their function here is
0.5195 m. R a n g e in U D on arris: 0.584 to 0.635
uncertain.
variations result f r o m m i n o r imprecision in carving and often d o n o t affect all
m
· S o m e of the measurable
sides of the capital uniformly. T h e length and w i d t h of the abacus are n o t always equal ( C 5 , C 7 , C 2 0 , C 2 7 , C30). In s o m e instances the abacus is angled slightly
Capital groups and variations
o u t w a r d ( C 6 , C 8 , C i ò , C 2 0 , C 2 7 ) ; i n others slightly inward ( C 3 , C 1 3 ) . Sometimes the abacus overhangs the echinus o n one or m o r e sides ( C 2 , C 4 , C 5 , C 7 , C 2 1 , C22, C 2 6 , C 2 7 ) ; m o r e rarely, the echinus projects b e y o n d the abacus ( C 1 7 ) . In one
A l t h o u g h the capitals form a stylistically coherent group, their
capital ( C 5 ) the echinus is o f f s e t to one side of the abacus b y 0.005
dimensions s h o w considerable range, especially in the length of
( C 1 5 ) , the abacus overhangs the echinus t h r o u g h the length but falls short of its
the abacus relative to the height of the capital and to the upper
projection t h r o u g h the thickness. R e c o r d e d here is the profile o n the best preserved side.
m·!
' n another
46
D E S C R I P T I O N AND R E C O N S T R U C T I O N OF T H E O R I G I N A L
C10
BUILDING
G r o u p C capitals The most distinctive group of capitals are those of broadest dimension, labelled G r o u p C (capitals C 3 , C 1 2 , C 1 3 , C 1 6 , and C 1 8 ; Pis. 36, 43; Figs. 26a, 27; F o l d - o u t Fig. 6; note ratio of C a p W to ( C a p H t — N H t ) , Table 3 b, col. 8). Generally, they are the shortest overall, with the shortest echinus, narrowest annulets, and tallest neck. Their flute stops are sharp and square.
1.204
T h e proportional formulae for the height of the echinus and annulets f o l l o w exactly the general archaic rule proposed by J. J. C o u l t o n : 5 0 EchHt =
3/5(CapHt
- AbHt)
EchHt + A n n H t = 2/3(CapHt - A b H t )
N H t = i/3(CapHt - AbHt)
T h e proportion allocated to the height of the abacus varies randomly; the masons made adjustments in this element to complete the necessary height of the column. Differences in the length of the abacus (as great as 0.067
m·)
are
absorbed
mainly b y the projection of the echinus and to a lesser extent b y the annulets (compare C 1 2 and C 1 8 w i t h C 3 , C 1 3 , and C16).
.574
A
gentle
levelling
off
near
the
annulets
reduces
the angle of inclination in C 1 2 and C 1 8 to approximately 13 Ο
Η—I—I—Ι.5
degrees; the angle of others is approximately 18 degrees. 5 1
1m
G r o u p A capitals
FIGURE 26b. Inscribed capital C I O .
Capitals that belong to the G r o u p A ( C i , C 1 9 , C20, and C24; Pis. 35, 40; Figs. 26a, 27; F o l d - o u t Fig. 6; Table 3b) are equally height of the column. There are, however, more subtle distinc-
recognizable, in this instance by their greater total height, a
tions that are not simply the result of casual execution. 4 9 In fact,
more steeply sloped echinus, and a tall neck. Moreover, the
there are three core dimensions for the height of the echinus
underside of the first annulet is flattened to f o r m a fillet, and
(0.155, 0.181, and 0.200 m.), and each is correlated with one of
the bed surface does not have a bevelled edge. Capitals C i ,
t w o specific neck heights (eight capitals with a mean of 0.089
·
C 1 9 , and C 2 4 are extremely close in profile and proportion;
and sixteen with a mean of 0.071 m.; Fig. 28). It is significant that
C 2 0 has slightly different proportions o w i n g to its shorter neck
the height of the capital does not dictate the height of the neck,
and taller abacus, but it nonetheless belongs best with this
m
which w o u l d have been the least conspicuous and easiest elem-
group. T h e inclination of the echinus is between 24 and 26
ent to adjust if visual uniformity were the desired aim. O n the
degrees. There is slightly more play in the vertical dimensions
contrary, the capitals that are shortest overall have the tallest
of G r o u p A than G r o u p C , but the general relationship of parts
necks (Fig. 26a; Fold-out Fig. 6), and for one of these capitals,
shows a clear departure f r o m the proportions of capitals in
C 1 8 , the mason chose to complete the requisite height with a
Group
high relieving surface rather than change the proportional
( C a p H t — A b H t ) . T h e combined height of the annulets and
scheme of the three main elements.
neck is roughly 1/3 ( C a p H t — A b H t ) . T h e ratio of echinus to
These differences represent intentional changes to certain vertical
dimensions.
They
demonstrate
that
the
C.
The
height
of
the
echinus
is
roughly
2/3
abacus height (now roughly 1:1), as well as the height of the
capitals
echinus to its projection (again roughly 1:1), also reflects a clear
belong to three distinct groups according to the inclination of
change in specifications. T h e difference in the length of the
the echinus and the proportional relationship of the neck
abacus is here only 0.030 m.; it is absorbed at the base of the
and echinus. The fact that the height of the abacus does not
echinus and in the projection of the annulets.
c o n f o r m to a particular pattern within these otherwise discernable groups probably has to do with the w a y in w h i c h the
G r o u p Β capitals
capitals w e r e carved. Even so, its proportional relationship
T h e differences between G r o u p s A and C are striking (Fig. 27).
to the echinus suggests the same groupings outlined b e l o w (Table 3 b).
49
Wescoat 1987, pp. 553-68.
T h e 18 surviving intermediate capitals belong to G r o u p Β (Pis.
^ C o u l t o n 1979, Tables 9 and 10. 31 Measurements arc based on the main inclination, i.e., where the slope of the profile is most continuous.
46D E S C R I P T I O N A N D R E C O N S T R U C T I O N
OF THE O R I G I N A L
BUILDING
FIGURE 27. Profile of Group A capital, C24, overlain on the profile of Group C capital, C3.
φ m «-ι -φ φ φ O d d d d d d d O
Ή Ο Ο D Ν Ν
_
Ο
—
- • Ν
Ά
· η O Λ Λ O rî Oή Ori Ori O
ΟΟ
ON ON Ο NC NO >t Ν Ο ON ON ΟΟ •Η Οφ Φ Φ Φ -Φ "Φ Φ Φ Φ Φ Φ Ά Φ Φ Φ Ο Ο Ο Ο Ο ο" Ο Ο Ο Ο Ο Ο _ο
00 N Φ IS NO NO Φ NO m NO OO O OO O ON OO ON OO Φ tv Oφ ^ NO w tV Ο 1-1 is I-I w t-l M M IS M IS •-j IS w HH HH ** •H H H M M M Μ M t-4 W M A Λ Λ d 0 Λ Λ
00
is Ο φ 0IS0 IS φ OO O^O l\ ON Ν Ν Ν Ν IS Ν IS Ν OH 0 3 Ο Ο Ο Ο 0 Ο 0 Ο
(S
Η IS IS Ν Ν Ν Ν Ν Ν Ν Ν ο- Η"Η Ν ΗΗ IS Η α ο Ο ο d d d d d - Q o d d d d d d d
η \û 00 Ν NO ^ IV Ο Φ NO tv Λ Ν Κ \0 ΟΟ ΟΟ ΟΝΟΝΝΟΝΟ NO 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0
tv Ν
Ο Ν ΟΟ \0
OO
O - Ι Η Η Η Η Η Η
Γ^ Κ 0\ Μ >-1 Ν Μ Μ OH
I V OO
Ο^Ι^ΟΟ
-S
3 Ο 1-,
Ο
w Κ iT S Ο v"> ^
£
Χ
R?
dressed-down, 0.67/0.53 m. R of centre, 0.05 m.
d o w n surface Cu
?
no p r y
either
no p r y
either
none
C12
C
no p r y
either
no p r y
either
dressed d o w n , 0.73/0.50 m. R of centre, 0.115 m.
no p r y
either
no p r y
either
wedge-shaped cuttings to
C13
c
R of centre
far right C14
?
p r y shape, dressed-
R-*L
C15
Bi
position of p r y ?
dressed d o w n , 0.70/0.51 m. R of centre, 0.095
R—>L?
p r y shape vs.
M
·
position
d o w n surface R—>L?
p r y position, dressed
R—>L
centred?
d o w n surface Ci 6
C
pry shape, position
R—>L
p r y position
R—>L
pry, wedges, 0.45/0.74 m.
L of centre, 0.09 m.
C17
B?
p r y shape vs. position;
L—>R
pry, dressed d o w n
R—>L
pry, wedges
L of centre, 0.09 m.
dressed-down surfaces
surface
C18
C
pry shape?
either
p r y shape, position
R—
none
C19
A
p r y shape, position
R—>L
p r y shape, position
R->L
pry, wedges, 0.68/0.52 m.
C20
A?
p r y shape, position,
L—>R
p r y on top of dressed
either
dressed d o w n , 0.60/0.61 m. centred?
C21
Bi
p r y shape, position
L—>R
p r y shape, position
L-^R
pry, wedges
R of centre
C22
BI
p r y position
L—>R?
p r y shape, position
L^R
pry, wedges
centred?
C23
?
p r y shape, position
L—>R
pry shape, position
L^R
pry, w e d g e s
R of centre
C24
corner
C25
A-NW ? np
np
np
C26
B2
no p r y
either
p r y shape vs. position L—>R?
stain for joint
L of centre
C27
BI
p r y shape, position
R—>L
pry shape vs. position R—>L
side pries
centred
C28
B3
p r y position
L—>R?
p r y position
L—>R?
C29
B3
p r y shape, position
L—>R
p r y shape
L—>R
?dressed d o w n ,
R of centre?, 0.125
R of centre, 0.05 m.
d o w n surface
surface
corner np
np
M
0.74/0.49 m . C30
BI
pry position
L—>R?
p r y position
either
C31
BI
p r y position
L—R
p r y position
either
wedges, 0.68/0.50 m.
R of centre, 0.10 m.
C32
BI
pry shape, position
L—>R
p r y position
L^R
pry
centred?
c33
?
3 7 - 8 , 4 1 - 2 ; F i g . 26a; F o l d - o u t F i g . 6; T a b l e 3 b). T h e y are b a s e d
graphically
o n y e t a t h i r d set o f s p e c i f i c a t i o n s : t h e i r n e c k s a r e
length of the abacus affects the inclination of the
shorter
( m e a n of 0.071 m.), a n d the h e i g h t of the e c h i n u s falls b e t w e e n that of G r o u p s A and C ( m e a n of 0.181 m., T a b l e 3a).52 T h e c a p i t a l s o f G r o u p Β c l u s t e r t i g h t l y w h e n t h e e c h i n u s h e i g h t is
compared
with
the n e c k
height
There are a few exceptions. In C28 and C29, a slightly taller neck compensates a slightly smaller echinus. C5 and C26 have slightly shorter echinuses and average neck heights.
28).
The
echinus;
t h o s e o f a v e r a g e l e n g t h h a v e an i n c l i n a t i o n o f a b o u t 20 d e g r e e s . G r o u p Β m a y be divided into sub-groups. In G r o u p Capitals
C6,
C7,
and C 2 1
are v i r t u a l l y i d e n t i c a l , t h e
m i n o r differences being slight adjustments to 52
(Fig.
Bi, only
accommodate
the d i f f e r i n g lengths of the abacus. C a p i t a l s C 4 , C 2 2 , C 3 1 , and C 3 2 share their p r o p o r t i o n a l s c h e m e , and C 8
C27, and
·
D E S C R I P T I O N
A N D
R E C O N S T R U C T I O N
OF
T H E
O R I G I N A L
B U I L D I N G
55
31.0cm-r
30.5
--
30.0
--
29.5
--
29.0
--
28.5
--
28.0
--
27.5
--
27.0
--
26.5
--
26.0
--
25.5
--
25.0
--
24.5
--
• J - ?
BUILDING
ι .230 1 Μ 1
.
3
/
.385
.44
1
.445
1
.46
Ρ .64
1
A -
" λI ζ*""
;
2.615AB6
I- .19 Η
0 ',"//'1.83
0.390
0.545
R—>L
M/6
>1.49
0.381
0.522
AB3 ΑΒ4
L/6
>1.71
0.388
0.528
K/13
>1.112
0.385
AB5
K/13
2 -355
AB6
L/io
2.6I 5
Pins
R—>L
R: alpha
i, soffit near inside face
0.532
(R—>L) (R-»L)
np np
ι, soffit near inside face np
0.385
0.503
R—>L
np
0.372
0.541
b 2, soffit near inside face
np b
AB7
L/io
>1.964
0.386
0.523
AB8
M / T
>1.558
0.354
0.521
b
ΑΒ9
o/8a
>1.115
0.389
0.539
L—>R
no
AB10
0/8b
>1.42
0-395
0.540
L^R
R: lambda
4
8
Mason's Mark
A B 11
0/8c
>0.605
0.394
0.540
AB12
M/7-8
>Ι·775
0.382
0-535
A B 13 AB 1 4
P/8-9
>o.8O
0.382
0.522
M/13
>1.65
c.0.380
0.587
ABi 5
O-P/IO
>0.91
0.385
AB16
P/9
>1.915
°-395
0.504
L-M/8
>2.24
0.378
0.504
ι, soffit near inside face np
no R—>L
L: delta
ι, soffit near inside face
np L—>R
np R: tau
np
R—>L R—>L
b
b np
(R—>L) np
no np
np np
L—>R
np np
b
b
b
np
np
ι, soffit near inside face
c.0.51
A B 17a,b
2, soffit near inside face
b
AB18
P/9
>1.64
0.384-0.390
AB19
M/13
>1.11
b
A B 20
SE of Temple
>0.60
0.381
AB21
L/12
>0.77
0.371
0.481-0.490
AB22
L/15
>1.275
0.396
0.540
AB23/AB29
P/16
>2.41
0.394
0.528
A B 24
L/12
>1.194
0-375
AB25
Q/6
>1.04
0.388
0-555
AB27
P/j
>1.01
0.389
0-537
AB28
S/9
>0.995
0.392
0.490
L—>R
AB26
Q-R/io
>1.29
0.389
0.548
(L-R)
0.540
c.0.51 0.512
np
c.0.50
L—>R
Direction of setting calculated from the exterior of the building.
marks o n its upper surface marked on the drawing a, a' indicate
both ends of the temple. Both the stylistic and technical aspects
that the non-projecting block was laid first. T h e facer was then
of the replacement blocks indicate these repairs w e r e accom-
held in place with a preliminary strut at a". Its backer was
plished in the Archaic period. T h e reworked material follows
positioned using p r y marks b and d. T h e projecting facer was
the original closely, except at the northwest corner, where the
then set in place and secured with struts at c, c', and c".
damage appears to have been more severe. T h e general charac-
T h e design of B 1 1 (Fig. 40) suggests that the intermediate
ter of the geison and the material belonging to the original
corner backing courses had slightly bevelled joints. F o r the top
structure are described here; the evidence for the rebuilding,
backing course, however, the joint was p r o b a b l y a simple one,
along with the new and reworked material belonging to that
w i t h one of the blocks clamped diagonally to the corner tri-
phase, is presented in Chapter 5, ' M a j o r Repairs'.
glyph.
Lateral geison G E I S O N
A N D
T Y M P A N O N
O f the 50 lateral geison blocks, 39, including 3 of the 4 corners, survive to complete length; large fragments represent the
T h e extensive r e - w o r k i n g of architectural material f r o m the
fourth corner and several other blocks (Pis. 53-6, 66-7a-b;
geison and tympanon is the strongest indication that the temple
Figs. 43-4, 55-7; F o l d - o u t Fig. i i ) . 7 4 Collectively, they consti-
sustained major damage soon after it was completed. T h e entire
tute more than four-fifths of the course. T h e blocks are of two
northern, eastern, and western geison course had to be rebuilt,
types, distinguished b y design, technical treatment, and slight
and parts of the southern geison course may have been reset.
differences in the profile of the c r o w n i n g hawksbeak. Many of
Some of the discarded blocks f r o m the original course were salvaged and reçut to become major blocks of the tympanon at
74 Earlier descriptions, Clarke 1882, p. 93; Clarke 1898, pp. 97-106, 128, figs. 15-17; Clarke, Bacon, and Koldewey 1902-21, p. 155, figs. 4-6, 157, figs. 4, 5.
46
D E S C R I P T I O N AND R E C O N S T R U C T I O N OF T H E O R I G I N A L
BUILDING
1.194
ι
1.194
C 2 4
WEST
WEST
C 2
C9
0
Η—I—I—I—I—h .5
1
1.5
H
1—I—h
2
H—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I 2.5 3m
FIGURE 41a. U p p e r surfaces of corner capitals C 2 4 , C 2 , and C 9 , s h o w i n g the construction of the epistyle.
the blocks were built into the later fortifications, but, even
c.o.i 5 - 0 . 2 3 m. f r o m the face of the corona, presumably to
so, the t w o types today are segregated either directly to the
receive a flange on the underside of the eaves tile. In front of
west of the temple or mainly to its south (Fig. 42). Each of
the groove, the block is smoothly dressed to receive the eaves
the corner blocks was found near its respective position; on the
tile; behind, the roughly w o r k e d surface varies considerably in
basis of their design w e can assign the lateral blocks found
section.
south of the temple to the southern flank and those found west of the temple to the northern flank. Within the t w o groups the individual blocks vary, but on the
The geison blocks fall short of the full thickness of the entablature, w i t h the bed surface (c.0.5 5 m.) o n l y slightly deeper than the entire overhang f r o m the nosing of the c r o w n
whole, they share t w o characteristics of the flat form of gei-
hawksbeak to soffit ( 0 . 4 7 8 m.); the projection f r o m corona to
son. 7 5 T h e top surface of each block is dressed flat at the back
soffit equals 0.439
to a height of c.0.43 m. to receive the roof rafters. N e a r the
c r o w n is 0.40 m., 7 6 and the total height of the overhanging face
corona, the surface is cut at an angle that terminates in a rough
f r o m the c r o w n to the soffit of the mutule is only slightly less at
groove (c.0.03-0.08 m. wide and c.0.02-0.035 m. deep) set
0.375
75 Hodge i960, pp. 77-91. Two exceptional blocks, L G 2 and L G 7 , have sloping upper surfaces that match the pitch of the roof.
76
m
· T h e height of each block f r o m soffit to
m. T h e c r o w n moulding near the corners has a cavetto-
Clarke 1898, p. 328, records the height at 0.42 m., but see Tables 8,10, and 11.
46D E S C R I P T I O N A N D R E C O N S T R U C T I O N O F T H E O R I G I N A L
BUILDING
HfflW—ι—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I 0 .5 1 1.5 2 2.5 3m FIGURE 41b. Plan oblique showing the construction of the southwest corner of the epistyle.
like profile, but over the rest of the course it becomes a rudi-
A s with the stylobate, the lateral faces of the geison are cut at
mentary hawksbeak with a deep upper curve and a shallow
slight angles to interlock w i t h the adjacent blocks. T h e lateral
l o w e r curve that does not reverse at the bottom and has no
joint faces of each block have anathyrosis, but the backs are left
terminating notch (Figs. 43, 61). It merges directly into the face
rough. Some blocks have sockets f o r ceiling beams and cuttings
of the corona, w h i c h is cut back slightly f r o m the vertical plane
for rafters (Fold-out Fig. 11).
and recessed at the bottom to a depth of c.0.065 m. to create a fascia, c.0.065 m. high. O n most blocks the drip is undercut by 0.005 m. to f o r m a slightly acute angle. O n all the geison blocks, the boldly accentuated mutules alternate in length. 7 7
South geison blocks from the original building T o d a y there are 23 identifiable blocks belonging to the south-
T h e spacing of the frieze, at least on the flanks, requires this
ern geison, 21 of w h i c h preserve their complete length (Table 8;
alternation, but the distinction is exaggerated by making the
Pis. 53-5; Fig. 43; F o l d - o u t Figs. 9, 11). T h e y are easily distin-
viae roughly one-third the w i d t h of the triglyph. 7 8 T h e mutules
guished b y their design, jointing, proportions, and shared tech-
are recessed slightly f r o m the fascia and undercut at 10 to 11
nical features. With f e w exceptions, the top surface of these
degrees f r o m horizontal. L i k e the regulae, they have no guttae.
blocks is aligned with the surface cut in front of the tile groove, to a depth of c.0.55 m. f r o m the face of the corona. A l t h o u g h
77 Pace Dinsmoor 1975, p. 88. Equal mutules over triglyph and metopes would produce viae c.0.09 m. wide, considerably narrower than one-quarter the width of the triglyph. 78 Clarke 1882, p. 93, suggests that on the flank the metope-mutulc was made three-fifths the width of the triglyph, c.0.31 m., but the surviving metope-mutules are almost all wider.
the degree of inclination varies, it is usually less than the 1:4 slope of the roof. Behind, the surface is roughly dressed flat at a height of c.0.40 to 0.45 m. T h e crowning hawksbeak is generally smaller than that on the northern blocks and has a deep top curve, o v o l o face, and sharply pointed beak.
46
D E S C R I P T I O N AND R E C O N S T R U C T I O N OF T H E O R I G I N A L
BUILDING
FIGURE 42. Find-spots of lateral geison blocks. T h e most distinctive aspect of these blocks is their jointing.
T h e wide range in the length of the metopal spaces (from 0.644
T h e blocks are designed to span roughly one-half an interaxial
to 0.794
m·)
space divided through the triglyph-mutule, so that each block
triglyph frieze at the corner requires. We must conclude that
reflects more variation than accommodating the
covers one complete metopal space and part of each adjacent
the frieze on this side did not f o l l o w the interaxial spacing
triglyph. This method of division allows enormous flexibility
rigorously. M o s t of the metopal spaces do, however, fall be-
in the length of each block, especially since there are no guttae.
tween 0.685
F e w of the preserved blocks closely approximate the length of
and viae over the metopes vary significantly. M o s t of the time,
one-half of an intercolumnar space (1.224 m.). Instead, they fall
the t w o viae surmounting a metope are nearly equal, but there
into four complementary groups:
are exceptions. 7 9 In about half the measurable instances, the
and
0.740 m. (Table 8). T h e lengths of the mutules
viae are one-half the w i d t h of the mutule they flank, but in as Group A: blocks over 1.320 m. long Group B: blocks c.1.28 m. long Group C: blocks between 1.160-1.210 m.
Group D: blocks under 1.100 m.
L G i , LG3, LG8, LG16, LG25 LG7, LG9, LG21, LG37
many cases there is no discernible system f o r apportioning the elements. Because it was composed in t w o segments, the w i d t h of the triglyph-mutule must be calculated f r o m the partial regulae; the combined mean (0.51 m.) and the combined
LG15, LG26/LG34, LG27, LG3 5/LG50, LG46/LG54 LG2, LG4, LG12, LG36, LG45
7 9 Fourteen of the 19 preserved metopal spaces have viae, of w h i c h the widths are within 0.01 m. The largest discrepancy is 0.024 m ·
r
ON M NO
U
o d o
Ν Φ ->
Φ Φ
ο ιν NO NO c-i Ο Ο
οο «S Γ""» NO Ο Ν οο ON IV ΟΟ NO ON ΟΟ Ο ο ο Ο Ο Ο Ο
HJ
S
φ ON ο f i Ν Ν φ ON Ν Φ Ν ο Ο Ο ο Ο
-G υ bß es 'S «
u
"S
UH
6X1 RT
ΙΛ ON Ν οο ιν Ν Ο ON Ν ONNO N NO φ O «Ν Ν α- r«"\ Ο ο ο ο ιο) ο Ο Ο π ^ Ο Λ
IV ιν ο ο"
Ν IV NO ΓΛ IV Φ Ο Ο ο ιν ΟΟ tv NO OO Ο tv ^ ON ON (S Ν Ο ο ο ο ο ο Ο ο ο Ο ο
Ν
φ fi ιν Ο Ν ο ο Φ Ν ιν N O ON -< Ο ο Ι-Ί IH ο ο Λ Λ A Λ
NO
υ jo _Q G Ο W •s txD
H
f | f i ο ΟΟ CN Ν ON ON ΟΟ fi Ο Φ Ο Ν 1-1 ΗΗ li 1-1 Μ
G
Ι^Ν Μ
^ NO οο οο Ν Ο Ν οο Ν Μ Ο •Η
«Λ rr\ ο φ οο φ ON Ν •Η ο Μ
NO Η-Ι Ι-
IS ^ Ν NO ο tv IV ON ΟΟ ι-; Μ «S ο Ν W M HH li
Ο
but the
column itself was also placed west of centre by 0.036 m., thus creating an overall misalignment of c.0.205 m. N o r was the distortion fully absorbed in the second bay, where the columnar triglyph continues to fall short of axis b y 0.111 m. T h e next geison blocks, LG35/50 and L G 7 , absorb most of the remaining displacement over the third, slightly narrower intercolumniation. Thereafter, the frieze was roughly on track.
Today there are at least 12 large fragments of the raking geison on the akropolis at Assos; a thirteenth block is in the depot of the Istanbul Archaeological Museum. 8 1 M o s t of the surviving raking geison blocks, including R G i , R G 2 , and R G 4 , have the sockets and U-shaped lifting channels associated with the repaired building (Fig. 66 and Table 13). O n e block, R G 3 , has the socket w i t h release channel found on the southern geison and associated w i t h the original building; in all other surviving features, this block closely resembles the raking geison blocks f r o m the repair. Probably, R G 3 was reçut f r o m a discarded horizontal geison block, in the same manner as several tympa-
Original northern geison
non blocks. T h e bed and mutules w o u l d have been cut d o w n
T h e northern geison blocks extant today all belong to the
retain the lifting holes, although in a slightly lower position.
repaired building. H o w e v e r , in their original state, t y m p a n o n
Raking geison block R G 1 1 may belong to the original geison,
and the soffit reshaped into a hawksbeak, but the sides w o u l d
blocks Tp2, Tp3, T p 5 , and T p j (and possibly T p i / 9 ) belonged
as it has a taller corona than the other blocks (o. 245-0.252 m.
to the northern flank. T h e y have the mutular spacing appro-
rather than 0.235
priate for the flank, and several bear the traces of the square nail
ing, at least as compared to R G 1 3 (Pi. 75; Fig. 61). H o w e v e r ,
holes used to secure the original roof seen today on the south-
the hawksbeak c r o w n moulding varies so dramatically on the
ern side (Pis. 70-3; Figs. 63-5; F o l d - o u t Fig. 12).
northwest corner geison (a repair) that the differences do not
m·) and a
cruder hawksbeak c r o w n mould-
appear to be chronologically significant. O n balance it seems
Original horizontal geison A l l of the blocks today identifiable as the horizontal geison
best to consider all surviving blocks of the raking geison part of the repair.
belong to the repaired building. H o w e v e r , at least four of the blocks reçut to form the t y m p a n o n belonged to the original horizontal geison: Tp4, Tp6, Tp8, and T p i 2 , and possibly T p i / 9 (Pi. 72; Figs. 63-5; F o l d - o u t Fig. 12; Table 12b). In its original capacity, T p 4 joined the southeast corner, as its obsolete mut-
DIMENSIONS OF THE ELEVATION IN LIGHT OF c l a r k e ' s proposed assian f o o t MEASUREMENT
ules fall in the requisite positions; the residual traces of t w o clamp holes match those preserved on the southeast corner
Clarke was well aware of the significance of his proposed foot
block, and the residual lifting socket aligns with the release
measurement of 0.319 m. (with a dactyl of 0.01994 dimensioning the elevation as well as the
channel on the corner block.
plan. 8 2
m·)
in
While the
Block B20 was also originally a horizontal geison block, later
evidence for Clarke's f o o t is generally compelling, some of his
reçut for another purpose (see Appendix IV, Fig. 98). Like the
conclusions are open to question. O u r investigation of the col-
southern geison, it had one clamp on each side. However, it is
umn drums, f o r example, led to a calculated shaft lower than the
shorter than the other blocks and does not cover a full half-inter-
15 ft proposed b y Clarke; w e have also noted that w o r k i n g with
columniation. O n e side was divided over the triglyph-mutule,
an average capital height (of 1.5 ft, or 0.4785 m.) masks the
while the other side is complete in a long metope-mutule. Origin-
subtle differences that distinguish the capitals of G r o u p s A and
ally, the block may have taken a position near the northwest corner.
C . While the dimension corresponds reasonably well with the average height of G r o u p Β capitals, the real variation (from 0.429
Original
tympanon
to 0.520 m.) argues against this measurement as a fixed unit.
A l l of the surviving t y m p a n o n blocks belong to the repaired building. It is not possible to identify, either in the fragments at
81 82
Mendel 1914, pp. 23-4, no. 268; Clarke 1898, pp. 109-10. Clarke 1898, table on p. 328.
46D E S C R I P T I O N A N D R E C O N S T R U C T I O N O F T H E O R I G I N A L T h e f o o t and dactyl unit do have strong application in the
BUILDING
an additional c r o w n i n g element (thranos), either in w o o d or
entablature. Together, the epistyle, frieze, and geison courses
stone,
are 100 dactyls high, or 6.25 of Clarke's Assian feet. T h e
(c.0.25 m.) and provided the main support f o r these ceiling
that
completed
the
thickness
of
the
entablature
combined epistyle and frieze equal 5 of Clarke's Assian feet;
beams. 88 T h e extant horizontal geison blocks do not have
their proportional relationship was determined b y taking 1 dac-
shallow sockets, but the vertical joint face of the northeast
tyl f r o m the frieze and adding it to the epistyle, so that the frieze
corner block has been hollowed out to a height of 0.253
was 39 dactyls high (0.778 m.) and the epistyle 41 dactyls high
receive the thranos (Fig. 57). A ceiling with beams resting at a
m
· to
(0.818 m.). T h e horizontal geison was set out at 20 dactyls or
level above the bed of the cornice is normal in late archaic and
1.25 ft high (0.399
i t s projection f r o m the soffit to the
early classical D o r i c temples on the mainland 8 9 and here fur-
corona equalled 22 dactyls (0.439 m-)> with a further 2 dactyls
ther confirms that the height of the pronaos order matched that
m·);
added f o r the nosing of the hawksbeak (0.479
m)·
T h e height of
of the pteroma. T h e spacing of the ceiling beams remains
the raking geison was set at 12 dactyls (or three palms;
uncertain, because none of the geison blocks has t w o sockets,
0.2393 m.). The w i d t h of the flank triglyph may also have been
and several have none at all. T h e sockets do not appear to be
calculated as 26 dactyls, or 0.518 m. The w i d t h of the triglyph
coordinated with the spacing of the frieze.
used for the fronts (0.565 m.), however, does not bear a close
N o physical evidence survives f o r the construction of the
relationship to the dactyl. S 3 T h e thickness of the entablature
ceiling over the pronaos or cella. In all probability it, too, was a
without the lower taenia equals 2.5 ft or 40 dactyls (0.798 m.).
simple w o o d e n ceiling composed of cross beams supporting w o o d e n planks. T h e free span of the cella (c.6.62-6.64
m·)
is
well within the limits of this type of construction. 9 0 C E I L I N G
A N D
R O O F
Archaic wooden ceiling
Woodwork of the roof T h e evidence for the w o o d e n structure of the roof survives
A l t h o u g h C l a r k e restored a coffered stone ceiling to the pter-
chiefly on the blocks belonging to the repaired building, and
oma, it is certain that the building originally—and probably
therefore is described in the next chapter. T h e evidence surviv-
throughout its entire h i s t o r y — h a d a simple w o o d e n ceiling. 84
ing on the southern geison suggests that the w o o d w o r k for
Shallow rectangular sockets cut on the back of the geison
both the original and the second roof were much the same.
supported the ceiling beams. T h e y could belong to the original structure, but they certainly are part of the repaired building because they appear on the north as well as the south geison. 8 3
Roof tiling and akroteria
These shallow rectangular sockets, preserved on at least 12
The roof of the temple was at all times covered w i t h terracotta
lateral geison blocks, are set c.0.235 m. above the bed surface
tiling, most of w h i c h has n o w vanished f r o m the site. 9 1 Clarke
and held the w o o d e n beams that supported the cross boards
and Bacon unearthed a handful of plain roof tiles, as well as one
(Fig. 43; Fold-out Fig. 11). T h e height of the closed sockets is
terracotta antefix, a fragment of terracotta sima, t w o fragmen-
only c.0.13 m.; most are c.0.17 m. wide. 8 6 A l l of the sockets are
tary ornamental eaves tiles, and some sculptured fragments of
too shallow (from 0.03 to 0.105
m-
deep) to do more than
tuff, most of w h i c h they assigned to the same roof. N o add-
anchor the ceiling beams. 8 7 Originally, there must have been
itional decorated members came to light in the investigations of the 1980s and 1990s. O f the many fragments of plain roof tiles
28 χ 0.01994 = 0.558 m.; 29 x 0.01994 = 0.578 m. The sample of triglyphs from w h i c h the mean is derived is very small, but the triglyph-mutules and regulae provide a substantive body of evidence. 83
C f . Clarke 1898, pp. 111-28; note the objections of Bacon, Koldewey, and Dörpfeld, noted in Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, p. 167, n., and Chapter 6, 'Hellenistic Renovations', pp. 125-6. A coffered stone ceiling for an Archaic D o r i c structure is highly unlikely; the earliest certain examples are the mid-fifthcentury Hephaisteion and Parthenon in Athens. T h e soffits of the raking and lateral geison of the temple of Athena at Poseidonia are the earliest preserved examples of stone coffers, but they do not function as part of the ceiling, which was made of w o o d ; H o d g e i960, p. 104. Surviving evidence from the Archaic period points to w o o d e n ceilings for Doric buildings, even in the Cyclades, where stone ceilings were introduced into Ionic buildings by the mid-sixth century; note Sangri, Gruben 1972a, p. 28; Gruben 1985; Gruben 2001, p. 368, fig. 276, 278-9. 84
S5 From the southern side: L G 9 , L G 1 5 , L G 1 6 , L G 2 1 , L G 3 6 , and L G 3 7 . From the northern side: L G 1 1 / 3 3 , L G 1 3 , LG19/56, L G 2 2 , LG30/40/51, and L G 4 1 . Range in the position of the sockets: 0.18-0.26 m. from the bed surface.
T w o are nearly twice that: 0.29 and c.0.31 m. N o t e shallow sockets for ceiling beams of the First Heraion at F o c e del Sele: Zancani M o n t u o r o and Zanotti-Bianco 1954, pis. 17, 18, and 96, with the area beneath each socket dressed smooth for an additional supporting element. 86 87
scattered on the surface of the akropolis and built into postantique structures, only a f e w could belong to the temple, and even these vary in shape, fabric, and glazing. F e w roof tiles were f o u n d during excavation and none in stratified contexts. 9 2 s s e.g., second Temple of Aphaia at Aegina (Furrwängler 1906, pl. 36; Bankel 1993, pp. 30-1, fig. 10, pi. 69); Temple of Zeus at O l y m p i a {Olympia I, pl. 10). 89 C o u l t o n 1975, pp. 1 5 - 1 7 . 9υ H o d g e i960, p. 39, table 1; Coulton 1977, p. 157. 91 Supposedly Texier unearthed great quantities of tiles, but w e d o not know what kind (See Chapter II, 'History of the Building', n. 22). The slow destruction of the temple, the high disturbance of Byzantine occupation, and the bedrock surface of much of the akropolis may account for the virtual disappearance of the tiles. 92 A pan tile sealed beneath the mosaic floor is the one exception; Clarke 1898, p. 72. The three fragments of pan tile described and illustrated in Clarke 1898, pp. 132-3, fig. 29, have been de-accessioned from the Boston Museum of Fine Arts (formerly Boston inv. P4175, P4180, P4186). N o dimensions are given. According to Clarke, the pieces were black-glazed terracotta of coarse aggregate; P4186 differed slightly in having a yellowish colour w i t h a touch of purple in the glaze. P4175 and P4186 had curved lips; P4180 had squared lips. C l a r k e explains the
46
RT3
D E S C R I P T I O N AND R E C O N S T R U C T I O N OF T H E O R I G I N A L
RT14
BUILDING
RT15
mm I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I I l I I I I I I I I I I I 0 10 20 30 40 50cm FIGURE 45. Corinthian pan tiles RTI, RT2, RT5, RT9; Corinthian pan tiles RT3, RT4, RT14, RTI 5, RT16; Corinthian cover tiles RT12, RTI 1, RT6; Lakonian cover tiles RT7, RT8.
T h e pan tile fragments collected between 1985 and 1987 are all
Martin assign (Fig. 4j). 9 3 T h e evidence f o r a Corinthian-style
of the flat type. T h e y were found along with several fragments
roof is stronger.
of Corinthian-style cover tiles. Some very small fragments that
The several types of roof tile distinguished by shape, fabric,
could belong to Lakonian cover tiles are the only possible
and glaze attest to nearly as m a n y roofs; in these fragments w e
evidence f o r a ' h y b r i d ' style roof, w h i c h both A k e r s t r ö m and
may have representatives of the original roof, as well as the t w o
differences in the shape and fabric of these tiles as either varieties of contemporary manufacture or results of local repairs.
93 Akerström 1966, p. 203, and Martin 1965, p. 70; they do not cite specific evidence. For the hybrid system, Martin 1965, p. 70, fig. 26; Akerström 1966, pp. 196-8, 202-4; N . Winter 1993, pp. 252-4.
46D E S C R I P T I O N A N D R E C O N S T R U C T I O N O F T H E O R I G I N A L
BUILDING
major and frequent minor repairs. A l l the tiles are made with a
face of the rougher core. 9 6 T h e back and sides of the antefix
coarse aggregate; the fabrics range in colour f r o m greyish-green
are given a slip composed of the same fine material to disguise
and deep red, to brownish-yellow. G l a z i n g ranges f r o m shiny
the rougher core. U n l i k e most antefixes, the face of this one
black to matte red. O n most of the extant pan tiles, the flanges
was set at an obtuse rather than acute angle to the bed surface,
meet the b o d y of the tile in a slight curve. T h o s e preserving the
so that it originally projected f r o m the roof at an angle of 19
back edge have a raised astragal running across the top surface,
degrees f r o m the vertical. Its original width at the base must
against w h i c h the superposed tile w o u l d have rested (e.g., RT4).
have been c.0.295 m.
Several Corinthian cover tiles have the streaky black glaze
T h e antefix has a plastic silhouette, w i t h boldly shaped forms
( R T 1 1 , R T 1 2 , R T 1 3 ) , but there is also one fragment w i t h a
projecting in convex relief and highlighted in black and red. A t
rich, shiny black glaze (RT52), and another with red matte
the base, t w o tendrils spring f r o m either corner to form a single
glaze (RT6). T h e f e w small Lakonian cover tile fragments have
pair of volutes that are connected by a three-part crossbar and
a shiny black glaze and coarse fabric (RT7, RT8).
crowned b y a five-leaved palmette. T w o three-leaved palmettes
T o these remains w e can add the cuttings and nail holes on
fill the interstices between the springing of the stem and the
the lateral geison, w h i c h document three separate roofs. T h e
spiral; another hangs pendant between the tendrils below the
earliest roof is represented b y the square nail holes found only
crossbar. T h e palmette leaves are painted alternately red and
on the southern geison blocks. T h e y were set c.0.06-0.13 m.
black, the tendrils of the volutes are black and the eyes red, and
f r o m the face of the corona at irregular intervals of between
the outer fillets of the crossbar are red and the centre black. T h e
0.55 and 0.75 m.; the standard is around 0.64 m. (about t w o of
palmettes spring f r o m red, pear-shaped hearts w i t h black bor-
Clarke's Assian feet), suggesting an approximate tile-length.
ders. T h e c r o w n i n g palmette is diminutive in comparison to the
T h e y are not coordinated w i t h the spacing of the frieze. We
volutes. T h e preserved contour of the lowest leaf indicates that
cannot be certain that they secured a system with antefixes
these leaves, like the l o w e r ones, had rounded tips. C o m p a r i s o n
rather than one with a continuous sima. T h e other sets of nail
with other anthemia of this type suggests that the central leaf
holes, one round, the other rectangular, f o u n d on both the
did not rise appreciably above the curve formed b y the other
southern and the northern geison blocks, represent t w o add-
leaves (see Chapter 9, 'Significance of the Temple', pp. 221,228).
itional roof systems, spaced at slightly different intervals. T h e
Unlike most antefixes w h o s e shape and width reflect that of
tile groove cut on the top of the geison appears on both the
the attached cover tile, the antefix tapers significantly (from
southern and northern geison, and therefore must have been
0.295
used in both the original and repaired roof systems. A flange on
has a slight ridge that suggests but does not accomplish the
the underside of the eaves tile was secured in this groove (c.0.15
transition into a cover tile, even though the fragment survives
to 0.23 m. f r o m the face of the corona, c.0.03-0.08 m. wide, and
to a depth of 0.135
0.02-0.03
to form the cover tile, but instead has a kind of anathyrosis
m
· deep). 9 4
m
·
at
the base to c.0.21 m. at the break); its sloping back
m
· T h e existing bed was not hollowed out
A l t h o u g h f e w in number, the decorated roof elements belong
around the border and d o w n the centre to fit snugly against the
to more than one roof. A l l of the surviving elements are de-
upper surface of the eaves tile. A round hole, 0.04-0.05 m. from
scribed here, along with their possible distribution.
the face, held a pin to secure the antefix to the eaves tile. The hole is set too close to the face to correspond to the round nail
Antefix
holes f o u n d on the top of the lateral geison, w h i c h are 0.06-
T h e single fragmentary terracotta antefix was discovered by
0.13 m. f r o m the face of the corona, i.e., 0.10-0.17 m. from the
C l a r k e deeply buried near the southeast corner of the temple
crowning hawksbeak. These technical features a l l o w three de-
(Pi. 57; Fig. 46a). 95 A l l but its face is made f r o m a coarse red
signs for the tiling, given here in order of probability: (1) the
aggregate composed in part of andesite granules. T h e hand-
antefix was fired independently of the eaves tile, w h i c h was
some plastic decoration, however, is fashioned f r o m a thin
secured near the tile groove with the square or rectangular
layer of very fine reddish-yellow terracotta fired onto the
dowels; the flanges on the sides of the eaves tile were cut back substantially to provide a flat resting surface at least 0.14 m. deep for the antefix, w h i c h w a s do welled to the eaves
94 Clarke 1898, p. 129, figs. 12, 30, restores the eaves tile as ending in this groove, mainly because he thought these tiles were 1.5 times longer (east to west) than the pan tiles, and therefore had to be completely covered by a final pan tile. Since there
is no evidence that the eaves tiles were longer than the regular tile-intervals, the arrangement is redundant. Surely the eaves tile was a complete although specially adapted pan tile. Eaves tiles from the South Stoa at the Argive Heraion, as well as Archaic tiles from Perachora, have a similar flange to secure the tile on the geison; Waldstein 1902,1, p. 130, pi. 22; Pfaff 2001, p. 274 and n. 21, fig. 11. The full-length marble sima tiles of the Siphnian Treasury and the Building with Peristyle C o u r t on Delos also have flanges on the bed surface; Ohnesorg 1993, pp. 83-7, pis. 20-1; 32. 9d Boston, inv. 4149. Clarke 1882, pp. 34,96; Clarke 1898, pp. 129-32, figs. 27-8; Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, pp. 161, 167.
tile; (2) the antefix is a pseudo-antefix, and as such did not need to make the transition to a cover tile; or, (3) the antefix was fired attached to the eaves tile o n its right side, w h i c h would explain its flat b o t t o m and the 'anathyrosis'. T h e antefix was clearly not rampant, as Sartiaux restores it. 97
96 The colour of the core corresponds to Munsell i O R 5/6. T h e fine terracotta layer is c.o.oi m. thick at its greatest projection; its colour corresponds to Munsell 7.5YR6/6. 97 C f . Sartiaux 1915, fig. 32.
46
D E S C R I P T I O N AND R E C O N S T R U C T I O N OF T H E O R I G I N A L
.10
II I Ì : I I I I I I I I I M
0
10
BUILDING
ΚΟΪΗ
I I I I I I I : I I I I I I I M
20
30
; I I I I I I I I I II I I I I II I I
40
50cm
FIGURE 46a. Antefix: actual state, above; restored, below.
Sima
sima is a T y p e I, variant 3b raking sima, w i t h other parallels in
T h e small fragment of a terracotta sima, n o w broken on both
Asia Minor. 1 0 0 White, rectangular beads separated by pairs of
sides and across the top, has a vertical face with plastic orna-
red reels decorate the base astragal. All that remains of the
mentation (PL 58; Fig.
46b). 98
B o t h the applied decoration and
ornament above is a plastically applied diamond-shaped red
the tile are made of the same dark coarse fabric containing an
dart that is not entirely closed at the break, flanked by t w o
aggregate of andesite granules. A finer cream-coloured slip
rounded tendrils that curve d o w n and a w a y f r o m the dart.
covers the front, and a thin layer of w h i t i s h - y e l l o w stucco
Clarke assumes the relief was part of a tightly constructed
covers the b a c k . " A c c o r d i n g to N a n c y Winter's typology, the
anthemion, but A k e r s t r ö m has pointed out the problems with this restoration and proposes instead to restore the tendril as
98 Boston inv. P4152; find-spot on the akropolis not recorded. Clarke 1898, pp. 133-5, figs· 3 1 - 2 ! Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, p. 159; Sartiaux 1915, p. 21.
Munsell 5YR 4/2; called very dark reddish-gray. Neither the colour nor the fabric is identical to that of the antefix. 99
the border of an egg in an egg-and-dart pattern. 1 0 1 While the fragment can be restored as part of an archaic anthemion 100 101
N . Winter 1993, p. 240. Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, p. 145; Akerström 1966, pp. 14-15.
46D E S C R I P T I O N A N D R E C O N S T R U C T I O N O F T H E O R I G I N A L
M
BUILDING
s®
I ai mI ΓΓΠΠ Ï I IIi T S i T Î i : Il I il II II (Il11 Η 0
1 10
1 20
1 30
1 40
1 50
1 60
1 70
1 80
1 90
1 100cm
FIGURE 46b. Fragment of raking sima; three possible restorations. composed of tall palmettes and lotus flowers (based on similar
again as the raking geison. T h e restored height of an egg-and-
patterns of w i d e l y spaced lotus and palmette found on simas
dart moulding allows f o r a sima of approximately the same
f r o m Sardis 1 0 2 ), its reconstructed height w o u l d be half as high
height as the raking geison. 1 0 3 T h e fragment as preserved does
102 A k e r s t r ö m 1966, p. 76, nos. 10-16, pis. 46-7, 50.3; Ramage 1978, p. 28, nos. 56-8, fig. 95. Anthemia surmounting a bead and reel astragal appear elsewhere during the Archaic period, e.g., the geison fragment from the Massiliot Treasury at Delphi: Langlotz 1975, pi. 7.7; D a u x 1923, pi. 23. C o m p a r e also lotus and palmette
on the soffits of the Siphnian Treasury and an anonymous treasury: Daux and Hansen 1987, fig. 115, pis. 55-8, 88-101. 103 Compare, e.g., Akerström 1966, figs. 72.4,6. The egg-and-dart surmounting bead and reel is a favourite arrangement for crown mouldings of East Greek
46
D E S C R I P T I O N AND R E C O N S T R U C T I O N OF T H E O R I G I N A L
nel 0
1
1
1
1
1 5
1
1
1
1
1 1 10
1
1
1
1 1 15
1
1
1
1 1 20
1
BUILDING
1
1 1 25cm
FIGURE 46c. Eaves tile: actual state, above; restored, below.
not have an o v o l o profile, but a projecting egg could have
eaves tile mentioned above; its find-spot on the akropolis was
created it. Either pattern has precedents in Asia M i n o r during
not recorded, and its location today is u n k n o w n . T h e descrip-
the Archaic period and w o u l d be compatible with the other
tion in the excavation report is too brief to determine whether or not the piece should be assigned to the temple and, if so, to
regional traits found in this building. T h e face of the sima was aligned with the nosing of the
what period. T h e composition of the aggregate, described as
hawksbeak on the geison, as indicated b y the undecorated
porous and light-coloured, is not closely related to the aggre-
bed surface, w h i c h is slightly dressed d o w n at c.0.04 m. f r o m
gate of any of the other pieces.
the face to rest securely on the geison. C l a r k e assumed that this fragment belonged to a raking sima, but if dissociated f r o m the
Tuff sculpture: lion's head, volute, and paw
antefix described above, it could just as well belong to a lateral
In addition to the terracotta fragments, three tuff pieces also
sima.
have been associated with the temple's roof. O n l y the fragment
Ornamental eaves tiles
to the north of the temple, survives today (PI. 60). 107 T h e lower
O n l y one of the t w o decorated eaves tiles f o u n d by Clarke
jaw, part of the right side of the head, and all traces of the block
survives today (PL 59; Fig. 46c). 1 0 4 Its relief decoration—a
b y which the head may have been affixed to the corner geison
of a lion's head, thought to be a waterspout, f o u n d in deep soil
running, crossing meander enclosing a starburst pattern—has
are missing. Because there is no evidence for a spout hole in the
close parallels with Hellenistic eaves tiles f r o m the lower city
fragment and the mouth shows no signs of erosion by water,
at Assos and surely belongs to the Hellenistic roof (see Chapter
the lion's head could have been a false sima spout. 1 0 8 Alterna-
T h e second fragment of
tively, the lack of wear could mean the head was in service for a
ornamental eaves tile, n o w lost, apparently was decorated with
very short period. Despite exterior erosion, the rounded, rather
a w a v e pattern only on the portion directly below the ante-
blunt-nosed head retains sensitive modelling around the snout
fix.106
and cheekbones: repeated wrinkles wrap around the muzzle,
6, 'Hellenistic Renovations', p. 12
5). 103
C l a r k e describes it as 'about the same thickness' as the
sharp incisions delineate the shallow eyes, veins run f r o m the terracotta revetments; Akerström 1966, pis. 19.1, 20.3, 29, 30.1, 32.1 (Larisa); pi. 60.7 (Sinope); fig. 4, pi. 1 (Chersonesos); pi. 1.1,2 (Olbia); fig. 24.1, pis. 42, 51.3 (Sardis); pi. 9.4 (Pergamon). Full profile used as sima on temple at Kalabaktepc, Miletos (von Gerkan 1925, pp. 20-3, figs. 11, 15, supplement II; Akerström 1966, pp. 103-4, pi. 54-1, 2; Zimmermann 2007, p. 633, pi. 80.1) sima from Histria (Theodorescu 1970, pp. 38-40, figs. 10-11; Zimmermann 1990, pp. 230-1, pi. 31.a, b, d; Zimmermann 2007, p. 633, pi. 80.3); sima from O l b i a (Zimmermann 2007, ρ. 633, pl. 81.2). See Ν . Winter 1993, p. 240, for her discussion of raking sima Type I, variant 3b, to which she assigns the fragment from Assos. 104 Boston inv. P4258; find-spot on the akropolis not recorded. Clarke 1898, p. 129, fig. 26; Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, p. 167 fig. 1. Sartiaux 1915, p. 84, fig. 33, offers an unusual reconstruction of the fragment. 105 Akerström 1966, pp. 1$, 19, pi. 7.1, 3; Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 190221, p. 105, fig. 3. Said to belong to the South Stoa. 106
Clarke 1898, p. 129; Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, p. 167.
eyes to the ears, and sharp, shallow ridges define the roof of the mouth. T h e rounded teeth, short snout, pressed-back ears, and
107 Boston, Museum of Fine Arts inv. 84.71. Dimensions: preserved length: 0.267 m.; preserved height: 0.199 m · ; restored width: c.0.22 m.; dowel holes in the back and bottom modern. Clarke 1882, pp. 34, 94-5, pi. 12; Clarke 1898, p. 135; Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, pp. 168-9, C a s k e y 1925, no. 9, pp. 14-15; C o m s t o c k and Vermeule 1976, p. 14. no. 21. 108 Compare false animal head spouts from the O l d Athena Temple in Athens (Wiegand 1904, pp. 124-5, fig. 120-2); Peisistratid Telesterion at Eleusis (Dinsmoor 1975, pp. 90, 113); second Temple of Aphaia at Aegina (Furtwängler 1906, pp. 31, 279, pis. 3 j, 40,47; described by Cockerell but mostly destroyed before the German excavation); Temple of Artemis on Paros (Oknesorg 1993, pp. 26-7, fig. 2).
46D E S C R I P T I O N A N D R E C O N S T R U C T I O N O F T H E O R I G I N A L
Distribution
BUILDING
of the surviving roof elements
It is unlikely that all of the decorated fragments belonged to the same roof, as restored b y Clarke. While the tuff lion head and paw could be separated f r o m the temple a l t o g e t h e r — f o r there is no absolute evidence that they are architectural sculptures rather than parts of votive m o n u m e n t s — t h e fragment of the volute surely belongs to the temple because of its scale. Since it was once attached to an antithetically posed companion volute, it must belong to the central akroterion. G i v e n its
firmly
established context, w e can reasonably conclude that the other tuff fragments belong with it as part of one roof system. In the major rebuilding of the temple, several repairs to the frieze, geison, and tympanon were made with tuff. It makes sense to assign the tuff roof sculptures to the repaired roof of
mm—ι—ι—ι—ι—1—1—1—1—1—1 0
.5
1m
FIGURE 47. R e s t o r e d central a k r o t e r i o n .
the building as well. A s f o r the terracotta fragments, the chief consideration is w h e t h e r or not the antefix and the sima should be assigned to the same roof. A l t h o u g h their ornamentation is stylistically compatible, they are made of different fabrics and in
flat band forming the mane resemble the same features of the lions on the epistyle.
different manners. T h e antefix is undeniably high archaic in style and must go to an early roof. T h e sima c o u l d go either
T h e second tuff fragment, a large scroll f r o m a volute, is
way. If it belonged to the original roof, it w o u l d w o r k well
n o w lost (Fig. 47). 1 0 9 D e e p incisions on both sides of the
w i t h a small terracotta akroteria, perhaps a central anthe-
block define the channels of the helix and mark off the
m i o n and corner v o l u t e s . 1 1 4 If it belonged to the repaired
crossbar connected to the companion volute. T h e fragment
roof, it w o u l d have to be specially integrated w i t h tuff
preserves t w o turns of the helix. T h e eye of the scroll, w h i c h
blocks at the corners and apex. T h e c o m b i n a t i o n w o u l d be
was bored completely through the stone, may originally have
unusual; generally, roof tiles and roof sculpture are con-
been inlaid with another material. 1 1 0 T h e piece must have
structed of the same material. 1 1 5 T h e narrow,
been part of an akroterion, although it is unusual in having
w o r k e d raking surfaces on the corner geison, h o w e v e r , also
both the front and the back carved. 1 1 1 T h e fragment is best
d o not suggest the typical f o r m of construction, w i t h the
restored as the l o w e r left scroll of a lyre-shaped central akro-
lion head part of a corner b l o c k containing the end of the
terion, c.i.00 m. wide, consisting of a pair of opposed double
raking sima, the base for the akroterion, and part of a pan
volutes supporting a large crowning palmette and perhaps a
tile extending to the first antefix. 1 1 6 (The platforms on the
small internal o n e . 1 1 2
southeast and northwest corners are very narrow; the northeast
irregularly
C l a r k e identified the third fragment, a piece of a base w i t h
corner has no platform at all; and the southwest corner has a
part of a lion's paw, as part of the lateral akroterion with a
depression c.0.36-0.57 m. from the face of the corona into
heraldic griffin. 1 1 3 A sphinx w o u l d be more likely (see Chapter
which something, possibly an akroterion, was set.) Although
9, 'Significance of the Temple', p. 228). Unfortunately, Clarke
the reconstruction drawings feature the repaired temple, I
does not give the dimensions of the fragment, and it is no
include both terracotta elements for lack of other evidence
longer in the collection of the M u s e u m of Fine Arts.
(Fold-out Figs. 13, 15, 17-18).
109 T h e piece may have been in the crates forbidden to leave Assos; no specific find-spot was recorded. T h e dimensions given by Clarke are a preserved width of c . o . j j m., preserved height of c.0.40 m., and thickness of 0.18 m. Clarke 1898, pp. 136, 270, n . i , figs. 33, 63; Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, pp. 145, 155 fig. 7, 163 fig. 1,168.
C o m p a r e Aeolic capitals, Betancourt 1977, pis. 41, 50. ' T h e piece cannot belong to an Aeolic capital, for the tendrils spring in the w r o n g direction. The only other alternative, a lyre-shaped capital surmounting a stele, can be ruled out on account of the scale. 110 11
1 1 2 A s drawn in Clarke 1898, fig. 63, or Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, p. 145, but not as described in text (called upper scroll), Clarke 1898, p. 136, or Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, p. 168. 1 1 3 Formerly Boston, M F A Si 105; de-accessioned in 1940. Dimensions and specific find-spot not recorded. Clarke 1898, pp. 137-8, fig. 34; Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, p. 168.
e.g., temple at Kalabaktepe: von Gerkan 1925, fig. 13. The Temple of Zeus at O l y m p i a is exceptional in having bronze akroteria; Dinsmoor 1975, p. 152. It was acceptable to combine a marble sima, antefixes, and eaves tiles w i t h regular terracotta tiles (e.g., second Temple of A p h a i a at Aegina, Temple of A p o l l o at Aegina, and Temple of Athena at Karthaia); O h n e s o r g 1993, pp. 1 1 7 - 1 8 . 114
115
1 1 6 Ohnesorg 1993; e.g., second Temple of Aphaia at Aegina, O l d Temple of Athena in Athens, Peisistratid Telesterion at Eleusis, Alkmeonid Temple of Apollo at Delphi; and several Naxian, Parian, Delian, Melian, and Kean roofs; terracotta sima X I I from the Athenian Akropolis: Buschor 1929, figs. 26-8; S23 from Delphi: L e R o y 1967, pp. 96-9, figs. 7-8, pi. 36; related Classical examples, Dinsmoor Jr. 1974, p. 222, ill. 13; D i n s m o o r Jr. 1976, p. 233, ill. 7.
4
6
D E S C R I P T I O N A N D R E C O N S T R U C T I ON O F T H E O R I G I N A L E L E V A T I O N
OF
T H E
S E K O S
BUILDING
structure. T h e y place the column in front of the axis of the entablature (indicated by the anta) and suggest the flute n o w
Pronaos order
comes on axis. While the latter is standard in D o r i c design, this
T h e columnar supports for the pronaos indicate that the distyle in antis pronaos was aligned on the axis of the third column on the flanks of the peristyle. T h e pronaos columns rested on roughly the same level as the peristyle and had the same lower diameter; surely they rose to the same height as the peristyle, carried capitals of similar size, and bore an entablature of similar dimension. A m o n g the numerous surviving capitals or blocks of the epistyle and frieze courses, none reflects a difference in height that might signal a different proportion for the pronaos. The bed of the epikranitis must have been level w i t h the cornice bed, c.6.20 m. above the stylobate. The sockets f o r the ceiling beams on the lateral geison determine the height of the entablature c r o w n and epikranitis to be c.o. 24 m., but no recognizable remains of this member have been recovered. Because the pronaos f o l l o w e d the proportions of the peristyle, it is difficult to distinguish w h i c h blocks belonged to it. Clarke restored the pronaos with the 18-fluted column drum he found, setting its arris on the frontal axis so that a screen could be socketed into the flute on the lateral axis. 1 1 7 H o w e v e r , the arrangement does not w o r k . T h e n e w l y identified capital with 18 flutes, C 4 , shows just the opposite arrangement for the fluting f r o m that w h i c h Clarke proposed (PI. 39; Fig. 22). T h e extant 18-fluted drum, C D 1 0 , and the capital were both found near the southwest corner of the temple. M o s t importantly, an 18-fluted column drum does not match the markings preserved on the southern columnar support, w h i c h include a circular field of very shallow bedding, as well as weathering traces of three flutes and partial evidence of others (PI. 32; Fig. 48). 1 1 8 These weather marks, w i t h arrises set c.o. 17-0.175 m. apart, correspond to the unbevelled bed surface of the bottom drum and indicate a column drum of 16
flutes. 1 1 9
W h e n they differ in
other buildings, the pronaos columns have fewer, not more, flutes than the columns of the
peristyle. 1 2 0
O u r column with 18
flutes must find a place on the peristyle. 1 2 1 T h e position and orientation of the weather markings on the southern support are out of alignment w i t h the rest of the Clarke 1898, pp. 208-3. Clarke (1898, pp. 280-1) decided that the marks on the pronaos supports were too indistinct to calculate. 117
118
1 1 9 In a column with 16 flutes, the chord between arrises is 0.178 m., and the chord across the unbevelled surface is 0.172 m. For a column with 18 flutes, the chord between arrises is 0.159 m · a n d A l e chord across the unbevelled surface is 0.153 m · To confirm the data, w e cut a template for a column with 18 flutes and one with 16 flutes and placed it over the markings. The one with 16 flutes fit best.
e.g., Temple D at Selinous, with 20 flutes on the peristyle and 16 flutes on the pronaos (Koldewey and Puchstein 1899, p. 108); Temple F at Selinous, with 20 flutes in the peristyle and 16 in the inner row of columns ( K o l d e w e y and Puchstein 1899, p. 119-20). G . Pesce states that the Temple of Zeus at C y r e n e had 24 flutes in the peristyle and 20 in the pronaos (repeated by D i n s m o o r 197$, pp. 86-8), but the drawings show only 20 flutes; cf. Pesce 1947-8, p. 324, pis. LVI-LVIII; corrected in Stucchi 1975, p. 23. 120
Temple C at Selinous has columns with both 16 and 20 flutes on the peristyle; K o l d e w e y and Puchstein 1899, p. 99. 121
arrangement is not represented in any of the 27 completely legible capitals preserved at Assos. M o s t likely the markings reflect a post-antique situation in w h i c h the column has rotated out of its original alignment. T h e weathering, in any case, had to occur after the roof of the structure was destroyed. A postantique date w o u l d also explain the peculiar placement of the wide, shallow cutting on the southern side of the pronaos support, w h i c h appears to be f o r the base of a w o o d e n screen or structure; it does not meet the column on axis, but one flute in advance. T w o bottom drums ( C D 4 2 and C D 4 3 ) found east of the temple have large sockets cut into the shafts at approximately the same height and in a configuration matching the position of the cutting on the support (i.e., one flute in advance of the axis; Fig. 21). 1 2 2 It is hard to imagine that the original designers w o u l d have wanted to enclose the pronaos in a fashion that w o u l d so obscure the shape of the columns. 1 2 3 A post-antique r e w o r k i n g of the pronaos, on the other hand, seems entirely likely given the evidence for later structures built directly on the stylobate of the temple. Assuming this was the case, w e can restore the pronaos columns to a roughly central position on the supports, with a central interaxial of c.2.86 m. T h e distance between the axis of the column and the outer face of the cella wall, w o u l d be c.2.55 m. (Fold-out Figs. 10, 16). Triglyphs centred over the columns w o u l d require metopes c.o. 8 7-0.91 m. w i d e (depending on a broad or a narrow triglyph, respectively) in the centre and c.o.575-0.625 m. w i d e at each side. If the frieze was unif o r m l y spaced w i t h o u t regard for the interaxial spacing of the columns, then the metopes w o u l d be c.o.675-0.72 m. wide, or roughly the equivalent of those on the flank. 1 2 4 G i v e n the number of surviving sculptured epistyle blocks, it is v e r y likely that the pronaos carried sculpture. There are sculptured blocks that support either design (see Chapter 8, 'Arrangement of the Sculpture', p. 197). Since the pronaos columns are aligned with those on the flank, it is tempting to restore the pronaos order extending across the flank ptera, as in the pronaos of the Hephaisteion. A schematic drawing by C l a r k e suggests just this possibility. 1 2 5 While the arrangement w o u l d open several options for the organization of the sculpture, w e have no evidence for it. N o n e of the capitals has markings that w o u l d indicate the 122 The sockets are rough, but not much rougher than those cut for a w o o d e n screen in the Hellenistic Ship Monument on Samothrace: Lehmann 1998, figs. 49-51. 123 Compare the opposite situation in the second Temple of Aphaia at Aegina, where the metal grill is set one flute behind the axis; Furtwängler 1906, pis. 36, 45; Bankel 1993, pis. 54, 81. T h e wall between the columns of Temple F is also set behind the axis of the columns; K o l d e w e y and Puchstein 1899, pl. 16. For the small sockets cut for metal grills, see also the Athenian Treasury at Delphi (Audiat 1933, p. 21, fig. 6), or the first Temple of Athena Pronaia at Delphi (Demangel 1923, pp. 29-30, pis. ι i.I, II, III, V, VI; 12). 124 For triglyphs not centred over columns in antis, note the Athenian Treasury, Delphi ( C o u l t o n 1977, pp. 88-90) or the Heraion at Delos (Plassart 1928, fig. 165). 125
Clarke 1898, fig. 78.
46D E S C R I P T I O N A N D R E C O N S T R U C T I O N O F T H E O R I G I N A L
BUILDING
-.230 - I 1.255
FIGURE 48. Southern pronaos support, with the weather markings. T h e position of the rotated column drum is marked in grey. Dashed lines represent the position of the epistyle.
placement of a perpendicular block and none has a dressed-
the inner respond of a D o r i c anta. Areas dressed d o w n to
d o w n edge on the inner side of the top surface. N o n e of the
receive the supports f o r monuments in front and to the south
surviving epistyle blocks, plain or decorated, bears evidence of
of the northern anta leave no r o o m for projecting anta responds
being bonded into the entablature perpendicularly; and, none
on that side, either. There is no evidence to suggest w o o d e n
of the epistyle blocks bears the remarkably narrow frieze
responds were revetted onto the antae.
spacing that w o u l d result over the pteron. 1 2 6 G i v e n the large percentage of surviving material, w e should be able to see some
So-called anta capital
evidence of this arrangement, if it existed. We can only conclude
Clarke identified the anta capital in a fragmentary, 0.26 m.-
that it did not.
high corner block with a k y m a reversa moulding surmounted by a splayed fascia (B23, Pi. 61; Fig. 49). 1 2 7 The b l o c k survives
Antae
and in its present condition has no markings on the top or bed
Both faces of the anta walls were composed of ashlar masonry.
surfaces. T h e undifferentiated anta walls might suggest a capital
T h e toichobate east of the d o o r wall was evenly dressed across
other than one of standard D o r i c design with a hawksbeak
its entire surface to receive the wall blocks. Setting lines mark
surmounted by a cavetto or fascia. 1 2 8 There are archaic parallels
the position of the anta at 4.942 m. f r o m the face of the eastern
for an anta capital composed of a bold k y m a reversa sur-
stylobate and give its thickness as c.0.66 m. A l t h o u g h finely
mounted b y a fascia, most notably in the Massiliot and Siph-
constructed, the antae did not have responds. The position of
nian Treasuries at Delphi, the temple at Sangri, and the Doric
the setting lines on the toichobate exclude them. T h e toicho-
temple at Koressia on K e a . 1 2 9 T h e moulded block f r o m Assos
bate on the southern side also is not w i d e enough to support
is closest to the K e a n anta capital, w h i c h has a fascia surmount-
126
In such an arrangement, w e assume that the frieze ended w i t h a full triglyph,
in the manner of the internal frieze restored to the first temple of A p h a i a at Aegina.
127
C l a r k e 1898, p. 84, fig. 10a; C l a r k e , B a c o n , and K o l d e w c y 1902-21, p. 159;
our drawing differs slightly. A chord connecting the upper and l o w e r points of the
A m o n g the epistyle blocks, only A 1 2 could possibly g o o v e r the pteron, because it
k y m a reversa divides the curve into t w o distinct segments and demonstrates that
has a complete régula on its left end, and its side face appears roughened (weath-
w h i l e neither as round nor as deep as the upper curve, the l o w e r curve is slightly
ering or anathyrosis?). H o w e v e r , the shift-hole on its bed surface (0.405 f r o m the
cut back f r o m the face. C o m p a r e Shoe 1936, p. 54, and fig. E.
end of the block) makes the placement impossible. T h e r e are problems with this
128
Standard mainland D o r i c h a w k s b e a k anta capital, Shoe 1936, pp. 174-5;
arrangement generally. Since there is no evidence for bonding, the perpendicular
D o r i c cavetto capital found in Sparta or West G r e e c e , Shoe 1936, p. 75; Dinsmoor
block w o u l d have o n l y c.0.20 m. resting surface. In addition, the distance f r o m the
1975, pp. 85-6, fig. 32.
inner face of the entablature to the centre of the cella wall w o u l d be c.2.48 m., resulting in metopes o n l y 0.59 m. w i d e .
129
A l t e k a m p 1991, pp. 89-90, 92-3, 125-6, 1 4 1 - 2 , figs. 7 4 - 5 , 80, 1 1 5 . Siphnian
Treasury ( D a u x and Hansen 1987, p. 153, pis. 70-1); Massiliot Treasury (Shoe
46
D E S C R I P T I O N AND R E C O N S T R U C T I O N OF T H E O R I G I N A L
BUILDING
B23 mm—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι 0
5
10
15
20
25cm
FIGURE 49. B l o c k B23, so-called anta capital.
ing a k y m a reversa that does not have a sharp reverse curve and
gone w h e n C l a r k e and Bacon began their w o r k . 1 3 1 T h e treat-
does not end with an astragal. T h e plane of the wall forming the
ment of the toichobate, however, clearly indicates the wall
third part of the block is simply set back f r o m the face of the
construction. Behind the setting line marking the outer face
k y m a reversa. T o achieve the same effect, the block f r o m Assos
of the cella and door walls, the toichobate was
could have slightly overhung the anta wall; the exaggerated
dressed for c.0.33-0.38 m. to receive ashlar wall blocks (Fold-
smoothly
proportions of the moulding might simply reflect a local inter-
out Figs, ι , 14). T h e inner surface of the toichobate (and that of
pretation. T h e fit is not perfect, but other possibilities (e.g., D o r i c sima, c r o w n or wall-base moulding of a large monument, part of a bench) are not more convincing. 1 3 0
Cella and door walls Part of the cella wall, probably along the southern side, was in place at the time Texier made his sondage, but all traces were 1936, pp. 56, 64, 175, pi. 21.7). Shoe describes that moulding as appropriately slender for an anta capital, the depth of the curve being less than half the height and the upper curve being greater than the lower. For the Koressia anta capital, see Schuller 1985, pp. 364-7, figs. 32-3. Anta capital heights, excluding any wall portion: Siphnian Treasury (0.31 m. restored); Massiliot Treasury (0.264 m · re ~ stored); temple at Koressia (0.19 m.); Sangri (0.28 m.). T h e moulding resembles the profile of the sima from the Temple of Athena at Karthaia on Kea, but the projection of both the upper curve and the splayed 130
fascia are more pronounced on the block from Assos, and the proportional relationships differ; see 0 s t b y 1980, pp. 206-210 and n. 12, 212 and n. 76, figs. 17-21; in general, Shoe 1936, pp. 34-5, pi. 18. A similar profile (although with a cavetto) forms a wall-base moulding at Larisa; Larisa I, p. 129, pi. 2 j f - h ; dated by the excavators to the middle of the sixth century but by Boardman 1959, pp. 179-80, to the first half of the fifth century. Compare also the c r o w n moulding from the Great Chian Altar at Delphi and a C h i o t altar from Phanai, which combine the splayed fascia with a bold k y m a reversa, w h i c h does not end in an astragal or apophygc; Boardman 1959, p. 179, nos. 22, 23, fig. 3; Boardman 1967, pp. 78-9; Shoe 1936, pi. 2 j.12. The same type of moulding is found as a wall crown on the T o m b of C y r u s at Pasargadae; N y l a n d e r 1970, pp. 91-6. T h e exaggerated profile also has parallels in the mouldings for later benches and funerary monuments found in the nekropolis at Assos; compare seat mouldings, Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, pp. 247, 265, 269; or bold k y m a reversa of Exedra 11, Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, p. 241. 131 Texier 1849, p. 201, states, ' L e mur de la cella, dont on aperçoit a peine quelques vestiges, était lisse et sans refends.' ('The wall of the cella, of which one notices scarcely any remains, was smooth and without partitions').
46D E S C R I P T I O N AND R E C O N S T R U C T I O N OF T H E O R I G I N A L B U I L D I N G the only surviving binding block, W37), however, was left rough and raised; it must have supported rougher, smaller blocks and rubble secured by binding courses, perhaps covered with plaster. In buildings with this type of construction, the inner face of the wall can be made with inferior material, but at Assos it was probably of the same local andesite as the ashlar courses. The setting line and dressed-down surface mark the outer face of the wall exactly, but because the surface supporting the inner face was rough, the thickness of the main cella wall is difficult to determine precisely. The toichobate could not have supported a wall thicker than c.0.77 m. The one certain binding block (W37; Pi. 62; Fig. 50) is 0.662 m. thick; we do not know to what course it belonged or whether the wall tapered. It does seem likely, however, that the cella wall was roughly the same thickness as the antae, c.0.66 m. 132 The spacing of the pry marks along the southern toichobate suggest a probable length for the wall blocks of between c.0.60 and 1.10 m. Most of the toichobate of the door wall is wide enough to support a wall of the same thickness as the antae (c.0.66 m.), but the under-threshold is only 0.615 m · thick. Clarke proposed that the jambs were rebated to this narrower dimension in order to accommodate the doorposts, but it seems equally possible that the door wall was simply narrower than the antae. 133 O f the door itself, only the under-threshold remains in place, 2.010 m. long by 0.615 m - wide and approximately level with the top of the stylobate. It has anathyrosis on the inner side of its top surface.
Wall blocks Numerous wall blocks remain in the vicinity of the temple. Many more have been built into the Byzantine buildings and fortifications, the square tower, and the O l d Mosque. Still others are scattered far down the slopes of the akropolis, particularly to the east (Table 9; Pis. 62-5; Fig. 50).134 The blocks that are presently found on the akropolis directly in the area of the temple have the best chance of belonging to it; they alone are included here. Large ashlar blocks called orthostates by Clarke Clarke assigned four large blocks (0.76-0.82 m. high by 0.971.58 m. long) as orthostates to the cella wall, but he restored 132 The dimension is not unusually thin for a cella wall; see Martin 1965, pp. 448-51 and 395. 133 A s , e.g., the Siphnian Treasury at Delphi (Daux and Hansen 1987, pp. 137-8, figs. 59, 75, 83) or the temple at Sangri (Gruben 1982a, pp. 194-5). 134 M a n y of the blocks on the akropolis remain half-buried in the steep slide of earth to the east of the temple; those built into the Byzantine buildings have been badly broken up. Because the O l d Mosque has only one block that certainly belongs to the temple (triglyph T28) but many blocks from other monuments, it
is likely that akropolis (or square tower to have come temple.
much of the material used in this building did not come from the at least not from the temple). Similarly, none of the blocks in the definitely belongs to the temple; those that can be identified appear from the city wall. I have included blocks in close proximity to the
the same blocks to the back of the entablature as well. 1 3 5 Today, there are at least five blocks on the akropolis corresponding to these dimensions (W2, W22, W29, W32, and W33; Fig. 51). They have smooth tops and front faces, anathyrosis on the vertical joint faces, rough bottoms, and quarry-faced backs. Some have pry marks on their upper surfaces, and two (W29 and W33) have clamp cuttings. These blocks are the right size for orthostates generally, but they are definitely longer than the spaces (c.0.60 to 1.10 m.) set out by the pry marks on the southern toichobate. 136 These blocks are therefore not likely to be orthostates for the temple. We have already suggested that they could serve as an intermediate backing course for the repaired entablature (Fold-out Fig. 14). Alternatively, these blocks might belong to another monument, since most of them are found on the steep slope directly east of the temple, where blocks belonging to another monument (the altar?) have also been found (note blocks B3, Β5, B21, Appendix IV). Rusticated wall blocks Many of the wall blocks found on the akropolis have rusticated faces (Pis. 62-5; Fig. 50; Table 9). Several have the same patterns of diamonds, triangles, and starbursts found on the foundation of the temple. Others simply have an intentionally roughened face; here erosion may have erased a more decorative surface. The only monuments with this kind of rustication known at Assos are the temple and a second monument (its altar?) whose euthynteria blocks have been found to the east of the temple. These wall blocks must belong to one or both of these monuments. Most of the surviving rusticated blocks are c.0.46-0.50 m. high, c.o.65-1.125 m. long, and c.0.18-0.31 m. wide. In addition, there are slightly taller blocks (0.570-0.664 m. high), of comparable length and thickness. Clearly, these blocks formed a thin, decorative skin masking a core wall. They have anathyrosis on their vertical joint faces, and some have it on the top surface as well. Many of these blocks have pry marks on their upper surface, but none has clamp cuttings. Smoothly dressed wall blocks Some wall blocks in the vicinity of the temple have smoothly worked faces (Table 9). Since the dimensions of these blocks match the dimensions of the rusticated blocks, it is possible that the two types were in some way combined, but of this we cannot be certain. To these ashlar blocks, we may add a corner block, visible in a photograph published in the folio report of
1 3 5 Clarke 1898, p. 75. Bacon does not, however, use the blocks in his reconstructed elevation, but instead restores an orthostate c.1.14 m. high, with eight superposed courses of wall blocks, c.0.45 m. high; cf. Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, p. 145. I could find no blocks corresponding to this size of orthostate. 1 3 6 T h e y could be assigned to the long stretches along the northern toichobate lacking pry marks, but it would be peculiar to have smaller blocks on one side and larger ones on the other.
46D E S C R I P T I O N A N D R E C O N S T R U C T I O N TABLE
Location
Wi W2
Ο/χ 2
W4
M/8-9 M-N/8
W6 W7
BUILDING
9. Dimensions of wall blocks
number
W5
OF THE O R I G I N A L
M/8-9
L-M/8 L/8
Type
Length
Height
Thick
Treatment of Face
Backer/Altar orthostate? Backer/Altar orthostate?
0.860-0.878
0.380
smoothish
>1.40
0.800
smooth
Short stretcher
>0.97
0.503
0.312 0.240
Short stretcher Short stretcher
>0.65
0.480
>0.48
0.478
0.195 0.200
Binder?
>1.02
0.383
0.522-0.530
1.490
smoothish delicate rustication delicate rustication
W8
L-M/ 7
Binder?
1.100
°-379
0.503
W9 Wio
M-N/8
Short stretcher
0.930
0.308
N/8
Short stretcher
0.736
0.502 0.422
0.261
delicate rustication
W11
0/8
Tall stretcher
0.685
0.570
0.231
very smooth
W12
N-O/ 7 N-O/ 7
Tall stretcher Wall block?
1.181
0.580
0.208
very smooth
0.825
0.605
0.153
rough boss
O/8
Short stretcher
0.480
0.235
b
Tall stretcher
0.620
0.248
delicate rustication
W16
O/ii M/8
Short stretcher
>0.58
delicate rustication
M/11
Short stretcher
>0.73
0.470 0.515
0.201
W17
0.162
very smooth
W18
L/12 N/12
Tall stretcher Backer/Altar orthostate?
>0.705
0.595
0.210
1.360
Tall stretcher
0.372 0.243-0.2 79
delicate rustication roughish
W21
Ο/13 Ο/13
0.915 0.650
>0.74
0.500
0.247
weathered
W22
0/i3e
0.816 b
very smooth
P/12
0.255
b
W24
R/2
Binder?
c. 0.995 c.i.i 5 >0.97
0.374
W23
Short stretcher Backer/Altar orthostate? ?
0-355
0.560
rough
W25
Q/x3 P/13
Short stretcher
0.222
rustication?
Short stretcher
>0.685 >0.43
0.475
W 26
0.524
0.347
np
W27
P/13
Short stretcher
0.945
0.440
0.268
delicate rustication
W28 W29
Q/13
Short stretcher
1.030
0.445
Q/14
Backer/Altar orthostate?
W30
T/12
Binder?
W31
Short stretcher?
W32
N/14 N-M/14
W33 W34
N-M/14 K-L/12
W35 W36
W37 W38
W13 W14 W15
W19 W20
Β acker/Altar orthostate? Backer/Altar orthostate?
>0.36 0.870
1.178
>1.11
1.530 C. 1 . 1 1
5
>0.20
delicate rustication
smoothish
b very smooth
0.815 >0.20
0.372 0.588
>0.50
0.345
rough
2 dressed surfaces
1.495
0.800
0.318
very smooth
1.950
0.795
0.312
0.480
0.185
very smooth delicate rustication delicate rustication
Short stretcher
>0.77
windmill
Short stretcher
>0.64
0.463
0.263
K/7
>0.66
0.495
0.255
delicate rustication
O/II
Short stretcher Binder
0.362
0.662
weathered
P/14 L/12
String course?
>0.71
Frieze backer?
>1.01
b 0.603
0.655
W39
0.319
smooth
W40
O/11-12
Stretcher?
>1.029
b
roughish
1.146
W41
P-Q/12-13
Clarke's ceiling beam?
>1.154
0.256
0.243 0.343
W42
P/12
0.340
roughish
4 3
M-N/I4
0.852 c.0.91
0.424
W
Frieze backer? Tall stretcher
0.578
W
4 4
R/14
Short stretcher?
0.863
0.387
b 0.215
smoothish smoothish
W
4 5
P-Q/9-10
Short stretcher
0.973
0.500
0.233
K/io
Short stretcher
1.125
0.460
0.212
smoothish smoothish
0.508 >0.47
0.211
ornamental rustication
0.174
ornamental rustication
0.465 0.664
0.250
ornamental rustication
0.209
ornamental rustication
W46 W47a,b
L/IO
Short stretcher
C.I.08
W48 W49
N/6-7
Stretcher
windmill
Short stretcher
>0.53 >0.64
W50
village
Tall stretcher
0.944
46D E S C R I P T I O N A N D R E C O N S T R U C T I O N
τ
Τ
.195
i
BUILDING
^ ι ^ ί ' ίιν'ι,ι ν '^ Λ ι ,'t'J' /Jjy'/t·
.200
>.·•> >.) ' 1 I •»/· » I·' /•>/"»· 'J Π J\
OF T H E O R I G I N A L
1
.65-
-.945-
.478
·>>·
v
·
/ ^
'
"
:—'-
'
1
M ^
W27
W5
" " ' , r . ' i ' ' ι ί ' '.',«···' ' '
Τ I W ^ W ^ •2j0 ^ f ' t ' M · ΐ ί ω ' Λ Ϊ ) ΓΛ
Τ
.210
-.944 '*'·
"
"_·. ••y.l
' . V-
'
Κ
-
.·.' -
' ν
620
/
-c."
··';
•
* ·•'··. "
·-"·•.· '" · -y '*".··'
.595
•
;
Η/Y .
... >i . . / · < / . . - ί
;
; ?
\
.664
;
7
W15
W50
W18
W37
"j
u
•r "
u / s ^
υ
υ
M
Γ ì V
3
.662
-1.146·
Η—I—I
Η .5 F I G U R E JO.
Η—I—I 1
1—I—I—I
Wall blocks
h 1.5
W 5 , W6, W 2 7 ,
Η—I
1 2
W15, W18,
h
-I
W50, W37.
1 1—I 2.5
h
3m
46D E S C R I P T I O N A N D R E C O N S T R U C T I O N O F T H E O R I G I N A L
BUILDING
1.647
i ' ^ l M i o , ' n o jV) ι
0' v SV v ·
ν ; V ^ - l
.800
1.495
W33
.795
-"j'jf-
Δ
t—ι—t—\—ι—+—ι—ι—ι—»
1
H—I—I—h 1.5
2
FIGURE JI. Large ashlar blocks B17, W32, W33.
H
1 1 H 2.5
3m
46D E S C R I P T I O N A N D R E C O N S T R U C T I O N O F T H E O R I G I N A L
Restored design of the door and door wall
C l a r k e and Bacon's excavation but not recorded in the text and n o w lost. 1 3 7
BUILDING
We can have a good idea of the design of the d o o r by combining the existing evidence with that w h i c h can be culled from the
B i n d i n g blocks There are several rusticated binding blocks (B18, B25), but the o n l y binding block that can be assigned to the temple with certainty is W 3 7 , w h o s e face is too badly weathered to k n o w if it was once rusticated (PL 62; Fig. 50). Its thickness, 0.626 m., matches that of the cella wall, and its upper surface is treated in the same fashion as the toichobate. T h e block was joined to adjacent binding blocks b y a single h o o k clamp at either end. A p r y mark cut into one of the vertical joint faces indicates that the binders were set in position b y the same
technique
e m p l o y e d for the southern geison and first step courses. T h e dressed-down surface designed to receive the superposed ashlar block of the outer wall face is narrow, as are many of the rusticated wall blocks. B y contrast, the rougher, slightly raised inner surface retains six wedge-shaped marks left by quarrying, as do many large rubble blocks scattered on the surface around the temple. These rubble blocks may represent in part w h a t is left of the inner core of the temple's wall.
American state-plan (Fig. 5; F o l d - o u t Fig. 1). T h e surviving under-threshold consists of a block 2.025
m
· l° n g> w h o s e cen-
tral section
rises
-I- 0.283
B o t h ends of the block have been dressed down.
m·)·
to the level of the stylobate
(elevation
O n the southern end, the block is cut d o w n 0.075 m- for a length of 0.18 m. to become flush with the southern toichobate ( + 0.215
m·)·
T h e northern end is dressed d o w n 0.151 m.
( + 0.132 m.), also f o r a length of 0.18 m. A c c o r d i n g to the American state-plan, the adjacent block to the north was dressed-down for c.0.21 m. to become flush w i t h the lower surface of the under-threshold; the rest of the b l o c k is level with the bedrock to the north ( + 0.298 m.). Together, the dressed d o w n surfaces create a space c.39 m. w i d e . O n the southern side, five pry-holes, set 0.43 to 0.48 m. f r o m the raised edge of the under-threshold (along w i t h a sixth f o r p r y i n g from west to east), indicate that the masons w o r k e d a large jamb block into place against the higher under-threshold.
The
dressed-down areas mark off the width of the d o o r jambs at C.0.39-0.40 m., in effect ruling out jambs formed b y wall
Restored design of the cella wall It seems most likely that the larger of the rusticated blocks ( W 1 5 , W 1 8 , W20, and W50) formed the temple's first wall course. Since ashlar blocks of the outer face are thin, the wall must have been strengthened b y several binding courses. 1 3 8 T h e substantial difference between the level of the northern and southern toichobate w o u l d have to be made good somewhere in the wall coursing. It could have been made up mainly in the first wall course, f o r the large rusticated blocks vary in height f r o m 0.59-0.664 m. T h e rest of the courses might have been relatively uniform, w i t h binding courses c.0.28-0.36 m. high and stretching courses 0.46-0.50 m. high. T h e exact coursing of the wall remains entirely hypothetical. If the construction was coordinated with the elevation of the pronaos and pteron, then the wall w o u l d have risen to 6.43 5 m. above the stylobate (the height of the order f r o m the stylobate to the bottom of the ceiling beams). T h e wall might have been completed with an epikranitis 0.235-0.24 m. high to match the c r o w n backing the geison blocks. N o block of this sort survives, nor is there any wall block w i t h sockets f o r ceiling beams. T h e ceiling beams could simply rest on the epikranitis and be held in place b y struts. Nailing the cross slats of the ceiling to the b o t t o m face of the ceiling beams w o u l d cover over any unsightly gaps between the beams. 1 3 9
blocks, as in mainland D o r i c construction. 1 4 0 Possibly, block B4 formed one of the jambs (Figs. 52, 100; A p p e n d i x IV). The southern jamb w o u l d have to be 0.083
m
· taller than the north-
ern one to accommodate the difference in elevation at the level of the toichobate. There is evidence for the threshold as well. T h e underthreshold has anathyrosis on its inner top edge but not on the outer. In addition, Clarke's drawing illustrates (both in plan and section) a dressed-down channel, c.o.io m. w i d e and C.0.08 m. deep, running in front of the threshold support and extending c.0.17 m. to either side. T h e channel is apparently cut into the paving stones, w h i c h bear p r y marks in f r o n t of it. This feature is curious in its design and dimensions, but the fact that it was drawn in plan and section in all three reports suggests that it did exist. It w o u l d indicate the length and thickness of the threshold block, w h o s e front face w o u l d project c.o.io m. beyond the door wall to respond to the channel cut into the paving stones. T h e construction could account f o r the lack of anathyrosis on the front of the threshold support. T h e channel, however, extends c.0.17 m. along the jambs, suggesting that the threshold overlapped roughly half of the jamb. T o clear the cella f l o o r (c.0.135 m. above the level of the stylobate 1 4 1 ) and provide a margin against w h i c h the door could stop, the threshold w o u l d have been at least 0.150.17 m. high. N o evidence survives f o r the design of the door mechanism. In the proposed reconstruction (Fold-out Fig. 5) the pivots for the leaves are anchored o n independent blocks in
1 3 7 Clarke, Bacon, and K o l d e w e y 1902-21, p. 143 fig. 2; surface treatment uncertain. 13S T h e surface of the toichobate was not smoothed to carry headers, but that does not preclude the use of headers in the upper courses. The header belongs, however, to a later type of construction and is less essential to this type of wall. 139
A s proposed for the Athenian Treasury: Audiat 1933, pp. 47-8, fig. 15.
the cella f l o o r and affixed to a w o o d e n frame set against the jambs, with the threshold block acting as the d o o r stop. 140
D o r i c door construction, Biising-Kolbe 1978.
141
Clarke 1898, p. 69.
4
6
D E S C R I P T I O N AND R E C O N S T R U C T I O N
OF T H E O R I G I N A L
BUILDING
46D E S C R I P T I O N A N D R E C O N S T R U C T I O N T h e jambs define a narrow door with a clear opening
OF T H E O R I G I N A L
BUILDING
99
the temple of A t h e n a was probably within these t w o
figures.
c.i.6 5 m. wide, approximately one-quarter of the width of the
G i v e n the lack of refinements elsewhere, a tapered opening is
door wall. The proportion is narrow compared to the doors of
unlikely. 1 4 4 T h e design, if coordinated with the wall coursing,
similarly sized temples but not to the doors of smaller, non-
w o u l d require a lintel approximately 2.40 m. long, c.0.62 m.
peripteral monuments. 1 4 2 Again, the solution seems a local one
thick, and 0.50 m. high (Fold-out Figs. 14, 16).
based on a simple proportional relationship rather than an
A s for the d o o r wall, the difference of 0.083
architectural precedent. T h e height of the door remains purely hypothetical. T h e
m
· in the level
of the toichobate to either side of the entrance had to be absorbed in the wall coursing; the easiest place to make the
proportions for D o r i c doors suggest a free opening rising
correction w o u l d be in the first course. Pry-holes o n the toi-
about t w o times the lower width, or c.3.3ο m. here, while the
chobate c.i.18 m. to either side of the proposed d o o r frame
proportions for Ionic doors can be one and a half times
indicate that wall blocks of similar length flanked the jambs.
the l o w e r width, or c.2.50 m. here. 1 4 3 T h e door opening for
T h e first course of the door wall was completed by a second wall block c.0.97 m. long w h i c h , as the pry-hole on the southern side indicates, was not bonded to the cella wall at this level.
C o m p a r e the door of the nearby temple at Neandria: K o l d e w e y 1891, p. 25, figs· 53' 55· F ° r a n e w reconstruction with a peristyle but the same narrow door, see Wiegartz 1994, pp. 126-32, fig. 4. 1 4 3 For Doric, note buildings of similar scale, e.g., the Temple of Athena Pronaia at Delphi, Hephaistcion in Athens, or Temple of Athena at Poseidonia, Athenian 142
Treasury and the Doric Treasury at Delphi. For Ionic, Büsing-Kolbe 1978, p. 138, Table ι .
144 N o t every archaic Doric door tapered, even on highly refined buildings, e.g., the Heraion at O l y m p i a or the Athenian Treasury at Delphi. See Büsing-Kolbe 1978, pp. 172-4 and, for Ionic, p. 138, table 1.
5
Major Repairs The temple at Assos sustained serious damage soon after it was completed. The colonnade at the northwest corner was knocked down. The roof, both tympana, and the geison on the eastern, western, and northern sides were so severely damaged that they needed to be replaced completely. O n l y the southern side remained intact. The architectural repairs were carefully grafted on to the surviving structure so that the restored design did not differ substantially from the original. Changes in techniques of construction, certain stylistic differences, and a slightly greater degree of metric consistency help to distinguish the new material. The general continuity in architectural style and technical construction between the original and repaired building suggests that the damage occurred soon after the building was completed and that the restoration began immediately. We can only speculate on the kind of event that would require the extensive repairs identified in full below. The frequent earthquakes in the region offer the most plausible explanation, especially for the peculiar configuration of the destruction. 1 There is no evidence of fire. We cannot rule out human interference, although the most likely perpetrators, the Persians, bypassed Assos on their march westward. If the cause of the repairs remains enigmatic, the evidence for them is nevertheless certain. In the following sections, the evidence proving the repair is argued first; the new material and design follow.
E V I D E N C E
F O R
T H E
R E P A I R S
The impact of the disaster can be most clearly traced from the top of the building downward. To begin with, all but one of the surviving andesite tympanon blocks are reçut geison blocks. 2 The surviving traces of lifting sockets, clamp cuttings, and nail holes for roof tiles originally cut in these reworked blocks prove that they served their original function on a completed building. Their reuse, therefore, represents a major repair and not a later phase in the original construction. 1 We w o u l d expect the southern side to have the greatest chance of survival because it has the least contact with bedrock. For the configuration of damage to masonry structures during an earthquake, see Stiros 1996, pp. 129-52. 2 Clarke identified one such block, which he attributed to incidental damage; Clarke 1898, pp. 108-109, fig· Block B20 (see A p p e n d i x IV) is also a reworked geison block.
The reçut blocks retain vestigial technical cuttings that match features of the southern geison, which must therefore belong to the original building (Pis. 70-3; Figs. 63-5). All of the reçut blocks preserve part of a tapered lifting socket (sometimes with its release channel) on at least one of the original joint faces. Most bear residual traces of a clamp hole (and sometimes its channel, as on T p i 2 ) cut into what became the face, usually near the bed surface of the block, where it would not have been visible from below. Blocks Tp2, Tp3, and T p j have small square holes that correspond with the nail holes made for the roof tiles found only on the southern geison. Also, the manner in which the original mutules are divided through the triglyph-mutule on most of the reçut blocks matches the design used on the southern flank. We can be sure, for two additional reasons, that the southern geison belongs to the original building: it shares several technical features in common with the lower courses, especially setting and clamping, and it has three different sets of nail holes for the roof, while the northern geison has only two. The reçut blocks that retain nail holes for roof tiles or have the narrow frieze spacing therefore must have belonged to the original northern side (for example, Tp2, Tp3, T p j , and Tp7). In sum, the extant northern and southern geison document two distinct periods in the construction of the building, with the northern geison blocks belonging to the repair. Once w e establish that the northern geison is the later replacement, it follows that the technically similar horizontal geison blocks at both ends of the building must also belong to the repair. Fortunately, we have independent evidence to verify this as well. N o n e of the extant horizontal geison blocks were lifted into place by hooks set into sockets with release channels, but the southeast corner geison block has a release channel cut into its eastern joint face (Fig. 44). The release channel bears no relation to the lifting technique (U-shaped channel) used for the extant horizontal geison; it must be an obsolete feature belonging to the earlier construction, when the horizontal geison blocks were lifted with hooks. The original adjacent block was, in fact, reçut block Tp4 (Fig. 64), for its mutules fall in the requisite positions, the residual traces of two clamp holes match those preserved on the southeast corner block, and the residual lifting socket aligns with the release channel on the corner block. The wide metopal spaces marked out on Tp6 and Tp8 suggest that these blocks also originally belonged to
MAJOR
REPAIRS
ΙΟΙ
one of the façades, while T p i / 9 and T p i 2 could belong either to
Fig. 54), the module changes abruptly f r o m the narrow tri-
the façade or the flank.
glyph of 0.52 m., to the wider one of 0.56 m. We can assign this
O f the corners, only the southeast block belongs to the
material to the five western bays on the north flank, based on
original construction. It has sockets w i t h release channels cut
find-spots
on the flank joint face and directly into the face of the eastern
Here, the frieze blocks were laid right to left rather than left
and the position of the nail holes o n the geison.
corona, as well as the obsolete release channel on the eastern
to right, as on the rest of the building. Clearly, not only the
joint face (Fig. 44). B y contrast, the northeast and southwest
geison, but also the frieze and epistyle, were rebuilt in this part
corner blocks were lifted into position b y the U-channel and
of the building. In light of this, w e may again consider the
socket system used on the northern geison, placing them in the
capitals of G r o u p A , including corner capital C 2 4 , w h i c h were
second period of construction. In sum, the repair at this level
found in exactly this region. T h e y likely belong to the repair,
included rebuilding the geison course on three sides of the
too, and signal that the damage at the northwest corner also
building, as well as rebuilding the pediments, the raking geison,
affected the colonnade. Since the corner capital of the western
and the roof. Small repairs appear to have been made in tuff,
façade had to be replaced, the epistyle and frieze above it on
such as the hawksbeak B24 (Fig. 53), and the same material was
the west required replacing as well. T h e damage to the western
also used to fill in the smaller blocks of the pediment.
side may have been even more serious; capital C i
from
G i v e n the extent of repairs to the uppermost part of the
G r o u p A must belong on the western side, and capital C20
entablature, it w o u l d be remarkable if the courses below sur-
probably does as well (Fold-out Figs. 7,9). Extensive repairs to
vived completely unscathed. In fact, w e have good evidence
the west w o u l d make sense of the change to the large triglyph
that the damage penetrated into the colonnade at the northwest
module on the flank. F o r the sake of simplicity, the masons
corner of the building. O v e r much of the northern course, the
decided to continue the façade proportion on to the flank. The
mutules reflect the narrower triglyph characteristic of the ori-
tuff metope, M i o , w h i c h was found near the northwest corner
ginal construction f o r the flanks. T h e entablature beneath
of the building, w o u l d belong to this second phase of the
could therefore belong to the original construction. H o w e v e r ,
building, along w i t h the other tuff repair pieces.
on several geison blocks ( L G i 1/33, L G 2 2 , LG28/17/43, L G 2 9 /
A repair of this magnitude has p r o f o u n d ramifications for
44, L G 3 8 , L G 4 1 ; Table 10, col. 13; F o l d - o u t Figs. 9, 18) and at
our understanding of the sculptured epistyle. T h e collapse at
least t w o epistyle blocks (A42 and A 4 6 ; Table 4a; PI. 46;
the northwest corner means that at least one relief, and possibly more, f r o m the epistyle had to be replaced. D a m a g e d material, being consecrated, may not have been removed f r o m the site, as happened on the Athenian A k r o p o l i s or at the sanctuary of Aphaia at Aegina. T h e surviving sculpture, therefore, could represent not one but t w o phases in the life of this building, with some reliefs being replacements for damaged originals. O u r new understanding of the situation helps to explain w h y it has been so difficult to reconstruct satisfactorily the sculptured epistyle using all the surviving material. H o w e v e r , it vastly complicates any attempt to do so, because differentiating between original and replacement sculpture must rely on the more subjective criteria of style and iconography (see Chapter 8, 'Arrangement of the Sculpture, p. 196).
R E P A I R S
T O
T H E
C O L O N N A D E
A N D
E N T A B L A T U R E
Group
A capitals
and
columns
A t least four surviving capitals ( C i , C 1 9 , C20, and C 2 4 ; Pis. 35, 40; Figs. 26a, 27; F o l d - o u t Fig. 6) are replacements f o r those of the original building that were damaged. G i v e n their greater overall height compared to the other capitals, it is clear that netti—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι 0 5 10cm FIGURE 53. B24, tuff repair to the hawksbeak crown moulding of the horizontal geison.
part, if not all, of the column shafts also had to be replaced. All four capitals were found near the northwest corner of the building, and C 2 4 belongs to the corner.
io 6
MAJOR
Η—ι—I
1—I—I .5
REPAIRS
1—I—I—I—I—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—\—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—I 1 1.5 2 2.5 3m
FIGURE 54. Undecorated epistyle block A42.
MAJOR
The spacing of the mutules and viae over the metopes are slightly
Epistyle Based o n the size of the central régula or the direction of construction (and sometimes both), blocks A 3 4 , A42, and A 4 6 belong to the new epistyle built for the northwest flank (Pi. 45; Fig. 54). T h e geison blocks confirm that new material was needed at least for the first five bays f r o m the west on this side. M o r e importantly, the fact that the corner column was replaced means that the epistyle on the western façade also had to be replaced. This block, almost certainly, carried sculpture. Frieze
R E P A I R S ΙΟΙ
course
different and more regular (median of 0.372 m. and 0.168 m., for a median metope-space of 0.708 m.) than those over the southern metopes, although there is still a fairly wide range. T h e spacing suggests that at this part of the building, the epistyle and probably the frieze remained mostly intact and the masons were only required to rebuild the geison course. F o r the five western intercolumniations, the masons significantly altered the spacing of the frieze by changing to a wide triglyph, c.0.565 m., and, consequently, substantially narrower metopes. T h e surviving metope-mutules here have a wide range of lengths (0.322 to 0.381 m.) that m a y include accommodation
It has already been suggested that the tuff metope, M i o , belongs
at the corner, but the mean, 0.34 m., is decidedly smaller than the
to the repaired building. It is difficult, however, to distinguish
mutules on the southern side and the rest of the northern side.
w h i c h of the remaining andesite triglyphs and metopes belong
The viae also vary considerably in length (0.136 to 0.193
m-)>
to the later repairs. T h e majority of the surviving triglyphs have
but, again, the mean of o. 161 m. is smaller than o n the rest of the
pry-holes on their top surfaces, as w e should expect if the entire
flanks. Together, the viae and mutules create metopal spaces
original geison f o l l o w e d the southern design of joining over the
roughly 0.66 m. wide. A t this end, there seems to have been
triglyph. T h e y must belong to the original building. Several
less interest in having the viae flanking each metope-mutule
(e.g., T2, Τ 7 , Τ ι 3, and T25) lack pry-holes, w h i c h w e w o u l d
approximately equal, at least f o r the irregular joining sequence
expect f o r the replacements, but three of them belong to the
of blocks L G 2 2 , L G 2 9 / L G 4 4 , and L G i 1, where the largest and
narrow type assigned to the original design of the flanks. L a c k
smallest viae are paired to create the metopal spaces.
of a p r y mark does not automatically mean the block must be a replacement (the masons did not pry all blocks), but it raises the possibility that the repairs to the northern side extended bey o n d the five bays in w h i c h the triglyph module was changed.
O n the smoothly dressed top surface in front of the tile groove, the northern geison blocks have both the rectangular and the small round nail holes to secure the roof tiling. T h e y have none of the square holes f o u n d on the southern geison
A s f o r the metopes, in every preserved instance, the top
blocks that belong to the original roof. The rectangular and
surface has a p r y mark indicative of the repaired building, in
round holes presumably belong to t w o subsequent roofs, one
w h i c h the joints between geison blocks occurred between the
belonging to the major repair and the other to the Hellenistic
metope-mutule and via (Table 5, col. 11). A l l of the surviving
renovation (see Chapter 6, 'Hellenistic Renovations', pp. 123-4).
metopes therefore were on the repaired building. M a n y of them could have survived f r o m the original building. Northern
geison
S e t t i n g t h e n o r t h e r n geison The northern geison blocks have a U-shaped channel for a lifting rope cut into the left joint face and a deep square socket
O f the geison blocks assigned to the northern flank, ten are
for a w o o d e n peg (around w h i c h a rope could be fitted) cut into
essentially complete, six can be recomposed f r o m several frag-
the right face (Fig. 12). T h e system suggests that the entire
ments, and large fragments represent several others (Figs. 12,
course was also set f r o m left to right (east to west). N o n e of
42, 55-7; F o l d - o u t Figs. 9, 11; Table 10). O n these blocks, the
the blocks were joined together b y clamps and none bears any
top surface f r o m the hawksbeak to the tile groove is set at an
setting or shifting marks.
angle, but the surface behind the tile groove is rough and basically horizontal (with a f e w exceptions, such as L G 14, L G 19, and L G 2 4 ) . T h e crowning hawksbeak is generally large and flattened; compared to the hawksbeak on the south-
Corner
geison
O f the three replacement corners, the northeast and southwest
ern geison, it has a top curve of less depth, a flatter o v o l o face,
blocks are essentially complete, and the northwest block sur-
and a more rounded beak (compare Fig. 43 to Fig. 55). In
vives in a small but important fragment (Pis. 66-7; Figs. 56-7;
contrast to the southern geison blocks, most of these blocks
Table 11). A l t h o u g h each corner is slightly different, collectively
are cut to a length approximately one-half an interaxial space,
they demonstrate the transition f r o m the flank to the horizontal
1.225
· Moreover, the joints do not fall within the triglyph-
and raking geison of the repaired building. O n b o t h northern
mutule. Each standard block begins w i t h a complete metope-
corners (the southwest corner is damaged here), the start of
mutule and ends with the complete via to the left of the
the raking geison is carved as part of the block, although each
triglyph-mutule. T h e exceptions, in length and division, belong
in a slightly different manner. T h e southwest corner has two
m
near the corners.
irregularly shaped shallow sockets cut into the raised platform
A s w e have noted, for the eight eastern bays on the north side,
facing on to the flank. A t c.o.3 7-0.5 6 m. f r o m the face of the
the mutules reflect the length of the narrower triglyph, c.o. 516 m.
western corona, they seem to be set too far from the façade to be
M A J O R R E P A I R S ΙΟΙ
_ —
r
- -JI_
•
J
L _
J .384
--
L
H .162 Η
-J .524
—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—I—I—I—I—I—h H—I—I—t.5 1.5
4 H .157 H
-I—I
1—I
1 H 2.5
H
3m
1—f—l·
H
1—I—I
1 10cm
FIGURE 55. Lateral geison block LG24, from the northern side. bedding sockets f o r a lateral akroterion base. T h e smaller cutting
entire portion of the block that overhung the flank. These
may have secured a w o o d e n block to brace the raking geison, but
corners were joined only to the adjacent horizontal geison
a purpose f o r the larger one is not immediately apparent. T h e
block, with t w o h o o k clamps.
corner akroteria must have been part of the corner sima tile.
R e c o n s t r u c t e d sequence of the n o r t h e r n geison
Setting the corners
O n l y the size of the triglyph-mutules, the spacing of the nail
T h e masons seem to have experienced difficulties setting these
holes for the roof tiling, and their coordination w i t h the south-
large and u n w i e l d y blocks. T h e southwest block has a U -
ern side provide a reliable guide in reconstructing the original
shaped channel cut into its western vertical joint face and a
sequence
small U - s h a p e d channel cut into the overhanging part of the
c.0.565 m. in length belong to the western part of the building,
of
blocks.
The
blocks
with
triglyph-mutules
geison o n the vertical joint face of the flank. O n the latter, the
because they reflect the wider spacing between the round and
inner boss around w h i c h the rope was looped apparently broke
the rectangular nail holes, w h i c h is matched on the southern
prior to or during lifting, for a deep socket is cut into the centre
geison blocks at the western end of the building as well. A d d -
of the channel. T h e northeast corner also had on its eastern face
itional but less secure factors f o r placement include the treat-
a U-shaped channel that has been overcut w i t h a square socket.
ment of the upper surface of each block (on the assumption
There are no lifting marks on the flank joint face or on the
that blocks w i t h a similarly designed upper surface belong in
corona; the second rope must have been wrapped around the
sequence) and the position of the f e w surviving sockets for
£u> 3ρ 2 S Φ - bß S ^ et 3 >
IS ON Ο |V NO οο •-ι OH " LH 6 C Ο 6
1Λ I—I ΚΝ NC NO οο IV ΚΝ IV IV NοO Κ 1-1 ΗΗ ΗΗ LH 1-1 ΗΗ Μ LH Ο Ο Ò Ο Ο 6 Ο ό
1Λ tv οο tv ΚΝ NO IV NO 1-1 DL. 'Ι ο* >-. LH DL. '"Ί Ο ρ ο C Ο Ό Ρ Ο Ό
( ι οο Ν Ν Ν •φ "φ ο ο tv ο φ NO £ Ν NO IV IV NO ο φ NO α, NO £ Ω- £ ο ο |Ό| C ò ο Ο Ο ο ο ο ο ό Ο Ο Ο Ο
NO
Λ
M
_l^ >
tv O Ν NO NO φ κι ο οο ΟΝ. ΚΝ ΚΝ N ^ οο IV NO Φ iv N O O N IV •Φ •Η LH Μ >-Η Ι-* LH 1-1 ι-. •Η 1-1 IH Μ Η-· 1-1 Ο ο Ο Ο ό ό Ο ό ό ο Ο Ο ο ό ό
Jp ο bß rt 'S eQ HH MH t«
6
Dl, c
Ο ΚΝ Φ Ο
ΚΝ ι Ο ο ΚΝ Φ ΚΝ Ο IS -φ φ Φ φ ο ό Ò Ò Ò
ο co φ ο
ο φ φ ό
G
Ρ
OH
Ρ
ΚΝ Ο Μ Ο φ ΟΟ tv ΝΟ N O κν κι OH OH Ό Ol, κ ν α, Τ1 OL, Ό Ò Ο Ρ C Ο Ρ ο c ο C ο
VN Ν Φ «S Ο Ν φ ο ΟΟ |V ΟΟ Ιν NO ΚΝ κ ν κ ν κ ν κ•φι κ ν κ ν κ ν Ο Ο Ο Ο ο ο Ο ο
Ο NO •φ κ"\ "Φ Φ Ò Ο Ò
CL,
ο NO DM »H Ρ ο
ο 'S Ν DL. rT φ ο ό Ο Ρ Λ Λ οο ΚΝ tv IV IV CL, Μ DL, '"Ί ό Ρ ό G Ο
DL, LO
Ν ο Κ ο ο IS*.φ ΚΝ Ο ΚΝ ΚΝ Ο ΚΝ Ο ΚΝ Ο ΚΝ
w h e n combined with
the
is too fragmentary, the
MAJOR
ΙΟΙ
REPAIRS
Ψ*>
·' . ·;,< ν ν '
"7-7--VX—?—7—7-7
I-
.27 —I
.397
K163-f
'
'
)
Ι105Κ1001
NECG
Η—I—I—I—I—h .5 1
Η—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—h 1.5 2
FIGURE 57· Northeastern corner geison block.
Η
1 1 2.5
1—Η—I—I 3m
io 6
MAJOR
REPAIRS
absorbed within the first t w o intercolumniations. T h e adjacent
The replacement northwest corner differs slightly from the ori-
three blocks, L G 2 2 , L G 2 9 / L G 4 4 , and L G 1 1 / 3 3 , exceptional in
ginal southeast corner block in being more rounded at the start.
both length and division, compensate each other and belong in sequence straddling the second and third intercolumniations.
Technical features and setting
T h e reconstructed sequence creates the f o l l o w i n g interaxial
Like the blocks of the northern geison, the horizontal blocks were
spacings:
lifted into position using a U-shaped channel and socket; they
Murales |—2.791—|
|—2.446—|—2.427—|—2.486—|—[2.82]—|
Columns |—2.847—I
|—2.447—|—2.447—|—2.447—|—2.847—|
NE
ι
2 9
10
H
12
13NW
were laid from left to right at both ends of the building. Some of them were clamped. T w o hook clamps on either side joined the corners and adjacent blocks. The pattern of clamping is clear on the eastern side, but there are several possible arrangements for the geison on the western side (Fold-out Figs. 8, 11). T o receive the tympanon, the top surface of each block is smoothly dressed
Horizontal
geison
beginning c.0.39-0.43 5 m. from the face of the corona, for a depth
In addition to the corner blocks, ten horizontal geison blocks, complete or nearly so, survive, along with several smaller fragments (Pis. 68-9; Figs. 58-60; F o l d - o u t Figs. 8, 11; Table 11). T h e present locations of these blocks fall neatly to either end of the temple; four blocks belong to the eastern pediment and six to the western pediment. T h e horizontal geison blocks rise to a height of 0.399 m. and have roughly the same vertical dimensions as the lateral geison. 3 T h e lengths vary substantially (from 1.270 m. to 1.455
m -)> a n d
the joints do not always respect the
borders of the mutules and viae. A l t h o u g h the blocks are divided in at least three different ways, several have t w o mutules and t w o viae, the equivalent of one-half an interaxial space. T h e 12 preserved triglyph-mutules indicate that the wider triglyphs were used internally. T h e narrower triglyphs appeared at the corners, except at the northwest corner, where presumably the larger triglyph was used in the repair. T h e spacing of the frieze on the façade is considerably wider than on the flank, but the choice of wider triglyphs and the preference f o r wide viae (very roughly one-third the w i d t h of the triglyph) meant that the mutules over the metopes had to be significantly smaller than those surmounting the triglyphs. Clarke states that the mutules over the metopes are seven-eighths the length of those over the triglyph, or c.o.49 m. H e m a y have had b l o c k H G 9 in mind; otherwise, the mutules are considerably
shorter. 4
Because of the
w a y in w h i c h the blocks are divided, it is hard to fix on the precise relationship of via to metope-mutule; w e do not even k n o w if viae over the same metope were approximately equal. The hawksbeak moulding that crowns the horizontal geison, rare in the Archaic period, was part of both the original and the repaired building (Figs. 44, 61). The northwest corner block belonging to the repaired building demonstrates the w a y in which the moulding merges at the corner with the crown of the raking and lateral blocks (PI. 66; Fig. 56). Today the profile survives on one fragmentary internal horizontal block, H G 1 7 , as well as the northwest and southeast corners (Figs. 56, 59, 61). Total height of the projecting face from crown to the soffit of the mutule: 0.375 mHeight of the corona: 0.245 m ·; °f the fascia: 0.063 m ·; mutules: 0.065 m. Thickness of the bed: o. 547 m.; projection: 0.437 m · F° r earlier description, see Clarke 1898, p. 106. The block with the raised surface described in the excavation report does not match any horizontal geison block at the site today, but Clarke could have mistaken lateral geison LG 14, whichfitshis description, for a horizontal geison block. 4 Clarke 1882, p. 93. 3
of c.0.37-0.40 m. There are no sockets for ceiling beams preserved on any of the surviving horizontal geison blocks. Reconstructed sequence of eastern horizontal geison blocks A t the eastern end, both corners, f o u r intermediate blocks, and t w o fragments of the horizontal geison survive
(Fold-out
Figs. 8, 11). T h e northeast corner geison has its greater length on the façade and the southeast has its greater length on the flank, so that combined they are approximately one via short of completing half an interaxial span, plus the necessary extension to the corner. A small segment of the additional via survives on the southeast corner block. T h e rest of the course was c o m pleted with nine internal blocks. T h e idiosyncratic placement of clamps indicates that the southeast corner block, H G i and H G 2 , were originally joined together. B o t h internal blocks are longer than one-half an intercolumniation, H G i to a c c o m m o date the rest of the via joining the southeast corner, and H G 2 to absorb the extra length of the frieze at the corner. T h e remains of an iron d o w e l on block H G i , w h i c h secured the final raking geison block, R G 5 , provides further confirmation of their position (Figs. 59, 66). T h e t w o other surviving blocks f r o m the eastern end, H G 3 / 1 5 and H G 4 , equal approximately onehalf an intercolumniation (c.1.30 m.), beginning with a metope-mutule, including a triglyph-mutule, and ending with a via. T h e y have neither clamps nor special divisions that w o u l d help determine their placement within the course. N e i t h e r block can join w i t h the northeast corner, w h i c h was clamped and dressed to join a block only c.o.90 m. thick. T h e p r y marks for the t y m p a n o n on their upper surfaces limit the other possibilities. B l o c k H G 3 / 1 5 w o r k s best in positions E 3 N but could also fit in E 2 N or E 5 N ; block H G 4 could take positions E 4 N , E4S, or E5S. T h e sequence set out in F o l d - o u t Figure 8 and in the schematic below places FIG3/15 in the position E 3 N , and H G 4 in position E5S, with the smaller fragments H G i 6 and H G 1 7 filling the gaps: 5 5 The position of the pry mark on HG2 relative to tympanon block Τρίο is not ideal, but Τρίο is much thinner than the other blocks, and it is possible that it may have been the last set in place. The only other viable reconstruction causes more problems than it solves. If we disengage HGi from the southeast corner, the sequence HG1/HG2 could be placed E5N and E4N. The pry marks are then more easily explained, but not the dowel hole on HG2, and such an arrangement would require at least two blocks of unusual division to compensate for the southeast corner and the left side of HGi.
M A J O R R E P A I R S ΙΟΙ
T130® FIGURE 58. Find-spots of horizontal geison blocks.
Blocks
SECGHGi
Units
T
HG2
M
0.525 0.844
T
M
T
[0.56] 0.806 0.552
Mutules I
3·°°7
Column |
2.957/3.02
SEi
HG17 M ?
HG4 T
M
? T
? [c. 0.75] 0.563
M ?
?
HG16 T
M
?
?
T ?
HG3/15
Μ
Τ
M
?
?
?
Τ
?
0.566 Μ ?
1 1 2
2.66/2.615
1 3
2.66/2.615
1 4
2.66/2.615
1 5
NECG Τ
Μ
Τ
P c . 0.80 0.514 2.957/3.02
1 6
io
6
MAJOR
REPAIRS
.396
+• .200 —I
HG17
mm—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι 0 5
I - .205 —I
.405
10cm
1— .200
HG1
FIGURE 59. Horizontal geison blocks from eastern side: H G i , HG2, HG4, HG17.
MAJOR
ΙΟΙ
REPAIRS
in"* Is- 00 gH gl g l 1.431
+ .159 -I
1.018
1.006
-1.270-
.404
HTTL—Ι
0
1—Ι—I
1
.5
1
1—I—I—I
1
1—I—I—Ι
1—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I
1.5
2
1—I—I—Ι—I
2.5
FIGURE 6o. Horizontal geison blocks from the western side: H G 6 , H G 7 , H G 9 .
3m
pi
Pi PS Pi Pi Pi Pi PÜ PCS Î τ r Î î î Τ τ Τ ì Ο. H-L 1-1 .-I J 1-1 J 1—1 G H-J 3 bJO 3 S S ^
t>ß ns
S
>
οο Ο ο Ο Ο ο «s hv Ν < s ο Ο ο ο
Ν so os l\ ΟΟ οο so ο" Ο ο ο
Ο Ο Ο Ο
ο ο ο ο
00
Ν
Ν.
Ν
Ο "SO co SO ri Ν « ι - M w ο Ο Ο Ο Ο Ο
ο Ο Ν
ο ο Ν ο
cm α, ο α, αα α Λ c c
Ο - φ •Φ Φ 4 Μ M Μ Ι-, Μ ο" ο ο Ο ο M ο Ο 1-, Λ
οο co ta Μ Ν.
ε
3
Ζ
Λ
Λ Λ Λ Λ Λ Λ
Λ
σ
ο χ Μ Ν ΓΛ Tt- Λ VO 1\ οο Ο, Μ ·η Μ ι-, 1—, Η (1 y Χ Π Ü Ü Ü Ü O Ü Ü Ü Ü O Ü O Ü Ü Ü P J ^ ^ [IC ΡΠ i^C kC HC SH i-i—i ÜC HE c/^ on
io6M A J O R
REPAIRS
The position of the mutules over the reconstructed southeast
southwest corner follows the same arrangement. B l o c k H G 1 0
corner bay indicates an interaxial space of c.z.6o m. reflecting, at
and H G 5 may complement each other to achieve a similar
the eastern façade at least, the equal spacing of the columns
arrangement. However, blocks H G 6 and H G 7 , and probably
(roughly 2.615
fragment H G 1 2 , end with the metope-mutule on the right side
m
·
o n
centres) suggested by stylobate block S12.
A t the southern end, the final t w o metopes absorbed most of the
The spacing of the mutules on the southwest corner geison
distortion caused by the triglyph frieze at the corner. The mutule
indicates that the final metope at that end was not enlarged to
and via (0.41 m. and 0.196 m. long) on the northeast corner block
absorb the distortion caused b y the frieze. In fact, only the
suggest that the final metope on that side was c.0.80 m. long. Here,
largest possible adjacent via w o u l d create a metopal space that
too, it appears that the distortion was remedied within the first bay.
was not less than the normal interval (0.75 m.). Possibly the
The other internal metopes may have varied in size, but the space
mutule was continued on the adjacent block, but for this w e
between columnar triglyphs for the three central intercolumnia-
have no evidence. O n the other hand, the evidence for recutting
tions should approximate the combined length of t w o average
the clamps on both H G 9 and H G 1 0 strongly suggests that these
metopes, c.0.75 m., and one wide triglyph of 0.56 m., or 2.06 m.
blocks originally joined; together they create a very long metopal space, 0.916 m. There are several possible arrangements for
Reconstructed sequence of western horizontal geison blocks
the blocks because w e lack the position of the mutules on the
T h e situation on the western side is different, possibly owing to
northwester corner block. In addition, pry marks suggest that
the greater damage here. The five complete blocks and four large
some of the tympanon blocks either in the centre or at the
fragments that survive represent a more complicated construc-
corners were narrower than the surviving intermediate blocks.
tion, with unusual divisions requiring further unusually divided
The possibilities offered here w o r k with various arrangements of
blocks. Blocks H G 8 and H G 9 each f o r m one-half of an inter-
the sculptured epistyle (see Chapter 8, 'Arrangement of the
axial, beginning with the metope-mutule on the left side; the
Sculpture').
(1) F o l l o w s
the analogy of the eastern side in placing
clamped blocks near the corner. Joining H G 1 0 to H G 9 creates the especially large metopal space: Blocks: NWCG HG5 Units: Τ [0.56]
HG10
M
Μ
?
Column I
0.53
HG9
Τ
?
Μ
0.568
2.957/3·02
?
Τ
0.916
1
0.557
Μ
Τ
?
?
2.66/2.615
NW ι
?
HG 7
M
Τ
HG6 M
HG8 Μ
Τ
θ·57 °·725 °·56Ι
1
2.66/2.615
2
1
SWCG
Μ
Τ
Μ
Τ
?
0.564
?
?
2.66/2.615
3
?
1
4
Μ
Τ
[c.0.75]
0.527
2·957/3·°2
5
6SW
(2) Places some of the clamped blocks in the centre of the course but keeps blocks H G 1 0 and H G 9 together: Blocks: N W C G HG6 Units: T [0.56]
M
T
?
Column |
HG7 M
0.561 0.686 2.957/3.02
?
T
M
ο·57
T ?
1
NW ι
HG5,i2 M ?
HG10
T ?
2.66/2.615
M ? 1
2
T ?
HG9 M 0.568
HG8 T
ο. 9 ι6
M
0.556
2.66/2.615
T 0.830
1
SWCG
(HG18) M
Τ
0.564 ?
?
2.66/2.615
M
Μ
?
?
(3) A t t e m p t s to create a better alignment of the frieze with
0.527 1 6SW
5
the colonnade b y having metopal spaces more equal in size.
Τ
-2.957/3.02
l·-'
3
Τ
northwest corner block that has an additional small mutule on its end face, w h i c h might be represented by fragment H G 1 2 :
B l o c k H G 9 is separated from H G 1 0 , w h i c h is joined to the southwest corner. In this instance, w e w o u l d have to dismiss the highly suggestive r e w o r k i n g of the clamp cuttings o n these blocks as mere coincidence. T h e arrangement requires a large Blocks: NWCG/i2 Units: Τ [ο. 5 6]
Column I NWi
HG7
HG6
Μ
Τ
Μ
Τ
?
?
?
ο·57
2.957/3.02
1 2
Μ
Τ
M
0.725 0.561 2.66/2.615-
Τ
M
M
HGio
HG8
HG5
HG9
Τ
M
Μ ?
0-557 0-779 0.53 2.66/2.615
-2.66/2.615 — 4
Τ 0.564 f~ 5
Μ
SWCG Τ
Μ
Τ
(Ο·773) 0.568 ο·73 0.527 —-2.957Λ· 02
1 6SW
io 6
MAJOR
REPAIRS
In all of the suggested arrangements for the western side, the
Their angled face marks out the slope of the t y m p a n o n as one
distortion caused b y the frieze is not absorbed in the final
in four ( 14 degrees), rising to a height of c. 1.5 8 m. at the centre,
metopes, but within the internal intercolumniations. Such a
which is quite close to five Assian feet (1.595 m.). 8 A l l but one
solution, in w h i c h the frieze near the corners is completely
of the andesite blocks are reçut geison blocks, set on what
out of alignment with the colonnade, even if the corner inter-
originally had been a vertical joint face. T h e opposite side has
axial space were 2.55 m. rather than 2.615 m., demonstrates the
been trimmed to form the slope of the pediment, and the
same lack of coordination with the colonnade witnessed on the
original top surface has been dressed d o w n to become the
southern side. This system of spacing is the only one that can
face of the tympanon. T h e hawksbeak is dressed off the corona
explain the one extraordinarily long relief (A3), which, as w e
to make a vertical joint face and the rough back trimmed to
shall see, can find no other convenient position on the peristyle
become the opposite joint face. T h e thickness and length vary
(see Chapter 8, 'Arrangement of the Sculpture', pp. 197-8).
according to the original purpose and position of each block.
Scheme 2 is chosen for the order of blocks s h o w n in F o l d - o u t
T h e holes f o u n d on the front face of the t y m p a n o n are not for
Figures 8 and 15.
the attachment of objects. T h e y are all obsolete clamp cuttings
T h e restored geison vividly demonstrates that the architect and masons were either unprepared for the complexities of the triglyph frieze at the corners, or they simply did not
or nail holes left over from their original function in the geison course.
regard vertical alignment as the highest priority. Both are
Setting the tympanon
p r o b a b l y true. H o r i z o n t a l variation in dimensions was ac-
Each large andesite block was raised by ropes wrapped around
ceptable to them, and a certain amount of flexibility in
wooden pegs set in sockets cut at a slight angle to each vertical
vertical alignment even within the entablature was admitted.
joint face above the centre of gravity. The sockets have no release
W h e n they reached the entablature, the architect and masons
channels. Therefore, the block being lifted had to be set well
were undecided h o w best to handle the corner problem and
away from the adjoining block and then pried into final position,
chose, in effect, t w o different solutions: (1) spread the dis-
a procedure confirmed by the number and wide spacing of the
tortion over the final t w o or three metopes, as on the east
pry marks found on the horizontal geison (see especially H G 6
and north sides; or, (2) attempt to disguise it, b y making the
and H G 7 , where the pry marks are c.0.30 m. apart; Fig. 60).
last metopes
Several of the blocks, particularly from the eastern tympanon,
slightly
smaller
than average
and
enlarging the
have a small, fillet-like boss set next to the vertical joint faces near
south and west sides. These various solutions are reflected
the bottom of the block, which protected the front face but also
in the curious spacing of the regulae o n the epistyle and are
could be used in manoeuvring the block into position.
those
in the
subsequent
intercolumniation(s),
as on
of paramount importance in understanding the arrangement Reconstructed tympanon
of the sculpture.
O f the large andesite blocks, seven are scattered d o w n the steep slope east of the temple's foundation and four are n o w
Tympanon
built into the latest fortification wall directly west of the
T h e beginning of the t y m p a n o n is cut directly on to the upper
temple (Fig. 62). Each block filled the entire height of the
surface of the northeast and southwest corner geison blocks,
tympanon and, therefore, can be assigned to its original pos-
c.i.04 and 1.036 m., respectively, f r o m the face of the flank
ition. A l l the surviving andesite blocks belong to intermediate
corona, and c.0.435 m. from the end corona (Pi. 67b; Figs.
positions. Blocks T p 3 , Tp4, Tp6, and Tp8, the largest pre-
56-7; F o l d - o u t Fig. 12). 6 These triangular bosses mark out
served, are c.1.33 m. high on the east and c.1.29 m. high on
the length of the t y m p a n o n at 12.685
the west. B l o c k s T p i / 9 , T p n , T p 5 , and T p 7 take the next
m
·
at
the
east
end
and
12.66 m. at the west. A l o n g with the dressed-down top surfaces
descending position, blocks T p 2 and T p i 2 the f o l l o w i n g pos-
on the horizontal geison, they s h o w that the face of the t y m -
ition, and b l o c k Τ ρ ί ο the next (Fold-out Fig. 12). T h e masons
panon was flush with the entablature. Today, there are 11 extant andesite blocks and 2 fragmentary tuff blocks belonging to the tympanon ( T p i - i 3 , P l s . 70-3; Figs. 62-5; Tables i2a-b). 7 6 For a similar construction, see the Great Temple of Apollo or the Temple of the Athenians at Delos: Courby 1931, pp. 32-5,129-31, figs. 43-8, 140-2; Coulton 1967, p. 209, n. 13. 7 Clarke records three blocks of the tympanon (here called TpCi-TpC3), but only identifies the largest as a reçut geison block; cf. Clarke 1898, pp. 100-9, 2 7° nι, fig. 18. The blocks are first assigned to the northern side of the western tympanon, and then reassigned to the southern side of the eastern tympanon. No find-spots arc noted. Our Tp3 does not exactly match Clarke's largest block (TpC3), but he could not have known the half-buried Tp8 from the western tympanon. The dimensions of the intermediate-sized block Clarke cites (TpC2)
are close to those of Tp5, but they also could belong to the now broken Tpi/9. The dimensions of Clarke's smaller block (TpCi) do not accord very well with the dimensions of our Tp2, which not only is a reçut geison but also has a large beam cutting. Possibly the block described in the excavation report belonged to the western tympanon and no longer survives. s Clarke 1898, p. 107, cites a slope of 15 degrees, based on the three blocks he uncovered. His measurements, however, appear schematic. From my measurements, the tangent of the slope is between 0.2459 anc l 0.2606, with most of the blocks around 0.2497, o r 1 ' n 4· The height of the tympanon is therefore c.0.115 m. less than calculated by Clarke (1.695 m ·)· For tympana with a similar slope, see Lapalus 1947, pp. 234-6. Add the Karthaia temple at Kea: 0stby 1980, pp. 206-7 and n. 64. For the steeper inclination of West Greek pediments, see Gàbrici 1933-5, cols. 181-2.
M A J O R R E P A I R S ΙΟΙ
FIGURE 61. Profiles of hawksbeak crown on the geison: a) SECG horizontal profile close to the corner; b) SECG horizontal profile; c) N W C G profile along the flank; d) N W C G profile along flank close to the façade; e) N W C G profile of horizontal crown; f) R G N ; g) R G 1 3 ; h) N W C G raking profile.
used the finer-grained tuff to complete the smallest blocks next
reconstruction ( R G i , R G z , R G 4 , R G 5 , and p r o b a b l y R G 3 ;
to the triangular bosses cut on to the corner geison blocks to
Pis. 74-5; Fig. 66; Table 13). T h e height of the course through
form the corners of the t y m p a n o n (for example, T p i 3 ; Fig. 63).
the bed is a slim 0.240 m., with the face of the corona only
A t the southeast corner, the corner of the t y m p a n o n was likely
slightly less, 0.23 5 m. T h e thickness of the only b l o c k that fully
made of tuff as well. T h e tuff is easier to w o r k on this small
preserves the dimension is 0.998 m.; the overhanging portion
scale, and in the dark corner of the tympanon, the difference in
of the block (without crowning hawksbeak) projects 0.415 m.
material w o u l d not stand out. N o n e of the central blocks f r o m
to the tip of the corona. T h e thickness of the bed, as preserved,
either side survives today. O n the eastern side, t w o blocks,
varies between 0.505 and 0.605
approximately
m
·
1.00 m. w i d e and 1.58 m. to 1.33 m. high,
The raking geison has a simple yet striking profile consisting
could fill the central area of the pediment. O n the western
of a slightly splayed corona crowned with a rudimentary
side, the distance between the preserved blocks is greater—a
hawksbeak, undercut at a strong slope of one to five and ter-
different organization m a y have been necessary.
minating in a soffit hawksbeak moulding. O n l y t w o fragments, R G 1 1 and R G 1 3 , and the northwest corner preserve the crown
Raking
geison
moulding. B o t h the profiles and the treatment of the upper surface on the t w o blocks are slightly different. T h e profile
Collectively, the several large, fragmentary blocks belonging to
preserved on the northwest corner is rough and cavetto- like,
the repaired raking geison retain enough features to allow for a
suggesting that R G 1 1 , which also has a cavetto-like crown
io 6
MAJOR
REPAIRS
FIGURE 6z. Find-spots of tympanon blocks.
moulding, could belong near a corner. T h e c r o w n moulding on
was only c.o.42 m., compared to the c.o.44 m. of the horizontal
R G 1 3 is slightly more refined, with a fairly deep top curve,
and lateral geison. T h e soffit must, therefore, have overhung
o v o l o face, flattened beak, and steeper undercutting.
the t y m p a n o n b y c.0.02 m.
This
moulding represents the full transition to the hawksbeak f r o m the corner cavetto. Unfortunately, neither fragment preserves
Reconstructed raking geison
the soffit hawksbeak, so the relationship of the t w o different
Enough fragments survive to illustrate the construction of the
c r o w n profiles to the remarkably consistent soffit profile can-
raking geison. Each corner was different. O n l y at the north-
not be established. T h e hawksbeak on the soffit survives in
west corner is the raking geison carved as a substantial part of
excellent condition on several blocks. 9 T h e moulding has a
the corner block. A t the northeast corner of the building, the
nearly vertical o v o l o face with the top depth slightly exceeding
beginning of the raking geison w a s formed b y continuing the
the lower depth, a flattened beak, and a wide, rather shallow
sloping surface on the flank right to the front of the block;
undercutting; the minimal reverse curve terminates in the bed.
today, the surface is m u c h w o r n . A t the southeast corner, the
T h e projection of the geison f r o m the soffit to the corona
end of the raking geison was fitted onto a narrow, dressedd o w n ledge across the front of the block, as a small, separate
Clarke 1882, p. 94, mistakenly identifies the moulding as a Lesbian kyma. Possibly he formed that impression from RGi, on which the soffit moulding is so badly chipped that it could be mistaken for a kyma reversa. 9
piece, p r o b a b l y a repair or r e w o r k i n g of the original. T h e first complete raking geison block at the southeast corner was R G 5 , w h i c h was bevelled along its soffit to rest o n
MAJOR
ΙΟΙ
REPAIRS
τ
TP10
.205
1 ΤΡ13
k
Λ
ΤΡ12
0 .046 Η
.383
1
1—I 1—ι 20 30cm
1-
— .180
10
.659
J -
It .383
ΤΡ2
1
.483
1
I
.539
1
Τ .145
±
.124
t .222
1 .928 ?
ψβΤ —
U
d
I .700
H—I—1—h „ .5
.
1
lA 3
1
-ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—I—h1 1.5 2 2.5
FIGURE 63. Tympanon blocks Τρίο, Tpi3, Tpi2, Tp2.
H—I—I—I 3m
M A J O R R E P A I R S ΙΟΙ
MAJOR
REPAIRS
II9
.3
ΤΡ5
Λ
J .165
+
.150
I
.364
.578
1
.540
7. .199
TP8
1 I
X
.485
1
)
Τ .206
I 1
» .460
.194
+
.204
1 1
.375
Η—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—\—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—I .5 1 1.5 2 2.5 3m
ι
FIGURE 65. Tympanon blocks T p j , Tp8.
io
M A J O R
6
TABLE
12a. Dimensions of tympanon blocks
I Number NECG SWCG TP ι/TP 9 TP 2 TP 3 TP4 TP 5 TP6 TP7 TPS TP10 TP11 TP12 TP13
TABLE
REPAIRS
8 Thickness
2 Location
3 Façade
4 Side
5 Length
6 Height Lower
7 Height Upper
K/14 N/8 P/i2;windmill O-P/12 O-P/12 P/13 M/8 N-M/8 N/8 L/8 P/14
E W E E E E W
S S S S S Ν Ν S S Ν S Ν Ν S
°·3 5 5 0.255 C.O-92 0.928 0.925
0 0 c.0.87 0.645 1.104 1.105 0.848 1.035 0.809 1.077 0.420 0.876 0.659 >0.098
>0.09 >0.045 >0.995 0.873 1.330 1.330 1.077 1.272 1.034 1.295 0.648 >0.975 0.879 >0.12
7 Metope Unit
8 Residual Lifting Sockets
9 Residual Clamp
10 Residual Nail Holes
>0.638 >0.668 >0.641 >0.750 0.665 0.857 >0.712 0.895
left side (bed) left side (bed) left side (bed) left side (bed) left (bed); right (top) left side (bed) right side (bed) left (top); right (bed) right side (side)
left side left side no left side left; right left side right side left side no
np
none
façade or flank flank flank façade, E2S flank façade flank façade façade or flank
left side (bed)
left side
none
façade or flank
left; right
left; right
none
façade
W w w E E E E?
Q/15 M/i 6 surface
0.895 0.927 0.944 0.855 0.875 0.886 >0.615 0.889 >0.19
c.0.20 c.0.36 0.385 0.390 0.370 0.370 0-393 0.345-0.390 0.371 0.324 0.205 0.389 0.366 >0.185
9 Slope 0.2535 np 0.2489 0.2478 0.2486 0.2514 0.245 9 0.2510 0.2632 0.2478 0.2573 0.2507 0.2475 c.0.25
12b. Original geison features preserved on t y m p a n o n blocks 2 Left Mutule
I
Number NECG SWCG TP1/TP9 TP2 TP 3 TP4 TP 5 TP6 TP7 TP 8 TP10 TP11 TP12
0.394 0.206
4 Centre Mutule
3 Left Via
>0.076 np
0.168 0.171 0.169 >0.132 0.165 0.202 >0.19 0.195 np
0.181
0.200
0-375
0.22
0.152 0.250
0.380 0-355 0.520 0-393 0.342 0.458 0.347 0.506 np
5 Right Via
>0.09 >0.142 0.171 0.225 0.158 0.197 0.175 0.194 np
6 Right Mutule
0.370 >0.447 >0.161 >0.035 0.273 0.204 np
>0.39
I
2 none I
none none I?
II
Original Position
T1 P 1 1Τ3 1
B20
0.396
(0.88)
the horizontal geison. Its southern joint face w o u l d
end
The raking geison blocks were then set sequentially toward
c.0.05 m. north of the angled platform on the corner block.
the centre of the pediment, using the lifting system indicative of
Originally,
and
the northern and horizontal geison, with a U-shaped channel
was fixed w i t h a d o w e l at hole 'a'; an intermediate member,
the
block
abutted
on the side adjacent to the previously laid block and a socket on
probably of w o o d , filled the gap (Fig. 44). A dowel anchored
the free side. 1 1 H o w e v e r , because the blocks are quite thin, the
in the horizontal geison block H G i slotted into the groove
inner boss of the U-shaped channel was in great danger of
cut in the bed of
splitting off, which, in fact, happened in at least t w o instances
RG5,
the
angled
platform
to help the corner block
the pressure of the other raking geison blocks. 1 0 O n
bear the
( R G 2 and R G 4 ) . O n l y one of the fragments ( R G i 1) has a fully
southwest corner, a shallow socket cut into the top surface
preserved width, and its narrowness, 0.525 m., indicates that it
may also have held a large w o o d e n d o w e l to secure the first
was intended to fill a small gap in the course near the apex
block of the raking geison.
block. O n the upper surface of the western t y m p a n o n blocks,
10
For a similar construction, the Temple of Artemis at Korkyra: Schleif in
Korkyra I, 1940, fig. 4$; Temple of Zeus at Olympia: Olympia II, 8, fig. 2.
11 On the basis offind-spot,we can assign RGi, RG2, and RG5 to the eastern, and RG3 to the western side. By the placement of the socket, it is clear that RGi and RG2 belong to the southeast side, while RG4 and RGi 2 belong to the northeast side.
M A J O R R E P A I R S ΙΟΙ
RG4
.
«
Ä
^
J
" Έ I r .335
RG5
-130 Τ
ir
μ 051
RG3
.125 } -L
I
.145 I hi .65
H—I—I
Ο
1m
RG3 H—I—!—h 5
l· I
1—I—h .5
RG4
EL
RG2
RG5 10
H—I—I—I—Ι-
20cm
FIGURE 66. Raking geison blocks RG4, RG3, RG5, and profiles of the hawksbeak on the soffit.
.15 H .565
1
io
6
TABLE
MAJOR
13. Dimensions of raking geison blocks
1
2
3
4
5
6
Number
Location
Side
Length
Height Bed
RG ι RG2 RG3 RG4 RG5 RG6 RG7 RG8 RG9 RG10 RGI ι RG12
O/12 O/13 N/8 Istanbul O/10—11 M/9 windmill windmill M-N/7 N/8 0/12-13 windmill
E E W ?
W W E ?
RGI
O/LI
E
>0.89 >0.895 >1.06 >1.12 >0.88 >0.34 >0.42 >0.58 >0.34 >0.17 0.525 >0.32 >0.51
0.240 0.243 0.241 0.240 0.240 0.242 NP np 0.240 >0.11 np 0.241 np
3
REPAIRS
E } } }
7 Height Soffit
Height Corona np 0.232 np 0.235 np np >0.22 >0.215 np np 0.245-0.252 np 0.235
8 Thickness
0.150 0.152 0.150-0.154 0.151 0.152 0.152 np np np 0.181 np 0.158
9 Thickness Bed 0.605 0.581 0.505 >0. 44 0.565 np np np np np np np np
>0.92 0.998 >0.565 >0.855 >0.63 >0.22 >0.40 >0.40 >0.46 >0.16 >0.42 >0.42 >0.37
10 Projection np 0.41/np np 0.42/np np np np np np np >0.382/0.421 np >0.37/0.418
the spacings of pry marks used for shifting the raking geison
would have provided additional support. 1 3 T h e available resting
into p o s i t i o n — c.1.15 m. between T p 6 and T p 7 and c.1.05 m.
surface, c.o. 16 m., is narrow for a full backing course, and the
between T p j and T p 8 — g i v e a reliable approximation of the
surface of the horizontal geison in this region is rough. Alterna-
larger-sized blocks used in the course. Between 12 and 14
tively, a w o o d e n prop could be set behind the tympanon beneath
blocks w o u l d have been needed to complete each side. T h e
each w o o d e n beam. I favour this latter solution, which w o u l d
apex block itself m a y be represented by the small fragments
explain both the rough surface of the horizontal geison behind
R G 7 and R G 8 , w h i c h have large d o w e l holes that may have
the extant tympanon blocks, and the nail hole cut into the back
been used to secure the central akroterion. T h e top surface of
surface of T p 4 (Fig. 64).
the raking geison is smoothly dressed to receive the raking
In addition to the main timbers, the ends of the building had
sima. T w o different kinds of nail hole for securing the raking
subsidiary purlins set into shallower closed sockets cut in the
sima, one round, the other rectangular, correspond to the
raking geison, c.0.325 to 0.335
round and rectangular nail holes on the flank geison. Like the
non ( R G 4 , Fig. 66; F o l d - o u t Fig. 14). 1 4 T h e closed sockets
nail holes on the flank geison, one set of the raking geison nail
s h o w that the subsidiary timbers were set c.o. 13 m. b e l o w the
holes represents the second archaic roof, and the other set
top of the raking geison, were thinner than the major purlins
belongs to the Hellenistic roof.
m
· f r o m the face of the tympa-
(c.o. 17 m. wide), and rested partly on the upper surface of the tympanon but mostly on a backer or prop. Their total height was surely greater than the 0.11 m. high cutting. T h e surviving
REPAIRS TO THE Woodwork
and
ROOF
structure
raking geison blocks are too fragmentary to determine the spacing of the subsidiary purlins; the preserved length of R G 3 suggests the spacing w o u l d have been at least c.o.6 5 m. The distance along the top of the t y m p a n o n f r o m the centre of
A t both ends of the temple, three primary timbers—the ridge
the beam cutting on T p 2 to the apex of the
beam and t w o major purlins—supported the roof over the
c.3.75 m., w o u l d allow for:
pteroma. A n open socket cut into tympanon block Tp2 indicates that the t w o major purlins were aligned over the cella wall and were set in a tilted position (Fig. 63; Fold-out Figs. 12, 14). 12 The socket, c.0.30 m. wide but only 0.145
m-
high, must have been
completed on the raking geison. It is also rather shallow (0.14 m. deep) to support the purlin alone; smaller blocks or w o o d e n props, which in all probability backed the tympanon wall,
12 Tilted purlins arc common in Gaggera-style roofs and are also found in, e.g., the Parthenon and the Temple of Poseidon at Sounion: Hodge i960, p. 48.
ι subsidiary 2 " 3 " 4 "
purlin purlins purlins purlins
tympanon,
axially spaced at c. 1.875 m. " 1.25 m. " 0.94 m. " 0.75 m.
13 Compare equally shallow sockets listed in Hodge i960, p. 46, table 2, for the Athenian Treasury, Delphi (0.13 m. deep), Athena Temple, Poseidonia (0.09 m. deep), and the Kardaki Temple, Korkyra (0.115 m. deep). Later, note also shallow sockets in the tympanon of the Temple of Zeus at Labraunda: Hellström and Thieme 1982, p. 36, fig. 42, pi. 21.5. 14 Although not identical, compare the combination of large and small purlins in the Temple of Concord, Akragas: Hodge i960, pp. 25-32, fig. 9.
M A J O R
BLJAIKB
J23
Roof
Since the subsidiary purlins were set c.0.13 m. below the top surface of the raking geison, light c o m m o n rafters or semi-continuous planking of about that thickness, running north-south, must have rested on top of the purlins at each end of the building. T h e rafters or planking continued along the flank, with the ends resting on the top surface of the geison block. O n the southern side, w h i c h represents the first roof, the rafter ends abutted the end of the angled platform, c.0.50-0.55
m.
f r o m the face of the corona; some were bedded into shallow cuttings
in
this
platform,
c.0.25 m.
wide
and
beginning
c.0.35 m. f r o m the face of the corona (for example, on L G 2 , L G 7 , L G 8 , or L G 2 5 ) . T h e rafters were probably secured with a w o o d e n roof rail running along the angled platform. T h e northern side demonstrates a slightly different construction f o r the second roof. T h e rafters ran directly on to the flat top surface of these geison blocks, w i t h o u t any apparent means of bracing. 1 5 A l t h o u g h m a n y of the blocks have a dressedd o w n area at the back of the upper surface, it is set too far back to act as an anchor f o r the rafters. T h e uniform level of the dressed-down surface is consistent enough, however, to suggest it had a purpose related to the roofing system. Possibly it held wedge-shaped w o o d e n chocks that w o u l d help support and secure the rafter (Fold-out Fig. 14). There are very f e w preserved rafter cuttings, but most of them are aligned with the round nail holes that approximately mark the joins between tiles. 1 6 T h e lack of deep cuttings on the geison might suggest that semi-continuous planking acted in place of rafters. 1 7 This construction w o u l d provide greater contact w i t h the pan tiles and eliminate the need for battens. T h e maximum available free space f o r secondary
timbers,
c.0.13 m., argues against including battens on top of the planking or rafters. 1 8 T h e design of the roof over the pronaos and cella most likely was a simple prop and lintel system supporting the ridge beam and purlins, w h i c h carried the same arrangement of rafters described above. T h e purlins w o u l d be straightened at the
tiling and
sculpture
A l l of the decorated roof elements in both terracotta and tuff were presented in the description of the original building, where it w a s argued that the tuff elements, including the lion's head waterspout, the sphinx akroterion, and the central volute akroterion, likely belong to the repaired roof. T h e terracotta sima may also belong to the repair. The tiles themselves are very fragmentary and it is impossible to k n o w w h i c h may have belonged to the repaired roof. T h e best evidence for the tiling of the repaired roofs remains the nail holes cut in the geison. T h e square nail holes described above belong t o the original building. T h e other sets of nail h o l e s — o n e round, the other rectangular—represent t w o additional roof systems, spaced at slightly different intervals. We cannot prove w h i c h set represents the second archaic roof, but the round nail holes are more regularly placed than the rectangular ones and m a y be more consistent with the full rebuilding rather than the Hellenistic renovation. Roof fixed with round nails T h e small round nail holes, c.0.015 m. in diameter, are set 0.050.09 m. f r o m the face of the corona (c.0.10-0.13 m. from the end of the eaves tile). Occasionally, t w o round holes appear quite close to each other (Fold-out Fig. 11), but these are not for pairs of dowels to secure the antefix on either side of the join between the eaves tiles, as C l a r k e suggested. 2 0 T h e pairs are too infrequent and often t o o close together. Instead, the second
hole
represents
an isolated
repair or
adjustment.
T h e round holes received nails securing the corner of the flat pan tiles, w h i c h were spaced an average of 0.687
m
· apart. The
roof was thus composed of 43 interior columns of tiles, c.0.687 m. wide, with sima tiles c.0.745 m. l o n g (measured east to west). This dimension is w i d e but not unprecedented. 2 1 Clearly, under this system, the tiling was not coordinated with
cross wall so that they could be supported b y normal props, w h i c h were set on the cross beams of the ceiling. T h e internal span of the cella of the temple (6.620 to 6.642 m.) is well within the limits of this type of construction. 1 9 15 Compare flat and roughly dressed top surface of geison on Athenian Treasury, and related, but not as rough, geison from a second Doric building at Delphi, and Treasury I (Sikyonian) at Olympia: Hodge i960, p. 82, fig. 18. 16 Block LG25 is the exception; its cutting probably belongs to the first roof. 17 Compare roof tree for the second Temple of Aphaia at Acgina proposed in Bankel 1991, pp. 14-16; Bankel 1993, p- 103, pis. 78, 81. 18 Because the rafters would be fairly thin even at 0.13 m., it also seems unlikely that battens were inset in them, as W. B. Dinsmoor Jr. restores in the roofs of the Hephaisteion and the Temple of Poseidon at Sounion, Dinsmoor Jr. 1974, ill. 6; Dinsmoor Jr. 1976, ill. 4. Hodge (i960, pp. 70-2) restores only rafters in buildings with a similarly available space, i.e., second Temple of Aphaia (ο. 13 m.), treasury of Cyrene at Delphi (0.10 m.), Sikyonian treasury at Olympia (c.0.13 m.), Kardaki temple on Korkyra (0.125 m-)> Temple of Nemesis at Rhamnous (c.0.09 m). Cf. Wurster 1971, pp. 70-2, for alternative reconstructions of the roof of the second Temple of Aphaia and the Temple of Apollo on Aegina that include rafters and battens. 19 Hodge i960, p. 39, table 1; Coulton 1977, p. 157.
20 Clarke's design for the roof system (Clarke 1898, pp. 105-6, 129-32, figs. 17, 30; Clarke, Bacon, and Koldewey 1902-21, p. 157 fig. 5) must be discarded. He based his analysis on the southeast corner geison only, and did not identify any square nail holes. He thought pairs of round dowels (RR' and S,S') secured antefixes on either side of the joint between pan tiles; their spacing would indicate the approximate width of the pan tiles as 0.635 m ·· conveniently the equivalent of two Assian feet. However, his S' is not evident and the area near R is now broken. No other geison block has nail holes approximating this sequence. Further, Clarke believed the rectangular dowels (Q,Q') secured an ornamental eaves tile that terminated in the tile groove and extended for one and one-half tile spacings. The disposition of the rectangular dowel holes on other geison blocks disproves this theory. Clarke restored the last pan tile to cover the ornamental tile, with the antefix dowclled through both of these tiles (a thickness of c.0.105 m.) onto the lateral geison. The holes in the geison itself are c.0.07 m. deep; the nails, therefore, would have to be about 0.20 m. long. Clarke suggested that the dimensions of the tiles were based on the Corinthian pan tile set out in the tile standard found in the lower city (0.608 m. wide), but the spacing of the nail holes is in fact greater. None of the fragments of pan tile from the akropolis match the dimensions given on the standard. 21 Compare tiles from the Rhoikos temple at Samos: Buschor 1930, pp. 87-8, figs. 41-2; tiles from the Greek Bath and Prytaneion at Olympia: Heiden 1995, pp. 37-42.
io 6
MAJOR
the D o r i c frieze, w h i c h w o u l d have required tiles spaced 0.6125
REPAIRS
holes c.0.39 f r o m the nosing, but w e do not k n o w if they
· apart. T h e shift in the position of the nail hole
belong to the west side, and in any case, the position of the
f r o m the west corner of the tile on the eastern half of the
holes may have been influenced by the position of the akroter-
m
building to the east corner of the tile on the western half
ion. B l o c k R G 3 has a cluster of three nail holes between 0.65
shows that the roofers w o r k e d f r o m the ends of the building
and 0.845
toward the centre. T h e roof w o u l d require columns of between
angular d o w e l holes on R G 2 , 0.54 m., suggests an approximate
10 to 13 pan tiles to reach the ridge.
m
· from the nosing. T h e interval between the rect-
exposed length for each sima tile (measured north to south). 2 4
T h e appearance of both round and rectangular dowel holes
The position of the dowel hole that held the second sima tile
on the raking geison documents the separate sets of raking
in place on R G 5 , c.1.07 m. from the nosing of the hawksbeak on
simas that the second archaic and Hellenistic roofs required.
the southern flank, confirms the approximate exposed length.
T h e round holes are f o u n d 0.07-0.12 m. f r o m the face of the
These tiles, therefore, may have been roughly square in shape.
corona. Unfortunately, they do not survive well enough to be
The rectangular dowels set in these holes w o u l d have been
able to determine the length of the sima tiles (measured north to
too small and too irregularly spaced to have secured both edges
south). T w o fragments of raking geison ( R G 7 and R G 8 ) also
of adjacent pan tiles, in the manner of the larger rectangular
have much larger rectangular dowels, w h i c h must have been
dowels f o u n d in a similar position o n the Temple of Aphaia at
related to securing the base of the central akroterion. T h e frag-
Aegina. T h e y could, however, have functioned in conjunction
mentary tuff volute may well have belonged to this archaic roof.
with the tile groove in order to help anchor the pan tile (Fold-
Fold-out Figures 17 and 18 offer a reconstruction of the basic
out Fig. 11).
design of this roof using tiles c.0.687 m. wide b y 0.85 m. long. Roof fixed with rectangular nails
The repaired
building
T h e rectangular nail holes (roughly 0.01 m. wide by 0.02 m.
The effort invested in repairing the temple was enormous. The
long) present a somewhat more complicated configuration.
cost of material was, as before, negligible, but the significant
T h e y are set close to the tile groove, c.0.14 m. f r o m the face
investment of energy in labour and c o m m u n i t y commitment
of the corona. 2 2 O n the eastern half of the building, their
underscores the importance of the temple to the people of
spacing is fairly close to the round holes, running roughly
Assos. It is quite possible that some of the
0.685
(masons, sculptors, designer, architect?) w h o w o r k e d on the
m
· apart. O v e r the western f o u r intercolumniations, the
participants
spacing changes to c.0.674 m., so that the t w o types of hole
original building were also involved in its repair. Clearly, the
gradually become further apart.2j> T h e rectangular holes on the
Assians w e r e satisfied with the several design decisions they
northern side are set 0.07-0.15 m. to the west of those on the
originally reached, because they made o n l y a f e w stylistic
southern side.
changes in the repair. T h e y kept sculpture on the epistyle;
T h e shift in spacing suggests that over the western four
they maintained the decorated metopes. T h e y retained mutules
intercolumniations the roofers used a slightly narrower tile,
of alternating length and c h u n k y proportion. T h e profile of the
or that they set the tiles rather more tightly than the crew
geison c r o w n - m o u l d i n g
w o r k i n g f r o m the east. T h e roof w o u l d have had 44 rather
remained the same. T h e capitals of G r o u p A were given a
differs only
marginally; the
drip
than the original 43 columns of tiles. T h e peculiar result, h o w -
slightly steeper profile but the basic shape was not altered.
ever, is that the sima tiles at either end of the building w o u l d
The new triglyphs on the flanks n o w matched in w i d t h those
not have been the same length (c.0.50 m. on the west compared
of the façades. T h e soffit moulding on the raking geison may
to c.0.65 m. on the east). T h e positions of the rectangular nail
have been n e w l y added. We cannot k n o w h o w the extant tuff
holes on the raking geison are too erratic to shed light on this
roof elements relate to the original roof sculptures, but here the
problem. O n blocks belonging to the eastern side, several holes
designer had more freedom, because everything had to be
appearing c.o. 57-0.67 m. from the nosing of the hawksbeak
replaced. T h e appearance of the temple in its repaired state is
could secure the sima tile. T h e t w o fragments with larger
presented in F o l d - o u t Figs. 13-18; the original w o u l d have had
dowels to secure the akroterion ( R G 7 and R G 8 ) have nail
much the same character. 25
22 Range from 0.11-0.17 m., with one exceptional block, LG12, on which they are only 0.08 and 0.05 m. from the face of the corona. 23 The change may have begun on the southern side over the fifth intercolumniation.
24 Clarke (1898, p. 135) also measured one interval at 0.53 m., but we do not know if it was for the round or rectangular holes, or a combination of the two. 25 The one anachronistic feature is the antefix, which surely belongs to the original design. No other was found.
Hellenistic Renovations O n c e rebuilt, the temple was not significantly altered. We can
akropolis, the third roof was Hellenistic. T h e
trace a f e w renovations to the Hellenistic period, including the
greyish-brown
new mosaic floor installed in the front section of the cella. T h e
coarse reddish aggregate of the raking sima and antefix dis-
temple probably received its third roof at this time.
cussed in conjunction with the archaic building. 4 T h e eaves tile
aggregate is completely
fine-grained
different from the
bears, in relief decoration, a running, crossing meander enclosThe Hellenistic
cella
ing a starburst pattern (Pi. 59; Fig. 46c). 3 A l t h o u g h the crossing
floor
W h e n Clarke and Bacon uncovered the front section of the cella floor, it was partially covered b y a mosaic composed chiefly of black and white marble tesserae of irregular shape (Fig. 5).1 Its purely geometric design consisted of t w o black bands framing a black w a v e pattern that formed the border f o r the main field, w h i c h w a s decorated with alternating rows of black-framed
white
rhomboids
and
white-framed
black
rhomboids. Clarke and Bacon found y e l l o w marble tesserae in the area, as well as some made of terracotta; these may have formed a border marking off the rhomboid
field.
meander motif appears in other media during the Archaic period and on painted architectural terracottas, mostly from the second half of the fifth and fourth centuries, 6 the eaves tile decorated w i t h a crossing meander in relief, w h i c h was especially popular in Asia M i n o r and the Black Sea region, generally dates to after the mid-fourth century. 7 T h e composition has close parallels with patterns f o u n d on Hellenistic eaves tiles f r o m the l o w e r city at Assos. s T h e fragmentary eaves tile from the akropolis surely belongs to the Hellenistic corpus.
Today, Against
patches of the cement into w h i c h the mosaic was set is all that remains near the eastern end of the cella (Fold-out Fig. 1). T h e material that Clarke and Bacon f o u n d sealed beneath the cement of the mosaic f l o o r — i n c l u d i n g glazed sherds, part of a moulded vessel representing a tragic mask, the handle of what they called a delicately painted vessel, a back-glazed roof tile,
the stone ceiling proposed
by
Clarke
T h e fact that the temple had a w o o d e n ceiling in the Archaic period does not exclude the possibility that a stone ceiling could have been installed at the same time the f l o o r of the cella was refurbished and the roof replaced. 9 E v e n so, the
and a coin of Gargara f r o m the first half of the fourth century BC—led them to associate the renovation with the mie of Hermias, tyrant of Assos during the mid-fourth century BC.2 In fact, the evidence only establishes a terminus post quem. A c c o r d i n g to Dieter Salzmann, a date later in the Hellenistic period, around the second half of the third century, is stylistically more consistent with other examples of this sort of mosaic design. 3
The third
roof, using the eaves tile decorated meander
in
with
relief
T h e nail holes in the geison attest to at least three roofs for the temple. Judging f r o m an eaves tile C l a r k e found on the 1 Clarke 1882, p. 83; Clarke 1898, pp. 69-73, figs. 4, 9; Clarke, Bacon, and Koldewey 1902-21, pp. 139, 164, fig. 1. According to the excavators, the tesserae were around 0.005-0.015 wide, 0.01-0.035 long, and about 0.05 m. deep. 2 Clarke 1898, pp. 72-3. Only the coin survives; Boston, Museum of Fine Arts no. A.C.64. The fifth-century date suggested for the mosaic elsewhere is based on the mistaken assumption that it was made of pebbles, cf. Blake 1930, p. 68, and Ovadiah 1980, pp. 30-1. 3 Salzmann 1982, pp. 67, 120-1, no. 150, pi. 84.3-4. Note two similar mosaics found at Ilion: Salzmann 1982, p. 68, 126, no. 172, pi. 84.2; Rose 1995, pp. 94—5.
The grayish-brown designation corresponds to Munsell 10YR 5/1-2. Boston, Museum of Fine Arts inv. P4258; find-spot on the akropolis not recorded. Clarke 1898, p. 129, fig. 26; Clarke, Bacon, and Koldewey 1902-21, p. 167, fig. ι. Sartiaux 1915, p. 84, fig. 33, offers a rather unusual reconstruction of this fragment. 6 Sec Klazomenian sarcophagi for the appearance of the crossed meander on textiles: R. M. Cook 1981, p. 85 and nn. 23-6. For West Greek revetments: Van Buren 1923, figs. 8-9, 11-14,16, 18, 28, 40-1. For the crossing meander enclosing a checkerboard on a late sixth-century geison from Delphi, see LeRoy, FdD II. 12, 1967, G16, pp. 86-7, pi. 29. Patterns of this type were not unknown in thefirsthalf of the fifth century, e.g., an eaves tile from the Athenian Akropolis (Buschor 1929, eaves tile X) or a lateral sima from Athens and one from Halae (Van Buren 1926, pp. 93-4, fig. 40). For mainland tiles painted with the crossing meander from the second half of the fifth century and the fourth century, see LcRoy, FdD II. 12,1967, S33, S58, S63, S71, R19, S73, S34, S38, S48, S74, S90, S93, S94, R25, S51, and S53. See also Buschor 1929, Sima XXIII, XXIV, eaves tiles XXIV, XXV, XXVIb, and XXVII. For a marble example of the pattern from the Cyciades, sec the cella wall of the Temple of Apollo Pythios on Paros, dated to the first half of the fourth century: Schüller 1982, p. 261, no. M137, fig. 12. 4
5
7 Äkerström 1966, pl. 1.7 (Olbia); pl. 1.4 (Chersonesos); pl. 17.4-5 (fragments now in Izmir); Zimmermann 1994, pp. 221-51, pl. 79 (Histria); Kästner 1994, pp. 254-5, pl. 80b,c (Pergamon). 8 Cf. Äkerström 1966, pp. 15, 19, pl. 7.1, 3; Clarke, Bacon, and Koldewey, p. 105, fig. 3. Assigned by the excavators to belong to the South Stoa. 9 Sartiaux 1915, pp. 23, 141, raises the possibility but does not pursue it. For Clarke's argument, Clarke 1898, pp. 111-28.
126
HELLENISTIC
evidence for a stone ceiling is not compelling. The three different sizes of coffered block assigned to the ceiling by Clarke come from four disparate sources: (i) five from a structure southeast of the bouleuterion; (2) seven in a portico west of the South Stoa; (3) two built into the wall of the mosque on the northern promontory of the akropolis; and, (4) small fragments of two beams apparently found near the temple, although the excavators do not state their exact context. Clarke never identified the requisite transverse ceiling beams, and no block answering that description exists on the akropolis today. N o n e of the fragments supposedly found on the akropolis have come to light in more recent explorations. The fact that two of the coffered blocks were built into the wall of the mosque does not prove they came from the akropolis, for
RENOVATIONS
andesite frieze blocks surely belonging to monuments in the lower city were also built into the mosque. 1 0 The other coffered blocks probably belong to the ancient buildings near which they were found. The familiar shift-holes found on the smaller sizes of block reflect the continued use of the technique by the local school of masons. The lewis-holes found on the largest coffered blocks do not appear on any of the blocks from the temple, but such cuttings appear frequently on the blocks from structures in the lower city. While it is likely that the temple required additional repairs over the next several centuries, we cannot track them today. e.g., a monument in the agora; cf. Clarke, Bacon, and Koldewcy 1902-21, pp. 169-70.
7
The Sculpture imagery and position at a height of c.4.5-5.3
INTRODUCTION
m. above eye level,
w o u l d have been scarcely less so. 3 Plates 88, 99, and 105b, taken T h e sculptural assembly of the temple at A s s o s is unquestion-
w h e n the reliefs were mounted high o n the wall in the Louvre,
ably ambitious. There is no precedent f o r combining decorated
give some impression of h o w the reliefs w o u l d have been seen
metopes with a series of sculptured epistyle blocks running
f r o m below.
across both ends, partly d o w n the flanks, and possibly across
T h e choice of imagery matched the importance of its place-
the pronaos of a D o r i c temple, and only one small Hellenistic
ment. The epistyle includes t w o blocks w i t h pairs of reclining
derivative. 1 Such an arrangement, however, appears extraordin-
sphinxes w i t h their paws set heraldically upon an A e o l i c floral
ary in hindsight. A t this time in western Anatolia, the design is
( A i and A2); t w o blocks with confronted bulls l o c k i n g horns
remarkable not so much f o r its profusion of sculptural orna-
( A 1 4 - A 1 5 ) ; five blocks of lions bringing d o w n various herbi-
ment as f o r its application to the Doric order. Having chosen
vores, including a deer, a doe, a bull, and a boar ( A 9 - A 1 3 ) ; four
the D o r i c order, the designer and patrons must have judged the
blocks associated with the story of Herakles routing centaurs
traditional metopal spaces insufficient f o r the desired sculp-
(A5-A8/48); one block of Herakles wrestling Triton (A3); and,
tural decoration. T h e y chose not to pursue decorated pedi-
one block s h o w i n g a symposion (A4). The metopes display a
ments, perhaps because of the challenges of w o r k i n g the
similar range of monsters, animals, and humans, including
gritty, friable andesite, perhaps because of the awkwardness
scenes of confronted sphinxes (M3), a galloping centaur (M7),
of the triangular field, or perhaps because of the preference
a grazing boar (M4), Europe on the Zeus Bull (M5), quarrelling
for horizontality demonstrated in the building's architectural
heroes (M8), an equestrian (M9), a pair of runners (M2), one
aspects. Nevertheless, some of the subjects, as well as the
figure chasing another ( M i ) , and a confrontation ( M i o ) . The
emphasis o n both ends of the building, seem a direct response
many surviving sculptured blocks allow for a m o r e precise
to sculptured D o r i c pediments elsewhere. Certain other as-
sense of the iconographie programme of this m o n u m e n t than
pects of the composition reflect ideas more typical of Ionic
for almost any other archaic East G r e e k building. T h e ensem-
frieze decoration, e.g., repetitious imagery or heraldic sphinxes.
ble of fabulous creatures, animal combats, m y t h o l o g i c a l scenes,
It is tempting to think the designers consciously sought to fuse
and less specific depictions of heroic or human activity appears
the t w o forms on the largest, most immediately visible, u n o b -
at first to be little more than an arbitrary juxtaposition of
structed surface that ordered architecture had to o f f e r — t h e
generally popular but largely unrelated scenes. Such an evalu-
epistyle. In any case, they did not feel constrained b y an
ation is not entirely unfair. L a c k i n g a regional iconographie
architectural rule barring decoration f r o m such
tradition, the designers of the temple at Assos w e r e obliged to
structural
elements. T h e aesthetic effect of the tiered decoration
in
turn elsewhere for inspiration. F r o m their r o c k y promontory
the entablature is entirely consistent w i t h early and high
at the southern tip of the Troad, they were well positioned to
archaic
look southward to Ionia, eastward to Anatolia, and westward
smaller
arts,
where
decorating
in
superposed
registers with reduplicated motifs is the norm rather than the
across the Aegean. A n d surely they were not the first commu-
exception. T h e Sardis shrine monument provides a strong in-
nity to w a n t it all. In the temple, w e witness a striking attempt
dication that similar aesthetics were at w o r k elsewhere in a
to take advantage of diverse iconographie trajectories: emblem-
quasi-architectural context. 2 A t roughly 3.5-4.5 m. above the
atic, confrontational, and narrative scenes connected with the
viewer's eyes, the sculpture on the epistyle w o u l d have been eminently legible, and the metopes, despite their smaller-scale 1 The Temple of Dionysos Bresaios on Lesbos: Koldewey 1890, pp. 63-4, pi. 28; Webb 1996, p. 152. The two other instances, the Temple of Apollo at Didyma and the Nereid Monument at Xanthos, are both Ionic. The sculptured frieze that H. Schliemann attributed to the Temple of Athena at Ilion does not belong; cf. Schliemann 1884, pp. 199-207, figs. 113-15. 2 Hanfmann and Ramage 1978, pp. 43-51, no. 7, figs. 20-50; Ridgway 1993, p. 386.
3 The approximation assumes a viewer standing at the level of the euthynteria with an eye height of c.1.50 m. Eye level to the bottom of the epistyle, c.5.16-1.50 = 3.66 m. Eye level to the top of the epistyle, c.5.98-1.5 = 4.48 m. Eye level to the top of the frieze; c.6.76-1.5 = 5.26 m. As a point of comparison, the frieze of the Siphnian Treasury would be between c.3.5 and 4.10 m. above eye level, and it was considerably shorter (0.64 m., compared to 0.82 m. high). The metopes of the Athenian Treasury at Delphi would be roughly 4.20-4.90 m. above eye level, and they, too, were considerably smaller. The metopes of the Hephaisteion are about the same size, but placed at a higher elevation, c.6.10-6.90 m. above eye level.
THE
128
SCULPTURE
Doric order and heraldic or processional compositions characteristically associated with Ionic frieze decoration. The scene of Herakles wrestling Triton appears to have been translated from the pediments of the Athenian Akropolis; the symposiasts seem to have been invited from Ionian sanctuaries. The heraldic sphinxes look as if they migrated from East Greek altars, while the battling bulls—the most ancient of all imagery on the building—hail from even further afield—Lydia, Phrygia, and Cyprus. The combination and deployment of monsters, animals, and animal fights has a strong Anatolian ring to it. The dominant impression is hybrid, as if the Assians, having achieved critical mass, wanted to become contenders in the larger dialogue of monumental temple building by knitting together—and transforming—the several contemporary (and older) trends they observed across the eastern Mediterranean. Did the patrons choose the images for their discrete value alone, or were the scenes (or at least some of them) meant to w o r k together? Certainly, the bold imagery can be taken in at a glance, but the people of Assos had a lifetime to contemplate the sculpture, and there was little competition for their attention. The sculpture on the temple was the dominant visual stimulus local viewers, at any rate, were likely to experience. Brunhilde S. Ridgway, in discussing key issues concerning the premise of archaic sculptural programmes, leans toward the conclusion that the elements of the sculptural decoration were meant to be read independently. 4 While not entirely disagreeing with her, I argue that the designers and many viewers had time to consider the connections between the images, both in the planning stages and in the centuries that followed the temple's construction. I therefore seek an interpretation that does not isolate individual motifs but instead makes sense of their combination in a meaningful w a y within a sacred context. We encounter difficulties, however, when we attempt to apply the traditionally defined concept of programme—the subordination of individual themes to an overarching and unifying idea— to the temple at Assos and, in fact, to archaic architectural sculpture in general. Early and high archaic ensembles of architectural sculpture on sacred buildings bear all the promise of Classical designs and were surely no less central to the societies from which they emerge. Nevertheless, almost all avoid the more overt programmatic unity found in such buildings as the Parthenon or the Temple of Zeus at Olympia, favouring instead paratactic assemblages of animals, monsters, and heroes. For the high archaic monuments, coherence of organization and comprehensive meaning must be defined differently. Archaic iconography was put to hard and versatile work, with images having not only their literal meaning, but also the potential for cultic, emblematic, apotropaic, allegorical, or symbolic significance. Disparate scenes might gain meaning in association with others on a given monument; context and scale likewise significantly affect meaning. Scholars looking for 4
Ridgway 1999, pp. 82-94.
programmatic coherence in early and high archaic temples (those built prior to 530-525 BC) have examined connections with the cult and honoured deity, with political or historical circumstances, and with regional or ethnic affiliations, finding layers of elegant and often not mutually exclusive meaning. These approaches provide valuable insight into the choice of individual motifs but often fall short of a comprehensive explanation of programme. Other monuments, especially those influencing the choice of particular scenes at Assos, would be of value in helping us to understand some of the guiding principles that shaped the programme at Assos. Ironically, the 25 surviving sculptured blocks from the temple at Assos allow for a more precise sense of its iconographie ensemble than for any other archaic East Greek building. O n l y scraps remain of the huge decorative programmes (mainly friezes) in Ionian sanctuaries. O u r understanding of the temple at Assos is necessarily the less for that. But the combination of subjects on the temple does reflect the better preserved early to mid-sixth-century Doric pediments that also juxtapose non-narrative, confrontational animal imagery and mythological scenes with abrupt changes of scale and sudden transitions; we think first of the Temple of Artemis on Korkyra or the poros pediments from the Athenian A k r o p o lis. 5 Both types of scene were essential components of the sculptural ensemble, with the non-narrative power imagery taking centre stage. O n l y in the late Archaic period do the gods displace the great animal or monster representations in the centre of the temple pediment (e.g., on the Siphnian Treasury at Delphi or the Alkmeonid Temple of A p o l l o at Delphi, and on at least one side of the O l d Temple of Athena in Athens). But it is not until the turn of the century that pedimental animals are largely abandoned in favour of a fully mythological composition and an overall thematic unity that would ultimately become the Classical aim (e.g., Temple of Aphaia at Aegina or the Athenian Treasury at Delphi). In other words, in high archaic pedimental design, the well attested combination of power-imagery (either natural or monstrous) and mythological scenes strongly suggests that the idea of programme was rooted in their combination, and that the sculptures gained meaning in their association and in relation to the deity. In fact, archaic iconographie programmes were composed of a series of visual axioms articulating the relationship of humans to each other, the supernatural, and the divine. The goal was not to express a single idea but to interweave the key themes of natural and supernatural power with exemplars of heroic and human values, mainly shown through the medium of myth or aristocratic activities, all under the authority and in the service of the presiding deity. Each image builds toward
3 Korkyra: Korkyra II; Benson 1967, pp. 48-60. Athenian poros pediments: Brouskari 1974, pp. 25-9, 33-7, 39-40, 42-3,46-7. nos. 2-4, 9, 35-41,52, 6508, figs. 14, 25, 27-9, 44, 46-7, 54-6, 74, 80-1; Beyer 1974, pp. 639-56, fig. 10; Knell 1990, pp. 1-17; Ridgway 1993, pp. 276-87; Korres 1994a, p. 21; Korres 1997a.
THE
SCULPTURE
I29
that end. T h e choice of each image, therefore, may not have
metopes has been identified satisfactorily, and none is among
arisen f r o m the same particular motivation, nor may the asso-
the readily recognized compositions that appear on other ar-
ciations between images be consistent (or at least predictively
chaic buildings. T h e recent discovery of t w o more cryptic
consistent to us). T h e ensemble
figurai
is w h a t is important. Thus no
one method of analysis—social,
geopolitical, religious,
or
metopes (M9 and M i o ) emphasizes the need to re-
evaluate all the scenes.
structural—gets to the heart of the sculptural programme of a
Ultimately, identifying the subjects and establishing the
building such as the temple at Assos. I aim to explore w h a t
iconographie models for the sculpture is critical f o r under-
sense w e might make of the iconography if w e start our analy-
standing the w a y in w h i c h the sculptural decoration of the
sis at basics, identifying the essential act represented in each
temple was f o r m u l a t e d — a n d f o r establishing its date. Inter-
scene and then look for a pattern of relationships between
preting enigmatic scenes on an isolated monument set in a
the acts and participants that might have had meaning in an
region lacking an established iconographie tradition is an ad-
archaic religious context. This approach is not so much struc-
mittedly risky business. Nonetheless, although the specific
tural as functional, operating on t w o levels: the microcosm of
identification of scenes is not always obvious to us, the design-
the image and the macrocosm of the building within its social
ers surely did not engage in intentional ambiguity, as has some-
and cultural context. 6 T h e entire temple exterior functioned to
times
define the most sacred interior, to represent the authority of the
painting. 7 Inscriptions could, of course, transform a generic
been
proposed
for
generic
imagery
in
Attic
vase
deity, to be the face of the polis, and to awe and transport the
pair of runners into a local story not elsewhere represented in
viewer. T h e temple concretized the relation that the polis of
art. 8 Thus far, none have come to light, and lacking other
Assos defined for itself to its goddess and to the larger w o r l d of
written accounts as well as a strong local visual tradition, our
the eastern Mediterranean. While not the o n l y valid perspective
best recourse is to turn to visual comparanda f r o m other re-
on to these scenes, this w a y of thinking provides a set of
gions and in other media. That is, after all, what w e suspect the
plausible connections that bring further meaning to the build-
original designers did as well. T h e fact that certain scenes do
ing as a w h o l e . T h e scenes w o r k paratactically, yet collectively
have parallels encourages us to search for others and suggests
(either directly or by analogy) they present a more encompass-
that the
ing vision of some of the prime forces that governed a mean-
f e c t l y — i n a comparative context.
figurai
scenes can be understood b e s t — i f
imper-
ingful existence in the archaic world: the averting powers f r o m
Three w o r k i n g principles, therefore, govern the following
the unseen w o r l d expressed in the heraldic sphinxes; the forces
iconographie analyses. T o engage in the act of comparison, w e
of the natural w o r l d expressed in the animal combats; the
must assume that the scenes at Assos illustrate subjects belong-
conflict between the natural versus the civilizing forces within
ing to a repertoire of scenes represented elsewhere in the
human beings, expressed in their bestial half-selves, the cen-
archaic visual arts. T h e corollary of this assumption—that
taurs; and, the role of philoxenia
in distinguishing the human
f r o m the bestial expressed by the symposion.
similar compositions must represent similar stories—is far f r o m secure, but it is all w e have. A second principle is that
A full iconographie and iconological analysis of the individ-
the idea f o r including a particular subject may have derived
ual reliefs and metopes f o l l o w s in subsequent sections. Some
independently of the source for the specific motif. T h a t is, the
ideas pertinent to the sculptural ensemble as a w h o l e are set out
designer(s) seems to have looked first to other architectural
here to give context to the material and to establish a method of
monuments to determine what subjects made generally appro-
approach.
priate architectural decoration, and then turned to specific visual examples, not necessarily architectural, to guide them The iconography:
working
in depicting these subjects. Thirdly, w e cannot assume that
premises
similar subjects necessarily carried similar meanings: context
To understand the principles that shape the iconographie pro-
is critical. 9 W h e n several interpretations are possible, the one
gramme, w e must first make sense of the scenes individually.
having stronger connections w i t h the deity, w i t h other elem-
M o s t scenes f r o m the epistyle are familiar in sacred sculpture:
ents of the iconography, or with local geography or politics,
lion combats ( A 9 - A 1 3 ) , a centauromachy ( A 5 - A 8 ) , heraldic
takes precedence.
pairs of sphinxes ( A 1 - A 2 ) , battling bulls ( A 1 4 - A 1 5 ) , Herakles
Given the surviving number of plain epistyle blocks and the
wrestling Triton (A3). T h e scene of men at symposion (A4)
fact that recent excavations produced no new sculptured scenes
stands apart and is, I think, the fulcrum upon w h i c h the ac-
(just additional fragments of existing ones), it is unlikely that
c o m p a n y i n g scenes f r o m the epistyle are balanced. T h e met-
w e are missing much of the sculptured epistyle. In fact, w e may
opes also portray monsters, animals, and humans. H o w e v e r ,
have too much. W h e n the temple was repaired (as will be
with the exception of E u r o p e on the Zeus Bull (M5; and even its identification raises doubts for some), none of the
figurai
Bcrard in Bérard et al. 1989, pp. 167-8; Neer 2002, pp. 2-3, 185. e.g., inscriptions have transformed our interpretation of the cast and north friezes of the Siphnian Treasury at Delphi: Brinkmann 1985, pp. 77-130; Brinkmann 1994, pp. 95-7, figs. 107-119, fold-out pis. 9-11. 9 For a contextual approach, see Barringer 2005, 2008. 7
8
6 For the importance of a functional approach, see Holloway 1988; Faraone 1992, pp. 3-12; Marconi 2007.
154
THE
SCULPTURE
argued below), some of the epistyle reliefs were p r o b a b l y
here, for, unlike many D o r i c buildings of the mainland or
damaged and new ones were p r o b a b l y created, but no technical
Magna Graecia, there is no certainty that any part of the temple
features help distinguish original f r o m replacement material, as
at Assos, including its sculpture, was covered w i t h plaster. 11
they do for the geison and tympanon. Sculptural style and
Part of the krepis bears a white residue suggesting that at some
iconographie considerations, while precarious criteria, offer
time they may have been whitewashed. While this evidence
some help in determining to w h i c h phase the relief might
does not extend to the sculptured courses, it opens the possi-
belong.
bility. Certainly some of the details on the reliefs were picked
T h e situation with the decorated metopes is somewhat dif-
out in colour.
ferent. T h e ten surviving metopal reliefs were found at both
T h e decision to w o r k in andesite had a p r o f o u n d effect on
ends of the temple, but predominantly to the west and north-
the sculpture. Possessing neither the translucence of marble
west (Appendix I; Fig. 34). M o s t of these find-spots represent
nor the subtle tonality of limestone, andesite cannot achieve
secondary deposition, but the general reliability of
brilliant highlights; even shadows lose their sharpness against
find-spots
reflected in the other architectural elements argues f o r their
the dull blackness of the stone. T h e large, gritty crystals and
general value here. If the situation were the opposite, that is,
perpendicular planes of cleavage make it ill-suited to the
with
curved surfaces, subtle modelling, and sharp, linear detail of
find-spots
predominantly in the east, an argument in
favour of metopes across only the façade w o u l d be viable; it
relief sculpture. Instead, the physical properties of the stone
is impossible, however, to imagine decorated metopes across
favour broad, flattish relief with bold distinctions between the
only the back side of the building. It makes best sense that the
raised sculpture and background; the larger and simpler the
sculptured metopes decorated both ends and that w e have half
image, the more effectively it could be b o t h rendered and
of them. This rate of survival is far l o w e r than that for the
perceived. T h e sculptors at Assos blocked
decorated epistyle and, in fact, is l o w e r than the survival rate
roughly w i t h hammer, point, and flat chisel, but they had to
out the relief
f o r almost every other course. H o w e v e r , even fewer plain
rely heavily on abrasives to shape and burnish the rough crys-
metopes survive, and there are not many triglyphs, either. A s
tals; w e see this process b y comparing the finished relief to the
the smallest blocks f r o m the temple, the metopes and triglyphs
unfinished relief of butting bulls ( A 1 4 , A 1 5 ; Pis. 80-1). In
were the most easily pillaged. T h e point is, that if in fact w e
general, the isolation of the figures and their rounded contours
lack at least half the decorated metopes, then in coming to
most closely resemble archaic relief in materials other than
terms with their iconography, w e have freedom to consider
stone, such as bronze repoussé or terracotta relief. Despite
larger compositions combining t w o or three metopes to form
the authority of historical development over material in the
an extended sequence, as can be found, e.g., on the Temple of
emergence of style, 1 2 there remains something in the nature of
A p o l l o at Thermon, the Monopteros and the Athenian Treas-
these images that seems more moulded than sculpted, an im-
u r y at Delphi, the first and second Heraions at Foce del Sele,
pression created in part b y the material that looks (and in some sense was) as much hammered and rubbed as it was carved.
and Temple F at Selinous. T h e f o l l o w i n g comments on material and technique, com-
Sculptors carved most of the reliefs in one major plane angled
position, and style, apply to the sculpture in general and are
slightly outward f r o m bottom to top (see especially A 3 and
intended to set the context for the more detailed discussion of
M 7 ; Pis. 9 8 - i o o a - c , 105b). H o w e v e r , the front plane does not
the individual reliefs.
have the characteristic flatness of much archaic relief sculpture in stone. In some areas, the surface projects substantially (up to
Material
and technique
of
carving
0.085 m.), but the visual emphasis remains on the contours, w h i c h are treated in t w o w a y s indicative of shallower archaic
With the exception of one metope ( M i o ; here argued to be a
relief sculpture. A r o u n d the profiles of the human faces, the
repair; Pis. 1 ioa-b), the designer chose to execute the sculpture
sculptors cut the relief sharply perpendicular to the back-
in the same indigenous purplish-black andesite used f o r the rest
ground plane (e.g., centaur on A48, head of Herakles on A 3 ,
of the structure. T h e choice was economical and, to a certain
symposiasts of A 4 , Pis. 97, 100a, 102a). F o r other areas of the
extent, necessary. Because the epistyle forms a continuous
human or animal bodies, the relief curves steeply off the back-
structural band around the building that physically supports
ground plane (e.g., the backs of animals, including lions, bulls,
and visually unifies the entablature, using the same material f o r
and centaurs, Pis. 80-97; r h e l e g s
the entire course creates continuity both within the course
ioob; or, the bodies of the symposiasts, Pis. 101-2). T h e latter
(which was only partially decorated) and within the entire
technique creates an effect reminiscent of terracotta relief writ
building. 1 0 Such continuity of material is of some importance
large, w h i c h is not surprising. Large-scale terracotta reliefs
Using a finer material such as marble for architectural sculpture in Doric buildings did not, in any case, become widespread until the end of the sixth century (e.g., Alkmeonid Temple of Apollo at Delphi, Old Athena Temple at Athens, the temples of Apollo and Aphaia II at Aegina, Apollo at Eretria, Athena at Karthaia);
the earlier Η-Temple in Athens, with its marble appliqué felines and gorgon, is an exception. For specific buildings, see Bookidis 1967.
10
11 12
the fleeing Nereids, PI.
Pace Langlotz 197$, p. 120. Sec 'Techniques of Construction', p. 30. Finster-Hotz 1984, pp. 7-9.
155 T H E
SCULPTURE
were important in the region and certain similarities of icono-
T h e designer favoured large-scale images with minimal overlap-
graphie expression (discussed below) indicate they served as
ping, isolated against a broad background. M o s t of the com-
one of the models for the sculptors at Assos. 1 3 F o r internal
positions have a strongly architectonic structure consisting of
features, the sculptors made more attempts to model surfaces
austere geometric arrangements, such as the interlocking tri-
and render anatomical details than first meet the eye (for
angles formed by the legs of the lions and doe o n A i o . Other
example, the shoulder muscles and taut flanks of the bulls on
compositions rely on repeated parallel figures associated by
relief A 1 4 , the modelling of muscles on the left arm of the
simple p r o x i m i t y — o n e centaur after the next, one male facing
centaur on relief A48, or the tendons in the forelegs of the
another, one figure chasing another. Stiff, emphatic gestures
lions o n relief A i o ) . Such efforts w o u l d have given the essen-
u n i f y the compositions and give character t o the scenes.
tially flat images a slightly greater plasticity in the raking light
Some of the compositions are cleverly interwoven (especially
that fell on the reliefs in situ. Paint w o u l d have helped to define
Herakles and Triton on A 3 , or the symposiasts on A 4 ) with
the main compositional elements and must have completed
monumental, overlapping, reclining figures and small-scale an-
roughly outlined or uncarved attributes, for example Herakles'
cillary figures combined to fill the full length and height of the
arrows on A 5 or the centaurs' clubs on A 5 - A 8 .
field. The principle of isocephaly is not, however, enforced rigorously throughout the reliefs. T h e little lion on A n falls
Composition,
primarily
of reliefs
on the
short; some of the attacking lions do not rise to the full height of
epistyle
the field (for example the lions on A 1 2 or A 1 3 ) ; the sphinxes'
The shape of the epistyle governed the design of both the indi-
bodies, even w i t h their tails, fill only half the available height.
vidual reliefs and the overall programme. T h e field presented
N o n e of the compositions exceeds its architectural frame. 1 6
several peculiar difficulties. First, each block carried not only the
T h e scale of figures is not consistent. The sphinxes, bulls, and
epistyle's upper taenia but also the traditional regulae. T h e latter
certain lions ( A 1 - A 2 , A 1 4 - A 1 5 , A i o , and A 1 3 ) are signifi-
repeatedly intruded into the sculptured area. The designers
cantly larger than the lions and prey on the other reliefs (A9,
eliminated the guttae and reduced the height of the regulae to
A n , and A 1 2 ) . T h e symposion and tritonomachy (A3, A4)
help lessen the tension between architecture and ornament.
have large-scale protagonists, but on the reliefs of the centaur-
Second, unlike other sculptured friezes, the epistyle had to
omachy ( A 5), both Herakles and the centaurs are carved on a
serve the primary structural function of spanning the columns,
much smaller scale. T h e differences suggest an inexperience
with the length of each block determined b y its position on the
that the designer surely must have felt in adapting (as w e shall
building. Since the designer chose to design each block as a self-
see) images f r o m other contexts to suit the peculiar field of the
contained unit (whether or not it formed part of a series), each
entablature. T h e metopes, too, reflect a certain lack of practice
composition had to be tailored to fit a long narrow field that
at making images fit an architectural frame. The right runner on
could differ in length by as much as o. 5 ο m. N o t surprisingly, the
M 2 has lost part of his hand to the overlapping edge of the
elongated sphinxes and lions resemble animals w h o s e trunks
triglyph, and the fleeing figure on M i seems squashed into the
have been stretched to fill the registers of Corinthian and Wild
right side of the relief.
G o a t pottery or the borders of Klazomenian
sarcophagi. 1 4
Third, as the uninterrupted horizontal course in the entablature,
Figurai
the epistyle provided no architectural means of terminating a
style
composition or subject mid course, especially once the decor-
Clearly, several hands were at w o r k on the sculpture of
ation was carried partially along the flanks. This peculiarity may
the temple.
account f o r the closed composition of many reliefs, as well as the
several reliefs, but also occasionally
repetition of scenes (in matching reliefs such as A i and A 2 , or
f r o m another o n the same block. Nevertheless, the general
A 1 4 and Α 1 5 ) and certain motifs, such as the leaping lion, the
style of the figures has fairly consistent ties w i t h northeast
galloping centaur, or the fleeing Nereid. Once
the
patrons
and
designer(s)
Idiosyncrasies
of
style
not
only
separate
distinguish one
animal
G r e e k art. T h e well-preserved, large-scale symposiasts demhad
the
onstrate the style most effectively (A4, Pis.
fill
Their gently rounded bodies appear poured into position,
field.15
the heads settle into the V-shaped saddle created b y the shoul-
selected
subjects, the designer had to adapt them not only to the b l o c k but also to cover large sections of the chosen
ioi-io2a-c).17
ders, and the torsos curve into gently swelling hips. T h e men 13 e.g., especially horses on a revetment in Paris (Akerström 1966, pl. 16.2); those from Larisa on the Hermos (Akerström 1966, pis. 22-3); or several figures and animals on revetments from Sardis (Akerström 1966, pis. 38-43). See also Ramage 1978; Hostetter 1994. 14 e.g., Corinthian (R. Cook 1997, pp. 54-7, pl. 11B; CorVP pis. 59.2, 77.1, 102.2, 103.2); Wild Goat (Walter-Karydi 1970, pis. 1-3; R. Cook 1997, pp. 111-19, pl. 30B; Cook and Dupont 1998, pp. 39-40); Klazomenian sarcophagi (R. Cook 1981, pis. 5, 30.2, 31.1). 15 Decorative potential of archaic East Greek friezes: Ridgway 1966, pp. 188-95; Ridgway 1993, pp. 383-5.
are not completely devoid of b o n y structure and muscular articulation (note the biceps of the first and second symposiasts and Herakles' calves on A3); only the last symposiast
Borders and closed imagery in architectural sculpture: Hurwit 1977. Other discussions of style: Finster-Hotz 1984, pp. 107-19; Langlotz 1975, pp. 119-20; C. M. Robertson 1975, pp. 81-2. For East Greek figurai style reflected in painting, and its connections with Anatolia and the West, sec Lemos 2000. 16
17
132
THE
SCULPTURE
approximates the voluptuousness of Ionian monumental recliners. l s The central two symposiasts' heads have ovoid crowns, and their sharply pointed noses emerge smoothly from the receding profile of their low foreheads in a manner particular to northeast Greece. 1 9 A l s o indigenous are the large almond-shaped eyes (left as flat raised surfaces), the slight overbite, and the puckered lips that fail to join at the corners. 20 Large ears, joined inorganically to the head, serve to mask the juncture between beard, front-curls, and the bundle of hair at the nape of the neck. A l l of these features indicate local northeastern Greek sculptors at work. The variations in hairstyles reflect the hands of individual sculptors, the character of certain figures, or the particularities of a borrowed source. All human and anthropomorphic figures have a thick-raised band above the forehead that is meant to approximate front curls. Behind, the hair smoothly covers the crown of the head and is gathered at the back as if tied with a fillet. Most of the men wear their hair neatly bundled at the nape of the neck, which could represent short curls or longer hair rolled up in a fillet.21 The hairdo owes nothing to the swept-back coiffures of Ionian men, but it is at home elsewhere in the Greek world from the middle of the sixth century and especially the last quarter. 22 The men and centaurs sport thick, pointed beards that do not turn downward at the point in the Anatolian manner (but they do have shaved upper lips). 23 Although the relief is damaged in this area, the servant b o y on A 4 appears to have the close-cropped
18 e.g., reclining figure from the Genelaos dedication (Walter-Karydi 1985, pp. 91-104, pi. 27.1; Freyer-Schauenburg 1974, nos. 63, 116-23, p' s · 51—3); recliner (=70) from Samos (Freyer-Schauenburg 1974, nos. 70, 148-9, pl. 58); reclining figures from Didyma, inv. S105-S106 (Tuchelt 1976, pp. 56-60, figs. 1-9). 19 Langlotz 1975, pi. 34, and pp. 119-20 for similarity of the profiles to images on coins from Kyzikos and Mcthymna. Compare also the female figures on the left side of the main panel of the Polyxena sarcophagus: Sevinç 1996, fig. 10. Note head of a kore from Kyzikos, Berlin, Staatliche Museen 1851 (Bliimel 1963, no. 31, figs. 85-6); Didyma kouros, Berlin, Staatliche Museen 1710 (Bliimel 1963, no. 60, figs. 171-3, 176). A comparison with the figure style of Etruscan wall painting cannot be avoided; see especially man with a cup on the rear wall of the Tomb of the Baron; Steingräber 1985, pis. 27-9. 20 Terracotta figurines from Assos follow the same conventions; Langlotz 1975, pi. 24.5-9. Compare also terracotta relief from Larisa; Langlotz 1975, pi. 18.7. 21 For short curls in relief sculpture, note youth on grave stele, New York, Metropolitan Museum of Art 11.185 (Richter 1961, pp. 27-9, no. 37, fig. 190) or New York, Metropolitan Museum of Art 42.11.36 (Richter 1961, pp. 35-6, no. 52, fig· n j ) · free-standing sculpture, note, e.g., kouroi in Richter 1970, figs. 393-4, 402-3, 411-12, 413-14, 489. For a more summary treatment of the hair in a fashion similar to the Assos males, note the head in the Fauvel Collection, Paris, Louvre 2718 (Langlotz 1975, pi. 41.8). For the effect of hair rolled around a fillet, compare kouros from Ptoon, Athens National Museum no. 20 (Richter 1970, p. 134, figs. 455-7) or Berlin Staatliche Museen no. 536 (Richter 1970, p. 141, figs. 507-8). 22 Archaic hair in general: Ridgway 1993, pp. 67-8, 77-9, 84. 2"' For the Anatolian style beard, note the charioteer from Larisa frieze VIII, no. 49 (Langlotz 1975, pi. 63.2); so-called Lydian 'dandy' from Sardis (Ramage 1978, pp. 15-16, no. 2, frontispiece, fig. 33; Hostetter 1994, fig. 14.1); 'Bluebeard,' pcdimental group, Athens Akropolis Museum 35.36 (Brouskari 1974, pp. 39-40, fig· 55); o r the men on two Aeolian amphorae, one from Myrina, Paris Louvre B561, and another from Pitane, Istanbul Archaeological Museum (Akurgal 1962, p. 378, pi. 103, figs. 30, 32). No moustache: Lydian 'dandy' and Aeolian amphorae noted above; also older charioteer, banqueter, or Herakles on the terracotta panels from Larisa on the Hermos (Akerström 1966, pis. 22, 25.1, 26.2, 27.2, 29.2-3).
haircut favoured for servants and athletes. 24 Most of the centaurs wear their hair and beards longer and shaggier than the men, although on A8, the centaurs' hairstyle closely matches the human type. Women and sphinxes wear their hair gathered in a fillet and hanging in a mass d o w n the back (Nereids on A3, sphinxes on Α ι , A2, M3). Each sphinx (and Pholos) has a thick braid running from the ear down to the shoulders, and one sphinx wears horizontally layered tresses. This early hairstyle stands in sharp contrast to the shorter male cuts and probably reflects the style of the image's source. 25 While clothes do not figure prominently in the sculptures, there are more dressed figures than first meet the eye. Broad areas of painted colour would have made all the difference. The undefined lower torso and blurred inner contours of the first symposiast's legs on relief A 4 suggest the long, form-fitting garments characteristic of Cypriote and East Greek reclining figures.26 O n relief A3, the Nereids wear long, foldless chitons that cling in a diaphanous manner to reveal their legs. The chitons are belted at the waist to overhang in a schematic kolpos with a rectangular window, centred regardless of whether the figure faces frontally (left-hand Nereid) or stands in profile (the next three Nereids). This form of kolpos shows up in sculpture and painting of northeast Greece, for example, in korai f r o m C h i o s and Erythrai, a columna
caelata
from
K y z i k o s , and vase painting from Klazomenai, where the garment is also depicted with few folds. 2 7 The manner in which the skirts cling to the figures' legs, blurring the inner contours, also has strong regional parallels in the diaphanous skirts worn by the dancing maidens on a relief from Karaköy and, later, on the spectacular Polyxena sarcophagus. 2S Europe on metope M5
24 For mid-sixth century examples of the short cut, note the marble head of a bearded man, Berlin, Staatliche Museen 308 (Bliimel 1963, no. 6; C. M. Robertson 1975, pi. 25b), boxer grave stele, Kerameikos Museum (C. M. Robertson 1975, pi. 30b; Boardman 1978, fig. 233), or the figures on an Attic black-figure tomb plaque from Spata attributed to I.ydos, Athens National Museum, Vlastos Collection (C. M. Robertson 1975, pi. 37b); and slightly later, the painted wooden plaque from the cave of the nymphs at Pitsa, Athens National Museum 16464 (C. M. Robertson 1975, pi. 34d). The style becomes typical at the end of the sixth century, e.g., the boys playing ball on a kouros base, Athens National Museum 3476 (Boardman 1978, fig. 242). ^ The style belongs to the seventh century (e.g., ivory sphinx from Perachora, Athens National Museum 16519: C. M. Robertson 1975, pi. 7d), but it continues to the end of the sixth century for sphinxes on shieldband reliefs (Kunze 1950, Form XVII, pi. 44). 26 Fehr (1971, n. 727, nos. 492-4) makes the same connection. Sartiaux (1915, p. 29) suggests the men are nude to the waist, but there is no evidence for a dropped himation. For East Greek clothing: Fehr 1971, pp. 46, 204, n. 292. For clothing worn by symposiasts: Dentzer 1982, p. 146; Finster-Hotz 1984, pp. 56-61. Compare clothed recliners in stone (Dentzer 1982, S21-S23; Langlotz 1975, pi. 49.4-5); in terracotta (Fehr 1971, nos. 496-505); in bronze (Fehr 1971, nos. 526-33); and, from Cyprus (Dentzer 1982, pp.157-61, S1-S8, figs. 123-5). 27 Pedley (1982, pp. 183-91) associates a group of monumental korai having this feature with a Chian workshop; Karakasi (2003, pp. 100-1, pis. 54b, 93c, 94) supports a Chian origin for the feature, which then spreads to Paros and Kyrene. For the detail in painting, see Klazomenian black-figure of the Tübingen group: CVA British Museum 8, pi. 594.4; CVA Tübingen 1, pis. 13-15; Cook and Dupont 1998, pp. 95-8. Note also Caeretan hydria, Louvre E702: Hemelrijk 1984, pp. 10-12, 81 and n. 91, no. 3, pi. 31a (although male). 25 Relief from Karaköy near Didyma: Pryce 1928, pp. 116-17, B285, pi. 17; Tuchelt 1970, pp. 111-14, K86, pis. 79-81. Polyxena sarchophagus: Sevinç 1996, pis. 10-13.
THE
SCULPTURE
*33
wears a similar garment, although only the l o w e r hem survives
SCULPTURED
EPISTYLE
today. T h e small servant on relief A 4 is dressed in a short tunic, and the quarrelling warrior on metope M8 wears one as well. T h e dress on metopes M i and M i o is harder to make out, but I argue that the blurred inner contours of the legs on the right figure in metope M i indicate that this runner wears a hiked-up chiton. T h e right figure on metope M i o is clearly clothed in a more voluminous chiton, and there is some suggestion that the central figure wears a himation. The details are discussed in the sections o n each relief. T h e finest of the animal representations, including the bulls on A 1 4 , the lions on A i o , or the boar on A 1 3 , have taut, vigorous contours and a sense of internal structure (Pis. 80, 84-6, 89, 90a). O n the weaker reliefs, however, the animals degenerate into ineffectual, rubbery forms w i t h soft contours; here Martin Robertson's adjective 'tame' seems painfully fair. 29 The sex of the animals, even in the most accomplished reliefs, is not always fully represented. Lionesses appear to be those felines w i t h o u t genitalia; the difference seems intentional, at least on relief A i o . Curiously, boars and bulls have pizzles but not testicles on reliefs A 1 3 , M4, and A 1 4 , and testicles but not pizzle on relief A 1 4 . Certainly bulls and boars, rather than oxen and sows, are intended. The centaurs, too, are not unif o r m l y endowed. We are left to w o n d e r h o w much detail may have been added in paint. T h e several lions on the temple f o r m a distinctive group, and while they do not belong to a particular regional type f o u n d in sculpture, they seem, as will be argued below, most at home in East Greece and western Anatolia. The s t o c k y boar w i t h interrupted spinal bristles on A 1 3 fits best within the East G r e e k tradition as well. T h e f o l l o w i n g sections treat the reliefs according to subject, starting w i t h heraldic monsters and ending with heroes. Each section begins with a description of the relief(s) and includes
Reliefs
Αι
and Ai:
confronted
sphinxes
A l t h o u g h the Temple of A t h e n a at Assos lacked the most prominent
female
apotropaion,
the
gorgon,
it was
well
equipped w i t h the second most prominent, the sphinx, four of which appear on the epistyle. Reliefs A i and A 2 both bear confronted, recumbent sphinxes s h o w n in profile, w i t h inner forepaws set heraldically o n a diminutive floral motif; their outer forelegs rest flat on the ground, while their hindquarters are set in a crouch (Pis. 76-9; Figs. 67-8). Each sphinx has an upwardly curled w i n g decorated w i t h a reverse-curved rib. B o t h w i n g and breast are smooth, but details could have been brightly highlighted in paint, with feathers decorating the area behind the w i n g rib and scales adorning the breast. 30 The S-curved tails ending in tufted plumes complete the symmetrical composition. T h e sphinxes have large facial features, with deeply outlined, triangularly shaped eyes, and ears formed by flat raised surfaces. T h e y wear their hair long d o w n the back and framed b y a raised braid emerging from the schematic band of hair curls across the forehead, as does Pholos o n relief A 5 and the Nereids on relief A 3 . 3 1 T h e floral object o n w h i c h each sphinx rests a p a w consists of a tapering shaft surmounted b y vertically springing volutes flanking a triangular crown. O n A 2 , the spiral of the volute is outlined by thinly incised guidelines for painting. T h e centrepiece looks rather more like the so-called Sacred Tree (sometimes called Tree-of-Life) than it does an Aeolic column, for it has an organically curving stalk and lacks the pendant girdle of leaves. 32 M o r e elaborate versions, themselves stylizations of the palm tree, appear repeatedly in similar heraldic compositions derived f r o m N e a r Eastern prototypes. 3 3
stylistic comparison with other reliefs w h e n an association seems apparent. Here the purpose is not so much to distinguish artistic personalities, but to sort out the history of construction and repair so clearly demonstrated in the other architectural members. A proposed reconstruction for fragmentary reliefs is f o l l o w e d by an examination of iconographie
comparanda,
aimed at locating the artistic influences at w o r k . Lastly, an exploration of possible meanings sets each image within the context of G r e e k sacred architecture in general and the larger sculptural programme of the temple in particular. These ideas are brought together in a final section on
'Iconographie
T h e m e s ' and in Chapter 9, 'Significance of the Temple'. A reconstruction of the sculptures on the building is presented in C h a p t e r 8, 'Arrangement of the Sculpture'. T h e present condition and architectural features of the sculptured blocks are described in A p p e n d i x I.
29
C. M. Robertson 1975, p. 81.
30 Compare painted cast of New York, Metropolitan Museum of Art 11.185, Richter 1961, no. 37, fig. 103b. 3! Note a similarly articulated lock on the Kyzikos charioteer, Istanbul 23·5· See also bull on the Europe metope from Temple Y at Selinous: Giuliani 1979, pi. 10; Tusa 1983, pis. 24, 26; Marconi 2007, fig. 37. For East Greek bulls note: Wild Goat oinochoe (Walter 1968, no. 261, pi. 127); Klazomenian sarcophagi (R. Cook 1981, p. 16, no. C2A, pi. 10; C2, pi. 11.1); Chian chalices (Lemos 1991, no. 643, pis. 81-3, as well as nos. 441-7, pl. 60).
62 In painted pottery, see Buchholz 1993, with references. In architectural contexts, examples include: a wall painting from Residence K, Room 12, at Khorsabad (Frankfort 1996, figs. 181, 196); an orthostate relief from Carchemish (Frankfort 1996, fig. 353b); an orthostate relief from Karatepe (Frankfort 1996, fig. 362). Other examples show bulls in procession or flanking an entrance. Artistic representations include: a Hittite ivory plaque from Megiddo, probably the side of a casket (Frankfort 1996, fig. 274); a Cypriote silver bowl from Kourion (New York, Metropolitan Museum of Art 74.51.4554) and especially the gold bowl from Rash Shamra (Markoe 1985, pp. 39, 256 and comp, χ; von Bothmer 1984, p. 7). Paired bulls also have a place in the architecture of Bronze Age Greece, e.g., decorating the entrance of the so-called Treasury of Atreus (exact disposition uncertain), London British Museum A56, A57 (Pryce 1928, pp. 27-30, figs. 25-6). Additional examples of bulls in relief in Near Eastern architecture include orthostate reliefs from Carchemish (Frankfort 1996, fig. 353B); the glazed brick monumental wall and Ishtar Gate from Babylon (Frankfort 1996, fig. 233); the walls of Sargon IPs palace at Khorsabad (Frankfort 1996, figs. 181, 196). As capitals: Audience Hall of Darius and Xerxes at Persepolis (Frankfort 1996, figs. 424-5). As winged guardian monsters with human heads: Gate A to the citadel at Khorsabad (Frankfort 1996, figs. 179-80); Throne Room at Khorsabad (Frankfort 1996, figs. 168, 178); gates of Carchemish (Frankfort 1996, fig. 348); gate at Persepolis (Frankfort 1996, fig. 415). 63 Examples include: bulls from Ephesos, London, British Museum B141-4 (Pryce 1928, pp. 64-5, figs. 72-5; Muss 1994, p. 16, figs. 22-3); bull from the podium frieze of Building G at Xanthos, London, British Museum B297 (Pryce 1928, p. 137, pi. 28; Jenkins 2006, pp. 168-72); sixth-century revetment from Sardis with the hindquarters of a walking bull (Akerström 1966, p. 70, no. 3, pi. 38.2 (now lost)); terracotta sima, provenance unknown (Akerström 1966, fig. 66.2).
THE
SCULPTURE
'H
I
Η
.523
H
H
A14
.372 •
.814
LM ,040N
.350-
-2.510-
«I—I—I—I—I—I—l· .5
1
Η—I—I—I—I—I—I—l· 1.5 2
Η—I
1 1 2.5
1
1
1—I 3m
FIGURE 69. A14: Two bulls locking horns.
A15 -.882-
H15H
H
.522-
I — . 2 5 0 — Η .045
I
.54?-
ti)—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—h .5 1
1.5
H
1—I—I—I—I 1 l· 2.5 2
FIGURE 70. A15: Two bulls locking horns.
3m
THE
140
SCULPTURE
same kind of developed regional tradition as witnessed f o r
whole, however, the bovine connections are not especially
confronted sphinxes, but the Lydian connection is intriguing.
relevant, and the bull has stronger cultic associations with
T h e image of confronted bulls on a Lydian Wild G o a t krater
Artemis, Poseidon, Hera, D i o n y s o s , or Zeus than it does
matches the demeanour and scale (in relation to visual field) of
with Athena. 7 1
our bulls, although the beasts do not lock horns. 6 4 Even closer
Bulls need not play an explicitly cultic role in the worship of
to the Assos reliefs is a contemporary composition by Lydos
Athena in order for the scenes on reliefs A 1 4 and A 1 5 to
on an A t t i c black-figure column krater, in w h i c h t w o bulls
possess significance beyond the purely decorative. The bull
square off, heads lowered and horns locked. 6 5 A specific con-
has
nection with Assos via Sardis is suggestive even if not suscep-
p o w e r i m a g e r y — t h e bull was the best in the herd. 7 2 A s the
important
connotations
within
the
array
of
archaic
tible of pi'oof. T h e Lydian Wild G o a t krater, the imagery of the
domesticated counterpart of the wild lion and boar, the bull,
Attic vase painter, L y d o s ('the Lydian'), and the tantalizingly
too, can rage b e y o n d control and challenge the bravest her-
fragmentary and n o w - l o s t terracotta revetment f r o m Sardis,
o e s — H e r a k l e s , Theseus, and Jason. 7 3 Unlike the lion and boar,
point toward a special regional interest in the theme of sparring
however, the bull prospers under human management. B y pull-
bulls that could have made its w a y to
ing the plough, the bull or ox becomes the beast most intim-
Assos.
ately connected to the earth and its fertility. Even
more
Significance
importantly, the bull, as the chief sacrificial victim, is distin-
Since the image of the bull forms a significant part of the
guished absolutely f r o m the wild beasts and monsters. 7 4 A bull
temple's iconographie programme, scholars have looked for
was the most precious and p o w e r f u l live offering the Greeks
an appropriate
Thacher
could make to a god, and its image made a splendid votive
connection
with
Athena. Joseph
C l a r k e first proposed that bulls might have a special meaning
offering as well. 7 5 C o u l d there have been, f o r the Assians, a
for the cult of 'Trojan and Assian A t h e n a ' , because the c o w
special resonance between the p o w e r f u l butting bulls repre-
figured
sented on the stone frieze and bovine victims led to sacrifice, 7 6
prominently in the foundation m y t h of Troy. 6 6 Felix
Sartiaux also notes the role of the c o w in festivals of A t h e n a at
as there certainly was a century later for the viewers of the
Ilion, Eleusis, and Ephesos (considering cows, w e might also
Parthenon frieze? Later, boukrania and boukephalia become
add the Panathenaia in Athens); he concedes that the bull
the architectural shorthand for the idea that is spelled out in full
p r o b a b l y had cultic significance, but he finds the image of
on the Parthenon. The bulls at Assos are not sacrificial victims,
confronted bulls on the temple to be decorative. 6 7 Fernande
but their scale, power, and rage underscore the qualities that
Hölscher explores a specific connection with the goddess via
make the bull the most precious victim. In this connection, w e
her Andrian epithet, Tauropolos, determining that bulls, like
may see the generative idea of linking architectural representa-
lions, stand in close connection with the goddess. 6 8 Ursula
tions of sacrificial animals and the victims themselves.
Finster-Hotz
suggests
an indigenous
tradition
connecting
Important as they are, the qualities w e have just outlined
bulls and goddesses in Asia Minor. 6 9 It is some measure of
could all be communicated by the more typical scene of bulls
the affiliation between the bull and A t h e n a at Assos that Late
alone, in procession, or heraldically paired. T h e u n c o m m o n
Classical/Early Hellenistic coins have on the obverse the head
motif of sparring, raging bulls privileges another k e y c o m p o n -
of A t h e n a and on the reverse a bull's head, facing. 7 0 O n the
ent of the bull's significance: procreative fertility. 7 7 T h e bull
64 From Rhodes, Istanbul, Archaeological Museum 2894: Mendel 1914, p. 6; also Sartiaux 1915, p. 57; Akurgal 1961, p. 152, figs. 102-3; Buchholz 1993, p. 91, fig. i.b. 65 R. Guy in Leipen 1984, no. 4, pp. 7-8; see also Buchholz 1993, p. 100, fig. 3.d. Finster-Hotz (1984, pp. 80-9) has gathered other examples in Greek art that demonstrate the sporadic but not unprecedented appearance of the confronted bull motif. In most instances, bulls face but do not lock horns. To her list, add transitional Corinthian olpe, Syracuse, Museo Archeologico Paolo Orsi 13580 (CorVP 48, A i , pl. 15); possibly a krater by Sophilos, New York, Metropolitan Museum of Art 1977.11.2 (von Bothmer 1986, pp. 108-9, fig· 2)ί East Greek oinochoe from Saqqara, Cairo, Egyptian Museum 26135 (Boardman 1998, fig. 305); Eretrian hydria, Reading, Ure Museum of Greek Archaeology 51.1.2 (Boardman 1998, fig. 460). For Cypriote examples, see Karageorghis 1965. 66 Clarke 1898, p. 283. Foundation story in Apollodoros, Library 3.12.3, and
obverse head of Athena and a reverse showing two bull protomes facing off (Wroth 1964b, pp. 110-11, pi. 23.2,5).
Tzetes, Commentary
on the Alexandra
of Lykophron
29.
Sartiaux 1915, pp. 57-8. 68 For examples in art where Athena and bulls are combined: Hölscher 1972, pp. 93-4. Note also the several Attic images gathered by Hölscher (1997, pis. 18-19) suggestive of sacrificial victims. 69 Finster-Hotz 1984, p. 89. 70 Assian coins with a facing bull's head: Babelon II.2, cols. 1269-72, nos. 2305, 2307-13, pl. 163; or Wroth 1964a, pp. 36-7, pl. 7.10-12. For a pertinent variation, note also the late Classical and early Hellenistic coinage of Pergamon, with an 67
71 For the distribution of cattle representations and dedications at sanctuaries of Olympian divinities: Bevan 1986, pp. 82-99, 3 72 Homer, Iliad 2.480-3. 73 Herakles subduing the Cretan bull: LIMC 5 (1990), pp. 59-67, nos. 2306-413, s.v. 'Herakles', (L. Todisco); Schefold 1992, pp. 109-11. Theseus fighting the Marathonian bull: Schefold 1992, pp. 175-83; LIMC 7 (1994), pp. 936-9, nos. 176-216, s.v. 'Theseus', (J. Neils). Jason yoking fire-breathing, bronze-hoofed bulls: Apollonios of Rhodes, Argonautica 3.1278-339; LIMC 5 (1990), pp. 629, 631-2, nos. 15-17, s.v. 'Iason', (J. Neils). 74 Bull sacrifice: RE 2nd ser. Ill (1929) cols. 2512-15 s.v. 'Stier'. Although traditionally assumed that only cows were offered to Athena, Hölscher (1997, pp. 155-6, pis. 18-19) c i t e s Attic imagery of Athena accompanied by bulls, most likely offerings, discussed in the context of bull sacrifice on the Athena Nike parapet. 75 Note, e.g., silver bull at Delphi (Amandry 1977, pp. 273-93); Eretrian bull at Olympia (Bol 1978, no. 134, pp. 31,112, pis. 24-6); cow from the Heraion at Samos (Freyer-Schauenburg 1974, no. 85, pi. 71). Bronze bulls mentioned by Pausanias include the Kerkyran bull at Delphi (10.9.3), t ' l e bull on the Athenian Akropolis (1.24.2), and another in the Eleusinion (1.14.4). 76 Compare Homer, Iliad 20.403-6. 77 Fertility of the bull in the ancient world: Conrad 1957; Rice 1998.
THE
SCULPTURE
*33
combat, a duel between equals, has a specific meaning funda-
doe lies prostrate. Overall, the series of animal combats pro-
mentally different f r o m the fatal encounters of lions and prey.
duces a richer visual impression than the m o n o t o n o u s row of
T h e bulls are locked in violent competition, not for survival in
galloping centaurs (described below).
the food-chain but for possession of the heifer and leadership
T h e lions on each relief are of the same distinctive type.
of the herd. T o the victor goes the right of progeny. This idea is
Their small, heart-shaped faces have broad j o w l s and widely
made explicit in certain painted versions in w h i c h the bulls
spaced, diagonally slanting eyes. 8 3 Flat, pointed ears emerge
ejaculate as they lock horns. 7 S In G r e e k myth this p o w e r f u l
behind a single narrow strip of d o u g h y locks that form the
s y m b o l of sexual energy becomes Zeus' guise w h e n abducting
stylized ruff of the mane. O n l y the little lion on A n has the
Europe and the object of Pasiphae's unnatural lust; it is not
more conventional hood-like mane. Their bodies are slender,
insignificant that Zeus turns Io into his cow. 7 9 A n d , in later
their chests shallow, and their necks just thick enough to avoid
literature, the image of the bulls' angry contest becomes a
confusion with the 'panther'. T h e y turn to face the viewer, like
metaphor for sexual passion and possession and a simile f o r
most architectural representations of lions attacking prey. The
men w h o fight over a woman. 8 0 A t its most basic, then, the
recently recovered fragments of lions on A i o s h o w the finest
scene at Assos represents the primal force of procreation,
style of carving: sharp incisions mark the ridge of the snout and
which, like all valued things, must be asserted. T h e bull's
the wrinkles around the muzzle, more deeply cut contours
p o t e n c y is strongly apotropaic, a talisman against sterility,
define the eyes and the locks of the mane, and a sharp ridge
w h i c h here protects the well-being of the polis. 81
indicates the border of the rib cage. T h e bodies are set out in broad, undifferentiated surfaces, but the tendons of the forelegs
Reliefs
Ay to A i j : lions savaging
and the b o n y structure of the paws reflect a concerted effort
prey
toward modelling the difficult stone.
Five reliefs from the epistyle portray lions savaging weaker
The lions do not clearly belong to a regional sculptural
animals, an ancient Mediterranean theme to w h i c h archaic
group, but they seem most at h o m e in western Asia Minor.
G r e e k artists brought new vigour and eloquence (Pis. 82-91;
Their bodies resemble the slender, flat-headed East G r e e k lions
Figs. 71-5). 8 2 A t Assos, the subject forms an essential part
found on W i l d G o a t and Fikellura pottery, on early K l a z o m e -
of the sculptural programme. Despite significant changes in
nian sarcophagi, and on certain late archaic reliefs. 8 4 More-
scale and composition f r o m reliefs A 9 , A n , and A 1 2 to reliefs
over, the shape of the lions' heads and the mildness of their
A i o and A 1 3 , the lion reliefs have a greater stylistic coherence
expressions recall the colossal lion's head waterspout from
than the series of centaurs (reliefs A 5 - A 8 ) . T h e attacking lions
Ephesos and the smaller terracotta examples f r o m Larisa. 85
(with the exception of those on A 1 3 ) aggressively leap upon or
Their short-fringed manes share something with the ruffs that
crush their prey, biting deeply into the flesh and tearing at the
frame the faces of Lydian archaic lions. 86 O n several of the
victims' flanks with their claws. Their hump-backed shoulders
Lydian lions, linear patterns indicate the rest of the mane; paint
taper into sleek, rubbery trunks ending in striding hindquarters
could have been used to communicate a similar effect on the
curiously detached f r o m the main action. O n e has the impres-
reliefs at Assos. H o w e v e r , the Assian lions, even those on
sion that the lions' bodies, like the sphinxes' on A i and A 2 ,
reliefs A i o and A 1 3 , have slender, rubbery bodies and rather
have been stretched to fill the required length of the
field.
A c r o s s the several reliefs, the lion motif becomes a stock convention that gives a u n i f y i n g rhythm to the compositions, but the sensitive rendering of the several types of prey compensates for the lapses in vigour of the repeated lions. Different stages of combat express the particular nature of each victim: the lion and violent boar face off; the startled stag is captured in flight; a bull and a deer are brought to the ground head-on; a helpless Buchholz 1993, p. 98, figs, zf and 3e (Cypriote), 3b (Attic Late Geometric). For the several connections of Zeus with the bull: Cook, Zeus I, pp. 430-718. 80 Battle of rival bulls: Virgil, Georgia 3.209-41. As a simile for the battle of Aeneas and Turnus: Aeneid 12.715-17. For Herakles and Acheloos battling over Deianeira: Sophokles, Women of Trachis 507-30; Ovid, Metamorphoses 9.46-8. Also Amykos and Polydeukes: Apollonios of Rhodes, Argonautica 2.88-9. For discussion of literary references to rival bulls, see Börner 1974; Briggs 1980, pp. 46-50; Thomas 1988, vol. 2, pp. 79-86. 81 For the imagery of bulls and the Evil Eye in the Tomb of the Bulls at Tarquinia: Holloway 1986, pp. 447-52. 82 In general: Hölscher 1972, pp. 76-7 (Assos); Müller 1978, pp. 42-9, 119-23, 167-80, and catalogue; Vermeule 1979, pp. 84-93; Markoe 1989; von Hoisten 2007. For Near Eastern connections: Erlenmeyer and Erlenmeyer 1953, pp. 53-67; Markoe 1985, p. 39; Markoe 1989, pp. 90-1, 103-9; von Hoisten 2007, pp. 30-45. 78
79
83 The feature can serve as an indication of date (Harrison 1965, pp. 33-5), but note that the seated lion on A n has horizontally set eyes and the lion on A13 has one horizontal and one slanted eye. 84 Stylistic analysis of archaic lions: Gabelmann 1965. Wild Goat-style lions: oinochoe, Athens, once Vlasto (Boardman 1998, fig. 286); oinochoe, St. Petersburg, Hermitage (Boardman 1998, fig. 285). Fikellura lions: London British Museum B118 (R. Cook 1933-4, pis. if, 2c), London British Museum B119 (R. Cook 1933-4, pi. 3b), Samos, Vathy Museum (R. Cook 1933-4, pi. 14a). Lions on Klazomcnian sarcophagi by the Borelli Painter: R. Cook 1981, pp. 8-13, nos. B3A, B5, B8, and B9, pis. 3.2, 4.3, 5.1-2, 7.1-2, 9.2; see also pp. 98-101 for discussion of the lion and 'panther'. See also Chian chalice from Naukratis, London, British Museum 1888.6-1.465 (Boardman 1998, fig. 317). Note certain Parian lions in relief, including: the lion in the pediment of a sarcophagus (Schilardi 1986); and the lion on the relief from the so-called Heroon of Archilochos on Paros (Kontoleon 1965, pp. 348-418, pis. 5-8; Hölscher 1972, pp. 31-6, no. 4, pi. 5.2; Clay 2004, p. 119, pi. 14). 85 Lion from Ephesos, London, British Museum B140: Pryce 1928, p. 64,fig.71; Gabelmann 1965, no. 132, pi. 27.3. Waterspouts from Larisa, Sima VIII: MertensHorn 1988, pp. 49-50, pl. 9b. 86 Compare the manes of archaic lions from Sardis: Hanfmann and Ramage 1978, nos. 26-9, figs. 102-17, and even no. 31, figs. 119-22, when viewed from the front. See also Ratté 1989b, pp. 379-93, especially no. 2 when viewed from the front. A recumbent lion like those found at Sardis was recently discovered in the vicinity of Assos (unpublished).
THE
142
I
1
SCULPTURE
I
1
J ΤΛ/SK
\ \
\/
IOJG>
ßy\
/
/
Η—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—Ϊ—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—h .5 1 1.5 2 2.5 FIGURE 71. A$>: Lioness bringing down a bull.
• (.84)
1 I
.433
1—1.062
1
.573
1
.733
1- . 2 0 0 H
.0501
.240—I
—ι—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I .5 1 1.5 2 2.5 3m FIGURE 72. Aio: Lion and lioness devouring a supine deer.
THE
SCULPTURE
*33
A11
delicate legs that differ f r o m the generally beefier form of
locks of its mane curve around a similar central tuft. The
East Greek/western Anatolian lions; the Assian pride is clearly
sculptor w h o carved A n
a local species.
A 1 3 as well. T h e head of the lion on A 9 is modelled with
and A 1 2 m a y have carved A i o and
slightly more depth; it is broader across the cranium, and the Sculptors
locks of the mane frame it more completely. T h e claws digging
Certain stylistic distinctions reflect the hands of different
into the bull's flesh are spread and pointed, in contrast to the
sculptors. F o r example, the small-scale lions on A n and A 1 2
blunt paws of the lions on A i o , Α ι ι, and A 1 2 . Such differences
clearly share the same style of squarish heads, p u d g y jowls,
suggest the w o r k of another sculptor.
w i d e crania, narrow ruffs of mane f r o m w h i c h the ears hardly protrude, and stiff forelegs with
finger-like
claws. A l t h o u g h
carved on a bolder scale, the lions on the n e w l y discovered
Reconstruction of the animal combats A l l the reliefs, as preserved, begin or end w i t h a complete
fragments of A i o possess similarly dull claws, blunt noses, and
animal. We may assume, therefore, that the fragmentary reliefs
whipping, S-curved tails. T h e head of the left lion on A 1 3 has
were
the same shape as the lions' heads on A i o , and the d o u g h y
are thus limited to either t w o lions attacking a victim from
similarly
self-contained.
The
possible
arrangements
THE
144
SCULPTURE
A12 Ι
.522
.052 M
.405 .75
.5
H—I—I—h 1
H—I
t 1 1.5
1
1 1
1—l·
2
H—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I 2.5 3m
FIGURE 74. A 1 2 : Lion bringing down a stag.
opposite sides, or t w o lions each attacking their o w n prey. F o r
as the lioness does against a deer on relief A n . This more
the latter, the pairs can either face one another to make a closed
detached composition was probably required to fill the length
composition, move in the same direction to f o r m a procession,
of the epistyle block. T h e surviving lion on the relief is carved
or move in opposite directions to create an outwardly facing
at the same scale as the left lion on A 1 3 (i.e., c.1.00 m. long;
composition. T h e demurely seated lion on Α ι 1 is a space-filler,
smaller than the lions of A i o but significantly larger than those
and there may have been others.
on A n and A 1 2 ) . F r o m the remains of the bull's back one sees
The surviving fragment of relief A 9 depicts one of the
that its hindquarters were at least partially upright. In this
oldest and most popular forms of lion-fighting in archaic
position, the restored bull, f r o m front hoof to tail, would
G r e e k art: a left-facing lioness attacks f r o m the front, leaping
occupy c.i.00 m. of the relief. A two-figured
onto a bull and forcing it to its knees (Pi. 82; Fig. 71). 8 7
with the single lion attacking the bull w o u l d be c. 1.55 m.
composition
T h e scene is atypical only in that the lioness does not use
long. Based on the position of the central régula,
her hind p a w to drive the collapsing bull's head to the ground,
half of the block survives. There is insufficient space for a
Boardman 1968, Scheme C, p. 123, and n. 12; von Hoisten 2007, Scheme A, pp. 14-18. For early painted examples, see Late Protocorinthian olpe, Villa Giulia 55400 (CorVP 27,5, pi. 7.1; von Hoisten 2007, no. Pc, pi. 1.3); Protocorinthian aryballos, Messinia 6680 (CorVP 24, D-i; Benson 1989, pi. 17.4; von Hoisten 2007, no. Pc4, pi. i.x); Late Protocorinthian kyathos from Ithaca (Stavros) (CorVP 34,2; Benson 1989, pi. 16.2; von Hoisten 2007, no. Pc6, pi. 1.2); Wild Goat oinochoe (Jacopi 1931, pp. 47-8, no. 13, fig. 19); Vari krater A, Athens, National Museum 16382 (Karouzou 1963, pp. 5-9, pi. A), which depicts a lion and a panther mauling a prostrate calf. For additional early examples, see also Shear 1914, p. 291.
if block A 9 belonged to the corner on the façade (see Chapter 8,
about
second set of lion and prey carved at the same scale, even 87
'Arrangement of the Sculpture'). A three-figured composition with the second lion either approaching or attacking f r o m the left creates a balanced composition and completes a relief c.2.50 m. long, w h i c h is about the same length if w e restored the blocks symmetrically around the central régula c.2.52-2.56 m.). T h e size of the block and the spacing of the
THE
Η
1—I
1
1 .5
*33
SCULPTURE
1—I—h
1.5
Η—I
1
1
1
1—l·
2.5
Η—I—I—I 3m
FIGURE γ y A13: T w o lions harassing a boar.
regulae indicate that the relief belongs o n the flank of the temple. R e n e w e d excavations in 1981 brought to light t w o adjoining
(Fig. 29). O n the now-complete relief, a lion (left) and a lioness (right) close over the supine carcass of a doe, turning t o face the viewer as they devour its soft underbelly. Predators and victim
fragments of a relief, A i o , w h i c h depicts t w o lions devouring
are locked together in an architectonic composition that uses
the supine carcass of a doe (Pis. 84-6; Fig. 72). 88 The new pieces
the long narrow field of the epistyle to full advantage. 8 9 The
join a third fragment preserving the hindquarters of a lion and
doe's t h r o w n - b a c k head and flattened b o d y echo the bold
the leg of a herbivore discovered by C l a r k e a century earlier.
horizontal trunks of the lions above. H e r splayed legs, together
A l l three fragments were uncovered directly west of the
with the f o r w a r d l y thrust forelegs of the lions, frame and
temple's foundation in or near the latest fortification wall
accentuate the lions' out-turned faces. The lions' symmetrical
88 The scale of the prey and lack of antlers might suggest an equid, but the shape of the ear and the delicacy of the legs suggest a doe. For attacks on equids, some in supine position, see von Hoisten 2007, pl. 15.
89 Compare a less successful adaptation of a similar scheme to a rectangular field on a tomb at Xanthos: Demargne 1974, Si, pp. 46-60, pis. 21.2-3, 22.
THE
146
SCULPTURE
stride and S-curved tails whipping between the legs close the
Excavations in the 1980s west of the temple also produced a
scene. The animals are carved in the largest scale on the temple;
small fragment with the head and forequarters of a lion crouch-
the size and spacing of the regulae indicate that the relief
ing left. It joins a large fragment with a lion and boar, A 1 3 ,
belongs on a façade.
discovered b y the first excavators in the late fortification wall
Clarke proposed that the fragmentary reliefs with lions savaging deer, A n
and A 1 2 , in which the imagery is consistent
west of the temple (Pis. 89-91; Fig. 75). O n the large fragment, a lion with all four paws planted firmly on the ground bites the
in scale and style, formed a single block (Pis. 83, 87-8; Figs.
rump of a boar. Ignoring this attack, the boar stands at bay
73-4). 9 0
Relief Α 1 2 ends at the right side with the fairly com-
facing right, its forelegs stiffly thrust forward and snout held
mon scene of a lion leaping on to the back of a fleeing stag. 91
close to the ground. A l o n g the break on the right side, a clear
The rest of the block must be restored with a second set of lion
contour line and slight indication of relief signal the position of
and prey. Completing the lion on relief A 1 2 to match the size
a third animal, which w e n o w k n o w to be a lion, for here the
the duelling pair w o u l d be
new fragment joins the larger piece. It completes the head and
c.i.25 m. long. O n A n , a lion attacks from the front, leaping
forequarters of a lion crouching with rump in the air, preparing
of the complete lion on A n ,
on to the deer's back while crushing its head to the ground with
to spring at the boar. T h e tip of the boar's snout survives on the
a hind leg. 92 Restoring the victim on relief A n
new fragment.
in a semi-
collapsed position, the relief w o u l d be c.1.75 m. The t w o frag-
The new addition confirms the inwardly facing, three-fig-
ments could join to form a block c.3.00 m. long, and thus
ured composition suggested by the larger portion of the relief
w o u l d have to take a corner position on one of the façades.
discovered more than a century ago. The rather diffident rear
T h e architectural evidence, however, does not assure this precise arrangement. The central régula on A n
marks the
attack and the boar's lack of response are n o w explained by the dramatic squaring off between lion and boar to the right. The
smallest size triglyph better suited to the flank; the large adja-
newly discovered lion's head is drawn so l o w that its jaw
cent metope-interval suggests a position on the façade or the
touches the forepaw. H e roars, baring both upper and lower
corner of the flank. There are tool marks that suggest the
fangs at his opponent. The pair make w o r t h y adversaries; there
central régula of this relief may have been reçut. Relief A 1 2
is more drama in the incipient attack than in the defeat of the
appears to belong to a corner, because the relief ends with a
helpless doe on A i o , even though the outcome will be the
complete régula, but its outer end-face is rough, and there is
same. T h e boar is fleshy rather than muscular, with a projecting
even a suggestion of anathyrosis. 93
rump, pointed upright ear, pizzle, and interrupted crest, all
If the t w o reliefs do not join, then A 1 2 , at least, must still be restored with a second set of animal duels. A n could have a
c o m m o n features of East Greek representations of boars from the middle and second half of the sixth century. 9 5
second combat as well, but it would make for yet another long
A l t h o u g h the new fragment does not complete the relief, it
block. A closed composition is an option. While no evidence
does allow us to reconstruct the entire scene and to approxi-
survives of a second lion attacking f r o m behind, the scene can be
mate the length of the block. If the t w o predators were about
completed with a lion similar to the one on the left side of A 1 3
the same size with hindquarters rising to about the same level,
(see below). O n A n , the seated lion, which does no more than
then the crouching lion w o u l d be c.0.70 to 0.90 m. long. The
complete the field in a thematically suitable way, may have had a
length of the completed relief w o u l d run between c.2.60 m. and
pendant at the other end of the block, or perhaps on A 1 2 . 9 4
2.80 m. Symmetrical regulae and metope-intervals suggest a length of c.2.70 m. T h e scale of the animals, as well as the size
Clarke 1898, pp. 274-7, 65-9. Saniaux 1915, pp. 99-102, rejects the combination on the grounds that the restored length would be too long, but his argument presupposes that Ai2 belongs to the corner on the flank. 91 Boardman 1968, Scheme A, p. 123 and n. 9. For an early example, see the Protoattic amphora by the New York Nessos Painter, New York, Metropolitan Museum of Art 11.210.1 (Beazley 1986, pi. 5.2; Boardman 1998, p. 106, fig. 210; Rocco 2008, pp. 125-8, no. NYi). In architectural sculpture, see the Alkmeonid Temple of Apollo at Delphi (Hölscher 1972, G8, pp. 74-5; La Coste-Messelière 1931, pp. 34-6, figs. 8-10); relief from the podium frieze of Building G, Xanthos, British Museum B295 (Hölscher 1972, pp. 23-31, pi. 3.2; Jenkins 2006, pp. 168-71, fig. 162); antefix found near the 'Little Temple' at Klopedi, Lesbos, dated c.500 BC (Akerström 1966, p. 29, pi. 11.5). For a discussion of the type: Budde 1963, pp. 59—62. 92 Boardman (1968, p. 138, n. 13) calls the herbivore a mule or horse, but the size of the body and delicacy of the limbs suggest a deer. For examples of the type, Boardman 1968, Scheme C, p. 123 and n. 12. According to Hölscher 1972, p. 77, the head-stomping gesture is rare for attacks on deer. 93 Clarke 1898, p. 273. Sartiaux (1915, p. 107, n. 3) assumes that this side is simply damaged. 94 The seated position recalls freestanding funerary lions of the mainland, rather than East Greek forms. For the rare examples of seated East Greek lions, see Ridgway 1993, p. 384, and additional freestanding examples published by Strocka 9j
1 9 7 7 , PP· 5 0 7 - 1 1 . figs· 3 4 - 9 ·
figs·
and spacing of the regulae, indicate that this block belonged to the façade or a corner on the flank. In sum, most of the scenes w i t h lions and prey form closed symmetrical compositions, but at least relief A 1 2 may have had
9d Interrupted crests do not feature in Corinthian representations or in Attic art in the first half of the sixth century. See Payne 1931, p. 70, n. 3; R. Cook 1981, pp. 102-3; Boardman 1968, p. 152 and notes; La Coste-Messelière 1936, p. 127. In East Greek (and later Attic) art, there are three different forms of interrupted crests: (a) a simple gap, as on the boar on metope M4, (b) a V-shaped break or curving dip, like that on the boar on relief A13, and (c) the late sixth-century sophisticated form, where the high mane ends in a wave-like curve that dips low and then rises to form the lower spinal bristles. For other examples of the V-shaped break (b), see the boar on the predella of a stele from Syme, Istanbul, Archaeological Museum 507 (Pfuhl and Möbius 1977, p. 11, no. 8, pi. 3); podium frieze from Building G at Xanthos, London, British Museum B293 (Pryce 1928, pp. 134-7, pi. 28; Jenkins 2006, pp. 168-72); Attic oinochoe, New York, Metropolitan Museum of Art 46.11.7 (ABV 434.3; Boardman 1974, fig. 230); Etruscan bronze relief, Munich, Staatliche Antikensammlungen 47 WAF (Höckmann 1982, pl. 24.1, fig. 39).
THE
*33
SCULPTURE
possibly
c e n t u r y , 9 9 and this g r o u p has c o n n e c t i o n s w i t h t h e C y c l a d e s ,
d e p e n d e d o n the p o s i t i o n of the relief o n the t e m p l e — c l o s e d
especially t w o important examples f r o m Paros.100 T h e occa-
c o m p o s i t i o n s f o r the internal p o s i t i o n s o v e r the c o l o n n a d e , a
sional a p p e a r a n c e of the ' i n t e r l o c k i n g lion a t t a c k ' i m a g e else-
a
processional
arrangement.
The
choice
quite
p r o c e s s i o n a l s e q u e n c e near the corners. T h e s e c o m b a t s are as
w h e r e in a r c h i t e c t u r e of the L a t e A r c h a i c p e r i o d , f o r e x a m p l e
s e l f - c o n t a i n e d as the heraldic s p h i n x e s a n d the battling bulls.
in p e d i m e n t a l s c u l p t u r e in Sicily o r p a i n t i n g in E t r u r i a , results
F i g h t i n g g r o u p s and heraldic animals are r e g u l a r l y c o m b i n e d in
f r o m the w i d e s p r e a d d i f f u s i o n o f the successful f o r m . 1 0 1
animal f r i e z e s in o t h e r m e d i a , and it is h i g h l y l i k e l y that t h e y
In A s i a t i c G r e e c e , a g g r e s s i v e l y i n t e r l o c k i n g a n i m a l c o m b a t s
w e r e interspersed o n the t e m p l e as w e l l .
similar to the t y p e f o u n d o n reliefs A 9 , A 1 1 , and A 1 2 appear in
Iconography
A s s o s and later o n m o n u m e n t s at o r near X a n t h o s . 1 0 2 Such
A l r e a d y an i m p o r t a n t i m a g e in the B r o n z e A g e , the m o t i f of
c o m p o s i t i o n s are rare in t e r r a c o t t a r e v e t m e n t s a n d d e c o r a t e d
l i o n s a t t a c k i n g p r e y re-enters G r e e k art, f r o m the East, t o w a r d
simas; the a n t e f i x f r o m L e s b o s , w i t h a lion b r i n g i n g d o w n a
the m i n o r arts b u t o n l y f o r m a c o h e r e n t a r c h i t e c t u r a l g r o u p at
groups
deer, m a y w e l l h a v e b e e n i n s p i r e d b y relief A 1 2 f r o m A s s o s . 1 0 3
w i t h the l i o n l e a p i n g o n to its p r e y exist b u t are not a b u n d a n t
B y contrast, the p r e d a t o r s o n the R h o i k o s A l t a r b e l o n g to the
the end o f the e i g h t h c e n t u r y . T i g h t l y i n t e r l o c k i n g
until the s e c o n d q u a r t e r of the sixth c e n t u r y , w h e n the m o t i f
earlier couchant
r a p i d l y b e c o m e s the p r e f e r r e d t y p e in A t t i c art, in vase p a i n t i n g
part h e r a l d i c . 1 0 4 A late archaic m o n u m e n t (statue base, altar
t y p e , and o t h e r c o m p o s i t i o n s are f o r the m o s t
n o r t h of A t t i k a , o n g e m s , and in E t r u s c a n art. 9 6 L e a p i n g attacks in m o n u m e n t a l a r c h i t e c t u r e can be traced to the m a i n l a n d , e s p e c i a l l y A t h e n s , w h e r e the i m a g e r y first appears and achieves its finest e x p r e s s i o n . T h e p o r o s p e d i m e n t s f r o m the A k r o p o l i s d e m o n s t r a t e the transition f r o m the earlier p r e d a t o r y t y p e , a c o u c h a n t lioness t e a r i n g a b u l l o c k gathered c o m p l e t e l y b e n e a t h h e r ( A k r o p o l i s n o . 4), to the s y m m e t r i c a l l y i n t e r l o c k i n g c o m p o s i t i o n of a lion and lioness m a u l i n g a c r u s h e d bull ( A k r o p o l i s n o . 3). 9 7 A t least three s u b s e q u e n t p e d i m e n t s in A t h e n s are d e v o t e d p a r t i a l l y o r c o m p l e t e l y to this s u b j e c t , and the L a t e archaic p e d i m e n t f r o m K a r y s t o s in E u b o i a appears to be an A t h e n i a n o f f s p r i n g as w e l l . 9 S A t D e l p h i , the l e a p i n g t y p e , w i t h either the bull o r d e e r as v i c t i m , b e c o m e s an i m p o r t a n t i m a g e o n t e m p l e s and treasuries d u r i n g the s e c o n d half of the sixth
96 Supra n. 82 and Boardman 1968, pp. 121-4, especially n. 3 for early examples and nn. 9-14 for examples in Boeotian, Chalkidian, Caeretan, Pontic, and Etruscan art. In Attic black-figure vases: Buschor 1922a, pp. 92-105; Boardman 1974, p. 204; Müller 1978, nos. 228-56; Markoe 1989, pp. 93-5. 97 Akropolis no. 4: Heberdey 1919, VII, pp. 77-87; Hölscher 1972, Gì, pp. 69-72; Brouskari 1974, p. 28, no. 4, fig. 14. Akropolis no. 3: Heberdey 1919, VIII, pp. 87-100; Hölscher 1972, G2, pp. 69-72; Brouskari 1974, p. 46, no. 3, figs. 80-1. The dating and reconstruction of the building(s) to which these sculptures belonged is controversial. Akropolis no. 3 is generally dated slightly later than Akropolis no. 4, but several scholars assign the two pieces to opposite sides of the same building (Dinsmoor 1947, pp. 145-7; Harrison 1965, pp. 31-3, and notes; Ridgway 1993, pp. 285-7). Beyer 1974, pp. 639-51, fig. 10 (followed by Boardman i978, pp. 153-4), does not include them on the same building. Markoe 1989, p. 107, suggests that the new scheme may be the work of an Ionian artist, but his antecedents do not necessarily predate the pediment. 98 Marble pediment from Old Temple of Athena: Heberdey 1919, pp. 163-9; Payne and Young 1936, p. 54, pi. 17,3; Schräder 1939, pp. 377-87, figs. 469-95; Hölscher 1972, G4, pp. 72-3. Sec Marszal 1998 for a new reconstruction with a single lion attacking the bull in a composition close to the compostion on relief A9. Marble pediment from the Olympieion: Hölscher 1972, G5, p. 73; Kaltsas 2002, pp. 69-70, no. 98. Poros pediment from the Athenian Agora: Harrison 1965, no. 95, pis. 15-16; Hölscher 1972, pp. 73-4, G6. Sec also the painted pediment with lioness from the Athenian Akropolis (Wiegand 1904, no. 12, pp. 230-1, pi. 6.3); lion head from the Athenian Agora, thought to belong to a pediment (Harrison 1965, no. 94 (=inv. S1222), pp. 31-3, pi. 14); Karystos pediment, Chalkis, Archaeological Museum 102 (Sakellaraki 1995, p. 71, fig. 40; Hölscher 1972: Gio, pp. 75-6). A badly mutilated fragment from Tanagra with a bull torso and lion paw may also belong to this type: RA, 1908, pp. 193-4, 3! Gabelmann 1965, no. 160, n. 393; Müller 1978, no. 223.
99 Examples at Delphi include: lion vs. deer (supra n. 91) and lion vs. bull on the east pediment of the Alkmeonid Temple of Apollo (La Coste-Messelière 1931, figs. 11-13, pi. 33.1, text pi. 5 (no. XII)); capital of the Siphnian Treasury caryatid, with two lions devouring a deer (Picard and La Coste-Messelièrc 1928, pp. 64-5, fig. 31, pi. 20; Daux and Hansen 1987, fig. 136); probably the second Temple of Athena Pronaia, the remains of which include a lion head and a fragment of a bull's leg (Hölscher 1972, G9, p. 75; La Coste-Messelière i93i,p. 8, nos. 29-30); possibly the Treasury of the Knidians (association tentative; remains include outstretched body of a lion and the body of a fleeing animal, perhaps a deer) (Hölscher 1972, G7, p. 74; Picard and La Coste-Messelière 1928, pp. 180-1, fig. 66). 100 e.g., the relief from the so-called Heroon of Archilochos on Paros. For connections between Delphic and Cycladic lions, see Kontoleon 1965, pp. 40710. Fragment of sarcophagus lid, the pediment of which is adorned with a lioness (possibly two) attacking a bull, dated to the first half of the fifth century: Schilardi 1986, pp. 13-26, pis. 86-7. 101 Terracotta pedimental fragments from Himera: Himera I, pp. 174-7, p's· XLVI.2, XLVIII, XLIX.3,5. Pedimental group of two lions bringing down a bull from Motya: Pace 1938, pp. JX4-16, fig. 106. Etruscan wall painting, see especially Tomb of the Master of the Olympic Games, Tarquinia (Steingräber 1986, p. 321, no. 83, pis. 113-14) or the Tomb of the Old Man (Steingräber 1986, p. 355, no. 124, figs.^346-7). 102 Xanthos podium frieze, Building G (early fifth century) London, British Museum B292-8: Pryce 1928, pp. 134-7, pi. 28; Hölscher 1972, pp. 23-31, no. 3; Metzger 1963, p. 50, pi. 37.1. Lions: Coupel and Metzger 1969, pp. 229-31, figs. 4-7; Jenkins 2006, pp. i68~7i,figs. 160,162-3. Lory ma monument base, Izmir, Archaeological Museum, no. 904: Hölscher 1972, pp. 21-3, no. 2, pi. 2.2; Pfuhl and Möbius 1977, p. 17, no. 25, fig. 8. The composition on a later tomb relief from Xanthos (supra n. 89), the lion and prey carved on the rock-cut tombs at Kalekape (von Gall 1966, pp. 37-8, fig. 1 ) and Myra (tomb 69: Fedak, 1990, pp. 98-9, fig. 122), and a freestanding group of lions attacking a deer from Sinope (Budde 1963, pp. 5 5-73) attest to the continued popularity of this theme in Asia Minor. 103 e.g., sima, once Art Dealer: Summa Galleries, Inc. Auction I (Beverly Hills, Cal. 1981) no. 57 (provenance unknown; said to be from East Greece). Antefix from Lesbos, supra n. 91. 104 For the couchant type, note Roman copy of the Rhoikos Altar (FreyerSchauenburg 1974, pp. 188-92, nos. 106-12, pl. 79); south side of mid-sixthcentury Lion Tomb from Xanthos, London, British Museum B286 (Pryce 1928, pp. 118-20, pi. 18, fig. 176; Hölscher 1972, no. 1, pp. 14-20 (only the head of the bull is carved); Jenkins 2006, pp. 161-2, figs. 152-3). The non-aggressive lions and gorgons on the epistyle of the Temple of Apollo at Didyma probably did not form a continuous sequence (Ridgway 1993, pp. 389-90 and n. 9.24), but for both arguments, see Gruben 1963, p. 144, n. 113; and Tuchelt 1970, pp. 104-7, K82, pi. 76, K84, fig. 21. More recent discoveries from Didyma include a relief with the hindquarters of a lion, thought to be architectural (Tuchelt 1973-4, p. 161, no. P13, pi. 66.4). The lions and bulls on terracotta revetments from Gordion are heraldic (Äkerström 1966, pp. 149, 151, pi. 86.1,3), a °d on the Pazarli revetments they simply stride toward each other (Äkerström 1966, pp. 181-3, pi· 89); other animals on a terracotta sima of unknown provenance face off and snarl but do not attack (Äkerström 1966, pp. 205-6, fig. 66.1-4).
148
T H E SC
barrier, 01* throne support?) from K y z i k o s creates an interesting synthesis of the couchant and leaping types: two addorsed lions attack bull protomes. 1 0 3 The general inspiration to introduce the tightly interwoven leaping/crushing animal combats into the sculptural programme at Assos may well have come from contact with Athens or Delphi, in particular with the series of pedimental compositions initiated by Akropolis no. 3. The pedimental sculptures do not, however, appear to have provided the specific compositional prototypes, for none of the scenes on the temple at Assos closely replicates the mainland sculptures. 106 The continuous and differently shaped field of the epistyle demanded animal combats more extensive and varied than the mainland pediments allowed. Having selected the theme of animal combats, the designer could draw on a variety of sources—and his own ingenuity—to compose the frieze. B y the mid-sixth century, compositions similar to the scenes on reliefs A9, A n , and A 1 2 were current on a full range of smaller objects, including vases, bronze reliefs, and gems circulating throughout the Mediterranean, and may have provided more immediate references. Reliefs A i o and A 1 3 are decidedly different in scale and are compositionally more innovative than reliefs A9, A n , and Α 1 2 . The scene of two inwardly facing lions devouring a supine carcass ( A i o ) has no counterparts in surviving archaic architectural sculpture. It can be found on smaller objects during the Archaic period, although far less frequently than the motif of lions leaping upon their prey or devouring a prone victim. 1 0 7 The single lion attacking supine equid appears on mould-made arulae in the third quarter of the sixth century in Magna Graecia and Sicily in a powerful horizontal composition. Later examples depict t w o felines attacking supine victim (bull or deer) while turning to face the viewer, although their long necks and arched backs are unlike the felines on A i o . 1 0 8 O u t side of this group, examples are occasional and scattered. 109 In
103 Müller 1978, no. 224bis; Mendel 1914, pp. 42-3, no. 284. Laubscher (1963-4, p. 74, n. 6, pi. 42,2) suggests it is an akroterion. However, the sculpture is carved on both sides and therefore belongs with the two-sided reliefs discussed by Hanfmann 1984, pp. 88-9. 106 One possible restoration for A9 comes close to a later poros pediment found in the Athenian Agora, on which two lions fell a bull whose hind legs are at least partially upright. The composition for the lion vs. bull on the Old Temple of Athena proposed by Marszal 1998, fig. 19.5 matches the existing composition of A9, but A9 must be completed with another lion. The single lion mauling a deer on Α12 recalls but does not duplicate a similar composition on the Alkmeonid Temple of Apollo at Delphi, i.e., the lion does not crush the legs of the deer with its hind paw, the deer does not look round, and the composition docs not have the same diagonal thrust. 107 The motif appears earlier in the ancient Near East, e.g., the supine body of a stag beneath a lion in the portico of the Palace of Kaparu at Tell Halaf (Frankfort 1996, p. 293, fig. 341). For examples in Greek art: Boardman 1968, Scheme D, p. 123 and n. 13; Hcmclrijk 1984, p. 180; von Hoisten 2007, Scheme E, pp. 16-17. 108 Arulac with single lion attacking equus: von Hoisten 2007, pp. 86-7, nos. Ta49-59, pi. 15.6. Arulac with two felines attaching supine prey: von Hoisten 2007, p. 89, nos. Tai77-8j, pi. 19.22-2 (bull); pp. 88, 90-1, nos. 130-1, 217-18, 225, pl. 22.14 (deer). I0'; For an early example of a beast devouring (not dragging) a supine carcass, see the bronze blinkers from Tomb 79 at Salamis, dated to the end of the eighth
general, supine victims are more popular in East Greek, Caeretan, and Etruscan art than on the mainland. The arulae make an interesting parallel, but on the whole the extant representations do not suggest a particular source for our scene, and they cannot account for the force that the sculptor has invested in the monumental, architectonic composition. The composition on A 1 3 also lacks full parallel in archaic architectural sculpture. Parts of the scene can, however, be found in architecture, painting, relief, and metalwork. 1 1 0 The motif of a boar facing off against a lion appears in Greek vase painting as early as the second quarter of the seventh century, and an extended composition with a boar flanked by two facing lions is a common theme in East Greek and Corinthian animal processions. 1 1 1 In most of these scenes, the threat is understated; the boar walks or grazes while the lions stride rather than crouch to spring. Sometimes, though, the scene can turn quite nasty, with the walking boar bitten fore and aft. 1 1 2 The representation closest to our composition appears on a Lakonian volute krater by the Hunt Painter, c. 56ο. 113 The boar stands with front and hind legs forcefully planted, facing a crouching lion that raises a paw in attack, while a lioness, head turned 90 degrees to its body, bites the rump of the boar from behind. The figures are not equally weighted; the facing pair is made primary by their larger scale and centred position, while the smaller lioness is matched by another to the far left. Nevertheless, this composition remains our best parallel for the whole composition on the Assian relief. Looking at the individual pairings of boar and lion on A 1 3 considerably expands the comparable imagery. The face-off between lion and boar enters Attic vase painting in the benign form, but by the second quarter of the sixth century the boar assumes a rigidly defensive posture with its forelegs stiffened and its head lowered, a change that may well be influenced by century: Salamis, Necropolis III, nos. 141, 158, pis. 88, 267. In pottery, note: Corinthian alabastron, Paris, Bibliothèque National 128 (von Hoisten 2007, no. C2, pi. 19.18; CorVP 59, Bi; 664, 5); hydria (von Hoisten 2007, no. C u ) ; Attic black-figure skyphos, Athens National Museum 14905 (von Hoisten 2007, no. Ab68, pi. 24.ro); East Greek situi?. iragment irom Tell Deienneh, London British Museum 88.2-8.29 ( v o n Hoisten 2007, no. EG19, pi. 12.8); Klazomcnian sarcophagus, Boston, Museum oi Fine Arts 04.285 (R. Cook 1981, pp. 36-7, no. G9, pi. 50); Caeretan hydria, New York, Metropolitan Museum oi Art 64.11.1 (Hemelrijk 1984, no. 18, p. 145, pi. 75; von Hoisten 2007, no. Ca2, pi. 19.21). For seals: Boardman 1968, p. 123, Scheme D (and E), nos. 381, 398-9, 436, 441; von Hoisten 2007, no. S12, pi. 19.19; nos. S26-7, S35, S43-4, pl. 9.1-3, 14.7-8; no. Is3, pi. 14.9. 110 The closest comparison is the badly preserved small poros pediment from the Athenian Akropolis (Akropolis nos. 4547, 4541, 45 5° and one unnumbered piece), c.570 BO, which probably has a leaping lion bringing a boar to its knees (Heberdey 1919, pp. 113-15, figs. 109-13). 111 Early examples include: a Samian krater from the Heraion (Walter 1968, pp. 54-5, no. 377, pis. 66-8); an East Greek lebes, c.650 BC (Cook 1999, p. 80, no. 5, p. 85, figs 6-7); Protoattic amphora from Eleusis, Eleusis Museum 2630 (Morris 1984, pi. 6; Boardman 1998, fig. 208.2; Rocco 2008, pp. 130-40, pi. 19.5). For discussion: Müller 1978, pp. 47-9. For East Greek and Corinthian examples: Kunze 1967, pp. 128-9, n n · 15-16. For Chian open bowl: Lemos 1991, no. 252, pis. 24-7. 112 For example, Middle Corinthian lekanoid bowl, c.570 BC, London, British Museum 1861.4-25.45: CorVP 195,6; Amyx 1961, pi. 8. 113 Stibbe 1989, p. 26, no. Bi 1, pi. 3.
T H E SC representations of boar hunting, especially the Kalydonian
the sixth century. T h e rump bite is a rarer, and predominantly
h u n t . " 4 T h e stance m a y also have had an impact on East
earlier, motif. T h e physical aspect of the animals on this relief
G r e e k art, as R. M . C o o k has suggested for a three-figured
seems more closely allied with the East G r e e k artistic tradition
scene on a Fikellura amphora in w h i c h a defensive boar squares
than with any other.
off against a crouching lion. 1 1 5 The incipient attack in w h i c h
M o s t importantly, reliefs A i o and A 1 3 reflect the ability of
both lion and boar sink d o w n on their forelegs gains popularity
the local designer to develop n e w compositions to meet the
in A t t i c black-figure vase painting and o n Klazomenian sar-
programmatic and architectural requirements of the project.
cophagi in the second half of the sixth century, especially the
T h e difference between the t w o sets of lion reliefs may be
last quarter. 1 1 6 It also appears in decorative metalwork, on a
related to their placement on different parts of the building,
monument base f r o m the Kerameikos, possibly on an East
or it could document the t w o different construction periods of
G r e e k terracotta sima, above a monumental d o o r w a y at Stage-
the building w e have seen demonstrated in other architectural
ira, and later on the p o d i u m frieze of Building G at X a n t h o s . 1 1 7
elements (see Chapter 8, 'Arrangement of the Sculpture').
T h e crouching lion with rump in the air becomes popular f o r monumental sculpture during the Late Archaic period as
Significance
w e l l . 1 1 8 B y contrast, the left half of the scene, in w h i c h the
Lions that turn to face the viewer as they savage w e a k e r ani-
lion nibbles the boar f r o m behind, recalls scenes of animal
mals appear repeatedly in the monumental
processions that occasionally
archaic Greece, especially in buildings dedicated to Athena or
turn violent on
Corinthian,
sacred art of
Chian, and Fikellura pottery, and later on Klazomenian sar-
A p o l l o . T h e theme clearly is of paramount importance begin-
cophagi. 1 1 9 T h e position of this lion's head, turned 90 degrees
ning around the second quarter of the sixth century, and it
to its body, is u n c o m m o n but not unprecedented. 1 2 0
remains current, if less vigorous, through the turn of the cen-
O n balance, the Lakonian vase painting stands as a very
tury. The significance of lions and lion combats in sacred and
important parallel and signals the availability of the scene
funerary contexts has been repeatedly explored in an effort to
c.560. T h e position of the boar and facing lion become w i d e l y
attach specific meaning to such powerful and pervasive im-
current in monumental and smaller arts in the second half of
agery. Central issues involve whether the lion is a daimon of death, an expression of life force, an apotropaic image, a guard-
114 LIMC 6 (1992), pp. 415-18, 430, nos. 6-35, s.v. 'Meleagros' (S. Woodford). Sec also LIMC 2 (1984), pp. 940-2, nos. 1-16, s.v. 'Atalante' (J. Boardman), and, earlier, La Coste-Messelière 1936, pp. 120-52, pis. 3-7. For the boar hunt generally: Schnapp 1979 (although some early versions have a striding boar); Schnapp 1997, pp. 278-309; Barringer 2001, pp. 15-63, 147-61, 172-3. 115 Fikellura amphora, C.560 BC, by the Altenburg Painter, London, British Museum 88.2-8.54: Cook and Dupont 1998, pp. 78-9, fig. 10.1. The second lion, also crouching, turns to face. 116 Willemsen 1963, p. 132 and nn. 100, 102, 104-5; R· Cook 1981, p. 98 and n. 18. On a lekythos by the Providence Painter, Toledo Museum of Art 69.369, the composition appears as furniture applique: CVA Toledo 1, p. 29, pi. 44.1-2. Klazomenian sarcophagi can depict a boar standing at bay before a crouching lion (R. Cook 1981, nos. E5, G27, G42); a boar between two crouching lions (R. Cook 1981, nos. E4(?), E6(?), Gi5a, G15, G23, G55); a boar between striding lions (R. Cook 1981, nos. B5, F7, F17, G17, G34, G39, G57). 117 See, e.g., bronze helmets from Olympia, Β5316 (Kunze 1967, no. 44, pp. 125, 127-9, fig· 43» pl· 66) or Trebcnishte (AA 1930, col. 296, no. 11, figs. 11-12). Kerameikos monument base, P1002: Willemsen 1963, pp. 130-2, fig. 3, supplement 64.2. For the architectural friezes, we cannot be certain whether the separate panels with crouching lions and a boar were contiguous. Xanthos frieze from Building G, London, British Museum B292-8: Pryce 1928, pp. 134-7, pl· Jenkins 2006, pp. 168-72, figs. 160-3. Add panther (Metzger 1963, p. 50, pl. 37.1) and lion reliefs (Coupel and Metzger 1969, pp. 229-32, figs. 4-7). Terracotta revetments: Akcrström 1966, pp. 205-6, fig. 66.1-4. The relief from Stageira lacks the central section, but most of the body of the lion (right) and the hindquarters of the boar (left) survive: Sismanides 1996, p. 282, figs. 6-7. l l s Mertens-Horn 1986, fig. 2. 119 For Chian chalice from Naukratis, London, British Museum 1888.6-1.466d, f,e: Lemos 1991, no. 439, pl. 58. For Klazomenian sarcophagus: R. Cook 1981, p. 44, no. G23, pl. 62.2. A slightly nastier version appears on the Etruscan bronze relief, Munich, Staatliche Antikensammlungen 47 WAF: Höckmann 1982, pl. 24.1, fig. 39. On another Klazomenian sarcophagus (R. Cook 1981, p. 28, no. Fi ι, pl. 32), a lion bites the rump of a goat. 120 See, e.g., Lakonian volute krater (supra n. 113); bronze shield fragment from Crete (Kunze 1931, no. 45a, pl. 40); Early Corinthian kotyle, Paris, Louvre MNC 167 (CorVP 664,8; Payne 1931, no. 701, pl. 22.4); Klazomenian sarcophagi (R. Cook 1981, pp. 36-7, no. G9, pl. 50.2; no. G35, pl. 82); 'panther' in the painted gable of the Tomb of the Augurs, Tarquinia (Steingräber 1986, p. 283, no. 42, pl. 13).
ι
ian (Tempelwächter), a signifier of sacred space, o r an agent of the god. T h e lion combat has been understood as presenting an intensified narrative f o r m of the lion, as signifying the balance between cosmic oppositions such as order and chaos or life and death, as denoting a hierarchy within the natural world, as serving as an emblem of bloody sacrifice, as representing divine triumph, or as e m b o d y i n g daimonic powers in a chthonic universe filled with terrifying forces beyond human grasp. T h e p o w e r of the lion combat resides in its multivalence. N o t every viewer brought the same set of interpretive experiences to bear in confronting the imagery, nor w o u l d the animal combat have elicited identical responses across regions, in various contexts, in a w i d e range of scales, and over the course of its long life in early G r e e k art. We are concerned here with the monumentalization of the lion combat in sacred architecture f r o m the second quarter of the sixth century onward and its potential loss of meaning (or at least banalization) through repetition in a monument such as the Temple of A t h e n a at Assos. We understand the association of the lion w i t h Athena chiefly on the strength of the visual evidence, in particular the appearance of the lion combat on temples dedicated to Athena. Both Fernande Hölscher and Brunhilde S. R i d g w a y identify 121 Hölscher 1972, pp. 77-104; Markoe 1989, pp. 86-115; Mertens-Horn 1986, pp. 18-28; Müller 1978, pp. 167-73; Woysch-Méautis 1982, pp. 73-7 (all the above cite earlier opinion on the image of the lion combat). Interpretation of the image in ancient Near Eastern art also ranges widely, including astrological meanings (Hartner 1965); a symbol of cosmic oppositions such as order and chaos, upper and lower worlds, present and future, or cyclical changes such as day and night or summer and winter (Erlenmeyer and Erlenmeyer 1953, pp· 53-67; Dentzer 1982, pp. 442-4); and, a symbol of royalty (Markoe 1989, pp. 103-9).
150
T H E SC
the image of the lion savaging prey as the badge of Athena Polias, and Hölscher demonstrates that its association with Athena continued long after the Akropolis pediments were no longer on view. 1 " 2 The connection of Athena and the lion is confirmed at Assos not only by the sacred imagery on her temple but also by the city coinage that in the fifth century, displays the head of Athena on the obverse and a lion on the reverse. 123 In high archaic pedimental sculpture, the predatory lion, a natural creature whose strength, agility, speed, and lethalness approach supernatural dimension, physically takes the central position. The boundary established between the exterior of the building and the interior space where the honoured god is manifest in the cult statue, is not yet iconographically permeable. O n l y later will the central position become the prerogative of the god(s). The absence of the god on the exterior of the building strengthened the viewer's awareness that all the outwardly directed sacred imagery on the exterior existed in the sheltered divinity's service. O n the Athenian Akropolis, the pedimental lions of Athena, conceived on a staggering scale, their explicitly brutal actions heightened by the vivid colouration of torn flesh and gushing blood, embody the wild, dynamic forces in nature, over which Athena takes ownership by virtue of the appearance of the lions on her temples. B y demonstrating the goddess's power as they lock their gaze on the approaching suppliant, the triumphant lions guarantee Athena's sacred space. In this respect they can be called guardians, watching over and emphatically announcing the distinction between the outer world and the sacred interior. 124 Their powers are directed toward their human audience. 125 To function effectively, the representation of the lion combat must be understood as equal to that represented (that is, very much alive), a w a y of seeing that operated with particular consequence in the Archaic period. 1 2 6 Could the rubbery lions of Assos have elicited the same responses? Taken as a whole, the several scenes of lions savaging prey on the temple at Assos appear far less forceful and 122 Hölscher 1972, pp. 82-94, 100-4; Ridgway 1972, pp. 32-3, no. 10. More cautiously, Harrison 1964, pp. 35-6. Against elaborate interpretation, at least on Klazomenian sarcophagi, see R. Cook 1981, pp. 108-9. 123 Hölscher 1972, p. 88. The earliest coins from Assos, c.479-450, have a lion's head on the reverse and a griffin on the obverse; coins with the head of Athena on the obverse and a lion's head on the reverse appear c.420. See Babelon II.2, cols. 1265-74, pi. 163.25-29; Wroth 1964a, pp. xxxiv-vi, 36-9, pi. 7.9. 124 Müller 1978, pp.167-73, 218-19, rejects the idea of guardianship, seeing in animal combats before the second quarter of the sixth century a demonic, deathly power, and in compositions from the second quarter of the century to its end, a less terrifying predator whose considerable power has been brought into orbit around the dominant Olympian god. Markoe 1989, pp. 87-8, also rejects the idea of guardianship on the grounds that in the Near East, the combat differs fundamentally from the often-cited paired lions flanking entranceways. To guard and to be a guardian can, however, encompass a range of meanings including: to protect, maintain, care for, and watch over. For a thoughtful interpretation concerning grave lions, see Mertens-Horn 1986, p. 21. 125 Apotropaic content in architectural sculpture: Benson 1967, pp. 48-51, especially p. 51; Hölscher 1972, pp. 77-82. Both favour the view that apotropaia were directed toward potential human malefactors. 126 Hölscher 1972, pp. 100-1; Mertens-Horn 1986, pp. 25-6.
terrifying than the isolated images on the pediments of the mainland. The energy of the frieze instead resides in the rhythmic interplay of the repeated image of the lion and the creative variations in the form, plight, and attitude of the victim. Moreover, the pair of lions devouring the doe carcass as they directly engage the gaze of the viewer ( A i o ) has significant visual impact, particularly if it belongs in the central position on the western façade. Their scale and placement on the entablature signify that these combats were meant to demarcate, in the same way as pedimental lions, the boundary between exterior, vulnerable space, and interior, protected space. The lion combats of the temple at Assos also gain meaning in relation to the larger sculptural programme. The lion combat is more than an intensified narrative version of the lion alone; both the act and the victim are significant. 127 Lions do not simply slaughter. They hunt to eat; they are hungry. 1 2 8 The confrontation of predator and victim remains at base a vivid emblem of primitive and complementary, if unequal, forces in nature. Each confrontation and each victim invite reflection on the degree of inequality. The gentle, timid deer is no match even in flight for the lion, which can catch (A12), crush ( Α ι 1), and devour ( A i o ) the herbivore. The boar, on the other hand, stands second only to the lion in strength and is equally dangerous when cornered ( A i 3). 129 Even so, the lions represent survival and mastery in the food chain. The image embodies, without moral overtones, the powerful yet arbitrary natural hierarchy that creates sure winners and born losers. The force of the deity is expressed in the life-controlling winner. In this regard, these scenes differ fundamentally from the other scenes of conflict on the temple, the battle of rival bulls or the centauromachy, in which the outcome hangs more in the balance. Even within a sacred context, it is impossible to suppress the association of the lion attack with Homeric simile, in which the dominance of one hero over another is expressed with similar clarity and comparable imagery. 130 Through this hierarchy, Contra Hölscher 1972, pp. 79-81. For the lion's hunger, see, e.g., Homer, Iliad 3.23-6, 11.113-19, 11.172-6, 11.480-4, 11.547-54, 12.298-307, 15.630-6, 16.756-8, 17.61-5, 17.540-2, 17.657-62, 18.161-4, 18.579-86. 129 Lion or boar at bay: Homer, Iliad 12.41-6, 146-53. Hektor the lion to Patroklos the boar: Homer, Iliad 16.823-9. Adrastos recognizes his future sonsin-law (prophesied to be a boar and lion) when the heroes Tydeus and Polyneikes fight before his palace door (Hölscher 1972, p. 12). For their battle appearing like that of a lion and boar: Euripides, Suppliants, 139-46, and Phoenician Women 408-21. For the two heroes having these animals as shield blazons: Apollodoros, Library 3.6.1. For the heroes wearing these animals' skins: Schol. Phoenican Women 409; Statius, Thebaid 1.482-90. The lion and wild boar decorate Herakles' belt (Homer, Odyssey 11.609-12) and pull Admetos' chariot (Throne of Apollo at Amyklai, Pausanias 3.18.16). For the device as shield blazon: Chase 1902, p. 98; Boardman 1968, pp. 146-7; Schcfold 1992, n. 332; Philipp 2004, p. 346. 127
I2S
130 Hölscher 1972, pp. 59-60, 103-4; Vermeule 1979, pp. 84-93; SchnappGourbcillon 1981 (who makes an important distinction between heroes likened to animals and those who don animal skins); Lonsdale 1990. Markoe (1989, pp. 88-90, 115) lists similes of animal combat and suggests that the imagery in sacred art is directly connected with its literary meaning of divinely sanctioned victory. Von Hoisten (2007, pp. 46-9) rejects the association on the very limited methodological basis that a connection between scenes of the lion fight and Homeric simile can only be substantiated when the image is paired with a scene of warriors that directly reflects the precise circumstances of the simile.
175 T H E
SCULPTURE
poet and artist explore the instinctive, p o w e r f u l , heroic, and
arrows while Pholos, standing behind Herakles and still hold-
divinely sanctioned strength in victory, as well
ing the cup of wine, watches the rout in helpless distress. The
as—some-
times—a compelling dignity in defeat. T h e lion combat has a
other three reliefs, A 6 , Ay, and A8, depict galloping, horse-
double reference and thus a double function; neither the divine
legged centaurs, all moving right. Despite the barrage of arrows
nor the human connection w o u l d have been missed in the
released by Herakles, none of the centaurs has y e t collapsed;
cultural
instead, they gallop in the same manner and direction to form a
models, as Annie Schnapp-Gourbeillon suggests, and become
rhythmic but repetitive procession across the epistyle. Archaic
Archaic period. T h e lion, boar, and deer e m b o d y
the mirror in w h i c h a hero looks at himself. 1 3 1 A s E m i l y
G r e e k artists rarely combine human-legged and fully equine
Vermeule reminds us, the lion was 'the representative of male
centaurs—and the t w o types are not mixed together on the
ambitions to be courageous, dangerous, intelligent and success-
different reliefs at A s s o s . 1 3 5 The distinctive aspects of relief A 5
ful' 1 3 2 —qualities,
w e might add, possessed by Athena as well.
clearly derive f r o m a particular prototype, w h i l e the other
Between the deity and her familiar stands the one hero w h o
three reliefs have been designed to satisfy the broader demands
possesses all these qualities, the hero w h o s e strength surpasses
of the architectural programme.
that of the lion: Herakles. It is therefore no surprise to find him portrayed twice within the same course on the temple at Assos.
Reconstruction of the reliefs Relief A 5 contains all the narrative elements: a naked Herakles
Reliefs
Af-A8:
the rout of the centaurs
on Mt
Pholoe
strides f o r w a r d while drawing a short Scythian b o w (loaded with, w e assume, a painted arrow) at three retreating centaurs
T h e centauromachy embodies w h a t the G r e e k s loved best in
(PL 92; Fig. 76). In contrast to the larger protagonists on reliefs
architectural sculpture: the heroic and monstrous locked in a
A 3 and on A 4 , Herakles is represented at the same scale as the
physical struggle e m b o d y i n g the metaphysical conflict between
centaurs. T h e two-scale system of reliefs A3 and A 4 could have
the forces of civilization and chaos (Pis. 92-7; Figs. 7 6 - 9 ) . I j 3
been matched by having Herakles kneel, as he does on reliefs
Herakles' encounter with the centaurs on M t Pholoe is the
from Thasos or Akalan. 1 3 6 In choosing the smaller scale, the
favoured centauromachy in archaic art. T h e episode is the
designer stuck fairly closely to his prototype, as w e will explore
only mythological sequence on the epistyle that has a secure
below. Herakles' short hair, tied in a fillet w i t h o u t hanging
place in ancient literature. O n his w a y to catch the Erymanthian
ends, f o l l o w s the general style f o r males on the frieze, but the
boar or on his return f r o m fetching the cattle f r o m G e r y o n ,
w a v y locks framing the face appear only 011 this relief. A
Herakles stops for refreshment at the cave of Pholos. T h e good
distinct ridge running across his cheek marks the remains of a
centaur cooks meat for the hero and, at Herakles' insistence,
closely cropped beard similar to the short, pointed beard w o r n
serves wine from a special supply that was either the communal
by Herakles on relief A 3 . 1 3 7
property of the centaurs or had been entrusted to Pholos b y
A l l three of the fleeing centaurs to the right of Herakles have
D i o n y s o s specifically f o r the arrival of Herakles. 1 3 4 A r o u s e d b y
completely human bodies to w h i c h are attached the hindquar-
the potent aroma released f r o m the opened pithos, the other
ters of a horse. Their human running stride is not entirely freed
centaurs rush to commandeer the wine; Herakles has to drive
from the knielauf tradition, but their equine gallop matches the
them off, chasing them southward to Malea. D u r i n g the rout,
stiff thrust of the other centaurs o n reliefs A 6 , A 7 , and A8.
Pholos accidentally drops a poisoned arrow on his foot, and
T h e first centaur looks back at Herakles as he tries to pull out
C h e i r o n is mistakenly w o u n d e d . B o t h good centaurs die and
the (painted) arrow that has struck his back. 1 3 8 T h e middle
are buried by Herakles.
centaur runs with arms outstretched and head f o r w a r d , while
W h i l e at least four epistyle blocks and one metope are de-
the centaur furthest right shoulders a club and glances round.
voted to the rout, relief A 5 contains all the narrative elements.
Behind Plerakles stands the good centaur Pholos, still hold-
Here, centaurs w i t h human forelegs flee Herakles' shower of
ing the fateful cup of wine; his alarmed gesture anticipates the
Schnapp-Gourbeillon 1981, p. 195. 132 Vermeule 1979, pp. 85-6; see also Mertens-Horn 1986, pp. 22-3. 133 Generally: Kirk 1970, pp. 152-62; Polliti 1972, pp. 35-6, 80-2; LIMC 8 (1997), pp. 671-710, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides', (M. Leventopoulou); Brill's New Pauly 3 (2003), pp. 111-14, s.v. 'Centaurs', (L. Marangou); Padgett 2003, pp. 3-27. For the Pholos story: LIMC 8 (1997), pp. 672, 691-6, 706-10, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'; and earlier studies, including Schefold 1968, pp. 39, 73-4; von Steuben 1968, pp. 26-8; Heldensage3 pp. 84-90, 178-82; DL pp. 86-91, 140; Schiffler 1976, pp. 100-1 and n. 351, nos. O-S10 (for Assos); Holtzmann 1979, pp. 1-9; Brize 1980, pp. 52-4, 146-50; Finster-Hotz 1984, pp. 12-33; Brommer 19^4, pp. 54-8; Schefold 1992, pp. i34-8;Gantz 1993, pp. 390-2. 134 Common property: Apollodoros, Library 2.5-4. Left by Dionysos four generations earlier: Diodorus Siculus 4.12.3-8; Pausanias 6.21.5. Reference to Pholos serving Herakles wine appears in a fragment of Stesichoros' Geryoneis: Brize 1980; Gantz 1993, p. 390.
135 Exceptions, excluding Pholos or Cheiron, include a geometric gold band, Berlin, Antiquarium G.I. 310 (LIMC 8 (1997), p. 680, no. 109, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'); Lakonian dinos, Paris, Louvre E662 (LIMC 8 (1997), p. 693, no. 254, s.v. 'Kcntauroi et Kentaurides'). The latter may represent Pholos and Cheiron, although Pipili (1987, pp. 7-10) argues that the second centaur with human legs is simply a youth whom the artist transformed to a centaur as an afterthought. 136 Note kneeling Herakles as archer on the Gate of Herakles and Dionysos on Thasos (Launey, ÉtThas I, 1944, p. 140, fig. 78; Holtzmann, ÉtThas XV, 1994, pp. 19-22, pis. ι, 3) or on the relief from Akalan, Istanbul, Archaeological Museum nos. 4592-5, 4597 (Akerström 1966, pp. 123-4, fig. 37, pis. 64, 65). 137 Finster-Hotz 1984, p. 13, n. 17, concurs. Described as beardless by Clarke 1898, p. 155; Caskey 1925, pp. 10-11, no. 7; Comstock and Vermeule 1976, p. 13. 138 Finster-Hotz 1984, p. 13, concurs. Clarke 1882, p. 110, suggests the centaur hurls a rock at Herakles. Comstock and Vermeule 1976, p. 13, suggest that he carries a club.
131
152
THE
SCULPTURE I
.795
H .175 H
2.48
.50
H
1—I—H
.5
1 .042 ÈTRI 45H
I—.294
—I
1
H—I—I—I—h 1
H—I—I—I—h H 1.5 2
1—I
l·
2.5
H—I—I—I 3m
FIGURE 76. Ay. Herakles pursuing human-legged centaurs.
disastrous outcome of his hospitality. In Stesichoros' descrip-
painting
tion, the cup holds at least three flagons and is 'skyphos-like' in
kantharos; it may be that the stemless variety was generally
shape. 1 3 9 T h e vessel Pholos holds here is a kind of skyphoid
associated w i t h Herakles. 1 4 2
Herakles
often
holds
a round-bodied,
stemless
kantharos, with round body, flaring lip, ring foot, and vertical
Pholos has long hair gathered b y a fillet, a thick braid run-
handles attached to the outside in the manner of a metal ves-
ning along the side of his face, w a v y front curls, and a sharply
sei. 1 4 0 H e carries an early version of the type on a Middle
pointed beard. T h e block is broken through his body, leaving
Protocorinthian pyxis lid from Perachora illustrating the cen-
only the upper human b o d y and part of a leg. T h e rest of the
tauromachy. 1 4 1 John Boardman has s h o w n that in A t t i c vase
figure should be restored with human legs and equine hindquarters; he p r o b a b l y led w i t h the background leg, as do all the
Stesichoros' Geryoneis (Davies 1991, 19 = frag. 181; Ath. 11.499). 140 Archaic metal parallels (although with narrower lip and decorated handles) include a cup from Olympia (Olympia IV, pl. 35.671); cup and two sets of handles from the Argive Heraion (Waldstein 1902, nos. 2033-5, Ρ'· 118). A similarly shaped vessel is depicted between two karchesia on a fragmentary Chian chalice, London, British Museum 1888.6-1.515 and 516 (Lemos 1991, no. 742, pis. Ill, 98). The shape has an early history in clay, e.g., in Attika (Courbin 1953, pp. 322-45) and in East Greece (Walter 1968, pp. 36-9, fig. 21, pis. 16, 26, 28, 30). 141 From Perachora. Athens, National Museum: Payne 1962, no. 1114a, pi. 48; CorVP 25,C2; Ahlberg-Cornell 1992, no. 101, fig. 179; LIMC 8 (1997), p. 709, no. 365, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'; Splitter 2000, no. 9. 139
other figures.143 With Pholos' missing hindquarters restored at the same length as the other centaurs' (c.0.30-0.38 m., measured f r o m the small of the back to the d o c k of the tail), the block w o u l d be at least 2.80 m. long. Since the sequence of
142 Boardman 1979a, pp. 149-51. Herakles and the kantharos: Wolf 1993, pp. 88-91. 143 Contra Clarke 1898, figs. 55, 62, where Pholos is restored leading with the foreground (i.e., proper right) leg.
177 T H E
SCULPTURE
Σ53
A6
Η
.540
1
.675
1
.330
WÌ^Ìr
-2.605 .367
-
1— . 2 7 6 —|
M .038
· . JL- IV·.' > •'.-Λ-'-··-.
Η—I
1
1—I—I .5
h
H—I—I—I—I—h 1 1.5
H
1—I 2
h
H
1 1 h 2.5
3m
FIGURE 77. A6: Galloping centaurs.
geison blocks proves that A 5 belongs to the southeast corner,
taurs gallop to the right; three have their arms outstretched, and
w e k n o w that originally it must have measured c.2.95 m.
one shoulders a tree branch. T h e three to the right l o o k for-
(see Chapter 8, 'Arrangement of the Sculpture'). T h e extra
ward, but the last on the left turns to l o o k behind. T h e length of
area may have been filled with an additional iconographie
the block, 2.605
element such as the wine pithos or Pholos' cave, both of
the façade, but the metopal spaces are very different in size
w h i c h appear in other scenes of the m y t h . 1 4 4 F u l l y equine centaurs decorate the three additional reliefs,
m·'
(0.810 m. and 0.675
reflects the standard intercolumniation of m-)j
a
block such as this c o u l d take a
corner position on the flank as well.
A 6 , A 7 , and A 8 , and at least one metope, M 7 (Pis. 93-7, 105a-
O n l y three centaurs survive on relief A 7 , but their position
b; Figs. 77-9, 84). T h e y s h o w their monstrosity b y having
allows f o r four, as on the complete relief A6. From chest to croup
longer hair and thicker beards than the humans depicted on
the centaur bodies are c.0.3 8-0.40 m. long; with the tail, they are
the temple, but none of them has the snub nose, animal ears, or
0.50-0.55 m. long. The addition of a fourth centaur of approxi-
bald pate that generally characterize the breed. Each of the
mately the same size as, and equally spaced from, the other three,
blocks has at least f o u r centaurs galloping to the right in a
w o u l d restore the relief to a length of c.2.60 m. w i t h the central
stiff-legged, springy stride. Changes in glance and gesture
régula significantly off axis (that is, c.1.16 m. f r o m the left edge
break the m o n o t o n y of the cavalcade. Some centaurs run with
compared to 0.96 m. f r o m the right; Fig. 78). T h e asymmetry
outstretched arms, while others shoulder tree branches in their
may well result f r o m the position of the relief o n the building,
left arms and keep their right close to the side. A t least three
but there are other reliefs that have the discrepancy, such as A i o
centaurs glance back over their shoulders, t w o turn to face the
(see Chapter 8, 'Arrangement of the Sculpture'). It is also con-
viewer, and the rest l o o k ahead.
ceivable that relief A 7 could have only three centaurs, with the
Relief A 6 alone preserves the complete composition and
left side of the block completed b y a small filler motif deter-
major dimensions of the blocks in this series. Here, four cen-
mined by the position of the block in the sequence.
Architectural examples that show the pithos include: frieze from Akalan (supra n. 136); plaques from Praisos, Paris, Louvre AM842 {LIMC 8 [1997], p.708, no. 3 j8, 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'); restored in the metope of Pholos from Foce del Sele (Zancani Montuoro and Zanotti-Bianco 1954, pi. 19). The pithos frequently figures on vases; see LI MC 8 (1997), pp. 691-3, 708, nos. 237-240, 244, 250, 252, 254, 262-3, 355> 359_i>2, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides', and additional examples in Heldensage3 pp. 90, 178-82.
sequence of fleeing centaurs. T h e fragment, b r o k e n left, pre-
Relief A48, discovered in 1987, adds a substantial piece to the 144
serves t w o centaurs galloping right; the left one runs with arms outstretched, facing in the direction he flees, w h i l e the right one turns full face to the viewer and shoulders a large tree club. T h e roots are visible near his hand, and the trunk extends as a
«ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—I 0 .5 1 1.5 2 2.5 3m FIGURE 78. Ay: Galloping centaurs.
flat-raised surface behind his head. T h e left centaur has a ribbed
and Pl. 97, upper right) and continues across to the upper right
beard and forelocks; the right one w h o faces out wears Iiis hair
side of A 8 , where it is visible on the sawed-off back of the relief.
cut straight across the back just b e l o w the ear. 145 A raised band
N o other decorated blocks f r o m the temple, as far as w e can see,
runs diagonally f r o m the foreleg to the chest, emphasizing the
have this kind of flaw. T h e t w o fragments must join.
leg muscles. T h e hairstyle is not identical to the smooth coiffure of the
A 8 and A48 combined f o r m a cavalcade of five centaurs. 1 4 6 The restored composition has an internal s y m m e t r y based on
centaurs on A 8 , but there are good reasons to join these t w o
gesture and glance, w i t h the t w o end centaurs turning to face,
fragments. The position of the bodies, especially the heads
the next t w o looking forward, and the middle one glancing
relative to the shoulders, are distinctive among the centaur
back over his shoulder. T h e frontal faces are almost completely
reliefs; so too, the shape of the horsy part (although the crisp-
destroyed, but the centaur on M 7 gives some idea of their
ness of the foreleg muscle has been eroded in A8). A s for the
character (Fig. 84). T h e left side of the relief should end in a
difference in hairstyles, the sphinxes on relief A 2 s h o w the
complete centaur with equine parts roughly the same size as
same diversity. T h e t w o fragments have not been physically
the others (c.050 m. f r o m chest to tail). 1 4 7 Restoring the block
joined, but the break is a good fit. A n d perhaps most convincingly, a large volcanic inclusion runs through both fragments. The flaw appears between the t w o centaurs on relief A48 (Pi. 96 145 Compare to the frontal wrestler on a belly amphora by the Andokides Painter, Berlin, Staatliche Museen F2159: ABV253.1, ARV2 3.1, Para 320; Korshak 1987, pl. 42.
146 As the composition of A8 suggests: Clarke 1898, p. 266; Sartiaux 1915, p. 33, fig. 44; Finster-Hotz 1984, p. 15. 147 Contra Clarke (1898, pp. 264-6, fig. 59), who describes relief A8 as complete to the left and restores the hindquarters of the left-hand centaur on the contiguous block. In the folio report (Clarke, Bacon, and Koldewey 1902-21, p. 151), the relief is shown as broken left, but the hindquarters of the centaur are again restored on the contiguous block.
179 T H E
SCULPTURE
A8/48
2.505
1 Ν -=ΜΠ L J Ä ^ J S I I ~T~!f \
1
ίΛ
Ο
~~— Ύ ^Λ
/
.5
Η—I—I—I—h 1
H
1 1 1.5
h
H—I—I—I—h 2
—I—I—I—I—h 2.5 3m
FIGURE 79. A8/48: Galloping centaurs.
to a length of c.2.73 m. w i t h a left partial régula c.0.33 m. long
between the right sphinx on A i
provides adequate space for the final centaur's hindquarters.
including the tubular bodies, Pholos' hair style, the groove
and the
figures
on A 5 ,
A l t h o u g h the right partial régula has broken away, the position
encircling the entire socket of Herakles' eye, and his flat,
of the pry mark on the upper surface sets the approximate
scroll-like ear, suggest that these reliefs are the w o r k of the
length of the metopal space at a maximum of 0.79 m. and a
same sculptor.
probable length of c.0.75 m. These dimensions suggest a pos-
T h e style of the figures in relief A 6 has no ready parallels on
ition on the façade.
other reliefs f r o m the temple. These centaurs, w i t h their strag-
Sculptors
have a wilder appearance; one even bellows. T h e y lack a
gly beards and unkempt hair pinned back b y small round ears, composition
sharply defined fold of skin joining the hind h o c k to the
indicate the centauromachy reliefs were designed as a group,
trunk, as w e l l as genitalia; their human parts f l o w smoothly
but the distinctive carving of each relief suggests the hands
into their equine bodies.
The
reduplication
of different
of pose and the repeated
artists. 148
in anatomical
Differences appear in facial features,
details, and in the shapes of the
B y contrast, the centaurs on A8/A48 have stockier equine
centaurs'
trunks, pectorals carved in high relief, and distinctive ' V ' -
weapons. The human forelegs, triangular chests, and long,
shaped clavicles. T h e y also carry tree trunks w i t h articulated
tubular horse-bodies of the centaurs on A j , rendered in flattish
roots, w h i c h do not appear in the other reliefs, w i t h the pos-
relief, immediately set them apart f r o m the others. Similarities
sible exception of metope My. Sartiaux connected the centaurs on relief Ay w i t h the one on metope My, but there is in fact a
Contra Sartiaux 1915, pp. 46, 71, and Baur 1912, p. 69. Sartiaux sees a resemblance between the horse bodies of the centaurs on A6 and those on A8/ A48 and connects the centaurs on relief A7 and metope M7. Clarke 1898, p. 169, distinguishes only the sculptor of relief A 5 and the sculptor of the other reliefs, A6-A8/A4S. 148
closer similarity of the centaur furthest right o n the newly discovered A48 with the centaur on My. B o t h assume the same pose, turn full face to the viewer, have short hair squarely cut off just above the shoulder, and carry roughly blocked-out
180
THE
SCULPTURE
tree trunks resembling cricket bats. 1 4 9 It seems likely that the
representations in architectural sculpture, suggests that the
same sculptor w o r k e d on A8/A48 and on M 7 . If so, the con-
theme had some regional importance. T h e idea f o r including
nection between A 7 and M 7 suggested b y Sartiaux is broken,
the Pholos legend on the temple at Assos may have been inspired
because it is difficult to see a close stylistic relationship be-
by such programmes; certainly the urge to create a cavalcade of
tween reliefs A 7 and A8. T h e A 7 centaurs' longer hair and their
centaurs across several reliefs must have been encouraged b y the
sway-backed equine trunks mark the w o r k of yet another
familiar repetitive designs of local terracotta revetments.
sculptor; the similarly shaped tree trunks may reflect the hand of the designer.
However, these architectural w o r k s do not provide the closest parallels for the general composition or the specific detail of
T h e heads of the centaurs o n A8/A48 resemble the heads of
relief A 5 . O n l y the frieze f r o m Akalan definitely depicts the
the symposiasts on A 4 : they have similarly domed crania,
encounter at the cave of Pholos. Moreover, the only type of
almond-shaped
eyes, and profiles with receding forehead,
centaur that does not appear on the temple at Assos is the one
sharp nose, and pursed lips. Their beards taper to thick points
favoured in Aeolia, northern Ionia, and their dependants during
after smoothly covering the chin. These centaurs alone have
the second half of the sixth century—the centaur with a Silenos-
hair that curls under at a point just above the nape of the neck.
type face, including snub nose and animal ears, and human
Possibly the same sculptor is at w o r k on these t w o reliefs.
forelegs ending in horse's hooves. 1 5 3 The scenes also differ. O n the terracotta revetment f r o m Larisa, Herakles knocks an attack-
Iconography
ing centaur on the head with his club; on the antefix f r o m
Scenes of Herakles putting centaurs to rout appear frequently in
Mytilene, he kneels as an archer, but the centaur attacks. The
architectural contexts during the Archaic period, mainly on the
composition from distant A k a l a n shows Herakles clad in a lion
small-scale friezes of East Greece and western Anatolia, where
skin, kneeling next to an unburied pithos as he draws his b o w
the composition could be tailored to fill a narrow field of virtu-
against several fully equine centaurs fleeing right, but Pholos is
ally any length. 1 5 0 We find the rout certainly on terracotta
missing. T h e remains from Neandria, A m y z o n , and Thasos are
revetments from Larisa and Akalan, and possibly on similar
too fragmentary for comparison, but the implications are clear.
decorations found at Thasos, A m y z o n , Neandria, Mytilene,
While the general theme was popular in the architectural sculp-
and Sardis. 1 5 1 It may have appeared on the parapet f r o m the
ture of western Anatolia, none of the surviving examples directly
Temple of Artemis at Ephesos as well. 1 3 2 G i v e n the strong
inspired or were themselves inspired by the design of relief A 5 .
connection between Lakonia and East Greece in the Archaic
In fact, Corinthian representations provide the closest par-
period, w e note here its appearance on the T h r o n e of A p o l l o at
allels f o r the design and specific details of relief A 5 , including a
A m y k l a i and possibly the Temple of Athena
Chalkioikos
startled Pholos watching a nude Herakles draw his b o w on
as well. 1 5 3 B y comparison, the story has more limited appeal
retreating, human-legged centaurs w h o carry tree branches for
elsewhere,
Sele
weapons. Corinthian painters regularly depict Herakles as a
(see below). 1 5 4 T h e popularity of Herakles battling centaurs in
nude archer (or wearing a short tunic, but no lion skin) shoot-
with
the
famous
exception
of
Foce
del
western Anatolia, an area not generally given to mythological
ing at retreating, human-legged centaurs w h o brandish tree clubs. The centaurs can be hairy and bushy-bearded but are
Compare branches carried by centaurs on the First Heraion at Foce del Sele: Zancani Montuoro and Zanotti-Bianco 1954, pp. nos. 3-5, pp. 121-40, pis. 26-7, 54-7· „ 150 Akerström 1966, pp. 234-5; Holtzmann 1979, pp. 5-7; Brize 1980, pp. 52-4, 146-50; Finster-Hotz 1984, pp. 21-8. 151 From western Anatolian and northeast Aegean islands: Larisa (Akerström 1966, pp. 48-9, 55-7, pis. 26-7; LIMC 8 (1997), p. 695, no. 284, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'); Akalan (supra n. 136); terracotta relief from Thasos (Holtzmann 1979, pp. 1-9); terracotta relief from Amyzon (Akerström 1966, p. 117, pi. 59.2); terracotta relief from Neandria (Akerström 1966, pp. 10—r 1, pi. 4.4,5); antefix from Mytilene, Archaeological Museum no. 1472 (Akerström 1966, p. 26, pi. 12.1). Herakles as archer from Sardis (excerpt from the rout?): Akerström 1966, p. 8, pi. 38. Centaurs from Pazarli (again an excerpt?): Akerström 1966, p. 167, no. 5, p. 179, pi. 94.1. Slightly earlier stage on clay plaques from Praisos, Paris, Louvre AM842 and other fragments: LIMC 8 (1997), p. 708, no. 358, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'. 152 London, British Museum B208-13: Pryce 1928, pp. 84-5, figs. 127-30; Muss 1994, pp. 81-2, 85, fig. 57 (possibly the Thessalian centauromachy). 153 Throne of Apollo, Amyklai: Pausanias 3.18.10; LIMC 8 (1997), p. 693, no. 257, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'. Temple of Athena Chalkioikos: Pausanias 3.17.3. 154 Possibly a metope from Thermon inscribed [Ph]olo[s], Athens National Museum: LIMC 8 (1997), p. 709, no. 368, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'. Metope from the Athenian Treasury at Delphi, probably Nessos or Eurytion: La CosteMesselière 1957, pp. 108-12, no. 16, pis. 46-8, although called an excerpt from Pholoe centauromachy by Pipili 1987, p. 81; LIMC 8 (1997), p. 695, no. 283, s.v. 1+9
not otherwise monstrous. 1 5 6 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'. First Heraion at Foce del Sele: Zancani Montuoro and Zanotti-Bianco 1954, nos. 1-6, pp. 111-40, pis. 26, 52-7; Van Keuren 1989, pp.147-9; Junker 1993, pp. 48-55, pi. 10; LIMC 8 (1997), p. 695, no. 281, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'. 153 Cf., e.g., centaurs on friezes from Larisa and Thasos (supra n. 151; also Launey, EtThas I, 1944, p. 150, fig. 86); on Klazomenian sarcophagi (R. Cook 1981, nos. G23, G35, G40); on Klazomenian pottery, Berlin, Staatliche Museen 453iAc-d (LIMC 8 (1997), p. 683, no. 138, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'); on a Fikellura amphora from Histria, Museum Inv. V19996 (LIMC 8 (1997), p. 698, no. 316, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'); on Caeretan hydriai (Hemelrijk 1984, nos. 7, 16, 17, 20, 25, 27; LIMC 8 (1997), p. 692, no. 247, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'); on Campana Group pottery, including: hydria, Bonn, Akademisches Kunstmuseum V2674 {LIMC 8 (1997), p. 684, no. 157, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'); dinos, Copenhagen, National Museum 13443 (LIMC 8 (1997), p. 680, no. 101, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'). See also gems: onyx scarab, London, British Museum 470 (LIMC 8 (1997), p. 683, no. 143, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'); agate scaraboid, London, British Museum 519 (LIMC 8 (1997), p. 683, no. 144, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'). 156 von Steuben 1968, pp. 26-8; Ahlberg-Cornell 1992, pp. 102-5; Splitter 2000, pp. 49-50, and catalogue. Note, e.g., Middle Protocorinthian kotyle, Richmond, Virginia Museum of Fine Arts 80.27 (Splitter 2000, no. 8; Padgett 2003, pp. 177-81, no. 30); Late Protocorinthian aryballos, Berlin, Staatliche Museen F336 (Payne 1931, p. 129, no. 1; CorVP 37,1; LIMC 8 (1997), p. 691, no. 235, s.v.
THE
SCULPTURE
T w o extant Corinthian depictions of the rout include Pholos
*33
taurs converging aggressively on Herakles, w h o uses both b o w
as well. O n an early sixth-century Corinthian kotyle, Pholos
and club, or only a sword, to drive them off. Herakles usually
stands before his cave b y the half-sunk pithos, holding the cup
wears a lion skin; the centaurs always have equine forequarters
of wine in one hand while raising the other in a gesture identical to that of Pholos on relief
A5.137
O n the fragmentary
and Silenos-style heads; and the pithos and Pholos rarely appear. The iconography produced in other mainland centres is
Protocorinthian pyxis lid mentioned above, a bearded Pholos
no closer to that of A 5 . Herakles can appear as an archer, but
holding a huge, vertically handled cup anxiously follows Hera-
the centaurs have equine forequarters and Pholos is ex-
kles, w h o strides to the right after a fleeing, club-wielding,
cluded. 1 6 3 O n e exception, itself possibly derived from C o r -
human-legged centaur. 158 A l t h o u g h Herakles' upper torso is
inthian prototypes, is a Lakonian dinos n o w
missing, the quiver on his back and the bent right elbow
Maria Pipili has highlighted the iconographie ambiguities of
suggest that he draws a bow.
the scene, in w h i c h a nude Herakles, club in hand, may either
in Paris. 164
A Corinthian prototype for the scene on A 5 becomes all the
greet or attack human-legged Pholos as a second human-legged
more apparent in comparison to the iconography of the rout
centaur runs away and other equine centaurs gallop or collapse
elsewhere. Early sixth-century Attic scenes of the rout are not
in disarray.
conventionalized, 1 3 9 but the more frequent representations in
The other certain example of this myth in stone architectural
the second and third quarters of the sixth century show cen-
decoration appears in Magna Graecia on a sequence of met-
taurs with equine forequarters favouring stones over branches
opes decorating the first Heraion at Foce del Sele. There are
as weapons. Herakles often wears a short tunic and lion skin;
certain important similarities with the scene at Assos, including
he rarely uses his bow, preferring instead the sword or club. liKJ
the attitude of Pholos and his relation to Herakles, as well as
Pholos does not appear. O n Tyrrhenian amphorae, Herakles,
Herakles' stance, dress, and weapon. These features, however,
dressed in the lion skin, wields club, sword, or b o w against
probably derive from a shared Corinthian prototype. 1 6 5 The
fully equine centaurs; again the scenes lack Pholos. 1 6 1 In the
significant differences—the centaurs are equine-legged and at-
Late Archaic period, Attic vase painters shift from the rout
tack rather than flee—argue against any closer connection.
(without Pholos) to quieter scenes of Herakles and Pholos
Other West Greek and Etruscan representations of Pholos
lifting the lid of the pithos or reclining to enjoy a drink. 1 6 2
usually show him seated before his cave or the pithos; the
O n the infrequent scenes of the rout, painters depict the cen-
centaurs attack. 1 6 6
'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'; Splitter 2000, no. 11); Late Protocorinthian sack alabastron, Florence, Museo Archeologico 79252 (CorVP 630; LIMC 8 (1997), p. 691, no. 236, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'; Splitter 2000, no. 10); Early Corinthian skyphos, London, British Museum 1892.3-8.1 (Payne 1931, no. 693; Schiffler 1976, Κ 17, pl. 6; CorVP 630; Splitter 2000, no. 53); Middle Corinthian column krater, Corinth, Archaeological Museum C-1930.103 ( L I M C 8 (1997), p. 692, no. 251, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'; Boardman 1998, fig. 397; Splitter 2000, no. 103); Late Corinthian aryballos, London, British Museum 1935.5-18.2 (Schiffler 1976, Κ 19; CorVP 631; Splitter 2000, no. 167); other examples listed in CorVP, pp. 630-1. Corinthian parallels suggest to me that the centauromachy on the Chest of Kypselos (Pausanias 5-19.9) had a composition with fleeing rather than attacking centaurs, but Splitter 2000, fig. 39 and reconstruction, retains the composition of advancing centaurs originally proposed by von Massow (1916, pp. 101-2, fig. 25, pi. 1).
Corinthian imagery strongly suggest that the designer of this
The several features of relief A 5 that find parallel only in
13:7 Paris, Louvre M N C 677: Payne 1931, no. 941, pl. 31.9-10; CorVP 184,1, pi. 70.1; LIMC 8 (1997), p. 693, no. 252, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'; Splitter 2000, no. 102. Herakles fights with firebrands rather than a bow, as in Apollodoros, Library 2.5.4. 138 Supra n. 141. 139 Closest to our A5 is an early Attic skyphos fragment with Herakles as archer pursuing a centaur, Athens, National Museum 16400: A A, 1939, col. 227, fig. 1; Schiffler 1976, A 26; Ahlberg-Cornell 1992, p. 105, no. 103, fig. 181. 160 The rare exceptions include a louterion by Sophilos, Athens, National Museum 15918, 15942 (ABV 40,21; Para 18; LIMC 8 (1997), p. 692, no. 242, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'); column krater by Painter of Vatican 309, Athens, National Museum 635 (ABV 122,24; Graef-Langlotz I, no. 635C-e, pi. 41). 161 Note especially Tyrrhenian amphora in a private collection (Padgett 2003, pp. 186-9, n o · 33)· See also Hobart, University of Tasmania 59 ( L I M C 4 (1988), p. 115, no. 50, s.v. 'Eurytion', (E. Zervoudaki)); and possibly Paris, Louvre E849 {LIMC 5 (1990), p. 890, no. 81, s.v. 'Kaineus', (E. Laufer)). 162 Luce 1924, pp. 300-6; ABL 137-9, ΡΡ· 1M~% Schauenburg 1971, pp. 43-54; Schiffler 1976, pp. 37-41, nos. A/Ph 1-38; Verbanck-Piérard 1982, pp. 143-54; Noël 1983, pp. 141-50; Brammer 1984, pp. 54-8; Schefold 1992, pp. 135-7, figs· 159, 161; Wolf 1993, pp. 41-2; LIMC 8 (1997), pp. 691-3, 709-10, nos. 237-41, 261-3, 3 51—64 s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'.
relief w o r k e d from a Corinthian or Corinthian-inspired prototype. M o s t of the Corinthian examples belong to the seventh century, with the latest dating to the first quarter of the sixth century. Their production is thus significantly earlier than even the earliest date proposed for the temple at Assos. However, the Corinthian legacy was strong and may have lingered in East
163 e.g., 'Pseudo-Chalkidian' neck amphora, Berlin, Staatliche Museen F1670 {LIMC 8 (1997), p. 693, no. 255, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'); 'Pseudo-Chalkidian' neck amphora on which Herakles uses a club against fully equine centaurs, Paris, Louvre CA10532 (Vallet 1956, no. 2, pis. 4-5); Boeotian kantharos, Munich, Staatliche Antikensammlungen 7740 {LIMC 8 (1997), p. 693, no. 253, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'); Euboian amphora, Eretria, Archaeological Museum (Schiffler 1976, no. EU 1 (Herakles uses a sword)); relief pithos fragments from Melos, Athens, British School {LIMC 8 (1997), p. 694, no. 272, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'; Simantoni-Bournia 2004, fig. 162); relief pithos fragment from Argive Heraion that show Herakles as kneeling archer against fully equine centaurs, Athens, National Museum 14209 {LIMC 8 (1997), p. 694, no. 273, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'; Waldstein 1902.II, pp. 180-1, pi. 63.1-3). 164 Paris, Louvre E662: Stibbe 1972, no. 313, pis. 110.4, 111.2; Pipili 1987, pp. 7-10, no. 15; LIMC 8 (1997), p- 693, no. 254, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'. 163 Supra n. 156; Brize 1980, p. 53. ,6ft Etruscan scenes: LIMC 5 (1990), pp. 227-8, nos. 277-9, 282-3, 285-7, s.v. 'Herakles/Herde', (S. Schwarz); Banti 1966, pp. 371-9; Krauskopf 1974, pp. 20-2; Schiffler 1976, pp. 136-9; Hemelrijk 1984, p. 178 and η. 745· From Magna Graecia, note a silver relief with a kneeling archer attacking a human-legged centaur across two metopes, New York, Metropolitan Museum of Art 1927.122.23 {LIMC 8 (1997), p. 695, no. 279, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides;' Padgett 2003, pp. 184-6, no. 32); relief vessel, Croton, Museo Archeologico Nazionale 1224 {LIMC 8 (!997)> Ρ· 695, no. 277, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides;' Krauskopf 1974. fig· 8); arula, Croton {LIMC 8 (1997), p. 694, no. 275, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides').
182
THE
SCULPTURE
Greece. B y the second half of the sixth century, most ordinary
necessity and benevolence of her support. Herakles is also
G r e e k centaurs have horse legs, but human-legged centaurs
intimately connected with centaurs; he has at least three serious
have a somewhat longer history in East G r e e k art. 1 6 7 Still, w e
encounters w i t h these half-humans, one of w h i c h ultimately
w o u l d be hard-pressed to place a scene such as this one m u c h
causes his death. 1 6 9 Wine or sex lies at the root of each con-
beyond the middle of the sixth century.
frontation, w i t h the centaurs abandoning all civilized behaviour for the acquisition of either. In the battle on M t Pholoe,
Significance of the iconography
the chief element of the s y m p o s i o n — w i n e — s e r v e s to distin-
Despite its potential monotony, the extended composition of
guish the hero f r o m the half-beasts. M a d with desire either to
Herakles putting centaurs to rout fits the long narrow field and
hoard the w i n e or drink it themselves, the inhospitable centaurs
carries the eye across the building more effectively than any of
thwart the efforts of Pholos to honour Herakles as a guest. 1 7 0
the other scenes on the epistyle. A l t h o u g h the overall impres-
T h e y assault Herakles w h e n he attempts to drink the wine, a
sion is highly decorative, the m y t h was not arbitrarily selected
flagrant violation of xenia. T h e m y t h represents a failed s y m -
for its compositional opportunities. Wilhelm Roscher and,
posion. Herakles alexikakos,
later, Bernard H o l t z m a n n have suggested that the centauroma-
bestial and barbarous, must set the centaurs to rout. 1 7 1 C e n -
chy may have been intended to reference the Thessalian origins
taurs serve as metaphors for the negative potential in human
defender of the civilized f r o m the
of the A e o l i c people, a relationship that seems subtle but not
behaviour, revealed, in this case, b y wine. Herakles cannot
impossible, given at least some confusion over the location of
entirely destroy these creatures (they are expressions of the
the episode on M t Pholoe. 1 6 8
potent natural forces partly embodied in the G r e e k s ' favourite
M o r e immediately accessible to the viewer, however, w o u l d
animal, the horse), but he can put them in disarray and thereby
have been the basic meaning of the m y t h itself, made all the
diminish their negative force. T h e price is high, for the well-
more striking given the broader ideas embodied in the sculp-
intentioned and civil Pholos, still clutching the cup of wine,
tural programme. A t h e n a is the great patron of Herakles; his
will be destroyed in the conflict.
appearance on her temple serves as a reminder of both the
O n e cannot dismiss the admonitory tone of this m y t h w h e n set in the broader context of the scenes on the epistyle. T h e
e.g., a kneeling Herakles draws his bow against a fleeing, human-legged centaur in afineexample of the rout on an East Greek bronze relief from Olympia, Athens, National Museum 6444 (Brize 1985, pp. 76-80, pi. 23.2). Compare landscape elements to Mytilene antefix (supra n. 151). For the legs of East Greek centaurs, see Schiffler 1976, pp. 91-106. East Greek centaurs with human forelegs from the mid-sixth century appear on, e.g., the following: situla, Cairo, Egyptian Museum 32377 (Schiffler 1976, Ο 4, pl. 9; LIMC 8 (1997), p. 680, no. 98, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'); relief pithoi, Athens, National Museum nos. 5604, 5607, and Mariemont Museum B82 (LIMC 8 (1997), p. 683, no. 134, s.v. 'Kentauroi et Kentaurides'; Simantoni-Bournia 2004, p. 58, fig. 38). Representations of human-legged centaurs from the third quarter of the sixth century include: Ionic cup, Langlotz Collection (Samos VI.1, p. 129, no. 446, pi. 51); Campana dinos, Rome, Villa Giulia, Inv. 25134 {CVA Villa Giulia 3, pl. 1.6). From the early fifth century, see: Klazomenian sarcophagi (R. Cook 1981, pp. 31-2, no. Gì, pi. 42,3; G20, pi. 84, 3; G25, fig. 31). The centaur on fragment B209 from the Temple of Artemis at Ephesos (supra n. 152) has a human leg, but the foot (or hoof?) is not preserved. Centaurs with human forelegs linger particularly in other outlying areas such as Boeotia and Etruria; cf. Schiffler 1976, p. 103 and n. 363; LIMC 8 (1997), pp. 72χ—7, s.v. 'Kentauroi (in Etruria)', (C. Weber-Lehmann). 107
Roscher II. 1, col. 1088, s.v. 'Kentauren'; Holtzmann 1979, p. 6; Finster-Hotz 1984, p. 28, n. 54. For reassessment of the Aeolian migration, see Rose (2008), who argues against population movements in the Iron Age and sees a vested interest in the migration stories chiefly during the Classical and Hellenistic periods in response to the Persian wars. The myth, if not the reality, of a Thessalian ancestry was, however, part of the poetics by the later seventh century, for in the Homeric Hymn to Apollo, Makar, king of Lesbos, is son of Aiolos, king of Thessaly (although other genealogies are offered). Other founders include Lesbos, son of Lapithes, son of Aiolos; or Orestes and the Penthelids. There arc connections between Thessaly and Arkadia on the one hand, and Thessaly and Mt Pholoe and Lesbos on the other. Centaurs inhabit both Thessaly and Arkadia. Later authors leave no doubt that Herakles meets Pholos and the centaurs in the Peloponnese, but Euripides has Herakles fight them in Thessaly, too (Herakles 182, 364-74; see commentary, Bond 1981, pp. 115, 156-7). There may have been a Mt Pholoe in Thessaly; see Statius, Achilleid 1.168-70 and Lucan, Pharsalia 3.198, 7.449,827. A papyrus text establishes a link between Mt Pholoe and the foundation story of Lesbos involving Makar. For text and commentary, Haslam 1986, pp. 115, 119-21, no. 3711 (commentary on lines 2iff.). For Aiolos, see Preller-Robert4 II. 1, pp. 51-4; Roscher I.i, cols. 192-5. I am grateful to George Huxley for discussing these issues with me. 168
centauromachy is purposefully juxtaposed with its purely natural and fully civilized counterparts, represented on the one hand b y lions savaging prey (reliefs A 9 - A 1 3 ) and on the other by the congenial s y m p o s i o n (relief A4). T h e basic actions of eating and drinking connect these reliefs in clear polarity. Powerful, amoral images of natural strength frame demonstrations of proper and improper human behaviour; the consequences of half-human, failed civility are directly opposed to the fully human expression of civility, of w h i c h w e will say more below.
Relief
A3: Herakles
wrestling
Triton
O n relief A 3 , Herakles wrestles w i t h Triton in the presence of six excited Nereids (Pis. 9 8 - i o o a - c ; Fig. 80). T h e superior quality of this relief and its iconographie dependence
on
Athenian pedimental sculpture has justly made it the bestk n o w n scene f r o m the temple. T h e relief is carved o n several shallow planes, with figures set one behind another to suggest their spatial relationship. T h e wrestling pair is depicted on a monumental scale well composed to fit the long narrow field, with hero and monster nearly equal in size. Herakles, naked
169 In addition to the Mt Pholoe episode, Herakles dispatches Eurytion and Nessos (LIMC 6 (1992), pp. 838-47, s.v. 'Nessos', (F. Diez de Valasco)). According to Pausanias (3.18.16), he fights the centaur Oreios on the Throne of Apollo at Amyklai as well. 170 duBois 1982, pp. 28-32; Noël 1983, pp. 141-50; Detienne 1986, pp. 64-6. For xenia, see Adkins 1963, pp. 30-45; Murray 1980, pp. 49-52; Scott 1982, pp. 1-19. 171 Segal 1974, p. 300. Herakles is not above violating xenia, but that is not relevant here; see Galinsky 1972, pp. 11-17.
THE
SCULPTURE
l5
9
A3 .345
1-
H
.574
.818
Η
1—I
h
.5
H
1
1—l· 1
H
1—I
h 1.5
H
1 2
1—I
1—I
1 1 2.5
1—I
1 1 3m
FIGURE 8O. A3: Herakles wrestling Triton.
but armed with a tubular quiver of arrows slung over his back,
portionally large heads, long hair, and accentuated limbs. Each
lunges beside Triton, encircling his arms around the wriggling
Nereid wears a foldless chiton belted at the waist to overhang
sea deity to grasp his human wrists. Triton's fishy b o d y undu-
in a schematic kolpos w i t h a rectangular w i n d o w . T h e style, as
lates across the relief, issuing small dorsal and ventral fins and
w e have noted, is at home in the region. 1 7 6 The sculptor went to
ending in a double-pronged tail fin. 1 7 2 H e is smooth and pos-
some trouble to shape the inner contours of the legs beneath
sibly scaleless in the East G r e e k manner of representing mer-
the clinging skirts, surely in order to help emphasize the move-
men, although such details, w h i c h w o u l d have been difficult to
ment of the
carve in the gritty andesite, could have been picked out in
figures.177
Unlike the closed or processional compositions o n the other
paint. 1 7 3 H i s right arm, poised across his chest, conveniently
reliefs f r o m the temple, the action here w o r k s in opposite
disguises the juncture between his fishy and human parts. T h e
directions, w i t h Herakles and Triton moving right and the
fragmentary object in Triton's raised left hand has been called a
Nereids
conch, but it looks more like a thin, sickle-shaped fish with a
ations—either requiring or generated by the extraordinary
small triangular tail; parallels in other media suggest the
length of the b l o c k — m a y have dictated the unusual placement
processing
left.
Specific
architectural
consider-
same. 1 7 4 T h e thin object projecting f r o m the top of Herakles'
of the four Nereids to the left. T h e axial spacings indicate that
quiver may be a bundle of arrows or the end of a short bow, the
the relief can take a position only on a façade or over the central
preferred weapon in this struggle. 1 7 5
intercolumniation of the pronaos.
T h e agitated Nereids m o v e away f r o m the wrestlers. F o u r fill the left side of the block, while t w o more stand behind the
Sculptor
wrestlers, effectively tying together the t w o parts of the com-
T h e Triton and symposion (A4) reliefs are similar in design and
position. These isocephalic females are stout figures w i t h pro-
style; they look like the w o r k of the same sculptor. Both combine monumental protagonists w i t h isocephalic ancillary
For fishy bodies: Shepard 1940, pp. 10-30; LIMC 8 (1997), pp. 83-5, s.v. 'Tritones' (N. Icard-Gianolio). 173 Compare Triton on the Northampton Amphora (LIMC 8 (1997), p. 73, no. 3, s.v. 'Tritones') or on a Klazomenian oinochoe, Museumslandschaft Hessen Kassel T438 (LIMC 8 (1997), p. 73, no. 2, s.v. 'Tritones'). 174 Contra Clarke 1898, pp. 221-2; Sartiaux 1915, p. 30. On 15 Attic blackfigure examples of this scene, Triton clutches a dolphin or fish by the tail; otherwise, he holds nothing; see Glynn 1977, catalogue; Brommer 1984, p. 91; LIMC 8 (1997), p. 72, s.v. 'Triton' {N. Icard-Gianolio). 175 Glynn (1977, catalogue, pp. 85-95) c i t e s 35 instances where Herakles wears a quiver and/or bow when he wrestles Triton, compared to the 15 representations where he holds a sword and the 19 representations where he carries a club. 172
figures. Triton's slightly puckered lips that fail to meet at the corners, sharp nose that ends in a flaring wing, full beard, and ovoid head are especially close to the features of the centreright symposiast on relief A 4 . Herakles' long, schematic ear with squarish lobe compares best w i t h those of the symposiasts. A l l these figures wear their hair tightly rolled under at the
176 177
Supra n. 27. Compare the Karaköy relief or the Polyxena sarcophagus, supra n. 28.
184 T H E
SCULPTURE
nape of the neck; only Triton's now-damaged coiffure is
century, depicting Herakles wrestling a sea deity (Akropolis
slightly longer. Herakles' taut physique, especially his swelling
no. 2 and A k r o p o l i s no. 36). 185 The iconography is distinctive:
biceps and pectorals, matches the upper torsos of the first t w o
a naked Herakles moves alongside the sea daimon rather than
symposiasts; the curve of Triton's human chest is reflected in
straddling him. 1 8 6 T h e merman's fishy b o d y f l o w s in t w o gen-
the curving bodies of the reclining drinkers. Certainly the main
tle undulations, not the single, enormous
figures on these t w o reliefs are b y the same hand. Relief A8/48
popular on vase painting. His docility is typical of representa-
may belong to this group as w e l l . 1 7 8 A stylistic comparison of
tions belonging
the Nereids is less valuable, given their damaged state. N e v e r -
painted versions feature a more aggressive daimon that strug-
to the A k r o p o l i s
whiplash-curve
iconography;
canonical
theless, their stiff gestures and schematic poses stand in marked
gles violently against Herakles' wrestling holds. G i v e n that
contrast to the more fluidly represented protagonists on the
both hero and merman face the same direction in w h i c h their
same relief. Some explanation of the difference is required,
bodies m o v e on the Assian relief, related vases, and Sicilian
resting either in the challenges of the material, the skill of the
arulae, such may originally have been the case for one or both
sculptor, or the source of the image. T h e fact that a similar
of the A k r o p o l i s pediments. 1 8 7 While in front of and roughly
discrepancy appears between the symposiasts and their servant
parallel to the sea daimon, Herakles' lunge accentuates the
on relief A 3 suggests that w o r k i n g the difficult material at t w o
thrust f r o m the corner to the centre of the pedimental
different scales was a significant factor.
on the Athenian sculptures. T h e special force of this arrange-
field
ment is diminished but not entirely lost in the rectangular field Iconography
of the relief f r o m Assos.
A s early as 1842, J. de Witte noted the similarity of the Assos
A shared conception, scale, and composition suggest that the
scene to depictions on A t t i c vases and suggested identifying the
designer of the Assos relief was familiar with the Athenian
image as Herakles wrestling either Nereus or Triton. O t h e r
pediments. T h e Assian relief most closely resembles the larger
early efforts to interpret the iconography privileged H o m e r i c
and slightly later pediment, A k r o p o l i s no. 36, b o r r o w i n g f r o m
or Troadic connections. 1 7 9 Charles Texier recognized in the
it the gently undulating b o d y of Triton, the lunging position of
scene the struggle between Menelaos and Proteus recounted
Herakles, and probably the fish.188 T h e position of Herakles'
in the Odyssey (4.435-80), with the fleeing females represent-
legs (compressed inner left w i t h thrusting outer right) takes
ing Helen and her companions. 1 8 0 Frédéric de Clarac f o l l o w e d
something f r o m both of the pediments: the thrust f r o m A k r o -
in this vein, seeing in the symposion (A4) the peaceful reso-
polis no. 36, but the lifted knee f r o m A k r o p o l i s no. 2. T h e
lution of their wrestle. 1 8 1 In an attempt to connect the iconog-
Assos relief introduces some important innovations as well.
raphy more closely w i t h the geography of the Troad, C l a r k e
T h e clever grasp Herakles lays on Triton, reaching around
chose instead to identify the scene as Herakles freeing Hesione
Triton's shoulders to pin his wrists, appears new at Assos. 1 8 9
f r o m the sea
monster. 1 8 2
Sartiaux f o u n d Clarke's connection
compelling, even suggesting that the Nereids are j o y o u s Trojan w o m e n , cheering. 1 8 j Such stories, however, lie largely outside the archaic visual tradition. Herakles wrestling a sea deity, on the other hand, was enormously popular in archaic art, as de Witte first noted. In vase painting and shieldband reliefs, the sea deity is called Halios Geron, Nereus, or Triton; the latter t w o have a distinctive (although occasionally overlapping) iconography. 1 8 4 T o d a y it is obvious that the scene on the Assos relief is closely connected with the t w o important poros pediments f r o m the Athenian A k r o p o l i s , dated to the second quarter of the sixth 178 Clarke 1882, p. i n , groups A3 with A 5 and assigns A4 to a different sculptor. However, the figures of Herakles and the centaurs on A 5 lack the boldness of form and specific detail that distinguish the work on A3, A4, and AS/48. Sartiaux 1915, pp. 31 and 34, compares the heads on A3, A4, and A8 but does not attribute the reliefs to specific hands. 179 de Witte 1842, pp. 317-20. 1S" Texier 1849, p. 202, pi. 114. 181 Clarac 1841, pp. 1157-9. 182 Clarke 1882, p. 106; Clarke 1898, pp. 209-25. 183 Sartiaux 1915, pp. 50-2. 184 For bibliography, see LIMC 4 (1988), pp. 409-10, sv. 'Halios Geron', (R. Glynn); LIMC 6 (1992), p. 824, s.v. 'Nereus' (M. Pipili); LIMC 8 (ι997), p. 69, s.v. 'Triton'). See also Boardman in Rasmussen and Spivey 1991, pp. 91-3; Mommsen 2002.
185 Akropolis no. 2: Brouskari 1974, p. 37, no. 2, fig. 47; LIMC 8 (1997), p. 70, no. 16, s.v. 'Triton'. Akropolis no. 36: Brouskari 1974, pp. 39-40, no. 36, fig. 54; LIMC 8 (1997), p. 70, no. 17 s.v. 'Triton' (where surely Akropolis no. 36 is meant). 186 Group distinguished by Glynn 1981, nos. 2oa-4, pp. 127-30. Glynn's no. 24 is now Atlanta, Michael C. Carlos Museum no. 2000.2. J. Gaunt in Padgett 2003, pp. 343-6, no. 96, notes that the merman is clothed and therefore should be Nereus. Sicilian arulae share this composition, with the difference that both sea deity and Herakles are clothed; see van der Meijden 1993, pp. 83-7, 332-4, nos. MY24-6; LIMC 8 (1997), p. 70, no. 2oa-b, s.v. 'Triton'. 187 LIMC 8 (1997), p. 70, nos. 11, 18, 2oa-b, s.v. 'Triton'. On the Red Triton pediment, the sea deity faces forward; Herakles' head is lost. On the larger pediment, Akropolis no. 36, the direction in which both protagonists face is disputed. Early restorations show Herakles in profile with Triton turning full face: Heberdey 1919, p. 49; Buschor 1924, fig. 6; Schuchhardt 1935-6, figs. 14, 16. Dickens 1912, p. 83, suggests a three-quarter view for Triton. Broneer 1939, pp. 95-7, n. 2, figs. 4-5, pi. facing p. 95, restores the head of a young man found on the north slope of the Akropolis to Herakles, who would then be in three-quarter view, with Triton looking 'very slightly toward the spectator's left', in the manner of the popular type. The head of Herakles has been removed, opening the question once again. Triton's collarbone, often used as evidence that he faces frontally or in three-quarter view, is more part of the chest than the head, which is free—in archaic anatomy—to turn as suits the composition; compare Triton's frontal clavicle on relief A3. 188 Five of the fifteen painted instances in which Triton holds a dolphin occur on vases with the Akropolis iconography. If the limestone pediments inspired this group of paintings, then we are justified in restoring a dolphin in the now-lost right hand of the large Triton. See Buschor 1924, fig. 6; Schuchhardt 1935-6, figs. 14, 16. 189 On the Red Triton, Herakles locks his arms around the merman's body, grasping his right wrist with his left hand. On the big Triton pediment, the arms of
THE
SCULPTURE
*33
Triton's smooth b o d y f o l l o w s East G r e e k conventions. These
expresses fear or alarm. Such emotions w o u l d suit our Nereids.
differences notwithstanding, the A k r o p o l i s pediments have
If they w e r e once in a dance, it has been interrupted.
more in c o m m o n w i t h the Assos relief than any other sculp-
Archaic G r e e k art shows many fleeing or dancing Nereids
tured or painted version of the scene. 1 9 0 T h e close visual asso-
but none quite the equal of these. In most other representations
ciation
pediments,
of Herakles and Triton that include additional figures, a f e w
coupled w i t h their marked difference f r o m the typical scheme
symmetrically arranged Nereids either dance or flee in both
between
relief A 3
and the A k r o p o l i s
in the smaller arts, stands against Ursula Finster-Hotz's claim
directions. T h e y may cast a glance over their shoulders or stand
that the scene emerged at Assos f r o m the '"international"
passively observing the wrestlers. T h e 17 dancing Nereids
schemata of the Archaic G r e e k repertoire'. 1 9 1 N o r is it likely
encircling the X e n o k l e s cup are exceptional. 1 9 7 In their group-
that the artist relied on a verbal description of a scene f o r w h i c h
ing and stride, our Nereids have more in c o m m o n with the
w e have no surviving literary source and w h i c h may well have
stiff-legged Nereids w h o flee f r o m Peleus' ambush or pursuit
been an A t t i c invention. T h e connection is immediate and goes
of Thetis on Corinthian and A t t i c pottery of the second quarter
to the heart of our understanding of the temple (see Chapter 9,
of the sixth century. 1 9 8 Their hand gestures are closest to those
and 'Significance of the Temple', pp. 207, 232-4).
on a late seventh-century bronze tripod leg s h o w i n g the am-
Before turning to this larger issue, w e must consider the
bush. 1 9 9 In scale and relationship to the protagonists, the Ner-
Nereids. H a v i n g based the main part of the scene on the
eids are not so far removed f r o m the surprised w o m e n on
A k r o p o l i s pediments, the designer was left to devise his o w n
Euphronios' calyx krater with Herakles wrestling Antaios, 2 0 0
scheme f o r balancing the composition and filling the rest of the
but stylistically they are at least a generation (if not t w o ) earlier.
block. 1 9 2 H e did so with six Nereids w h o have an appropriate
Such diffuse parallels point up the difficulty of fixing on a
place in the iconography. 1 9 3 T h e sisters move away in stiff-
consistent chronological f r a m e w o r k w h e n using external im-
legged strides, with their w e i g h t balanced on the back leg.
agery to account for local adaptation. O n the w h o l e , however,
Their alternating f o r w a r d and backward glances and matching
both Herakles and Triton, and the Nereids, seem to me
gestures establish a dance-like rhythm, and Judith Barringer
strongly connected to their counterparts f r o m the second quar-
has suggested they represent dancing, not fleeing Nereids. 1 9 4
ter of the sixth century.
H o w e v e r , the Nereids do not assume typical dancing moves, such as holding hands or having outstretched arms, one up and
Significance
one d o w n . 1 9 5 Instead, they appear to clap their hands, a gesture
T o our current knowledge, Herakles wrestling a sea deity
that signifies neither j o y nor terror, but instead indicates the
appears in monumental architectural sculpture o n l y in Athens
surprise, dismay, or general agitation expressed by a bystander
and at Assos. B y choosing this particular scene, the Assians
w h o does not or cannot intervene in the event. 1 9 6 T h e
final
clearly meant to connect their Temple of A t h e n a with the
N e r e i d closes the scene by making a frontal turn to l o o k back,
Athenian counterparts; they must have had some idea of the
throwing her hands in the air in a gesture that generally
importance of the scene to the Athenians. It is unlikely (although not impossible) that they chose this highly specific iconography to represent a story entirely of their o w n . With
both Herakles and the merman are not well preserved, but what remains suggests that Herakles used the same hold, but with the hands reversed. Triton grasped Herakles' right forearm with his left hand and held a fish in his right. These holds are well attested in painted versions. For preserved fragments of the hands and arms belonging to this group, see Dickens 1912, pp. 82-3, no. 36. 190 Closest is a Sicilian arula in Copenhagen, Ny Carlsberg Glyptotek 3278, on which Herakles and Triton move in the same manner but both are clothed; cf. LIMC 8 (1997), p. 70, no. 20b, s.v. 'Triton'. Other examples in relief with Herakles in front of the sea monster include a shieldband relief, Olympia, Archaeological Museum inv. 1881 (inscribed Halios Geron) (Kunze 1950, pl. 54; LIMC 4 (1988), p. 410, no. 2 s.v. 'Halios Geron'); an island gem, London, British Museum 74.3-5.1 (Brize 1980, pi. 13.2; LIMC 6 (1992), p. 827, no. 33, s.v. 'Nereus'); another Sicilian arula, although here Herakles swims above Triton {LIMC 8 (1997), p. 70, no. 20a, s.v. 'Triton'). 191 Finster-Hotz 1984, pp. 39-40. 192 Some configuration of Nereids has been proposed for both Athenian pediments. Cf. von Steuben 1968, p. 31, for Nereids in the centre of the Red Triton (Akropolis no. 2) pediment. Dörig 1984, p. 94 (citing Buschor, 1922b, p. 58), identifies the figure to the left of 'Bluebeard' as a Nereid. 193 Glynn 1981, p. 129, n. 69; LIMC 6 (1992), pp. 803-4, n o s · 2 5 4 s - v · 'Nereides' (N. Icard-Gianolio and A.-V. Szabados); Barringer 1995, pp. 158-9, 161-2. 194 Barringer 1995, p. 232, no. 373. 195 Compare to other scenes discussed by Barringer 1995, pp. 83-7. 196 Contra Sartiaux 1915, pp. Ji-i, who calls the gesture happy applause. For raised hands in art: Demisch 1984. On agitated gesture common for females: Neumann 1965, p. 10 and references.
correlation in imagery must have come some correlation in content. O f course, w e w o u l d be better able to test this basic hypothesis if the subject and its significance on the Athenian A k r o p o l i s were clear, but they are anything but. A brief review of the issues helps set the parameters f o r our understanding the scene and the degree to w h i c h its meanings at A t h e n s and Assos may intertwine. Herakles wrestling Triton, a predominantly A t t i c iconographie motif with no surviving literary source, derives from 197 Tarquinia, Museo Nazionale RC4194: LIMC 6 (1992), p. 804, no. 264 s.v. 'Nereides'. 19S Especially the Nereids on a Corinthian krater depicting the ambush of Thetis, Paris, Louvre E639 (CorVP 266, Bi; LIMC 6 (1992), p. 804, no. 271, s.v. 'Nereides'). See also a C Painter Siana cup with Peleus chasing at least six Nereids in a single direction, Taranto, Museo Nazionale IG4442 (ABV 53,48; LIMC 7 (1994), p. 256, no. 62, s.v. 'Peleus' (R. Vollkommer)). 199 New York, Metropolitan Museum of Art 58.11.6/59.11.1; LIMC 6 (1992), p. 806, no. 291, s.v. 'Nereides'. 200 Paris, Louvre G103: ARV2 14,1; Boardman 1974, p. 32, fig. 23; LIMC 1 (1981), p. 803, no. 24, s.v. 'Antaios Γ (R. Olmos and L. Balmaseda); Schefold 1992, fig. 170. Boardman states that the composition is new; perhaps the women derive from fleeing Nereids.
186
THE
SCULPTURE
earlier representations of Herakles wrestling the sea deity,
W h y Triton replaces Nereus, w h y this struggle became the
Nereus, in order to learn the w a y to the Garden of the Hesper-
subject of monumental sculpture on sacred buildings in the
ides in the far West. 201 This O l d Man of the Sea' possesses
second quarter of the sixth century, and w h y it appealed chiefly
knowledge unattainable by most humans, but the half-divine
to Athenians during the second half of the sixth century are not
hero Herakles wins the information through physical strength
obvious, for Triton has no relevant story in surviving literature.
and perseverance. In the early artistic versions, Nereus usually
Both the abrupt emergence and decline of the scene and its
appears as a tunic-clad, bald, or white-haired merman with a
potentially non-literary basis have led to considerable specula-
demonstrated capacity to produce threatening mutations that
tion about possible geographical, allegorical, political, reli-
distract Herakles' gaze. 2 0 2 In the visual arts 0.565, Triton re-
gious, or artistic motives and significance.
places the
fish-tailed
Nereus, w h o continues to encounter
In considering the pedimental sculptures, one solution is to
Herakles but in a fully human form. 2 0 3 His stand-in, Triton
come to terms with the story only in the context of Nereus,
(identified b y inscription), is younger, naked, and lacks muta-
whose place in ancient literature is assured. 208 B y side-stepping
tions; the n o w much-larger Herakles faces forward. 2 0 4 The
the conscious shift in the iconography documented in the
powerful Herakles struggling with a young, naked, non-mu-
smaller arts, one can, as José D ö r i g has, focus on the important
tating merman on the large A k r o p o l i s pediment no. 36 most
themes of strength, acquisition of knowledge, and ultimate
closely matches the iconography of Herakles wrestling Triton,
apotheosis of the hero, while at the same time finding a related
son of Poseidon, on Attic vase painting. A n d while some
role for the infamous Bluebeard. But if we are to interpret the
scholars have seen the struggle between Herakles and Nereus
architectural fish-men as Nereus, a stronger case needs to be
in the earlier 'Red Triton' pediment, A k r o p o l i s no. 2, none of
made for separating the monumental sculptures from the very
the decisive factors of that iconography (a sure mutation
real shift witnessed in the smaller arts.
sprouting from a clothed merman, or the backward turn of
Foregrounding this shift, John Boardman developed an in-
Herakles' head) are indicated; more likely, A k r o p o l i s no. 2 is
terpretive strategy immensely popular throughout the 1970s
among the earliest of the Triton i m a g e s . O n c e introduced,
and 1980s, centred on the hypothesis that archaic Greeks
the wrestling match between Herakles and Triton takes hold
manipulated mythological representations to serve as political
with only a f e w variations, reaching its greatest popularity in
allegories reflecting contemporary events. In this instance, he
Attic vase painting c.530-510 and rapidly declining there-
proposes that the new iconography of Herakles wrestling Tri-
after. 206 There are only a handful of archaic non-Attic repre-
ton served as a mythological allegory created to reference
sentations of Herakles wrestling Triton, most (excluding the
Athens' amphibious victory over the Megarians for possession
relief from Assos) produced in the West. 2 0 7
of Salamis, for the founder of that city, Megaros, was Triton's half-brother. 2 0 9 Ruth G l y n n , also supporting a political inter-
Pherekydes, FGrHist Pherekydes Fi6a; Apollodoros, Library 2.5.11. Stesichoros is said to have described the transformations of Nereus; Brize suggests he did so in the Geryoneis. For discussion: Brize 1980, pp. 66-80; Glynn 1981, pp. 121-2; LIMC 6 (1992), p. 824, s.v. 'Nereus'. 202 LIMC 6 (1992), pp. 826-7, n o s · xi>-25, s.v. 'Nereus'. 203 Brommer (1983a, pp. 104-5, ar>d Γ9^4, p. 92) argues that scenes of Herakles and Triton are equally early, but the fragment in question shows Nereus. See Boardman 1989, p. 193; LIMC 6 (1992), p. 826, no. 23, s.v. 'Nereus'. Scenes with Herakles wrestling a fully human Nereus include LIMC 6 (1992), pp. 827-8, nos. 34-48. 204 Herakles wrestles Triton while Nereus watches: LIMC 6 (1992), p. 833-4, nos. 107-24, and nos. 23, 31, s.v. 'Nereus'. All three characters are identified by inscription on no. 107, neck amphora, London, British Museum B223. See also LIMC 8 (1997), pp. 69-70, nos. 3-20, s.v. 'Triton'. 203 Generally, both pediments are thought to represent Triton, but Buschor 1941, pp. 18-19, an d Kunze 1950, p. 109, interpret the merman on Akropolis no. 2 ('Red Triton') as Nereus, and the one on Akropolis no. 36 as Triton. Ahlberg-Cornell 1984, p. 103, questions the iconographie certainty of Triton over Nereus on both pediments. Dörig (19S4), followed by Stewart (1990, p. 114), favours Nereus in Akropolis no. 36 for narrative reasons. Akropolis no. 2 is listed as uncertain Nereus or Triton in LIMC 6 (1992), p. 827, no. 32, s.v. 'Nereus'; both pediments are included in LIMC 8 (1997), p. 70, nos. 16-17 (where surely Akropolis no. 36 is meant), s.v. 'Triton'. 206 Boardman 1972, pp. 59-60; Brize 1980, pp. 87-93; Glynn 1981, pp. 127-30; LI MC 6 (1992), pp. 835-6, s.v. 'Nereus'; LIMC S (1997), pp. 72-3, s.v. 'Triton'. For the possibility that Exekias created the interlocking form that became especially popular in the second half of the sixth century: Mommsen 2002, pp. 231-2. 207 e.g., Sicilian terracotta arulae (supra n. 190); Etruscan hydria, Paris, Louvre CA2515 (EVP 16,2); Etruscan (?) cornelian scarab, London, British Museum 91.6-25.5 (LIMC 8 (1997), p. 70, no. 19, s.v. 'Triton'). See also a Corinthian plate: CorVP 629; BCH 102 (1978) p. 663, fig. 49. There are more non-Attic 201
pretation, argues that the iconography celebrates Athenian control of the Hellespont, in particular Sigeion, previously held b y Mytilene. Given the historical connection of the Peisistratids w i t h the northern Troad and Herakles' famous activities against T r o y and the sea monster in the same region, she argues that aspects of the Hesione story and the Herakles and Nereus iconography were synthesized into a new form of Herakles wrestling Triton. 2 1 0 A s Clarke and Sartiaux had tried to prove earlier, b y suggesting the Hesione story, the m y t h - s y m b o l w o u l d be meaningful on the temple at Assos because of its special geographic significance to the Troad. Less compellingly, G u d r u n A h l b e r g - C o r n e l l sees the origin of the Herakles and Nereus motif in the general social tensions of Solonian Athens, with the sea monster becoming a 'pictorial symbol of the social unrest, and Herakles being the mythical equivalent of Solon, or his political and social acts'.
11
Those
w h o argue against the approach of Boardman, G l y n n , and
examples of Herakles wrestling Nereus, e.g., LIMC 6 (1992), pp. 826-7, nos. 23-5, 28-9, 33, s.v. 'Nereus'. z'"s Especially Dörig and Stewart (supra n. 205). 209 Boardman 1972, pp. 59-60; Boardman, 1975b, p. 10; Boardman 1989, p. 193; Boardman in Rasmussen and Spivey 1991, pp. 91-3. 210 Glynn 1981, pp. 130-2. 211 Ahlberg-Cornell 1984, p. 103 and 1992, p. 106.
187 T H E
*33
SCULPTURE
A h l b e r g - C o r n e l l e i t h e r feel t h a t s u c h m a n i p u l a t i o n o f m y t h s is
Ideal
i n c o n s i s t e n t w i t h the cultural f r a m e w o r k o f the p e r i o d , o r
find
τέχνη z u r Ü b e r w i n d u n g der r o h e n N a t u r g e w a l t befähigen.')215
the p r o p o s e d a s s o c i a t i o n s i n s u f f i c i e n t l y transparent o r c o n v i n -
I n this assessment, S c h e f o l d agrees.216 F i n s t e r - H o t z focuses o n
cing.
212
W h i l e t h e a g e n c y o f P e i s i s t r a t o s h a s b e e n o v e r s t a t e d , it
des
athletisch
geschulten
Aristokraten, den
Aóyo?
und
the e c o n o m i c p o s s i b i l i t i e s , c i t i n g the p o p u l a r i t y a n d s u i t a b i l i t y
is w o r t h b e a r i n g i n m i n d t h a t f o r a c u l t u r e t h a t h a d n o d i f f i -
o f scenes o f H e r a k l e s f o r t e m p l e s o f A t h e n a , a n d the i m p o r t -
c u l t y a f e w g e n e r a t i o n s later i n e x p l o i t i n g the
a n c e o f s e a - f a r i n g t r a d e t o c i t i e s s u c h as A t h e n s
Amazonomachy
as a n a l l e g o r y f o r t h e i r b a t t l e w i t h t h e P e r s i a n s ,
manipulating
m y t h s for political messages w a s n o t entirely remote.
c o n n e c t i o n w i t h A t h e n a , g i v e n that H e r a k l e s wrestling T r i t o n on
religious
architecture
dedicated
to
the
Assos.
c i e n t c o n d i t i o n s f o r t h e c h o i c e o f t h i s s p e c i f i c i m a g e e i t h e r at
A n o t h e r interpretive strategy has been to identify a specific
appears
and
B o t h a r g u m e n t s m a k e g o o d sense, b u t t h e y d o n o t s e e m suffi-
goddess.
( A d m i t t e d l y , w e d o not k n o w to w h i c h specific b u i l d i n g
the
' R e d T r i t o n ' , A k r o p o l i s n o . 2, b e l o n g e d . ) T h e i m p o r t a n c e
of
Athens or Assos.217 The
range
of
these theories
underscores
the
difficulty
locating the principles g o v e r n i n g archaic i c o n o g r a p h y
in
within
its m o s t s i g n i f i c a n t c o n t e x t , t h e p o l i s t e m p l e . A t A s s o s , t o a d d t o t h e c h a l l e n g e , w e see t h e i d e a o n c e - r e m o v e d . C l e a r l y
Ath-
H e r a k l e s to A t h e n a stands w i t h o u t further elaboration, but a
e n s — a significant political p o w e r a n d h i g h l y f a s h i o n a b l e artis-
persuasive connection between A t h e n a
not
tic centre w h o s e w o r s h i p c e n t r e d o n the c u l t o f
ap-
a n i m p o r t a n t s o u r c e o f i d e a s f o r t h e b u i l d e r s o f t h e t e m p l e at
and Triton does
e m e r g e . E x p l a n a t i o n s o f h e r H o m e r i c e p i t h e t , Tpiroyeveta, p e a r to be r e t r o s p e c t i v e a n d the artistic e v i d e n c e T h a l i a P. H o w e
minimal.213
interprets the wrestle b e t w e e n A t h e n a ' s
tégé a n d P o s e i d o n ' s
s o n as a n a n a l o g u e f o r t h e
pro-
competition
I t is less
Assos.
counterparts
between A t h e n a and P o s e i d o n for patronage of Athens. T h u s ,
imum
west pediment
thematic
predecessors
actively
the A t h e n i a n s
(or
at S i g e i o n ) w e r e i n v o l v e d i n p r o m o t i n g
their
the
li-
aison. G l y n n offers the m o s t persuasive e x p l a n a t i o n f o r m a x -
the archaic p e d i m e n t s
become
clear h o w
Athena—was
involvement:
having
established
control
of
Sigeion,
of
the
A t h e n i a n s m o v e to secure the s o u t h e r n coast o f the T r o a d
o f the P a r t h e n o n , a s u g g e s t i o n of w h i c h
the
e n c o u r a g i n g t h e A s s i a n s t o b u i l d a D o r i c t e m p l e a n d d e c o r a t e it
p o t e n t i a l a t t r a c t i o n s f o r A t h e n s h a v e , o f c o u r s e , less r e l e v a n c e
with an A t h e n i a n p o w e r - s y m b o l
at A s s o s . 2 1 4
n o t fail to n o t i c e e v e r y t i m e t h e y sailed f r o m A c h i l l e i o n
I n a f o u r t h a p p r o a c h , P h i l i p B r i z e explores h o w the artistic
t h a t the M y t i l e n i a n s
by
could to
M y t i l e n e . H o w e v e r , the w i d e r a n g e o f i m a g e r y f o u n d o n the
a n d social e n v i r o n m e n t m i g h t have c o n t r i b u t e d to the c r e a t i o n
t e m p l e dilutes the force o f this a r g u m e n t . T h e e n s e m b l e
and popularity of Herakles wrestling Triton in Athens.
Brize
g e s t s t h a t t h e a r t i s t i c c o n n e c t i o n s w e r e f o r g e d b y t h e A s s i a n s as
sug-
c h o o s e s n o t to reject e n t i r e l y the p o t e n t i a l f o r a literary b a s i s
a c t i v e s e e k e r s r a t h e r t h a n as p a s s i v e r e c i p i e n t s ( s e e C h a p t e r 9,
in
' S i g n i f i c a n c e o f the T e m p l e ' ) . T h i s d y n a m i c d o e s n o t exclude a
the intersection o f the early v e r s i o n s o f H e r a k l e s ' search f o r
p o l i t i c a l c o n n e c t i o n b e t w e e n the cities, b u t it d o e s s u g g e s t that
the G a r d e n of the H e s p e r i d e s i n L i b y a , o n the o n e h a n d , a n d
Assos
the A r g o n a u t story, i n w h i c h T r i t o n assists i n the f o u n d a t i o n o f
politics entered into the choice, the A s s i a n s ' m o t i v e s f o r estab-
for
the
change
from
Nereus
to
Triton.
He
notes
that
was
not
simply
a satellite o f A t h e n s
(or
Sigeion).
If
C y r e n e a n d h a s a c u l t at L a k e T r i t o n i s , o n the other, l a y ' t h e
l i s h i n g the i c o n o g r a p h i e affiliation c o u l d have b e e n
p r e c o n d i t i o n s for a literary refashioning
f r o m the A t h e n i a n s ' m o t i v e s f o r c r e a t i n g the i m a g e r y in the
final
analysis,
Brize
prefers to
o f the subject'.
understand
the c h a n g e
O n from
H e r a k l e s struggling w i t h N e r e u s to H e r a k l e s wrestling Triton
first
different
place.
F r a m i n g t h e r o l e o f t h e H e r a k l e s a n d T r i t o n r e l i e f at A s s o s
p r i m a r i l y as a n a r t i s t i c d e v e l o p m e n t t h a t r e f l e c t s t h e c h a n g i n g
within
self-perception
b r o a d e r s i g n i f i c a n c e o f b o t h sea d a i m o n a n d h e r o , a l l o w s
ations—from
of archaic
narrative
Athenian
society. T h e
event to athletic contest
transform(wrestling),
f r o m supernatural
s h a p e - s h i f t e r to s i m p l e sea d a i m o n ,
small hero versus
big
size—are
all l i n k e d
superiority
mirrors
m o n s t e r to adversaries
to a d e v e l o p i n g the n e w
more
confidence:
self c o n f i d e n c e
from
equal
in
'Herakles's
o f the
Archaic
the
larger
ideas
explored
on
the
epistyle,
and
the us
t o interpret h o w the i c o n o g r a p h y m i g h t h a v e m a d e m o s t sense f o r t h o s e v i e w i n g t h e t e m p l e as a w h o l e a n d o v e r t i m e . H e r e , the
approaches
of
Brize
and
Finster-Hotz
offer
a
starting p o i n t . T r i t o n has three i m p o r t a n t aspects: his
valuable aquatic
ambience, his monstrosity, a n d his prophetic power. I f one goal
p e o p l e ; the ideal o f the athletically trained aristocrat, w h o
by
o f t h e i c o n o g r a p h y w a s t o c r e a t e a k i n d o f c o s m i c f r a m e f o r the
r e a s o n a n d craft, m a n a g e s
of
polis
to overcome
the crude forces
nature.' ( ' I n der Ü b e r l e g e n h e i t des H e r a k l e s spiegelt sich d a g e g e n das neue S e l b s t b e w u s s t s e i n des archaischen M e n s c h e n , das
t e m p l e , t h e n the sea c o n t e s t s e r v e d
taurs.
In
choosing
these
scenes,
the
Assians
physical w o r l d of h u m a n a n d heroic action. For example, Finster-Hotz 1984, pp. 41-5; C o o k 1987, pp. 167-9; Schefold 1992, p. 246; but see Boardman in Rasmussen and Spivey 1991, pp. 91—3. 2 1 3 Brize 1980, pp. 103-4; Finster-Hotz 1984, p. 45. 2 1 4 H o w e 1955, pp. 287-9. See Brize 1980, p. 104, for criticisms, although I do not think it must follow that in using heroic counterparts to reference the struggle between gods, the story must have the same outcome as other encounters between Athena's heroes vs. Poseidon's offspring.
as t h e
geographic
c o u n t e r p a r t to the m o u n t a i n battle o f H e r a k l e s a n d the cenaddressed
the
Morphologically,
T r i t o n is t h e m a r i n e c o u n t e r p a r t o f t h e c e n t a u r , a h a l f - h u m a n
212
2 1 5 Brize 1980, pp. 99, 102-5. H e a ' s o proposes that Stesichoros, in the Geryoneis, may have been responsible for the introduction of the fully human Nereus. 2 1 6 Schefold 1993, pp. 244-7. 2 1 7 Finster-Hotz 1984, pp. 44-5.
THE SCULPTURE
164
w h o s e l o w e r p a r t takes the f o r m o f the m o s t p o w e r f u l a n d agile
an
creature w i t h i n its e n v i r o n m e n t . A s s u c h , h e m a k e s a f a m i l i a r
mother-city
and formidable
c a r i n g f o r t h e g i r l w h o w a s t h r o w n i n t o t h e s e a as a n o f f e r i n g
opponent.
important
role
in
the
foundation
story
of
Methymna,
o f A s s o s , i n just this capacity, b e f r i e n d i n g
and
with
t o P o s e i d o n . 2 2 0 T h e y are a k i n d l y , h e l p i n g f o r c e o f n a t u r e ; their
the sea m o r e v i v i d l y t h a n that o f H e r a k l e s w r e s t l i n g
Triton.
g o o d w i l l b r i n g s g o o d f o r t u n e to sea v e n t u r e s . 2 2 1 D e s p i t e their
W i t h o u t the s u p e r n a t u r a l c a p a c i t y to shift shape a n d
become
a g i t a t i o n , the N e r e i d s ' p r e s e n c e o n relief A 3 s i g n a l s the p o s i t i v e
f u l l y h u m a n , as N e r e u s o r P r o t e u s c o u l d , T r i t o n i s l e s s a d i v i n i t y
o u t c o m e o f the wrestle. T h e i r d i v i n e i n t e r v e n t i o n i n the f o u n d -
t h a n a m o n s t e r , a l t h o u g h n o t quite the m a r i n e e q u i v a l e n t o f the
i n g of M e t h y m n a a u g u r s w e l l f o r the A s s i a n s . T h e N e r e i d s m a y
centaur herd. T h e m o r a l overtones present in the c e n t a u r o m a -
a l s o s e r v e , o n t h e t e m p l e at A s s o s , t o tie t h i s s c e n e o n
c h y c a n n o t be attached to the s t r u g g l e b e t w e e n H e r a k l e s
and
epistyle w i t h several stories r e c o u n t e d i n the m e t o p e s . I n the
T r i t o n . T r i t o n d o e s n o t (as f a r as w e k n o w ) m a n i f e s t t h e n e g a t i v e
T r o a d , the N e r e i d s m a y h a v e b e e n best k n o w n f o r their crucial
aspects
role i n the a r m i n g a n d r e a r m i n g
N o
contemporary image conveyed man's engagement
of h u m a n
behaviour,
Herakles
never
kills h i m ,
and
T r i t o n c a u s e s little h a r m t o o t h e r s . T o H e s i o d , h o w e v e r , h e is terrible
(Theogony
930-3),
and
so,
on
one
level,
w r e s t l i n g T r i t o n p o r t r a y s t h e h e r o i n h i s r o l e as
Herakles
alexikakos.21 4^> 49, 5i)> Tomb of the Small Pediment (p. 306, no. 66, pi. 72), Tomb of the Lioness (pp. 316-17, no. 77, pis. 101-2), Tomb of the Leopards (p. 319, no. 81, pi. 105), Tomb of the Triclinium (p. 352, no. 121, pi. 166), Tomb of the Painted Vases (pp. 353-4, no. 122), and Tomb of the O l d Man (p. 355, no. 124, fig. 346). See also in funerary reliefs from Chiusi: Florence, Museo Archeologico 5501; Chiusi, Museo Archeologico Nazionale 2275; London, British Museum D18; Florence Museo Archeologico 86508 (Jannot 1984, p. 366, figs. 93, 181, 355, 554-5). 230 Athenaios, Deipnosophists i^.éy^c-d, iy6ySd, citing Anakreon, Alkaios, and Sappho; Poulsen 1922, p. 37 and n. 2. Supra η. 229, for the scene in the Tomb of the Old Man, a similar scene in the Tomb of Hunting and Fishing, and an exchange between two young men in the Tomb of the Leopards.
238 Column krater from Assos: Clarke, Bacon, and Koldewey 1902-21, p. 293, fig. ι. Handle fragment from Assos: Utili 1999, no. 759. From Sardis: Ramage 1978, fig. 132. For Ionian column kraters: J. M. C o o k 1965, pp. 122-8; Samos VI.1, nos. 701-2, pl. 93, nos. 968-75, pis. 118-19. P ° r a Chian workshop, possibly in Thracc: Lemos 1991, pp. 212-18, pis. 221-3.
232
239 Filow 1927, nos. 64-7, pp. 47-50, figs. 40-8, as well as two unnumbered examples. Finds are generally dated to the second half of the sixth century, but the Lakonian material, at least, is thought to be earlier (see Stibbe 2000, pp. 99-101). For an additional column krater, see Sotheby's Auction Catalogue, May 31, 1997, no. 85.
234
243 For the shape in Corinthian ware, see Payne 1931, pp. 300-1; T. Bakir 1974, pp. 55-60 (note especially his Group Three). For Attic development, see Moore and Philippides 1986, pp. 23-5. Compare column kraters painted by Lydos, formerly Borowski Collection (R. G u y in Leipen 1984, no. 4, pp. 7-8) and N e w York, Metropolitan Museum of Art 31.11.11 (von Bothmer 1987, no 10).
Blech 1982, pp. 35-46, 71-2, fig. 5. Xenophanes fr. 1.2; Delight 1943, pp. 28-9. 23j> Dentzer 1982, p. 236, calls the gesture rare in Greek banquet scenes, but it appears fairly commonly on Attic scenes of symposia after C.530 BC (e.g., Fehr 1971, nos. 176-8, 205, 212, 274, 277, 295, 297, 301, 302, 304) and earlier in Corinthian scenes (e.g., Fehr 1971, nos. 9, 12, 13). 231
See above n. 26.
THE
SCULPTURE The
w h i c h tapers s h a r p l y to a p o i n t resting o n a delicate foot, surely derives f r o m a metal prototype.241
167
kantharoi
held
by
the
first
two
symposiasts
do
precisely replicate typical s u r v i v i n g f o r m s , p r o b a b l y
not
because
bowl,
the s c u l p t o r based t h e m l o o s e l y o n r e g i o n a l m e t a l v e r s i o n s f o r
g r a s p i n g t h e r i m w i t h h i s t h u m b . I t a l s o l o o k s as if h e s e c u r e s
w h i c h w e have n o further evidence today. T h e k a n t h a r o s held
The
first
symposiast holds out a shallow, handleless
the b o t t o m b y l o c k i n g his
fingers
in an omphalos. Broader than
o r d i n a r y s h a l l o w b o w l s , t h e f o r m is c l o s e s t t o a s m a l l o m p a l o s
by
the
second
symposiast
has
a
globular
body,
inset
rim,
s h a r p l y c o n i c a l f o o t , a n d s t r a p h a n d l e s t h a t rise a b o v e the r i m
b o w l , a shape often w r o u g h t in b r o n z e and precious metal.242
a n d a t t a c h t o t h e b o d y at its w i d e s t p o i n t . A l l b u t t h e c o n i c a l
M o r e t h a n a d o z e n b r o n z e examples, dated f r o m the
foot
half o f the s e v e n t h to the
first
half o f the sixth century, h a v e
b e e n f o u n d i n t h e w e s t e r n n e k r o p o l i s at A s s o s . 2 4 3 a r y quantities o f s u c h vessels, called o m p h a l o s excavators
second
a n d s e e n as t h e p r e d e c e s s o r
Extraordin-
bowls by
o f the G r e e k
the
phiale
find
some
parallel
in
the
early
development
of
kantharos, both in painted Attic examples and in G 2 - 3
the ware
p r o d u c e d in the n o r t h e a s t A e g e a n . 2 4 8 T h e f o o t s e e m s u n c a n n i l y close to P r o t o g e o m e t r i c f o r m s , but a similar v e r s i o n appears o n a terracotta
hero-relief f r o m
Sparta, a n d taller
and
broader
m e s o m p h a l o s , h a v e b e e n f o u n d in the great t u m u l i o f P h r y g i a ,
c o n i c a l feet are a l s o f o u n d o n C h i a n chalices a n d s o m e
w h e r e the context suggests that they w e r e d r i n k i n g vessels.244
otian black-glaze kantharoi."
M o r e t h a n 2 0 0 f o u n d i n a s a c r e d p o n d at t h e s a n c t u a r y o f H e r a
w i t h l o n g s t e m s that the reveller i n v a r i a b l y grasps, appear o n a
at P e r a c h o r a , as w e l l as t h e n u m e r o u s
dedications f o u n d
in
sanctuaries a n d k n o w n f r o m ancient texts, testify to the ritual nature a n d votive significance of this vessel in a G r e e k text.245
Greek
representations
indicate that w h i l e
the
convessel
c o u l d b e u s e d as a d r i n k i n g c u p , i t w a s m o r e c o m m o n l y
used
for offering a libation, a subject to w h i c h w e shall return.
group
of Archaic
gems
done
in East
Greek
signalling a regional popularity unmatched The
cup held by
kantharos,
but
the
almost
ready parallel. T h e
first none
symposiast of
its
style,
The outwardly
possibly
elsewhere.250
clearly represents
particular
vertical w a l l o f the b o d y
features does
o u t w a r d i n the m a n n e r of other straight-walled
T h e r o u n d - b o t t o m e d b o w l w i t h flaring, offset lip h e l d b y the
Boe-
R o u n d - b o d i e d k a n t h a r o i , albeit
not
a
find flare
kantharoi.251
t u r n e d l i p is m a t c h e d i n s o m e o f t h e
cruder
conventionally
E a s t G r e e k face k a n t h a r o i b u t o t h e r w i s e is n o t a f e a t u r e o f the
s h o w n i n A t t i c o r E a s t G r e e k s y m p o s i a , b u t it c l o s e l y r e s e m -
k a n t h a r o s . 2 5 2 T h e h a n d l e s are a t t a c h e d to the i n s i d e o f the r i m
third
symposiast
is
deeper
than
the
bowls
bles certain b r o n z e b o w l s , o n e f o u n d near M i l e t o s a n d a n o t h e r
a n d rise e l e g a n t l y a b o v e the b o d y o f the vessel. T h e
p r o b a b l y f r o m K a r i a , as it b e a r s a K a r i a n i n s c r i p t i o n . 2 4 6
c u r v e t h e y m a k e to a t t a c h t o the e x t e r i o r o f the b o d y
The
s h a p e a p p r o x i m a t e s s e v e r a l s i l v e r b o w l s f r o m A n a t o l i a , as w e l l
riveted
as t h e s l i g h t l y l a t e r A c h a e m e n i d
some
round-bottomed
bowl,
al-
terminals
better d o c u m e n t e d
representations
in
Lakonian
in larger metal
reliefs
and
on
reverse suggests vessels;
Lakonian
t h o u g h the latter t e n d s t o h a v e a d e e p e r a n d m o r e p r o n o u n c e d
vase paintings have r o u g h l y similar terminals, also
indicating
everted lip.247 S u c h metal vessels c o u l d easily have f o u n d their
metal kantharoi.233 T h e inverted conical stem w i t h
diminutive
w a y to A s s o s .
' Compare archaic silver oinochoai from western Anatolia (von Bothmer 1984, pp. 29-33, n o s · 35—6; Ozgen and Oztürk 1996, p. 76, no. 13, pp. 150-1, no. 106) or a bronze oinochoe, Paris, Petit Palais, no. 1560 (Vokotopoulou 1997, p. 247, fig. n o ) . Note also the pointy oinochoe held by a youth on a gem (Boardman 1968, no. 97). 242 For archaic silver phialai: Strong 1966, pp. 55-8; von Bothmer 1984, p. 21, no. 12; Luschey 1939 (on the development of the shape). Although not held in the same manner, note the similarity of shape to the phialai represented in the LykianPersian tomb at Karaburun: Ozgen and Oztürk 1996, p. 47, figs. 88-9. 243 Util: 1999,pp. 107-8, nos. 981-1000 for the bronze vessels, and no. n 8 f o r a clay example. See also Stupperich 1990a, p. 21, pi. 6.2; Stupperich 1992, p. 28, pi. 8.6. 244 Young 1981, pp. 14-17, 130-47, 204-6, 233-6, pis. 9 - D - G , IO.A-J, 44, 45A, 48B, 49, 68-73, 89G, 90. 243 Payne 1940, pp. 148-56, pis. 51-6, 134-5. For function: Payne 1940, p. 121; Young 1981, p. 236. 246 Pfrommer 1986, pp. 34-6, fig. 15. Bowl with Karian inscription: Antiquities from the Collection of Ckrìstos G. Bastis (New York 1987) no. 89; now Atlanta, Michael C . Carlos Museum 2000.1.4. 247 N o t e especially the profile of the vessel in a private collection (cited by Pfrommer 1986, p. 35, fig. 15e); vessel from Sardis (Waldbaum 1983, nos. 964,974); vessel from Sardis, N e w York, Metropolitan Museum of Art 26.164.r3 (von Bothmer 1984, p. 22, no. 14); vessel from Cyprus, N e w York, Metropolitan Museum of Art, 74.51.4562 (von Bothmer 1984, p. 22, no. 13); vessel from Ikiztepe, formerly N e w York, Metropolitan Museum of Art, 67.11.17 (von Bothmer 1984, p. 26, no. 23; O z g e n and O z t ü r k 1996, p. 101, no. 49). Further silver examples include O z g e n and Oztürk 1996, p. 88b, no. 34; p. 96, no. 44, pp. 98-101, nos. 46-8, 50. For Achaemenid terracotta bowls at Sardis: Dusinberre 1999, pp. 73-102; Dusinberre 2003, pp. 172-95, especially pp. 176-8. 24
248 Attic examples: Courbin 1953, p. 329, and especially fig. 9. See also a kantharos found at Kicion, Larnaca Archaeological Museum 1498: Coldstream 1994, pp. 155-9· Northeast Aegean and western Anatolian course ware: e.g., Moore 1982, pp. 336-47, nos. 18-25. 249 Protogeometric: Courbin 1953, fig. 1. Spartan relief from Amyklai: Stibbe 1991, p. 43, no. ai4, fig. 41. Chian: e.g. Lcmos i 9 9 i , p l s . V, 67, 109, i n , 124-36, 139-41, 205-11. Boeotian: Ure 1913, p. 5, Group A, pis. 1-2, and diagram of feet, p. 7. l y " Boardman 1968, nos. 93, 94, 97, 109, p. 58, and note also no. 242; Boardman 1970, pi. 309. 251 The vessel of choice for Dionysos, the form is closely related to the Etruscan kantharos, although there is strong evidence for an independent Boeotian invention (Courbin 1953, pp. 339-43; Kilinski II 1990, p. 58). Some Boeotian blackfigure kantharoi, as well as later metal and clay versions of the type, have nearly vertical walls, but neither the offset lip nor handles make a reverse curve to attach to the body; see Boeotian black-figure kantharoi (Kilinski II 1990, pis. 6.1, 16.1-2, 17.3, 32.2) and Boeotian black-glaze kantharoi (Ure 1913, pi. 9-7-8). Compare also the handsome example on the Anakles gem (Boardman 1968, no. 333). Classical kantharoi in both clay and silver can have nearly vertical walls; note a Boeotian red figure kantharos and a silver kantharos from Duvanli (Vickers 1986, pi. 4) or a silver kantharos in Baltimore, Walters Art Museum, 57.934 (Oliver 1977, pp. 28-9, nos. 4 and 4a). 252 Manser 1987, p. 165, pi. 23.6-7; Samos VI. 1, no. 478, pi. 61 for examples with small, out-turned lip, and nos. 480-5, pis. 55-7, for more elegant examples with taller lip. 253 Larger metal vessels: Vokotopoulou 1975. C u p offered to Polyphemos on Lakonian cup, Paris, Cabinet des Médailles 190: Pipili 1987, fig. 47. Representations of metal kantharoi with embellished handle-ends on Lakonian hero reliefs: Stibbe 1991, no. A i , fig. 5; no. A6, fig. 8; no. A 1 3 , fig. 10; no. B2, fig. 11; no. B6, fig. 14.
168
THE
SCULPTURE
f o o t stands apart f r o m typical c o n s t r u c t i o n a n d here c o u l d be
a n d a s s o c i a t e it f i r m l y
a n artistic e l a b o r a t i o n , f u s i n g the l o w e r b o d y w i t h the s t e m to
symposion.259 T h e distinction between banquet and
m a k e it m o r e v i s i b l e . 2 3 4 A n
s i o n is o f t e n b l u r r e d i n art, b u t h e r e t h e p r o m i n e n t p o s i t i o n o f
e l a b o r a t e m e t a l v e s s e l is
clearly
i n d i c a t e d , w h e t h e r it r e f l e c t s a n o w - l o s t l o c a l f o r m o r is
an
The
amphora-like
rimless which
mouth tapers
and
tankard held
to
the
by
vessel depicted
tall n e c k ring
the f o u r t h
The
symposiast
o n t h e relief. I t h a s
that w i d e n s
foot.
the krater, the lack o f f o o d o n
communal
banquet-
into
a high
metallic-style
a
belly,
handles,
sympo-
tables, a n d the p a s s i n g o f
wreath suggest d r i n k i n g m o r e than feasting.260 T h e
intentionally embellished shape.
is t h e r a r e s t d r i n k i n g
w i t h the G r e e k
a
decision
to e l i m i n a t e f u r n i t u r e a n d f o o d is n o t s i m p l y a c o n c e s s i o n m a d e to suit the l o n g , n a r r o w
field
o f the epistyle; r e c l i n i n g o n the
g r o u n d to d r i n k h a s a special s i g n i f i c a n c e that affects the m e a n i n g o f the scene, a n d deserves o u r c o n s i d e r a t i o n . 2 6 1
w h i c h d o n o t rise a b o v e the s m o o t h lip, d e s c e n d vertically to
W i t h respect to parallels i n architectural sculpture, the re-
c o n n e c t t o t h e b e l l y at its w i d e s t p o i n t . I t h a s b e e n c a l l e d a k i n d
s u l t s f o r t h e s y m p o s i o n a r e m u c h t h e s a m e as t h o s e f o r
o f p e l i k e , b u t it l a c k s t h e s a g g i n g b o d y . 2 5 5 T h e v e s s e l h a s b e e n
centauromachy
c o m p a r e d , o n the o n e h a n d , to g r e y - w a r e k a n t h a r o i d i s c o v e r e d
m o r e at h o m e i n E a s t G r e e c e a n d w e s t e r n A n a t o l i a t h a n a n y -
at A n t i s s a o n L e s b o s a n d , o n the other, t o
w h e r e else ( e x c e p t E t r u r i a 2 6 2 ) , t h e d e s i g n o f r e l i e f A 4 o w e s l i t t l e
Achaemenid-style
s i l v e r v e s s e l s t h a t s e e m t o h a v e s e r v e d b o t h as c u p s a n d
am-
to
local
on
A5:
architectural
while
the
examples.
subject
The
of
the
banqueting
terracotta
reliefs
is
from
p h o r a e . N e i t h e r is a p e r f e c t fit. N o n e o f t h e L e s b i a n g r e y - w a r e
Larisa
k a n t h a r o i ( a n d related G 2 - 3 w a r e karchesia of n o r t h w e s t A n a -
badly preserved
tolia, T h r a c e , a n d the islands o f the n o r t h e r n A e g e a n )
i d e n t i f i e d b y s y m p o t i c f u r n i t u r e . 2 6 3 A r e l i e f f r o m K o s is m o r e
follow
t h e p r o f i l e i n all its p a r t s , a n d all o f t h e m h a v e m u c h e m p h a t i c h a n d l e s . 2 5 6 T h e m e t a l p r o t o t y p e is m o r e but a key
characteristic
more
suggestive,
of this t y p e of v e s s e l — f a n c y ,
often
and
Kebren
depict
elaborate
stone friezes f r o m
banquets Samos
o n klinai;
the
and Ephesos
are
of a s y m p l e g m a than s y m p o s i o n , and, again, furniture prominently.264
Representations
of symposia in
figures
architectural
c o n t e x t s are r a r e r still i n o t h e r areas o f t h e G r e e k w o r l d , a n d
a n i m a l - s h a p e d h a n d l e s that s w i n g w i d e l y a w a y f r o m the n e c k
t h e y are n o c l o s e r c o m p o s i t i o n a l l y t o t h e A s s o s r e l i e f . 2 6 5
a n d b o d y — i s n o t i n d i c a t e d b y the vertical, close-fitting h a n d l e s
o n e f r a g m e n t a r y S i c i l i a n terracotta relief w i t h t w o s y m p o s i a s t s
Only
o f the vessel r e p r e s e n t e d o n the A s s i a n relief.257 M o r e o v e r , the
m a y p r o v i d e a n architectural parallel i n relief f o r a s y m p o s i o n
distinctly offset n e c k o r u p p e r b o d y of A c h a e m e n i d - s t y l e ves-
without
s e l s i s n o t m a d e e x p l i c i t at A s s o s . T h e s e o b j e c t i o n s
explanation. East G r e e k silversmiths w o r k e d for L y d i a n
and
t h e n P e r s i a n p a t r o n s d u r i n g the s i x t h century, a n d the artistic interchange, especially i n l u x u r y items, b e t w e e n the
capitals
a n d the c o a s t is d o c u m e n t e d i n s i l v e r v e s s e l s o f P e r s i a n s h a p e w i t h G r e e k ornament, or of G r e e k shape w i t h Persian
orna-
ment.238 A n eastern vessel of this k i n d c o u l d have been
known
at A s s o s
luxury
a n d its f o r m a d a p t e d t o b e c o m e o n e o f t h e
vessels r e p r e s e n t e d o n relief A 4 .
Iconography T h e A s s o s s y m p o s i o n represents a convivial gathering of m a t u r e m e n , e q u a l i n r a n k a n d a g e , w h o r e c l i n e t o d r i n k as t h e y are s e r v e d b y o n e m a l e a t t e n d a n t . T h e s e f e a t u r e s set the relief apart f r o m
Greek
or Anatolian
representations of single diners a t t e n d e d b y several
While
a second
terracotta
panel
with
notwith-
s t a n d i n g , a n E a s t e r n metal p r o t o t y p e p r o b a b l y r e m a i n s the best
fundamentally
furniture.266
Totenmahl— servants—
234 Compare Boeotian shallow-bottomed kantharoi (supra n. 251) and some of the kantharoi represented on the hero reliefs noted above, n. 253. 235 Sartiaux 1915, p. 29; Fehr i 9 7 i , p . 116. O n l y the fourth-century shape comes close (cf. Richter and Milne 1935, fig. 39). 256 Langlotz 1975, pp. 182-3, p'· 61.1; Finster-Hotz 1984, p. 65; Lamb 1931-2, p. 54, pi. 20.1-5; n o w Bayne 2000, pp. 200-1, figs. 57-8. For similar subgeometric G2-3 ware kantharoi/karchesia, see, e.g., Moore 1982, pp. 351-5, nos. 32-4. 257 Compared by Dentzer to the vessel held by the servant in the banqueting scene in the tomb at Karaburun (Dentzer 1982, p. 235, n. 79, fig. 224). Paspalas 2000, pp. 154-8, closely connects the shape to the Persian form. 25h For Greek artists working for Lydian kings: Herodotos 1.25, 51. Artistic and cultural exchange, specifically in metalwork: Boardman 2000, pp. 184-94; Paspalas 2000, pp. 158-63. More generally, note also Miller (1997, pp. 1—133) for the Classical period.
239 For banqueting in Near Eastern and Greek art generally: Thönges-Stringaris 1965; Dentzer 1969,1971,1982; Fehr 1971; Murray 1990; Schmitt Pantel 1990a. Anatolian scenes in architectural contexts include the painted tombs from Kizilbel and Karaburun (Dentzer 1982, pp. 224-30, 265-79, 283-95; Fehr 1971, nos. 470-2; Mellink 1974, pp. 537-47; Mellink 1998, pp. 59-60: Building G (Heroon?) from Xanthos, London, British Museum B310 (Pryce 1928, pp. 143-4, p'· z % Dentzer 1982, pp. 23840, R48, fig. 285, Jenkins 2006, pp. 168-72); and later the Nereid Monument (Childs and Demargne 1989, pp. 202-9, n o s · BM898-903, pis. 130-4, LVTI-LXI); and Heroon at Gjolbaschi-Trysa (Oberleitner 1994, pp. 48-51, figs. 105-6, 112-13; Barringer 2008, pp. 171-202). Oriental prototypes: Fehr 1971, pp. 7-18; Dentzer 1971, pp. 215-44; Dentzer 1982, pp. 51-69; Finster-Hotz 1984, pp. 66-74. Scenes of the Greek symposion with several reclining figures appear first in Corinthian painting by the end of the seventh century and from there spread to Attika, Lakonia, Boeotia, and the Chalkidike: Fehr 1971, pp. 26-61; Dentzer 1982, pp. 76-128, 143-53. F ° r East Greek influence on Lakonian symposia: Pipili 1998, pp. 84-5, 89-90. 260 Importance of the krater: Lissarrague 1990a, pp. 19-46; Lissarrague 1990b, pp. 196-209. Conflation of banquet and symposion in Attic scenes: Schmitt Pantel 1990a, pp. 14-33. 261 Contra Finster-Hotz 1984, pp. 61-3. 262 N o t e terracotta revetments from Poggio Civitate and Acquarossa: Small 1971 and 1994; Sprenger and Bartolom 1983, pp. 93-4, 97, pis. 57, 66; Rathje 1994, with references to earlier work. The banquet in Etruscan funerary art: de Marinis 1961; Jannot 1984, pp. 62-8; Weber-Lehmann 1985. 263 Terracotta frieze from Larisa (three surviving variations): Larisa II, pis. 2233; Äkerström 1966, pp. 56-8, pis. 28-9; Dentzer 1982, R64, figs. 320-8. Terracotta frieze from Kebren (two variations based on the Larisa molds): Äkerström 1966, p. 7, fig. 1.2; Dentzer 1982, R67, fig. 331. North Building, Samos (certain fragments originally assigned to the Heraion): Buschor 1933a, p. 16, supplement 7; FreyerSchauenburg 1974, nos. 123-6, pl. 83; Furtwängler and Kienast 1989, p. 156, nos. 29-32. Possibly the sima from the Temple of Artemis at Ephesos, London, British Museum B203: Muss 1994, p. 81. 264 Dentzer 1982, pp. 262-4, &293> fig· 545· 265 The fragmentary pediment from Korkyra is Dionysiac; the youth and older male recline on ldinai (Boardman 1978, fig. 207a; Dentzer 1982, pp. 248—51, R331, fig· 573)· 266 N e w York, Metropolitan Museum of Art 13.227.11: Dentzer 1982, pp. 251-2, R501, fig. 721.
THE k l i n a i set b e n e a t h the s u r v i v i n g relief is a s s u m e d
SCULPTURE
to m a k e
a
m e t o p e , the relief c o u l d b e l o n g to a n a r r o w frieze, o r p e r h a p s
O n the other hand, i m a g e s in other E a s t G r e e k m e d i a f r o m and
third
quarters
o f the s i x t h c e n t u r y
better evidence f o r a s y m p o s i o n w i t h o u t
provide
furniture. I n
most
instances, reclining o n the g r o u n d indicates a n o u t d o o r often sacred setting. E s p e c i a l l y
the
banqueters
with
wreaths,
suggesting
scenes represent cult meals of m o r t a l s in a sacred
that
these
setting.274
L a k o n i a n f r a g m e n t s b y the A r k e s i l a s Painter, f o u n d o n S a m o s ,
a p e d i m e n t . I t s c o n t e x t is u n k n o w n .
the s e c o n d
crown
169
and
i m p o r t a n t i n this regard
are
s h o w w o m e n a n d m e n r e c l i n i n g o n t h e g r o u n d ; t h e tree a n d altar establish a n o u t d o o r , sacred setting. M a r i a P i p i l i c o n n e c t s b o t h s c e n e s w i t h the c u l t w o r s h i p o f S a m i a n H e r a . T h e ments of a Fikellura a m p h o r a s h o w a s y m p o s i o n of
frag-
clothed
m e n reclining o n fancy mattresses w i t h small p i l l o w s ,
enter-
the several f r e e - s t a n d i n g r e c l i n i n g figures i n stone f o u n d exclu-
tained b y a small isocephalic servant. T h e i n c l u s i o n of flora a n d
sively
the
f a u n a o n a n o t h e r F i k e l l u r a f r a g m e n t , as w e l l as i n a s y m p o s i o n
s e c o n d half of the sixth century.267 I n these sculptures, a f u l l y
o n a C y p r i o t e a m p h o r a , i n d i c a t e s t h a t t h e s e s c e n e s , t o o , are s e t
c l o t h e d male figure reclines, legs closed, o n a thick
outside.
in East
Greek
sanctuaries f r o m
c . 5 6 0 BC t h r o u g h
mattress
o r a p l a n k - l i k e s u r f a c e , w i t h h i s e l b o w r e s t i n g o n flat,
(στι,βάς)
The
examples
enumerated
above,
chiefly
connected
with
stiff p i l l o w s . 2 6 8 T h e m o s t f a m o u s e x a m p l e b e l o n g s to the G e n -
eastern Greece, establish a n o u t d o o r , often sacred, context in
elaos
w h i c h to place the c o u c h l e s s c o m p o s i t i o n o n relief A 4 . S i m i l a r
dedication
from
Samos,
which
probably
represents
f a m i l y at a c u l t feast, a h i g h l y a t t r a c t i v e i d e a t h a t m a y
a
furnish
couchless
compositions
with
several
overlapping
symposi-
c l u e s t o t h e s e t t i n g o f the s c e n e at A s s o s . 2 6 9 M o s t o f t h e free-
a s t s — a n d w i t h the s a m e o u t d o o r v e n u e i m p l i e d — a l s o
standing
in Attic black-figure vase painting and Etruscan wall painting
recliners
appear
alone
o r as p a r t o f
g r o u p s ; their v o t i v e nature suggests individual
heterogeneous
that they stand for
the
donor(s).270
Painted pottery provides examples of g r o u p gatherings s o m e further indications several
symposiasts
mattresses
appear
third quarters tery,271
twice
and
of their setting. R e p r e s e n t a t i o n s
reclining in
directly
non-Attic
on
the
or
and
L a k o n i a n c u p b y the N a u k r a t i s
recline directly o n the
East
Greek
scenes. I n
under
most
the
of
the
A t t i c examples, y o u n g m e n recline directly o n a thick, black g r o u n d l i n e i n a frieze-like a r r a n g e m e n t , their feet h i d d e n figure
be-
i n front; a s m a l l i s o c e p h a l i c b o y serves.27:> F l o r a
a n d f a u n a set the scene o u t d o o r s . 2 7 6 R e c l i n i n g o n the
ground
o u t d o o r s also becomes a p r i m a r y scheme for p o r t r a y i n g
gods
on
o r h e r o e s at s y m p o s i a , a n e w t h e m e i n A t t i c art at t h i s time.
Painter
D i o n y s o s , H e r a k l e s , a n d H e r m e s especially, a l o n e o r together,
once
s h a r e s several features i n c o m m o n w i t h relief A 4 : all o f d i n e r s are m a t u r e m a l e s w h o
the s i x t h century, p e r h a p s
h i n d the
pot-
vases,272
of
the earlier
on
o f the s i x t h century, t w i c e o n L a k o n i a n (Fikellura)
of
ground
and
on Milesian
pottery
the
of
of
second
C y p r i o t e ware.273 A
of the last quarter influence
appear
the
ground
e n j o y the m o m e n t s of r e l a x a t i o n o w e d to a peripatetic g o d or hero.277 T h e
scenes d o n o t relate s p e c i f i c a l l y t o e p i s o d e s
in
w i t h their bodies slightly overlapping; the isocephalic servant
m y t h b u t t o r e s t f u l m o m e n t s i n b e t w e e n a n d after. F i n a l l y , i n
creates the s a m e c o n t r a s t i n scale. F l y i n g s i r e n s a n d
E t r u s c a n f u n e r a r y reliefs a n d t o m b p a i n t i n g o f the L a t e
daimons
Ar-
chaic p e r i o d , the s y m p o s i a s t s o f t e n recline i n c l o s e - k n i t g r o u p s o n the g r o u n d o r o n t h i c k mattresses.278 O u t d o o r floral elemTuchelt 1976; Dentzer 1982, pp. 161-3, S19-S25, figs. 133-8; Ridgway 1993, pp. 198-9. 268 Fehr 1971, pp. 16-7, 22-4, 120, 126, identifies the mattress as the Persian grass mat or στιβάς; Dentzer 1982, p. 148, disagrees. See also Goldstein 1978, pp. 26-7; Kron 1988, p. 138 and n. 14. 267
269 Walter-Karydi 1985, pp. 98-101; for the Didyma figures, see Tuchelt 1976, pp. 63-6. 270 O n the aristocratic nature of these dedications: Baughan 2006. Most statuettes also depict single recliners or couples; a limestone statuette from Cyprus is the exception, N e w York, Metropolitan Museum of Art 74.51 (Fehr 1971, no. 489; Dentzer 1982, S18, figs. 129-32). 2 7 1 Dentzer 1982, pp. 87-95; Pipili J 998, pp. 89-90. Naukratis Painter cup, Paris, Louvre E667: Fehr 1971, no. 32; Stibbe 1972, no. 13, pl. 6.1; Dentzer 1982, no. V L a i , fig. 107; Pipili 1987, no. 194, fig. 103; Boardman 1998, fig. 413. Fragments of a cup by the Arkesilas Painter, Berlin, Charlottenburg 478X, 460X, Samos K1203, K1541, K2402: Fehr 1971, no. 37/39; Stibbe 1972, no. 191, pis. 58-9; Dentzer 1982, no. VLa5; Pipili 1987, no. 196, fig. 104a,b; Boardman 1998, fig. 421. 2 7 2 Amphora fragments from Amathus, Nicosia Museum, and amphora, Rhodes 12396: Fehr 1971, nos. 42-3; Samos VI.1, p. 118, no. 109, pl. 13; Dentzer 1982, pp. 128-30, nos. V G e i , V G e 3 ; Boardman 1998, figs. 337.1-2, 338. 2 7 3 Cypriote black-figure belly amphora, London, British Museum C855: Fehr 1971, no. 48; Dentzer 1982, V G e 7 , fig. 118. For reclining on the ground or on mattresses, Fehr (1971) suggests oriental influence via Cyprus. Compare Cypriote silver bowl with recliners on mats (Fehr 1971, no. 4; Dentzer 1982, fig. 104), Cypriote stone statuettes (Fehr 1971, nos. 484-90), and Cypriote funerary stelai (Dentzer 1982, R i o , R16-R26, figs. 192, 197-207). According to Dentzer (1982, p. 148), however, the elimination of klinai (at least in vase painting) only indicates a more simplified banquet, perhaps in a rustic outdoor setting.
e n t s a g a i n fill t h e
field.
Pipili 1987, pp. 71-5; for the cult feast of Samian Hera, Pipili 1998, pp. 89-90. Fehr 1971, nos. 301-5. A d d cup in the Manner of Andokides Painter, Oxford, Ashmolean Museum 1974.344: Boardman 1976a, pp. 281-90, figs. 1-8. 274 275
276 Fehr 1971, nos. 211-21; Dentzer 1982, p. 148. In red-figure painting the scene appears to move indoors; cups, baskets, and fillets hang on the backfield; see Fehr 1971, nos. 389-99. See also cup, Manner of Tarquinia Painter, Aberdeen, University, 748 ( A R V 2 871,9; Boardman 1979b, pp. 35-7, pis. 8-9); cup, Painter of the Paris Gigantomachy, Atlanta, Michael C . Carlos Museum 1998.8; column krater, Circle of Nikoxenos Painter (Schauenburg 1982). 2 7 7 Dionysos: Fehr 1971, nos. 114-58, 164, 269-74; LIMC 3 (1986), p. 456, no.363, s.v. 'Dionysos', (C. Gasparri); Tuchelt 1976, pp. 64-5 (for the possibility that the recliner from Didyma holding grapes may be connected with Dionysos). Note also Pausanias' description of the reclining Dionysos on the Chest of Kypselos (5.19.6) and analysis by Splitter (2000, pp. 45-6). Herakles: Fehr 1971, nos. 182-93; LIMC 4(1988),p. 817, nos. 1484-5, p. 8x9, nos. 1511-12, s.v. 'Herakles', (J. Boardman); Wolf 1993, pp. 53-107, Type 1. Hermes: Fehr 1971, nos. 165-71. Herakles and Iolaos: Fehr 1971, nos. 276-82; Wolf 1993, pp. 137-45, Type 4. Herakles and Dionysos: Fehr 1971, pp. 69-72, nos. 262-8; LIMC 4 (1988), p. 818-19, n o s · 1 5 0 0 _ 5 > s.v. 'Herakles'; Wolf 1993, pp. 107-37, Type 2. Herakles and Hermes: Fehr 1971, nos. 283-4; LIMC 4 (1988), p. 818, nos. 1495-9, s.v. 'Herakles'; LIMC 5 (199°). pp. 331-2, nos. 548-50, s.v. 'Hermes', (G. Siebert); Wolf 1993, pp. 137-45, Type 3. 278 Jannot 1984, figs. 143, 162, 165, 181, 220, 213, 300, 301-2, 305-8, 360, and p. 363 for banquets without klinai indicating an outdoor setting with specific significance in Etruscan funerary art. In Etruscan wall painting: Tomb of Hunting and Fishing (Steingräber 1986, p. 293, no. 50, pl. 41; de Marinis 1961, no. 36);
THE
170
SCULPTURE
W h i l e n o n e of the c o m p a r a t i v e material p r o v i d e s a precise
Significance
p a r a l l e l f o r t h e s c e n e o n A 4 , c o l l e c t i v e l y it m a k e s c l e a r t h a t , i n
D e s p i t e the o b v i o u s i m p o r t a n c e o f the scene, a t t e m p t s to attach
a r c h a i c art, t h e c o n v e n t i o n o f p l a c i n g
specific m e a n i n g
connects
them with
an o u t d o o r
structures in o u t d o o r
figures
o n the
setting, o r w i t h
ground
temporary
s e t t i n g s s u c h as t e n t s (σκηνή),
for
the
b a n q u e t o r s y m p o s i o n . S e v e r a l o f the scenes s u g g e s t that the c o n t e x t is n o t s i m p l y the g r e a t o u t d o o r s , b u t a m o r e
sacred
to the s y m p o s i o n o n the
Assos
relief
have
been frustrated b y the s a m e l a c k o f descriptive detail
charac-
t e r i s t i c o f t h e t e m p l e ' s s c u l p t u r e as a w h o l e . I f r e l i e f A 4
origin-
a l l y h a d i n s c r i p t i o n s s u c h as t h o s e t h a t i d e n t i f y t h e b a n q u e t e r s o n the E u r y t o s
krater or those o n the T r i p t o l e m o s
Painter's
space. I t h i n k the c o n v e n t i o n c o u l d a l s o s i g n a l the b u i l t d i n i n g
r h y t o n in Virginia, they have l o n g since vanished.284 W e
p l a t f o r m s i n s a n c t u a r i e s , w h i c h are t y p i c a l l y l o w t o the g r o u n d
o n l y the i c o n o g r a p h y
(c.o.30-40 m . h i g h o n average) a n d plank-like, i n contrast
to
w h i c h i t is s e t t o h e l p e s t a b l i s h a m e a n i n g . C e r t a i n s c h o l a r s see
the elaborate, tall f u r n i t u r e o f d o m e s t i c s y m p o s i a . 2 7 9 W h e n the
i n the relief m y t h o l o g i c a l c o n t e n t f r o m the life o f H e r a k l e s (see
i m a g e o f recliners o n the g r o u n d decorates a sacred object, f o r
below). O t h e r scholars discard m y t h o l o g i c a l , cultic, religious,
e x a m p l e the paired recliners depicted o n a n arula f r o m
Seli-
n o u s , o r D i o n y s o s r e c l i n i n g o n a t h i n m a t o n the base o f altar o r p e r i r r h a n t e r i o n , a sacred c o n t e x t s e e m s likely."
an We
o r ritual i n t e r p r e t a t i o n s , p r e f e r r i n g i n s t e a d t o v i e w t h e s c e n e as
line b e l o w , the i m p e t u s f o r interpreting the scene in c o n n e c t i o n t o H e r a k l e s is s t r o n g e r t h a n t h e e v i d e n c e b e a r s o u t . T h e
object, the relief m u s t d e p i c t s a c r e d space, b u t the b a l a n c e o f
promising
portance
of
dining
and
drinking
question
mythological
B o t h l i t e r a r y a n d a r c h a e o l o g i c a l e v i d e n c e attests t o the i m in temporary
or
open-air
into
d r a w n f r o m everyday, albeit aristocratic, life.285 A s I w i l l o u t -
c a n n o t g o s o f a r as t o s a y t h a t b e c a u s e t h e t e m p l e is a s a c r e d
evidence overall f a v o u r s a sacred setting.
have
o f the scene a n d the p r o g r a m m e
programme
or
to
ask, therefore,
not, w a s
i n the
first
chosen
place. T h e
is w h y
as p a r t
of
a
more
symposion,
the
sculptural
central role that
feasting
a n d d r i n k i n g p l a y e d i n archaic G r e e k s o c i e t y m u s t be s i g n i f i -
s e t t i n g s at s a n c t u a r i e s . 2 8 1 U s u a l l y s u c h s e t t i n g s are t h o u g h t t o
cant, e s p e c i a l l y in r e l a t i o n t o the o t h e r scenes o n the
be rural o r o t h e r w i s e d i s t a n t sanctuaries, w h i c h w o u l d n o t h a v e
c o n n e c t e d w i t h f o o d o r d r i n k ; n a m e l y , the l i o n s s a v a g i n g p r e y
temple
p a r t i c u l a r r e l e v a n c e t o a p o l i s t e m p l e s u c h as t h e o n e at A s s o s .
a n d H e r a k l e s battling the centaurs. B e f o r e e x p l o r i n g this rela-
However,
tionship, however, we
purposes
temporary
outdoor
structures
w e r e a l s o b u i l t c l o s e at h a n d
suggested
by
erected
for
sacred
w i t h i n the polis,
the evidence f o r t e m p o r a r y
structures
as
erected
n e a r t h e f o u n t a i n at C o r i n t h o r n e a r t h e P o m p e i o n i n A t h e n s , where
the
meat
from
uted.282 I n p l a c i n g the
the P a n a t h e n a i c figures
festival
was
distrib-
o n the g r o u n d i n relief A 4 , t h e y
are n o t n e c e s s a r i l y r e m o v e d f r o m t h e p o l i s . T h e y are, h o w e v e r , t a k e n o u t o f the a n d r o n a n d set i n a c o m m u n a l
atmosphere
w i t h sacred overtones.283
curing a mythological
first
m u s t address the p r o b l e m s in se-
meaning.
T h e earliest m y t h o l o g i c a l interpretations o f the scene c a n be discarded.
Clarac's
identification
of
Menelaos
and
Proteus
pourparler a n d d'accord r e l i e s o n a m i s t a k e n r e s t o r a t i o n j o i n i n g o p p o s i t e e n d s of the b l o c k . T h e d i s c o v e r y o f relief A 5 ates T e x i e r ' s s u g g e s t i o n t o c r e a t e t h e w e d d i n g
elimin-
feast o f
Peir-
i t h o o s b y c o m b i n i n g the recliners o n A 4 w i t h the c e n t a u r s o n reliefs A 7 a n d A 8 . 2 8 6 C l a r k e , d e t e r m i n e d to l i n k the scene n o t o n l y w i t h H e r a k l e s b u t a l s o w i t h r e g i o n a l m y t h - h i s t o r y , sees
Tarantola Tomb (Steingräber 1986, p. 345, no. 114, fig. 313; de Marinis 1961, no. 39); Tomb of the Small Pediment (Steingräber 1986, p. 306, no. 66, pi. 72); Tomb of Olympic Games (Steingräber 1986, pp. 328-9, no. 92, pi. 121; de Marinis 1961, no. 40); Tomb of the Funeral Bed (Steingräber 1986, pp. 319-20, no. 82, pi. 111; de Marinis 1961, no. 44); Tomb of Orpheus and Eurydike (Steingräber 1986, pp. 269-70, no. 18, fig. 28; de Marinis 1961, no. 51); Poggio al Moro tomb, Chuisi (Steingräber 1986, p. 271, no. 22, pi. 192; de Marinis 1961, no. 53); Poggio Gaiella tomb (Steingräber 1986, p. 272, no. 23, fig. 31). Weber-Lehmann (1985, pp. 41-4) argues that reclining on the ground has Dionysiac associations. For tents: Hollow a y 1965, pp. 343-5. For dining platforms in sanctuaries, see Goldstein 1978, pp. 299-301, 356; Bookidis and Stroud 1997, pp. 396-400, appendix I, table 2. For domestic sympotic furniture, see Boardman 1990a, with references to other work. 279
Arula: Dentzer 1982, p. 211, figs. 167-8. Lakonian base: supra n. 225. Goldstein 1978, pp. 8ff., with discussion of Euripides' Ion 1122-95; Kron 1988. Outdoor dining: Burkert 1991, p. 18; Dunbabin 1991, pp. 121-48. For the serpentine inscription from Tiryns that mentions ritual dining, Jameson and Papachristodoulou 1972. 282 Post-holes interpreted as skenai supports: Kron 1988, pp. 142-3 and notes. 283 Scenes identified as cult meals usually lack specificity yet seem one step removed, either by context or feature, from genre, e.g., by the appearance of an altar or flying daimons: Pipili 1987, pp. 71-5; Kron 1988, pp. 141-3. Archaeological evidence for eating and drinking generally in a sacred context is extensive, and, if Euripides' Ion ( 1 1 6 5 - 9 5 ) c a n l>e taken as an accurate reflection, the sequence of eating followed by drinking could apply to sacred meals as well. Against a sharp distinction between the sacred and secular feasting in the Archaic period, see Goldstein 1978, pp. 1-4; Walter-Karydi 1985, p. 99. 21,0 281
Herakles
(third f r o m
left) g i v i n g
Eurystheus
(far r i g h t )
girdle of H i p p o l y t e . H i s narrative sequence depends o n i d e n t i f y i n g r e l i e f A 3 as H e r a k l e s to d e v o u r
fighting
the mis-
the sea m o n s t e r sent
Hesione.287
Although
rejecting C l a r k e ' s
proposal,
subsequent
mytho-
logical interpretations also focus o n Herakles. Sartiaux
inter-
p r e t s r e l i e f A 4 as H e r a k l e s ' a p o t h e o s i s a n d r e c e p t i o n o n M o u n t Olympos.288 Fernande Hölscher, following Carl Robert, sugg e s t s a l e s s d r a m a t i c m o m e n t , s u c h as H e r a k l e s a t t h e h o u s e o f E u r y t o s . 2 8 9 U r s u l a F i n s t e r - P I o t z favours a m y t h o l o g i c a l interp r e t a t i o n , rejecting the a p o t h e o s i s b u t l e a v i n g o p e n the o p t i o n of a feast w i t h E u r y t o s a n d also r a i s i n g the p o s s i b i l i t y that the
284 Eurytos krater, Paris, Louvre E635: CorVP 147,1; LIMC 4 (1988), p. 118, no. ι, s.v. 'Eurytos' (R. Olmos); Wolf 1993, pp. 11-12, figs. 1-4. Triptolemos Painter's rhyton: J. Neils in Shapiro 1981, no. 32, pp. 84-6. 285 Mendel 1914, p. 7; Demangel 1932, p. 437; Fehr 1971, pp. 116-17; Dentzer 1982, p. 237. 286 Clarac 1841, pp. 1157-9, pi. n6a,b; Texier 1849, pp. 203-5, ρ'· Ι Γ 4· F ° r discussion, see also Clarke 1898, p. 246; Sartiaux 1915, p. 53; Finster-Hotz 1984, pp. 74-8. 287 Clarke 1898, pp. 240-7, 288. 288 Sartiaux 1915, p. 53. 289 Hölscher 1972, p. 94.
THE scene
may
represent
a local
hero
in the
company
of
S C U L195 PTURE
other
heroes.290
attribute, a n d A p o l l o a n d H e r a k l e s b y haircut a n d inscription. T h e context seems intentionally vague, e m p h a s i z i n g the hero's
T o m y eye, the scale o f the
figures
a n d the suggested sacred
special relation to the g o d s rather t h a n h i g h l i g h t i n g a specific
context o f the scene have h e r o i c o v e r t o n e s that t r a n s c e n d e v e r y -
episode in m y t h . T h e
d a y life. I f r e l i e f A 4 r e p r e s e n t s a p a r t i c u l a r m y t h o l o g i c a l
h o w e v e r , is t h a t n o e f f o r t is m a d e t o d i f f e r e n t i a t e t h e
hero
figures
real d i f f e r e n c e w i t h the s c e n e o n
other than a local o n e f o r w h o m w e have neither n a m e n o r story,
male
t h e o n l y v i a b l e c h o i c e is H e r a k l e s , w h o s e r e p u t a t i o n a s a d r i n k e r
would
equals his r e n o w n f o r great deeds.291 T h e s y m p o s i a s t to the right
symposiasts seem intentionally homogeneous. W i t h o u t
A4, three
t h r o u g h attribute, age, o r hairstyle, i n a w a y that
allow
the v i e w e r to r e c o g n i z e
the g o d s . I n s t e a d ,
the
being
s e e m s t h e m o s t l i k e l y c a n d i d a t e f o r H e r a k l e s , f o r h e is d i s t i n -
a b l e t o fix o n t h e g o d s , i t is i m p o s s i b l e t o m a k e f u r t h e r d i s t i n c -
g u i s h e d f r o m the o t h e r three b y his greater girth, the
tions regarding apotheosis or
double
p i l l o w o n w h i c h he reclines, his u n u s u a l c u p , a n d the o f f e r i n g he
Perhaps
the m o r e
theoxenia
important
involving
Herakles.
consideration in
interpreting
receives. H i s a m p h o r a - l i k e t a n k a r d m a y s i g n a l the hero's special
t h i s s c e n e is n o t the s p e c i f i c i d e n t i t y o f the
interest i n g r a n d d r i n k i n g vessels.292 H e lacks attributes, b u t o n
c h o i c e o f t h e b a s i c s u b j e c t . W h o e v e r t h e y are, t h e y a r e m o s t
the t w o o t h e r reliefs f r o m the t e m p l e that u n d e n i a b l y
portray
i m p o r t a n t l y m a l e s r e c l i n i n g t o d r i n k t o g e t h e r . I f at f a c e v a l u e
H e r a k l e s , h e is r e c o g n i z e d c h i e f l y b y c o n t e x t . T h e s c e n e m a k e s
the s c e n e d o e s n o t f a v o u r a n e x p l a n a t i o n i n m y t h , it d o e s h a v e
an appropriate sequel to his violent r o u t of the centaurs w r e s t l e w i t h T r i t o n . A n d t h e reference is n o t u n i q u e . A
and
similar
c o m b i n a t i o n appears o n a m o n u m e n t base f r o m L a m p t r a i A t t i k a : H e r a k l e s g r a p p l e s w i t h the N e m e a n l i o n o n o n e
in
side
figures
but
the
e l e m e n t s t h a t s u g g e s t it h a s a m e a n i n g b e y o n d t h e g e n e r i c . T h e scene takes
on
heightened
meaning
t e m p l e n o t a b l e f o r t h e omission charioteers, h u n t
scenes, o r
in the p r o g r a m m e
of
o f the s t a n d a r d p a n o p l y
battles
that characterize
a of
friezes
a n d extracts K e r b e r o s f r o m H a d e s o n another; o n the t h i r d side,
depicting scenes of aristocratic virtue. T h e A s s o s
h e r e l a x e s w i t h a c u p i n o n e h a n d , c l u b i n t h e other. 2 9 "' I n c u l t ,
is as s o b e r as X e n o p h a n e s '
H e r a k l e s especially w a s h o n o u r e d w i t h
d r u n k a r d s , n o ecstatic s i n g i n g , n o p i p e s , n o w o m e n , a n d n o sex:
theoxeniaP4
M o r e p r o b l e m a t i c are the c o m p a n i o n s . I f w e a l l o w t h a t the r i g h t s y m p o s i a s t is H e r a k l e s , w h e r e a n d w i t h w h o m d o e s drink?
I
exclude
Herakles
dining
at the
House
of
χρή δε πρώτον
he
Eurytos
εύφήμοις 15
d e s c r i p t i o n o f the event, w i t h
μεν θεόν ύμνεΐν
εύφρονας
μύθοι,ς καί καθαροίσι
λόγοι.ς-
δε καί εύξαμένους
τα δίκαια
σπείσαντας
b e c a u s e the rare r e p r e s e n t a t i o n s i n c l u d e the h i g h k l i n a i a p p r o -
πρήσσειν—ταύτα
priate f o r a d o m e s t i c setting, a n d w e have n o evidence of Iole.295
ούχ ύβρις ττίνειν οιτόσον κ€ν εχων
It also seems
οί'καδ aveu προπόλου
incongruous
defender a n d the v i o l a t o r o f course. I n
to p o r t r a y
xenia
Herakles
as b o t h
w i t h i n the same
late a r c h a i c A t t i c s c e n e s o f H e r a k l e s
the
on
γαρ ών εστί
20
ώς οί μνημοσύνη
the g r o u n d i n m a l e c o m p a n y , h i s m o s t f r e q u e n t c o m p a n i o n is
ούτε μάχας
ούδε < τ ι > Κενταύρων,
on
drinking
vessels;
the
outdoor,
ή στάσιας
terrestrial
a n e n v i r o n m e n t for relaxation rather t h a n apotheosis.
Some-
t i m e s H e r m e s j o i n s H e r a k l e s , as o n a b l a c k - f i g u r e c u p b y t h e T h e s e u s Painter.297 O n the early r e d - f i g u r e c u p b y the A m b r o sius Painter, H e r a k l e s appears again w i t h H e r m e s , joined
by
P o s e i d o n a n d A p o l l o o n the reverse.298 T h e y recline directly o n p i l l o w s o n t h e g r o u n d ; H e r m e s a n d P o s e i d o n are i d e n t i f i e d b y
Finstcr-Hotz Fr. 181 of the drinker; Athenaios, see especially Wolf 290 29J
1984, pp. 77-8. Geryoneis by Stesichoros already identifies Herakles as a great Deipnosophists 11.499. For the image of the reclining Herakles, 1993; also LIMC 4 (1988), pp. 817-21, s.v. 'Herakles'.
292 Boardman 1979a; Athenaios, Deipnosophists 11.498-500, for Flerakles' various skyphoi. 293 Athens, National Museum 42 + 3579: Boardman 1978, fig. 261; Kaltsas 2002, p. 77, no. 120. 29'! Jameson 1994, especially pp. 42-3, 47-50 and n. 45. 2 9 5 Eurytos krater: supra n. 284. For Attic representations, see Wolf (1993, pp. 42-5, figs. 32-3, 131-4) w h o also finds this scene unlikely for Assos.
Supra n. 277. 297 Herakles reclines with Dionysos on one side and Hermes on the other on the cup in London, British Museum B446: ABV 520,32; Fehr 1971, no. 262; Wolf 1993, no. sf. 43, figs. 39, 59. 298 Ambrosius Painter's cup in Florence, Museo Archeologico 73127: ARV2 296
173,4; Fehr 1971, nos. 284-5; Wolf 1993, no. rf. 2, fig. 57.
Τιτήνων
προμηθείην
άνδρας δύνασθαι
άφίκοιο γηραλεος. άναφαίνη,
αρετής-
ούτε
πλασματα
σφεδανάς• τοις
θεών
setting a t t e n d e d b y satyrs, w o m e n , o r d o m e s t i c a n i m a l s creates
διέπει
no
προχειρότερον—
δς εσθλά πίών
καί τόνος άμφ
D i o n y s o s . 2 9 6 T h e r e n o w n e d d r i n k e r a n d the g o d of w i n e m i n g l e appropriately
μη πάνυ
ανδρών δ' aiveîv τούτον,
sculptured relaxing
symposion
Γιγάντων, τών
ούδεν χρηστόν
αΐεν εχειν
προτέρων, ενεστι-
αγαθόν.
But first glad-hearted men must hymn the god with reverent words and pure speech. And having poured a libation and prayed to be able to do what is right—for these are obvious— it is not wrong to drink as much as allows any but an aged man to reach his home without a servant's aid. Praise the man who when he has taken drink brings noble deeds to light, as memory and a striving for virtue bring to him. He deals neither with the battles of Titans nor Giants nor Centaurs, fictions of old, nor furious conflicts—for there is no use in these. But it is good always to hold the gods in high regard.299 In
archaic
poetry
and
practice,
the
symposion
heart o f g o o d social, religious, a n d civic life.300 T o
lies
at
the
participate
299 Xenophanes fr. 1, from Athenaios, Deipnosophists 1 i.4é2C-f. Trans. Lesher 1992, pp. 10-13, with commentary pp. 47-54. For discussion: Frankel 1975, pp. 325-8; Marcovich 1978, pp. 1 - 1 6 , esp. bibliography n. 2. 300 Murray 1980, pp. 197-202; Murray 1983b, pp. 257-72; Murray 1983c, pp. 47-52; Murray 1990, pp. 3-13, with bibliography; Dentzer 1982, pp. 434-6; Schmitt Pantel 1985; Schmitt Pantel 1990a, pp. 20-6; Schmitt Pantel 1990b, pp. 199-213; Schmitt Pantel 1992, passim.
196
THE
SCULPTURE
i n t h e s y m p o s i o n d e f i n e s t h e b e s t o f w h a t it i s t o b e h u m a n : t o
gift
b e l o n g t o a n d b e p a r t o f a c o m m u n i t y , t o b e at ease, t o s h a r e
Sigeion.307 Pauline Schmitt Pantel reminds us again of Solon's
h o s p i t a l i t y , t o d r i n k w i n e r e s p o n s i b l y , t o b e a m a n . I t is a r i t u a l
use of c o m m u n a l
m e a n s o f e x p r e s s i n g f r i e n d s h i p (φιλία)
and hospitality
Eunomia,
and
among
establishes
an
exclusive
equality
(ξένια),
those w h o
are
k r a t e r is a k e y
element i n the event a n d thus
in
a
krater,
stand,
and
strainer
to
the
Prytaneion
d i n i n g as a m e t a p h o r f o r t h e p o l i s i n
of
the
i n w h i c h h e c h a r a c t e r i z e s c i v i l u n r e s t as a n i n a b i l i t y
t o a p p r e c i a t e the feast:
i n c l u d e d i n the gathering.301 The
of
5
its
αυτοί δε φθείρειν
μεγάλην
άστοί βούλονται
representation. A s F r a n ç o i s L i s s a r r a g u e p o i n t s o u t , the k r a t e r
δήμου
i s t h e c o m m u n a l c u p o f t h e s y m p o s i o n ; as t h e s o u r c e o f t h e s h a r e d w i n e , i t b e c o m e s t h e s y m b o l o f h o s p i t a l i t y . 3 0 2 I t is a l s o
πάλιν
χρήμασι
άφραδίησιν
πειθόμενοι,
θ -ηγεμόνων άδικος
νόος, οίσιν
ΰβριος εκ μεγάλης
άλγεα
πολλά
ού γαρ επίστανται
κατεχειν
έτοιμον
παθείν-
κόρον ούδε
παρούσας
the vessel f o r m i x i n g the w i n e w i t h water, a n act that separates
ΙΟ
the c i v i l i z e d b e h a v i o u r o f m e n f r o m the u n c i v i l i z e d actions o f
It is the citizens themselves who, in their folly, wish to destroy the great city in yielding to the lure of riches, and likewise the unjust mind of the chiefs of the people, who prepare great evils for themselves by their great excess. They do not know how to restrain their greed or how to order their present happiness in the calm of a feast.308
b a r b a r i a n s a n d b a r b a r o u s c r e a t u r e s , s u c h as c e n t a u r s w h o d r i n k their w i n e
unmixed.
P r e p a r a t i o n s f o r the s y m p o s i o n itself i n v o l v e certain establ i s h e d rituals, of w h i c h o f f e r i n g a l i b a t i o n m a k e s the best visual e x p r e s s i o n o f piety. T h e act serves t o a c k n o w l e d g e a n d
punc-
t u a t e c h a n g e s i n life, s u c h as a r r i v a l s o r d e p a r t u r e s , a n d c a r r i e s w i t h it t h e p r o p h y l a c t i c f u n c t i o n o f w a r d i n g o f f evil a n d couraging
g o o d fortune b y honouring
the g o d s . I n the
enban-
εύφροσύνας
otherwise joyous and often boisterous
T h e libation rarely appears in scenes of e v e r y d a y
finds
Φοίβε
Totenmahl r e l i e f s
elevates
t h e s c e n e t o a s o l e m n a n d p e r h a p s h e r o i c l e v e l as w e l l .
The
p o s s i b i l i t y is s t r e n g t h e n e d b y t h e u s e o f t h e k a n t h a r o s , a c u p heroic
overtones, rather t h a n the m o r e absence
of couches
alludes
local
drinking
to a p u b l i c
setting
w i t h sacred ambience. The
archaic
symposion
tends
to
be
considered
an
event
centred i n the private sphere, b u t the m a n y occasions for d i n i n g a n d d r i n k i n g in civic a n d sacred contexts surely c o n f i r m that
δε στρατόν
τερπόμενοι παιάνων 780
ΰβριστήν
καί. στάσιν ϊλαος
πάλιν
άκρην,
χαριζόμενος· Μήδων
άπερυκε
εύφροσύνη
κλειτας πέμπωσ
έκατομβας
Ιαχησί
δεδοικ'
'Ελλήνων
ήμετερην
τε σον περί
άφραδίην
λαοφθόρον·
τήνδε φύλασσε
βωμόν.
εσορών άλλα συ
Φοίβε
πάλιν.
Lord Phoibos, you yourself have founded the citadel of the polis, giving kharis to Alkathoos, Pelops' son. Now keep away from this polis the hubris-filled army of the Medes, so that in euphrosunë the people at the coming of spring might send you kleos-worthy hecatombs, having terpsis in the kithara and in the lovely banquet and in dancing the paian and in shouts of joy around your altar. For indeed I fear the lack of phrenes and people-destroying stasis of the Hellenes when I see it. But you, Phoibos, being gracious, protect this our polis. 309
the values expressed in the s y m p o s i o n extended far b e y o n d the
A
andron-306
G o l d e n A g e ; a n d the s y m p o s i o n r e m a i n s a central
T h e i m p o r t a n c e a n d prestige o f p u b l i c d i n i n g i n the
s i x t h - c e n t u r y T r o a d is a t t e s t e d b y P h a n o d i k o s o f P r o k o n n e s o s '
j 0 ! Adkins 1963; Murray 1980, pp. 50-2; Scott 1982, pp. 1-19; Herman 1987, pp. 22-9. 302 Lissarrague 1990a, pp. 23, 36, 44-5; Lissarrague 1990b. 303 See Delight 1943; Dentzer 1982, pp. 514-15; Lissarrague 1990a, pp. 25-6. The evidence is not all archaic. The libation offered at the start of the symposion honored Agathos daimon, the first krater was dedicated to Zeus Olympios, the second to the heroes, especially Herakles, and the third to Zeus Soter. 304 In general: Thönges-Stringaris 1965; Dentzer 1969; Dentzer 1982, pp. 25262, 301-427. For images: supra n. 226. 305 A s seems to be the case in the oversized kantharoi in Lakonian hero reliefs, with connections to Dionysos: Stibbe 1978, p. 36, pi. 10.1-4. 306 Schmitt Pantel 1980, pp. 55-68; Murray 1983b, p. 267; Schmitt Pantel 1985, pp. 145-8; Schmitt Pantel 1990a, pp. 24-6; Schmitt Pantel 1990b; Schmitt Pantel
by also
κιθάρη και ερατη θαλίττ]
τε χοροΐς
η γαρ εγωγε
παίδι
ίνα σοι λαοί εν
ηρος επερχομέωου
from
i n all b u t t h e g e s t u r e o f r a i s i n g
a p h i a l e . 3 0 4 T h e g e s t u r e o f t h e first s y m p o s i a s t o n A 4
horn.303 T h e
ούτος
Πέλοπος
τήσδε πάλευς,
a place in m o r e sober representations, often w i t h heroic
later s o - c a l l e d
with
775
an
the scenes o f a s i n g l e r e c l i n i n g m a l e o n a r c h a i c reliefs a n d the
άναξ, αυτός μεν επύργωσας
Άλκαθόω
symposia,
overtones. T h e s y m p o s i o n o n A 4 differs f u n d a m e n t a l l y
ήσυχίη.
sees t h e h a r m o n i o u s f e a s t as e m b l e m a t i c o f t h e p e a c e f u l c i t y :
occasion.303
b u t the gesture of r a i s i n g a phiale (the s u g g e s t i o n of a l i b a t i o n ? )
εν
e x t e n s i o n , s o t o o s h o u l d b e the city. T h e o g n i s o f M e g a r a
q u e t - s y m p o s i o n , a l i b a t i o n w a s m a d e to s i g n i f y the e n d o f the
T h e act t h u s p r o v i d e d a m o m e n t o f s o l e m n r e f l e c t i o n i n
δαιτός
T h e s y m p o s i o n i s a p l a c e o f h a r m o n i o u s o r d e r (ευνομία);
b a n q u e t a n d the b e g i n n i n g o f the s y m p o s i o n , and, d u r i n g the s y m p o s i o n , a l i b a t i o n w a s o f f e r e d at t h e s t a r t o f e a c h k r a t e r .
κοσμείν
s i m i l a r i d e a is i m p o r t a n t t o H e s i o d i n h i s r e f l e c t i o n s o n t h e metaphor
f o r the peaceful city i n C l a s s i c a l literature a n d p h i l o s o p h y . 3 1 0
1992; ThesCRA 2 (2004), pp. 218-20, 239-41, s.v. 'Banquet', (P. Schmitt Pantel). Civic dining: Miller 1978, pp. 4—13; Rotroff and Oakley 1992, pp. 36-46. Sacred dining: Goldstein 1978; Kron 1988. Sacred, civic, and later palatial dining rooms: Bergquist 1990. j 0 7 M. Guarducci in Richter 1961, no. 53, pp. 165-8, figs. 205-7; Lissarrague 1990a, p. 46; Rotroff and O a k l e y 1992, p. 44. 30S Solon fr. 4.5-10; trans. Schmitt Pantel 1990a, p. 21. For further discussion: Murray 1983b, pp. 262-3; Slater 1981. 3C9 fheognis, Elegies 773-82; trans. Levine 1985, pp. 191-2. 3J0 Hesiod, Works and Days, lines 109-20. Also pseudo-Hesiod S^/eW, 270-319, for the city of peace and festivity. Levine 1985, pp. 176-96, for the symposion as metaphor for the polis in Aristophanes and Plato as well as Theognis.
THE
197
SCULPTURE
I t is i n t h i s c o n t e x t t h a t the s c e n e o f s y m p o s i o n w a s c h o s e n t o
i c o n o g r a p h y o f the d e c o r a t e d m e t o p e s in close detail, a i m i n g
d e c o r a t e t h e t e m p l e at A s s o s . I f t h e s c e n e s o f h u n t i n g
first
v i v i d l y represent a natural order, then the s y m p o s i o n the civilized counterpart. T h e scene of c o n v i v i a l
lions
embodies symposion
r e d e e m s the scene o f H e r a k l e s r o u t i n g the centaurs, v i n d i c a t i n g the failed s y m p o s i o n o f H e r a k l e s a n d P h o l o s .
311
T h e agent in
b o t h s c e n e s is w i n e , t h a t ' a m b i g u o u s d r i n k . . . d a n g e r o u s beneficial... halfway functioning
as
between
mediation
the
between
savage
and
the
these
two
polar
and
civilized, oppos-
to locate their t h e m a t i c parallels w i t h i n the
architectural
tradition, a n d then their c o m p o s i t i o n a l and i c o n o g r a p h i e
cor-
relates w i t h i n the b r o a d e r artistic m i l i e u . T h e s t r o n g case f o r identifying
metope
M8
(quarrel o v e r the a r m s favour
Trojan
themes
with
a story
of Achilles) in
some
from
the
Trojan
saga
provides the impetus
of
the
other
scenes.
In
i n t r o d u c t i o n to the sculpture, I d i s c u s s e d the g e n e r a l
to the
aspects
o f the m e t o p e s , n o t i n g the l i k e l i h o o d that t h e y d e c o r a t e d b o t h
i t e s ' . 3 1 2 P u t b o l d l y , w i n e r e v e a l s character. F o r the c e n t a u r s , it
e n d s o f the temple. T h e r e f o r e , o n l y a b o u t half survive.
Some
unleashes their bestial p a s s i o n a n d d e m o n s t r a t e s their inability
m a y have been part of a larger c o m p o s i t i o n stretching
across
t o a c t as a c o m m u n i t y , t o o f f e r h o s p i t a l i t y , t o s h a r e w i n e f r o m
several metopes.
the krater. B y
c o n t r a s t , m e n at t h e s y m p o s i o n
are at p e a c e ,
m a s t e r s o f their p a s s i o n a t e side. T h e y c a n act i n d i v i d u a l l y heroes, a n d collectively
as a c o m m u n i t y ,
demonstrating
as
c a p a c i t y t o be g e n e r o u s .
T h e confronted sphinxes o n M 3 f o r m an abbreviated version of
X e n o p h a n e s m a k e s explicit the d i s t i n c t i o n b e t w e e n the v i o lence o f centaurs, e m b l e m a t i c o f civic strife (στάσις), a n d behaviour of h u m a n s
Metope Mj: confronted sphinxes
the
i n the w e l l - f u n c t i o n i n g city. T h e
the
same
c o m p a r i s o n i n f o r m s t h e s c u l p t u r a l p r o g r a m m e at A s s o s .
Ex-
the c o m p o s i t i o n w i t h antithetical s p h i n x e s f o u n d t w i c e o n the epistyle ( P L
central floral m o t i f has
been
eliminated, a n d the s p h i n x e s c r o u c h o n their h a u n c h e s ,
103; F i g . 8 2 ) . T h e
with
upright forelegs the
set t o g e t h e r a n d h i n d l e g s flat o n the
manner
of
ground
the o n l y n o n c o m p e t i t i v e scene o n the epistyle. T h e
a r r a n g e m e n t suits the s h a p e o f the m e t o p e ; i n themselves, a n d
tions take place in the d o m a i n of animals, monsters, a n d heroes,
as a p a i r , t h e f e l i n e b o d i e s
w h e r e a s the s y m p o s i o n b e l o n g s s q u a r e l y i n the civilized w o r l d
outwardly
of
o f the s q u a r e
the polis. T h e
prophylactic
function
of
the l i b a t i o n ,
a p p e a l t o d i v i n e p r o t e c t i v e p o w e r s , is t h e r e l i g i o u s
an
analogue
as
projecting wings
those
of
field. the
bulls. T h e s e
expressed
in
the
images
last qualities
are w e l l from
and
t e m p l e ' s d e s i g n e r , h o w e v e r , f o u n d it
anything
but
human
terms.
In
this
context,
and
A2
or
of
a l t h o u g h o n t h e m e t o p e t h e t a i l s are
These
sphinxes
lack
a rib
separating
the
even
f o r h a i r - c u r l s a c r o s s the f o r e h e a d a n d a raised l o c k m a r k i n g the b o r d e r o f t h e h a i r b e l o w t h e ear. T h e s u r v i v i n g s t y l i s t i c d e t a i l s
con-
impossible
t o e x p r e s s q u a l i t i e s s u c h as c o m m u n i t y , f r i e n d s h i p , a n d p i e t y in
A i
fantastical
w o r l d s , t o w h i c h the a r c h a i c G r e e k felt h i m s e l f c l o s e l y nected. T h e
on
breast f r o m the w i n g , b u t t h e y h a v e the t y p i c a l raised
expressed, perhaps
the natural
compressed.
sphinxes
fill
rival
h e r b i v o r e s , a n d the battle o f
best expressed, i n i m a g e r y
of
unfurl to
the
S-curve
very
potency
stable triangles, w h i l e
T h e s p h i n x e s ' tails f o r m the s a m e reclining
strength,
sexual
compact
corners
the seated l i o n o n A n ,
and
make
The
the u p p e r
to the a p o t r o p a i c i m a g e s o f s u p e r n a t u r a l g u a r d i a n s h i p , p h y s i c a l
sphinxes, lions devouring
votive
sphinxes.31''
c l u d i n g the h e r a l d i c s p h i n x e s , the s c e n e o f s y m p o s i o n o n A 4 is competi-
in
firmly
the
sober
band
are n o t s u f f i c i e n t t o a s s o c i a t e t h i s r e l i e f w i t h i n a c l e a r l y d e f i n e d group. I n d i s c u s s i n g reliefs A i
a n d A 2 , w e c o n s i d e r e d the c o m p o s -
i t i o n o f c o n f r o n t e d s p h i n x e s a n d its i m p o r t a n c e i n a r c h i t e c t u r a l
a n d s e m i - s a c r e d c h a r a c t e r o f t h i s s y m p o s i o n f i t s p e r f e c t l y its
decoration f r o m
location o n a temple dedicated to A t h e n a Polias. W e m a y even
rangement
go
e m i n e n t l y s u i t e d to the m e t o p a l s h a p e , b u t i n architecture the
s o f a r as t o s a y
divinely
sanctioned
that the i c o n o g r a p h y human
achievement
evokes a sense and,
by
of
extension,
p r e s e n t s t h e t e m p l e i t s e l f as a c o n c r e t e m a n i f e s t a t i o n o f
that
achievement.
of
composition Sphinxes
may
Ionia
and
Lykia. The
seated, antithetical
appears
to have
slightly
sphinxes
been taken
different
found
up
on
only
at
have decorated metopes f r o m several
M3
aris
Assos. temples
in A i t o l i a a n d W e s t Greece, b u t the o n l y certain e x a m p l e comes f r o m T e m p l e Y at S e l i n o u s , w i t h its s i n g l e s p h i n x . 3 1 4 A s f a r as w e c a n tell, n o n e o f t h e o t h e r , l e s s - c e r t a i n e x a m p l e s , a d o p t s t h e
SCULPTURED
a n t i t h e t i c a l , s e a t e d c o m p o s i t i o n o f m e t o p e M 3 . O n l y t h e relief
METOPES
f r o m C a l t a g i r o n e offers a c o m p a r a b l y large-scale version, but
T h e t e n s u r v i v i n g m e t o p e s e x h i b i t t h e s a m e t h e m a t i c r a n g e as the reliefs o n the epistyle: m o n s t e r s , p o w e r - a n i m a l s n o t certainly in c o m b a t ) , a n d h u m a n narratives. O f
(although t h e last,
with addorsed sphinxes.315 O n the other hand, the c o m p o s i t i o n of M 3 edly
in
smaller
decorative
arts,
particularly
a p p e a r s repeatin
metalwork,
s o m e s c e n e s a r e s u r e l y m y t h o l o g i c a l a n d o t h e r s are t a n t a l i z i n g l y a m b i g u o u s , at l e a s t t o u s . I n t h i s c h a p t e r , I c o n s i d e r t h e Ridgway 1993, p. 227. Giuliani 1979, pi. 12.1, or Tusa 1983, pi. 27; Marconi 2007, p. 90, no. SMi, fig. 36. Sphinxes also have been suggested on metopes from the Temple of Apollo at Thermon (Typhon?), Kalydon, series 1 (lion?), and Mcgara Hyblaia: supra n. 36. 313
3,4
3 1 1 Wcscoat 1995; ThesCRA Pantel). 3 1 2 Lissarrague 1990a, p. 5.
2 (2004), p. 239, no. 239, s.v. 'Banquet' (P. Schmitt
315
Giuliani 1979, pi. 12.2.
THE
174
SCULPTURE
M3
the o r b i t o f the E a s t G r e e k p a i n t e d e x a m p l e s f o u n d o n
Klazo-
menian, C h i o t , W i l d G o a t , or R h o d i a n pottery.319 A l t h o u g h e s s e n t i a l l y t h e s a m e s u b j e c t as t h e l a r g e r r e l i e f s
A i
a n d A 2 , the c o n f r o n t e d s p h i n x e s o n M 3 l a c k the critical gesture of
guarding
the
sacred
tree; t h e y
are r e d u c e d
i n scale
relegated to a less p r o m i n e n t p l a c e o n the b u i l d i n g . T h e
and motif
nevertheless serves the i m p o r t a n t u n i f y i n g f u n c t i o n v i s u a l l y b y repeating a m a j o r m o t i f f r o m the epistyle. M e t o p e s M 4 , w i t h a boar, a n d M 7 , w i t h a centaur, also repeat motifs, thus f o r m i n g a visual refrain to the large-scale scenes b e l o w that helps together
the
two
sculptured
courses.
In
the
case
of
bind the
s p h i n x e s , t h e t h e m e is c a r r i e d i n t o t h e r o o f d e c o r a t i o n as w e l l .
-t—Η
Η—I—I—l·
.5 Η
Metope
1—I—1 1m
Boar
M e t o p e M 4 i l l u s t r a t e s a b o a r w a l k i n g t o t h e r i g h t i n a n a t u r a l gait,
1—I—I
w i t h its n o s e
5cm FIGURE
M4:
to
the g r o u n d
as if s n i f f i n g f o r f o o d
(PI.
104;
F i g . 83).320 T h e boar's rather slender p h y s i q u e , w i t h sleek b o d y ,
82. M3: Confronted sphinxes.
m u s c u l a r s h o u l d e r s , l o n g legs, a n d n o genitalia, resembles the early E a s t G r e e k type o f b o a r f o u n d o n C h i o t a n d Fikellura pottery.321
especially s h i e l d b a n d reliefs.316 T h e i m a g e o n the
shieldband
series r e m a i n s r e m a r k a b l y c o n s i s t e n t f r o m the last q u a r t e r
of
M4
/ Vs
t h e s e v e n t h c e n t u r y t o t h e l a s t q u a r t e r o f t h e s i x t h ; its c o m p o s ition, w i t h c o n f r o n t e d s p h i n x e s c r o u c h i n g o n their h a u n c h e s , front
in
S-curves,
m a t c h e s the m e t o p e exactly. M o s t often, in the m a n y
legs
vertical,
wings
unfurled,
and
tails
Pelopon-
n e s i a n e x a m p l e s o f these reliefs, the s p h i n x e s h a v e h a i r - s p i r a l s , b u t several versions
( b o t h e a r l y a n d late) e l i m i n a t e this
ture.317 T h e similar-shaped correspondence
fields
fea-
m a y a c c o u n t f o r s o m e o f the
b e t w e e n the m i n i a t u r e
bronze
metopes
t h e a r c h i t e c t u r a l r e l i e f at A s s o s , a l t h o u g h it is w o r t h
and
noting
that the m e t o p e f r o m T e m p l e Y f o l l o w s a c o m p l e t e l y different f o r m ; its s i n g l e s p h i n x h a s t h e s t r i d i n g f r o n t l e g s a n d c r o u c h i n g hind quarters favoured image of confronted connection
with
in East
sphinxes
metalwork
Greek
pottery.318 W h i l e
the
is a n a r c h a i c c o m m o n p l a c e ,
seems
the fact that the c o m p o s i t i o n o f M 3
further
substantiated
does not belong
.815
a by
within
For the composition generally: LIMC 8 (1997), pp. 1155-7, n o s · 78-116, s.v. 'Sphinx' (N. Kourou). From Olympia: Kunze 1950, forms I-V, XVII, X X V I I I , X X X I I , pp. 58-60, pis. 5, i l , 16, 19, 21, 44, 52-3, 60; Bol 1989, pp. 43-4, form C X I X , fig. 5, pi. 67. From the Athenian Akropolis: Payne 1931, pi. 45.8; Touloupa 1991, pp. 262, 268, no. D i l i . ι , figs. 34-6. Bronze reliefs from Ptoion: BCH 16 (1892) pi. 15. Bronze mirror plaque from Corinth: Payne 1931, pp. 225-6, fig. 102, pi. 45.8. O n some shieldband reliefs, seated confronted sphinxes can have a diminutive floral between them, but they do not raise a paw heraldically upon it.
ml—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I
0
.5
1m H—I—I—I 5cm
316
e.g., Kunze, 1950, forms X X V I I I or X V I I . Mirror plaque: supra n. 316. Giuliani 1979, pp. 50-2. The position is especially common on Klazomenian sarcophagi: e.g., R. M. C o o k 1981, pis. 16 (D2), 18 (D3), 29 (F3), 34 (F16), 50 (G9), 51.2 (Gio), 61.ι (G27), 70.2 (G16), 72 (G24), 81.1 (G41), 99.1 (H2). Paired sphinxes can move in this fashion in Corinthian vase painting: CorVP 127,6; Payne 1931, pis. 3.1, 22.5. Compare also single sphinx on Loeb tripod A (Chase 1908, p. 292, pi. 9); terracotta sphinx from Delphi (LeRoy 1967, pp. 90-1, no. Α.185, pi. 31); ivory plaque from Sparta (Dawkins 1929, pl. 107.2). Even the antithetically paired sphinxes on Loeb tripods Β and C adopt a different scheme for the forelegs; cf. Höckmann 1982, pis. 64-5; Chase 1908, pp. 301, 309-10, pis. 317
318
14, 18.
FIGURE
83. M4: Grazing boar.
3 , 9 Supra n. 44. Walter-Karydi 1973, no. 37, pi. 8 (Samian), no. 516, pi. 62 (Rhodian), no. 528, pi. 67 (Rhodian), no. 559, pi. 65 (Rhodian). Chiot sphinxes can sit antithetically but tend to have horizontal backs: Lemos (supra 'Epistyle', n. 44). See also Chian chalices found at Anthemousia: Poulaki 2001, pp. 59, 71, 81. Klazomenian examples: supra n. 6. 320 For quadruped locomotion: L. Brown, 'The Right Way to Walk FourLegged', Natural History 77.9 (1968), pp. 32-9, 84-5. 321 Compare slender boars represented on a Chiot bowl, London, British Museum 88.6-1.456 (Lemos 1991, no. 252, pi. 27); on Chiot fragments, London, British Museum 1888.6-1.466 (Lemos 1991, no. 439, pi. 58); on a Fikellura amphora, London, British Museum 88.2-8.54 ( C o o k and Dupont 1998, pp. 78-9, fig. 10.1); on an East Greek dinos, Basel, Antikenmuseum BS452 (Walter-Karydi 1970, pis. 1-2); and, more unusually, on a Klazomenian sarcophagus, Athens, National Museum 13939 (R· M. C o o k 1981, no. B5, pi. 5.1). In bronze silhouette, note the similarly shaped boar from Olympia (without interrupted crest): Philipp 2004, pp. 344-6, pi. 78.
199
THE SCULPTURE A
s i m p l e g a p s e p a r a t i n g the s p i n a l bristles, a l s o characteristic o f
E a s t G r e e k r e p r e s e n t a t i o n s , h e r e a p p e a r s i n its e a r l y f o r m .
322
The
b o a r h a s a r o u n d e d ear, a s a u c e r - l i k e e y e p l a c e d w e l l a l o n g t h e snout,
a curving
tusk
that protrudes
from
the closed
chops,
The
image
e m b l e m of
o f the b o a r can, also, s t a n d o n its
fierce
own
as
an
t e n a c i t y a n d as a s y m b o l o f the s t r e n g t h a n d
b r a v e r y m a n i f e s t i n its h u n t (see a b o v e , A 1 3 ) . 3 2 7 T o H o m e r , the boar was
second
only
to the l i o n
(Iliad
in strength,
and
equally
a n d a c u r l y tail e n d i n g i n a t w i s t e d p l u m e . T h i s b o a r is f u n d a m e n -
dangerous w h e n cornered
12.41-6, 146-53). T h e i m p o r t -
tally different i n posture, p h y s i q u e , a n d details f r o m the o n e o n
a n c e o f the b o a r at A s s o s rests n o t o n a n i n t i m a t e c u l t i c
relief A 1 3 d i s c u s s e d earlier. T h e latter d e r i v e s f r o m a d i f f e r e n t
mythological connection w i t h Athena, but more
prototype—the
or
immediately
fat p i g p r e f e r r e d b y E a s t G r e e k artists o f
the
w i t h a d e m o n s t r a t i o n of vitality that conjures u p heroic behav-
s e c o n d half o f the sixth c e n t u r y — a n d p r o b a b l y represents
the
i o u r . I n life, t h e b o a r m u s t h a v e c a r r i e d g r e a t p o t e n c y f o r b e i n g the
w o r k o f a different sculptor. Of
the three characteristic p o s t u r e s
f o r the b o a r i n
art—
fiercest
animal
the h u n t e r s
confront; even today, w i l d
a t t a c k i n g , at b a y , a n d f o r a g i n g f o r f o o d — t h e l a s t is g e n e r a l l y
countryside
reserved f o r scenes w h e n
the p a t r o n g o d d e s s A t h e n a
the b o a r appears
alone
in
benign
a n i m a l friezes, o r i n scenes w h e r e a n u n s e e n l i o n a p p r o a c h e s . 3 2 3 Early
o n , the h u n t e d b o a r i n C o r i n t h i a n
(c.éoo-575) can take o n the f o r a g i n g aggressive
postures
soon
become
and Attic
painting
attitude, b u t the
the n o r m
for boar
more hunts,
surrounding
of the T r o a d
boars
were
likely
live a n d are h u n t e d
Assos.
The
connection
a n d the boar (and b y
to
i n the
between extension,
t h e m e n w h o h u n t it) is m a d e e x p l i c i t o n the a r c h a i c s i l v e r c o i n s o f M e t h y m n a , the m o t h e r c i t y o f A s s o s , w h i c h c o m b i n e a head o f A t h e n a a n d a p o w e r f u l b o a r w i t h l o w e r e d h e a d . 3 2 8 I t is i n this c o n t e x t — s i m u l t a n e o u s l y
real, s y m b o l i c , a p o t r o p a i c ,
and
d e c o r a t i v e — t h a t the b o a r a p p e a r s a l o n e o n E a s t G r e e k
gems
t h e s t r i d i n g b o a r i n c l u d e w e a p o n s o r d o g s , w h i c h c o u l d h a v e fit
and
from
o n o u r m e t o p e if t h a t s u b j e c t w e r e i n t e n d e d . T h e b o a r o n
S y m e . It w o u l d have h a d equal p o w e r w r i t large o n the temple
b o t h generic a n d m y t h o l o g i c a l . 3 2 4 E v e n the h u n t scenes
c a n n o t be c o m b i n e d w i t h a n y o f the s u r v i v i n g
figurai
with
M4
metopes
coins, K l a z o m e n i a n
sarcophagi,
and a grave
stele
at A s s o s , w i t h o r w i t h o u t a t t e n d a n t l i o n s . A n d i f i t w e r e p o s i -
to m a k e a credible m y t h o l o g i c a l composition.323 It could, h o w -
tioned
depicting
animal
ever, b e p a r t o f a n a n i m a l f r i e z e , f a c e d o r f r a m e d b y l i o n ( s ) o n
c o m b a t s , it w o u l d h a v e s e r v e d t o i n t e r w e a v e t h e k e y
in p r o x i m i t y
to
the
epistyle
relief
themes
the adjacent metope(s). I n architectural sculpture n o t represent-
o f n a t u r a l s t r e n g t h a n d p o w e r b e t w e e n the t w o
courses.
ing a mythical encounter, boars usually appear faced b y preda t o r s , as i n r e l i e f A 1 3 . O n t w o E a s t G r e e k a r c h i t e c t u r a l f r i e z e s ,
Metope My: galloping
the p o d i u m f r i e z e o f B u i l d i n g G at X a n t h o s a n d f r a g m e n t s o f a terracotta sima, a b o a r o c c u p i e s an entire b l o c k o r panel
and
centaur
T h e third i m a g e to connect directly w i t h subjects explored o n
was, presumably, faced or flanked b y lions or panthers.326
t h e e p i s t y l e is t h e c e n t a u r o n m e t o p e M 7 , w h o t u r n s f u l l face w h i l e g a l l o p i n g r i g h t ( P I . 1 0 5 a - b ; F i g . 84). T h e s i m i l a r i t i e s
of
For the interrupted crest: supra n. 95. Examples of the simple gap: supra n. 3 21. Later representations of the type appear on an Etruscan bronze relief from a chariot, Munich, Staatliche Antikensammlungen 720p W A F (Höckmann 1982, pis. 1-3); on a Cypriote sarcophagus, N e w York, Metropolitan Museum of Art 74.51.2451, C.500 BC (Dcntzer 1982, R6, fig. 186); and on gems (e.g., Boardman 1968, nos. 537-8, 546, 549, pis. 36-7; Boardman 1970, pis. 292, 402-3). O n East Greek coins the more sophisticated break is favoured, but see Babelon II. 1, no. 765, pi. 20.11 (Ialysos) and no. 829, pi. 22.11 (Lykia). In Attic art, cup by Skythes, Rome, Villa Guilia 20760: ARV2 83,14; Schefold 1992, fig. 216.
this centaur
in
322
For the isolated image on gems: Boardman 1968, nos. 497, 537-8, 540, 542, 546-7, 549, 554; on coins: Babelon II.1, nos. 615-16, pl. 15.19-20 (Methymna), no. 765, pi. 20.11 (Ialysos), nos. 1838-41, pl. 59.2,3,4 (Thrace). For the boar faced or flanked by lions, helmet B5316 from Olympia: Kunze 1967, pp. 128-9, nos. 15-16. N o t e also Early Corinthian amphora, Athens, National Museum 303: CorVP 143,2; Payne 1931, no. 771, pi. 24.4. The motif is a favourite for the predella of Lcagran hydriai, e.g., Boardman 1974, figs. 222-4, 230. Chiot boars (supra n. 321) are attacked while foraging. Klazomenian sarcophagi: R. M. C o o k 1981, pis. 5.1 (B 5 ), 30.1 (F 7 ), 76 (G39), 84.1 (G43), 86.1 (G44). 323
LIMC 6 (1992), pp. 415-18, 430, nos. 6-35, s.v. 'Meleagros', (S. Woodford); LIMC 2 (1984), pp. 940-1, nos. 1-16, s.v. 'Atalante', (J. Boardman); Schnapp 1979; Schnapp 1997, pp. 278-317; Barringer 2001, pp. 15-63, 147-61, 172-3. Boars outside the hunt but in aggressive posture include the Treeing of Peleus: LIMC 7 (1994), p. 253, no. 9, s.v. 'Peleus', (R. Vollkommer); the Cybele Shrine, Sardis (Hanfmann and Ramage 1978, p. 48, no. 7, fig. 46). In contemporary architectural sculpture, the Kalydonian boar may be represented on a metope from the Monopteros at Delphi: La Coste-Messelière 1936, pp. 120-52, pi. 3; Bookidis 1967, pp. 183-8, M43; Ridgway 1993, pp. 339-43. 324
325 Clarke 1898, pp. 285-6, saw enough in the boars of M4 and A 1 3 to propose a now lost scene of Herakles and the Erymanthian boar, but the two types of scene are completely unrelated. 326 Building G at Xanthos, London, British Museum B293: Pryce 1928, p. 134— 7, pi. 28; Jenkins 2006, pp. 168-72. Terracotta sima from East Greece, art market:
to
the o n e furthest r i g h t o n
relief A 8 / A 4 8 ,
p h y s i q u e a n d h a i r s t y l e , as w e l l as i n t h e p o s i t i o n o f t h e a r m s a n d t h e s h o u l d e r e d t r e e t r u n k , i n d i c a t e t h a t b o t h r e l i e f s are the w o r k o f the s a m e d e s i g n e r a n d p o s s i b l y the s a m e s c u l p t o r .
On
M 7, t h e c e n t a u r ' s b e t t e r - p r e s e r v e d f a c e g i v e s s o m e i n d i c a t i o n o f w h a t the f r o n t a l l y facing centaurs o n A 8 / 4 8 m u s t have l o o k e d l i k e ; it is o n t h i s b a s i s t h a t t h e y a r e r e s t o r e d i n F i g u r e 7 9 . T u r n i n g at least t h r e e o f t h e c e n t a u r s ( t w o o n t h e e p i s t y l e a n d o n e i n the t r i g l y p h frieze) t o face the v i e w e r e n l i v e n s the rather m o n o t o n o u s centaur cavalcade in an iconologically
significant
w a y . T h e f r o n t a l face b r e a k s the spatial b o u n d a r y o f the narrat i v e p l a n e t o e n g a g e t h e v i e w e r d i r e c t l y . C r e a t u r e s s u c h as the g o r g o n h a v e frontal faces that s h o c k a n d quite literally petrify the viewer; the visceral c o n f r o n t a t i o n of m o n s t e r a n d completes
the
image
and
gives
it
power.
Frontally
viewer facing
l i o n s r e n d i n g p r e y l o c k eyes o n the p i l g r i m to m a k e the raw
Äkerström 1966, p. 206, no. 3, fig. 66.3. Kontoleon 1970, p. 12, suggests the boar on a stele from Syme is an abbreviated version of this type. A fragmentary terracotta relief with a boar from Sardis is architectural but of uncertain composition; cf. Ramage 1978, no. 12, figs. 43-4. 327 For heroes likened to the boar or using boar imagery, supra n. 129. Hunt as expression of aristocratic valour: Barringer 2001, pp. 42-6. Boar power: Hölscher 1972, pp. 56-63; Vermeule 1979, pp. 88-91; Woysch-Méautis 1982, pp. 77-9· 328 Wroth 1964a, pi. 36.6-7.
THE
176
SCULPTURE t h e e p i s t y l e , t o w h i c h it i s a l l i e d b y g e s t u r e a n d s t y l e . 3 3 1
M7
The
v i e w e r w o u l d associate the g a l l o p i n g centaur o n M 7 w i t h the c a v a l c a d e o f c e n t a u r s o n t h e e p i s t y l e (a k i n d o f l e i t m o t i f ) , a n d i n d e e d it c a n b e r e s t o r e d t o a p o s i t i o n d i r e c t l y a b o v e t h e r i g h t side o f either relief A 6 o r A 8 . D i v o r c e d f r o m the m a i n
battle
a n d isolated b y the architectural f r a m e o f the D o r i c frieze, the i m a g e s e r v e s as a v i s u a l r e f r a i n ; n a r r a t i v e m e a n i n g c o m e s
sec-
o n d t o t h e d e c o r a t i v e effect.
Metope
My. Europe
on the Zeus
T h e t w o joining fragments of metope M 5
preserve the l o w e r
part of a female seated side-saddle o n a striding bull;
HT.035 Ι
.735
—
1
1
1—I—I—I
.5
action
m o v e s t o t h e r i g h t ( P i s . 89, 106; F i g . 85). T h e b u l l ' s f o r e g r o u n d
1
legs rest o n Η—I
Bull
the l o w e r
edge
o f the s h a r p l y
bevelled
taenia,
w h i l e t h o s e b e h i n d tread o n the u p p e r edge, c r e a t i n g a n i l l u s i o n
1
1m
of
depth
when
viewed
from
below.
The
bull's
stiff
gait
a n d w o o d e n f o r m are u n c h a r a c t e r i s t i c o f the l i v e l y a n d s o m e -
5cm FIGURE
84. M7: Galloping centaur.
w h a t r u b b e r y a n i m a l s o n the o t h e r reliefs, a n d the
awkward
p r o p o r t i o n s — n o d o u b t i n f l u e n c e d b y the s h a p e o f the
field—
differ m a r k e d l y f r o m those o f the bulls o n reliefs A 9 o r A 1 4 . d i s p l a y o f p o w e r b o t h i m m e d i a t e a n d specific. I n a d d i t i o n to the a p o t r o p a i c p o w e r d i s p l a y s , the f r o n t a l face also c a n serve to demonstrate barbarity or grotesqueness, imitate or
signal
defeat
and
enlist
the
sympathy
of
drunkenness, the
imminent
to
suggest
demise,
and,
their
drunkenness,
above
all, t o
to
draw
allude
s k i n o v e r t h e h i n d q u a r t e r s . I n its p o o r c o n d i t i o n w e c a n n o t a l l y this sculpture w i t h a n y specific g r o u p .
viewer."129
A t A s s o s , the centaurs a d o p t the p o s e to s i g n i f y their strousness,
D e t a i l s v a r y as w e l l , e s p e c i a l l y i n t h e t a i l , t e s t i c l e s , a n d f o l d o f
raon-
to
M5
their
the v i e w e r
into
their d r a m a . C e n t a u r s rarely appear alone or outside m y t h in
architec-
tural contexts.330 T h e centaur o n M 7 , w h i c h does n o t
appear
t o h a v e its o w n s t o r y , s u r e l y b e l o n g s t o the c e n t a u r o m a c h y
on
.292-
In architectural sculpture, the most dramatic example of frontality is the pedimental gorgon and gorgoneion, about which much has been written: Osborne 2000, pp. 231-2; Marconi 2007, pp. 214-22, with accompanying bibliography on the gorgon face. Frontality is also an aspect of the chariot epiphany, e.g., on the east façade of the Alkmeonid Temple of Apollo at Delphi (La Coste-Messelière 1931, pp. 33-62). N o t e the recent suggestion of epiphany for the east pediment of the Old Temple of Athena in Athens as well (Marszal 1998). Frontal faces with different meaning include defeated giants, e.g., on the pediment of the Temple of Artemis at Korkyra (Korkyra II, figs. 75, 83, 86, 88, 90-3, pis. 28-9, 31, 32); dead warriors, e.g., Antilokhos on the east frieze (no. E18) and the dead giant Astarias on the north frieze (no. N36) of the Siphnian Treasury at Delphi (Brinkmann 1994, pl. 26, Supplements χ, 2, j, 6, 9, 10); dying warrior on the west pediment from the second Temple of Aphaia at Aegina (Boardman 1978, fig. 206.4; Rolley 1994, pp. 202-4, fig- ^ 7 ; O h l y 2001, vol. II, foldouts F - H , K, pis. 115-18). The frontality of figures on the metopes from Temples Y and C has been widely interpreted: C . M. Robertson 1975, pp. 118-20; Giuliani 1979; Tusa 1983, pis. 2, 4-8, 28-34; Marconi 2007, pp. 218-22. For the frontal face in Attic vase painting, see Korshak 1987, and on shieldbands, Kunze 1950, p. 135 and n. 2. 329
The several centaurs depicted on the First Heraion at Foce del Sele arc all connected with myth: Zancani Montuoro and Zanotti-Bianco 1951, nos. 1, 3-6, 11, 17, pis. 25-8, 33, 37, 52, 54-60, 65, 76; Van Keuren 1989, pp. 81-90. The centaur on a fragmentary metope from Thermon, inscribed [Ph]olo[s] (supra n. 154) must be part of a larger composition. Centaur cavalcades on several terracotta revetments lack Herakles, but I agree with Holtzmann 1979, p. 5, that most could be excerpts of the myth. Confronted centaurs on the revetment from Pazarh are the exception: Akerström 1966, p. 167, pi. 94.1. 330
-I—I—I—I
0 FIGURE
.5
1m
85. M5: Europe on the Zeus Bull.
331 There is no evidence that the centaur is Nessos or Eurytion. If we accept M i as Peleus chasing Thetis, then Cheiron, mentor of Peleus and assistant in the capture, might seem a possibility (cf. Pindar, Isthmian 8. 45-9; Euripides, Iphigeneia in Aulis 705; Apollodoros, Library 3.13.5), but he should have human legs like Pholos on A 5 and should attend, not gallop away.
THE
SCULPTURE
O n l y the l o w e r legs o f the rider survive, c o v e r e d b y a l o n g t u n i c ; h e r feet p o k e s t r a i g h t o u t b e l o w . F r o m the p o s i t i o n
of
177
p o p u l a r in architectural sculpture of the A r c h a i c period.338 T h e a b d u c t i o n a p p e a r s o n m e t o p e s f r o m t h e M o n o p t e r o s at D e l p h i
h e r l e g s , s h e a p p e a r s t o s i t s q u a r e l y u p r i g h t , as d o t h e f e m a l e
a n d T e m p l e Y at S e l i n o u s , a n d i n as y e t u n i d e n t i f i e d
architec-
b u l l - r i d e r s i n archaic terracotta statuettes a n d s o m e s m a l l
t u r a l c o n t e x t s at P o s e i d o n i a a n d P e r g a m o n . 3 3 9 M o s t
o f these
a n d metal reliefs.
332
T h e preserved
line o f the bull's
clay
mouth
s h o w s t h a t its h e a d a p p e a r e d i n p r o f i l e , w i t h t h e h o r n ,
now
reliefs p o s s e s s a g o o d deal m o r e i c o n o g r a p h i e c h a r a c t e r the m e t o p e f r o m A s s o s . I n the u n m i s t a k a b l e visual
than
narrative,
lost, p o i n t i n g f o r w a r d . G i v e n the b u l l ' s l o n g f o r e q u a r t e r s , it
the bull g a l l o p s or s w i m s in a k i n d of d o g paddle, w h i l e E u r o p e
w o u l d h a v e b e e n i m p o s s i b l e f o r t h e r i d e r t o g r a s p its h o r n , a n d
c l i n g s f o r h e r life, o n e h a n d c l a s p e d r o u n d t h e b u l l ' s h o r n
the s u r v i v i n g c o n t o u r o f the bull's n e c k indicates that she d i d
neck, the o t h e r
not
i n c l u d e e v i d e n c e o f t h e sea, s u c h as w a v e s ,
fish,
dolphins,
or
o t h e r sea c r e a t u r e s , a n d e x c l u d e references
to land, s u c h
as
hold
on
there, either. I c o n o g r a p h i e
parallels
offer
five
p o s s i b l e a r r a n g e m e n t s f o r the u p p e r b o d y o f the rider:
grasping
its f l a n k . T h e
vines, branches, or flowers. T h e (a)
firmly
g r i p p i n g t h e b u l l ' s f l a n k f o r e a n d aft ( a r c h a i c t e r r a -
cotta statuettes a n d s o m e A t t i c b l a c k - f i g u r e scenes333); (b)
g r i p p i n g the bull's f l a n k w i t h her r i g h t h a n d w h i l e extend-
Temple Y
at
S e l i n o u s ( a n d a f e w o t h e r a r c h a i c w o r k s ) s a t i s f i e s all t h e c r i -
well, f o r E u r o p e c l i n g s to the bull, w h o s e u p t u r n e d n o s e a n d g a t h e r e d f o r e l e g s i n d i c a t e t h a t h e is s w i m m i n g . H o w e v e r ,
f r o m P o s e i d o n i a a n d a terracotta statuette334);
o n e c a n o n i c a l feature ( s w i m m i n g bull, c l i n g i n g girl, seascape)
fully extending b o t h a r m s (Attic black-figure scenes336); or
(e) s i t t i n g c o m p l e t e l y f r o n t a l , w i t h h e r h a n d s t h r o w n u p metrically to either side of her h e a d ( p o s s i b l y relief f r o m
sym-
i n (e) s h e c o u l d a l s o face the v i e w e r ( c o m p a r e E u r o p e o n the
body. The
composition
of other sculptures
temple suggests that o p t i o n (b) ( c o m p a r e N e r e i d s
from
the
on A3
s y m p o s i a s t s o f A 4 ) , (d) ( c o m p a r e c e n t a u r s o n reliefs A 6
or and
A 8 / 4 8 ) , o r (e) ( c o m p a r e f a r - l e f t N e r e i d o n r e l i e f A 3 ) is l i k e l y . fully
riding bull
suffi-
ciently identifies the m y t h / 4 1 T h e w a y i n w h i c h E u r o p e clings d e s p e r a t e l y t o t h e b u l l o n t h e m e t o p e f r o m t h e M o n o p t e r o s at D e l p h i l e a v e s n o d o u b t t h a t s h e is b e i n g a b d u c t e d , e v e n t h o u g h the b u l l has all f o u r h o o f s
firmly
set o n the g r o u n d line.342 I n
Perachora337).
m e t o p e f r o m P o s e i d o n i a ) . T h e latter suits the d i s p o s i t i o n o f h e r lower
c o m b i n e d w i t h the basic m o t i f o f w o m a n
any
shieldband
I n all o f t h e s e p o s t u r e s , t h e r i d e r ' s h e a d c o u l d b e i n p r o f i l e , a n d
clothed
woman
riding
side-saddle
on
a
bull
i m m e d i a t e l y b r i n g s to m i n d the rape o f E u r o p e , a m y t h w i d e l y
332 Statuettes: Winter 1903, p. 163, nos. 2-5; Technau 1937, fig. 7; Zahn 1983, pp. 58-61, nos. 81-9; LIMC 4 (1988), pp. 82-3, nos. 113-15, s.v. 'Europe Γ (M. Robertson). Relief from Akragas: LIMC 4 (1988), p. 81, no. 88, s.v. 'Europe I'; Marconi 2007, p. 93, fig. 39. Shieldband relief from Perachora: Payne 1940, pi. 49.2-3; LIMC 4 (1988), p. 82, no. 97, s.v. 'Europe I'. 333 Several of the terracotta statuettes cited supra, n. 332. Black-figure oinochoe, Cleveland, Museum of Art 29.978: ABV 422,4; LIMC 4 (1988), p. 78, no. 29, s.v. 'Europe P. Caeretan hydria, Rome, Villa Guilia 50643: Hemelrijk 1984, no. 13, pis. 61-3; LIMC 4 (1988), p. 78, no. 24, s.v. 'Europe Γ. 334 Metope from Poseidonia: Zancani Montuoro and Zanotti-Bianco 1951, fig. 39; Zahn 1983, no. 8; LIMC 4 (1988), p. 81, no. 79, s.v. 'Europe I'. Terracotta, Athens, National Museum: Zahn 1983, no. 81. 3 3 5 The females may be nymphs or maenads. See neck amphora, Berlin, Staatliche Museen F1881 (LIMC 4 (1988), p. 78, no. 32, s.v. 'Europe P); neck amphora by the Edinburgh Painter, Boston, Museum of Fine Arts 76.42 ( L I M C 4 (1988), p. 78, no. 31, s.v. 'Europe 1'). 336 N e c k amphora, Würzburg, Martin von Wagner Museum 193: Zahn 1983, no. 17, pi. 5.1; LIMC 4 (1988), p. 78, no. 27, s.v. 'Europe P. N e c k amphora, Vatican, Museo Gregoriano Etrusco 17796: Zahn 1983, no. 18, pl. 3. Lekythos, Providence, Rhode Island School of Design Museum of Art 22.216: Zahn 1983, no. 19; CVA RISD 1, pi. 12.1; LIMC 4 (1988), pp. 78-9, no. 33, s.v. 'Europe I'. Lekythos, Naples, Museo Archeologico Nazionale RC218: La Coste-Messelière l 9 p ' · 9»i; LIMC 4 (1988), p. 79, no. 35, s.v. 'Europe I'. Oinochoe, Leipzig, Antikenmuseum der Universität T4400,02,06: CVA Leipzig 2, pl. 35.3. 337
from
or
scenes
i n g h e r l e f t h a n d f o r w a r d o r h o l d i n g it t o h e r c h e s t ( m e t o p e
other f o r w a r d (Attic black-figure scenes of bull-riders335);
A
metope
explicit
t e r i a / 4 0 T h e f r a g m e n t a r y r e l i e f f r o m P e r g a m o n m a y h a v e as
(c) h o l d i n g o n e h a n d to h e r chest o r side w h i l e e x t e n d i n g the
(d)
most
Supra η. 33 2 ! only one arm survives.
3 j 8 For the myth: La Coste-Messelière 1936, pp. 153-68; Technau 1937, pp. 76103; Bühler 1968; Heldensage3 pp. 515-18; Schefold 1981, pp. 234-9; Zahn 1983; Villanueva Puig 1987, pp. 131-42; LIMC 4 (1988), pp. 76-92, s.v. 'Europe Γ; Gantz 1993, pp. 208-11. Earlier discussions include Jahn 1870, pp. 1-54; Overbeck 1871, vol. I, pp. 420-65; Preller-Robert 4 II, pp. 352-61; Roscher I.i, cols. 1409-18; RE VI.ι (1907), cols. 1287-98, s.v. 'Europe'; C o o k , Zeus I, pp. 542-7, and III, pp. 61528. 339 Metope from the Delphi Monopteros, no. 1321: La Coste-Messelière 1936, pp. 92-4,153-68, pi. 8; Zahn 1983, pp. 105-6, no. 4; LIMC 4 (1988), p. 81, no. 77, s. v. 'Europe I'. Temple Y at Selinous: Giuliani 1979, pp. 43-50, pi. 10; Tusa 1983, p. 113, pis. 24-6; Zahn 1983, no. 5; LIMC 4 (1988), p. 81, no. 78, s.v. 'Europe I'; Marconi 2007, pp. 90-6, 209-12, no. SM2, fig. 37. Relief from Pergamon, Berlin, Staatliche Museum 1709: Blümcl 1963, p. 39, no. 29, fig. 81; Zahn 1983, no. 6, pi. 2; LIMC 4 (1988), p. 81, no. 81, s.v. 'Europe I'. The metope from Poseidonia (supra n. 334) preserves only the upper part of a female seated side-saddle, but the identification with Europe is very likely, especially in light of the large terracotta preserving a bull's head and a female leg also from Poseidonia ( L I M C 4 (1988), p. 82, no. 113, s.v. 'Europe I'). 340 See also Caeretan hydria, c.530 (supra n. 333); agate scaraboid, c.480-470, Oxford, Ashmolean 1966.596 ( L I M C 4 (1988), p. 81, no. 84, s.v. 'Europe I'); slightly later, Attic bobbin by the Sotheby Painter, Athens, National Museum, 2350 ( A R V 2 775,3; LIMC 4 (1988), p. 79, no. 45, s.v. 'Europe I'); staters from Gortyn and Phaistos (LIMC 4 (1988), p. 82, nos. 107-8, s.v. 'Europe I'). A blackfigure oinochoe (Oxford, Miss., University of Mississippi Museum 77.3.73) could be included, as the artist has ingeniously portrayed the waves with a rough wash, and the background branch may signify abandoned Phoenicia (LIMC 4 (1988), p. 79, no. 34, s.v. 'Europe I'). 341 For example, the Naples lekythos (supra n. 336), which depicts a seascape and a swimming bull. A swimming/galloping bull and a clinging Europe without further aquatic reference characterizes the scene on a fragment of a Boeotian relief pithos (c.640 BC), Paris, Cabinet des Médailles 3003 (LIMC 4 (1988), p. 81, no. 91, s.v. 'Europe I'; Simantoni-Bournia 2004, p. 86, fig. 104). Also, black-figure plate fragment, Athens, National Museum 2451, in which Europe holds a basket (LIMC 4 (1988), p. 79, no. 36, s.v. 'Europe I'); and, a few Attic red-figure scenes, e.g., hydria by the Berlin Painter, Oxford, Ashmolean 1927.4502 ( C V A O x f o r d 1, pi. 64.1; LIMC 4 (1988), p. 79, no. 41, s.v. 'Europe I'). 342 The upper corner may have had a fish or bird: La Coste-Messelière 1936, pp. 155-6; Marconi 2007, p. 93. Other examples showing Europe less frantic but still securing her hold include a clay relief from Akragas (supra n. 332) and possibly a fragmentary metope from Poseidonia (supra n. 334).
202
THE
SCULPTURE
s o m e later v e r s i o n s o f the m y t h ( L u c i a n ' s a n d O v i d ' s ) , the Z e u s
m a d e the trees o f the G o r t y n g r o v e e x t r e m e l y fertile.34* W h i l e
B u l l m u s t b r i n g E u r o p e d o w n t o the sea b e f o r e he c a n
n o t as e v o c a t i v e
swim
as c l i n g i n g ,
gestures
can sufficiently
signal
a w a y w i t h h e r . 3 4 3 S o m e t i m e s , a w o m a n w h o is n e i t h e r f r i g h t -
distress. O n
e n e d n o r c l i n g i n g f o r her life m a y ride a n u n m i s t a k a b l y
late a r c h a i c A t t i c b l a c k - f i g u r e r e p r e s e n t a t i o n s , the f e m a l e o n a
ming
bull; w e
do
not
doubt
the s t o r y
is t h e
swim-
abduction
of
Europe.344
iconographie
markers
that c o n f i r m
context, such lack of specificity w o u l d
Europe.
In
another
have been associated w i t h other m y t h o l o g i c a l
because
o f the
they
(clinging
lack
more
amorphous
specific
girl, s w i m m i n g
Nature
aspects central
figures
on
media
either
as t o w h o m
are
inscribed
line
while
ΕΥΡΟΠΕΙΑ
[ΤΑΥ]ΡΟΣ
the
a
of
bull
throws
scenes
ground
b o t h sides
in W ü r z b u r g , 3 4 9
above);
Ε[Υ]ΡΟΠΕΙΑ
the
amphora
rider
and
ΤΑΥΡΟΣ
ΑΝΙΑΔΕΣ,
ΦΟΡΒΑΣ
leaving no
doubt
t h e a r t i s t m e a n t t o p o r t r a y , at l e a s t o n t h i s v a s e .
Terracotta statuettes d e p i c t i n g the full E u r o p e
iconography—
story
o f c l i n g i n g g i r l o n a s w i m m i n g b u l l set o n a w a v y b a s e — d o n o t
because
appear before the C l a s s i c a l period.330 A r c h a i c terracotta statu-
to E u r o p e ' s
bull, aquatic reference) o r
firmly
neck
of
o n e h a n d f o r w a r d a n d the o t h e r b a c k ( o u r t y p e [d] the
or per-
Goddess,
strides
black-figure
in
raise s o m e d o u b t
the identification. C e r t a i n generic b u l l - r i d e r s i n other
mutations
striding bull w a v e s her a r m s dramatically. O n an Attic
T h e s c e n e o n M 5 d o e s n o t , i n its c u r r e n t c o n d i t i o n , p o s s e s s the
a s h i e l d b a n d f r o m P e r a c h o r a a n d o n a series
they include elements irrelevant to her a b d u c t i o n (florals, k r o -
ettes a r e o f t e n
tala, o r s a t y r s ) . 3 4 3 I n A t t i c b l a c k - f i g u r e , s c e n e s w i t h
b e c a u s e the b u l l is s t a t i o n a r y a n d the f e m a l e d o e s n o t g e s t u r e
Dionysiac back
from
obvious
references d i s t i n g u i s h the m a n y m a e n a d s o n the
smaller
group
of
certain
H o w e v e r , scenes i n w h i c h branches
fill
Europe
the
field
bull-
images.346 o r the
rider carries b r a n c h e s o r a w r e a t h m a y also be directly
bull con-
nected w i t h the fertility/earth g o d d e s s aspect of E u r o p e .
347
H e r s t o r y is p u n c t u a t e d w i t h f l o r a ; t h e b r a n c h e s m a y r e f e r t o the c l i m a x of this episode, f o r the u n i o n o f E u r o p e a n d
Zeus
wildly.331
excluded f r o m
the c o r p u s
of E u r o p e
It seems unlikely, however, that E u r o p e ' s
scenes
first
ap-
pearance in this m e d i u m w o u l d w a i t until the C l a s s i c a l period, w h e n s h e is w e l l k n o w n i n o t h e r art f o r m s d u r i n g the A r c h a i c p e r i o d . C l e a r l y , the a r c h a i c statuettes are the p r e d e c e s s o r s
of
w h a t d e v e l o p e d i n t o a m o r e d e s c r i p t i v e v e r s i o n o f the rape. I n light o f this, E u r o p e r e m a i n s the best c h o i c e f o r the female o n relief M 5 . S h e c a n be r e s t o r e d w i t h her a r m s i n o n e o f the several evocative gestures that m i g h t s u g g e s t a flailing E u r o p e .
Ovid, Metamorphoses 2.833-75; Lucian, Dialogues of the Sea Gods 15.2. Also, Moschos, Europa, and Horace, Odes 3.27. Her myth appeared earlier in the work of Homer, Hesiod, Eumelos, Stesichoros, Simonides, Bakchylides, and Aischylos, but none of these accounts survive beyond a skeletal version of the plot: Bühler i960, pp. 17-29; Preller-Robert 4 II, pp. 352-61; LIMC 4 (1988), p. 76, s.v. 'Europe I*. j43
O n an amphora by the Painter of the Munich Amphora, she quietly holds a basket of flowers, Saint Petersburg, Hermitage B1564 (811637): Zahn 1983, no. 30, pi. 8.1; LIMC 4 (1988), p. 79, no. 38, s.v. 'Europe P. O n a Caeretan hydria (Paris, Louvre E696) she demurely sniffs a flower. Here, the painter provides a panorama, with a dolphin in the sea and an island representing Crete, complete with three trees and a hare—provocative references to the climax of this journey: LIMC 4 (1988), p. 78, no. 23, 'Europe Γ. Compare flower to one on a Classical white ground kylix, Munich, Staatliche Antikensammlungen 2686: LIMC 4 (1988), p. 79, no. 44, s.v. 'Europe I'. The flower Europe sniffs suggests fertility and reminds one of the crocus, which according to Hesiod and Bakchylides, the Zeus Bull breathed forth to attract Europe (Homeric Scholiast, I, 62.292). The flower also recalls those of the meadow in which Europe was playing when the Zeus Bull saw her, as well as the garland of flowers she placed on his horns. 344
Compare, e.g., female bull-rider on a bronze helmet from Delphi: Blome 1982, pp. 75-6, fig. 12. O n the debate: La Coste-Messelierc 1936, pp. 156-68; Technau 1937, pp. 76-103; Kunze 1950, pp. 90-1; Bühler 1968, pp. 51-3, n. 39; C . Isler-Kerényi's review of Zahn 1983, Gnomon 57 (1985), pp. 163-6; LIMC 4 (1988), pp. 78, 90, nos. 30-3, s.v. 'Europe'. The evidence cited by Technau 1937, pp. 93-8, for other nature goddesses w h o might be the bull-rider (including Demeter, Artemis, Leto, Themis, Aphrodite, Astarte, Hellotis, or Ariadne) does not belong to the high Archaic period. 345
346 Zahn 1983, pp. 25-37, 179-81, includes 11 Attic black-figure scenes with bull-riders (nos. 16-26) but excludes 49 that she considers maenads on bull-back (M1-M49). Villanueva Puig 1987, pp. 131-42, identifies 5 scenes as Europe and a further 107 scenes as a maenad on a bull. Brommer, Heldensage3 p. 515, includes 6. O f Robertson's selection of 11 Attic black-figure vases in LIMC 4 (1988), pp. 78-9, nos. 26-36, s.v. 'Europe I', 4 are listed as doubtful.
e.g., Villanueva Puig's (1987) nos. 26-7, 44-6, 58, 71-96. Branches appear on two vases that certainly show Europe crossing the sea, the Naples lekythos (supra n. 336) and the Mississippi oinochoe (supra n. 340). Note also, e.g., the Providence Leagros Group lekythos (supra n. 336), called Europe by Beazley and Brommer, and the Boston neck amphora (supra n. 335). The female on bull-back on the Perachora shieldband relief (supra n. 332) may also carry a plant. 347
E v e n if she d i d n o t
flap her a r m s
probably would think
first
in distress, h o w e v e r ,
of Europe. T h e Zeus Bull
w i t h a d i g n i f i e d stride i n other securely identified
we
walks
abduction
scenes, s o it s h o u l d n o t c o u n t a g a i n s t h i m here. S i n c e n o n e o f t h e s c u l p t u r e o n t h e t e m p l e at A s s o s is g i v e n t o d e s c r i p t i v e o r p i c t o r i a l i n f o r m a t i o n , it is n o s u r p r i s e t h a t the p r e s e r v e d p a r t o f this m e t o p e lacks m a r i n e references. A n d
while our
metope
l a c k s p o s i t i v e i c o n o g r a p h i e d e t a i l , it d o e s n o t h a v e t h e c o n f u s i n g elements that p l a g u e the identification o f scenes o n certain A t t i c b l a c k - f i g u r e vases related to the a m p h o r a i n W ü r z b u r g . T h e s e v e r a l o t h e r a r c h i t e c t u r a l r e l i e f s i d e n t i f i e d as E u r o p e
on
t h e Z e u s B u l l a r e all q u i t e d i f f e r e n t , d e m o n s t r a t i n g t h e i m p o r t ance o f the t h e m e a n d its r a n g e o f r e p r e s e n t a t i o n . B y
contrast,
t h e r e are n o m a e n a d s o r o t h e r n a t u r e g o d d e s s e s o n b u l l - b a c k i n the
repertoire
of
archaic
architectural
sculpture.
Within
a
m o n u m e n t a l context a n d f r a m e d b y other m y t h o l o g i c a l scenes, a w o m a n r i d i n g a bull w o u l d be E u r o p e to m o s t viewers.
348 Theophrastos, Enquiry into Plants 1.9.5; C o o k , Zeus I, p. 526, n. 4. Branches could also be general symbols of springtime fertility or references to the abandoned Phoenician meadow. See Overbeck 1871, vol. I, pp. 421-2, for branches in archaic and flowers in classical representations of Europe. To both Jahn (1870, p. 23) and C o o k (Zeus I, p.531, nn. 1-3, p. 532, n.2), the flower basket Europe carries on the Saint Petersburg amphora, Hermitage B1564 (Sti637) (Zahn 1983, no. 30, pi. 8.1; LIMC 4 (1988), p. 79, no. 38, s.v. 'Europe I') reinforces her fertility role; note Moschos, Europa 237-62. 349 Würzburg, Martin von Wagner Museum 193: LIMC 4 (1988), p. 78, no. 27, s.v. 'Europe I'. 350 Bühler 1968, figs. 1-2; Zahn 1983, no. 90.1-11; LIMC 4 (1988), p. 83, nos. 116-18, s.v. 'Europe I'. 351 Excluded by Technau 1937, p. 88, and Bühler 1968, p. 51; included by Zahn 1983, nos. 80-90. N o t e also the large, late sixth-century statuette from Poseidonia: LIMC 4 (1988), p. 82, no. 113, s.v. 'Europe I'.
THE Europe's
abduction
is
a popular
subject
in
203
SCULPTURE
architectural
sculpture of the A r c h a i c p e r i o d across the G r e e k w o r l d , f r o m
M8
S e l i n o u s a n d P o s e i d o n i a in the w e s t to D e l p h i o n the m a i n l a n d a n d A s s o s a n d P e r g a m o n i n t h e east. I n S i c i l y , t h e e x p l o i t s her s o n M i n o s a n d the f o u n d a t i o n of H e r a k l a i a M i n o a
of
secure -.72-
m y t h o l o g i c a l and p o s s i b l y political connections for Europe.352 J u l i e t t e d e la G e n i è r e a s s o c i a t e s t h e i m p o r t a n c e o f t h e m y t h i n the W e s t w i t h the a p p e a r a n c e o f S t e s i c h o r o s ' p o e m , Brunhilde
S. R i d g w a y ,
representations,
argues
also chiefly concerned that
travel
myths
such
Europeia.
with as
western Europe's
s t o r y w o u l d have h a d special significance in distant 353
colonial
regions. A t D e l p h i , there m a y be a cultic reason f o r her i n c l u s i o n o n the
Monopteros,
if
in
fact
it
belonged
Demeter-Europe was worshipped.354 N o
to
Sikyon,
where
s t r o n g cultic or g e o -
g r a p h i c c o n n e c t i o n s p e r t a i n t o E u r o p e at A s s o s . S h e d o e s pass
by
the T r o a d
connection mother
with
city, s o
o n her w a y
Athena. the
353
appeal
to Crete,
Assos of
lies
the s t o r y
and
within
she has sight
of
as a m e t a p h o r
c o l o n i a l j o u r n e y i s n o t p a r t i c u l a r l y r e l e v a n t , either. p e r s o n a l m y t h o l o g y does n o t s e e m to be intimately
not H—I—I—H
little
1m
its
-I—I 5cm
for
Europe's connected
w i t h t h e o t h e r r e p r e s e n t a t i o n s o n t h e t e m p l e at A s s o s , b u t w e can d r a w a few general associations. E u r o p e ' s abduction, along w i t h H e r a k l e s w r e s t l i n g T r i t o n , a n d Peleus c h a s i n g the N e r e i d T h e t i s (to be p r o p o s e d f o r m e t o p e M i ) , is o n e o f three scenes o f c o n q u e s t t h a t i n v o l v e t h e sea, w h i c h m u s t h a v e h a d a s p e c i a l m e a n i n g i n this coastal t o w n . T h e p a i r i n g of T r i t o n a n d
the
flight of E u r o p e also appears o n a delightful Little M a s t e r cup b y the T l e s o n P a i n t e r . 3 5 6 O n a different level, the scene c a n be
FIGURE
86. M8: Quarrelling heroes.
tied t o the reliefs o f the e p i s t y l e t h r o u g h the t h e m e o f sexual m a s t e r y . Z e u s as b u l l i s a m y t h o l o g i c a l a n a l o g u e o f t h e s e x u a l p o w e r expressed i n s p a r r i n g bulls o n reliefs A 1 4 a n d A 1 5 . T h e s c e n e o n M 5 t h u s f u n c t i o n s as a m o r e s o p h i s t i c a t e d v e r s i o n o f the m e t o p a l scenes that reiterate a n d r e i n f o r c e t h e m e s f r o m the epistyle.
hair, the u n b r o k e n c u r v e o f the p r o f i l e f r o m f o r e h e a d t o n o s e , a n d the s o l i d b u t n o t d i s p r o p o r t i o n a t e l y s t o c k y p h y s i q u e . T h e s a m e s c u l p t o r m a y b e at w o r k . L a c k i n g a n o b v i o u s m y t h o l o g i c a l i n t e r p r e t a t i o n , the scene has s i m p l y been called t w o that the
Metope MS: quarrelling heroes right, a bearded m a n dressed in a s h o r t t u n i c strides f o r w a r d to t h e l e f t as h e d r a w s a s w o r d f r o m a s c a b b a r d h e l d i n h i s l e f t figure
survives. A l t h o u g h his
facial features are e r o d e d , his s l i g h t l y l o n g e r b e a r d a n d l a r g e r h e a d m a k e h i m a p p e a r the o l d e r o f the t w o . T h e
fighting
warriors. C l a r k e
suggests
to the right m a y be H e r a k l e s , b u t h e specifies n o
particular occasion. F i n s t e r - H o t z , seeing s o m e t h i n g m o n s t r o u s
O n m e t o p e M 8 , t w o m e n f a c e o f f ( P i s . 9 3 , 107; F i g . 8 6 ) . O n t h e
h a n d . O n l y the h e a d of the other
figure
figures
several stylistic characteristics w i t h the s y m p o s i a s t s o n
share relief
A 4 a n d H e r a k l e s o n relief A 3 , i n c l u d i n g the r e n d e r i n g o f the
i n the l o n g e r b e a r d a n d l a r g e r h e a d o f the left three
possible
identifications:
Herakles
figure,
offers
fighting
Nessos,
A p o l l o punishing Tityos, and Neoptolemos killing
Priam.357
H o w e v e r , t h e field c a n n o t a c c o m m o d a t e a c e n t a u r ' s b o d y ; t h e scene l a c k s the a t t r i b u t e s a n d k e y c h a r a c t e r s t h a t i d e n t i f y the punishment
of Tityos;
and, the r i g h t - h a n d
figure
makes
an
unlikely N e o p t o l e m o s , w h o s h o u l d be fully a r m e d a n d aggress i v e l y a t t a c k i n g , u s i n g e i t h e r a s p e a r o r t h e b o d y o f A s t y a n a x as weapon.358
The
left
figure's
substantial
beard
is
not
much
larger t h a n s o m e of the s y m p o s i a s t s ' ; he need n o t be a giant 332 Giuliani 1979, pp. 49-50, also notes that Selinous was once friendly with Carthage, which was founded by settlers from Europe's hometown, Tyre. 353 La Genière 1983, pp. 158-71; Ridgway 1991, pp. 95-112, esp. 104 ; Marconi 2007, pp. 90-6, 209-12. 354 La Coste-Messclière 1936, pp. 92-5; cult also in Boeotia. 3 5 5 Although she is connected with the cult of Athena at Corinth: C o o k , Zeus I, p. 525. 3 5 6 N e w York, Steinhardt collection: J. Gaunt in Padgett 2003, pp. 340-3, no. 95.
or monster.
3 5 7 Clarke 1898, p. 287; Sartiaux 1915, p. 46; Kunze 1950, p. 173, n. 1; FinsterH o t z 1984, pp. 100-2. 358 Tityos: LIMC 2 (1984), pp. 310-11, nos. 1066-76, s.v. 'Apollon', (V. Lambrinudakis); Schefold 1992, pp. 68-70. Neopotolemos: Wiencke 1954, pp. 285-306; LIMC 7 (1994), pp. 516-20, s.v. 'Priamos', 0. Neils).
T H E S C U L P T U R E 204 G e s t u r e p r o v i d e s the best evidence f o r i d e n t i f y i n g the scene. T h e r i g h t - h a n d m a n d r a w s rather t h a n wields his s w o r d . grasps
the
scabbard
rather
than wears
it; t h e
d a n g l e s i n f r o n t as i f h e h a s s e i z e d t h e w e a p o n M o r e o v e r , he w e a r s n o
slack
He
baldric
spontaneously.
o t h e r a r m o u r , as if u n r e a d y f o r
the
other, f o r m i n g a c l o s e d c o m p o s i t i o n . 3 6 3 B y a n a l o g y , o u r lefthand
figure
most likely moves
right, l e a d i n g w i t h the
back-
g r o u n d l e g as o n t h e o t h e r s c u l p t u r e s f r o m t h e t e m p l e . I n t h e c o m p a r a b l e e x a m p l e s , b o t h quarrellers c a r r y a s w o r d ; the lefthand
figure
was probably so equipped.
c o n f r o n t a t i o n . T h i s s i t u a t i o n is n o t the i c o n o g r a p h y o f a n o r -
T h e r e are several p o s s i b i l i t i e s f o r the p o s i t i o n o f the s e c o n d
mal single combat, H o m e r i c or otherwise, in w h i c h fully a r m e d
s w o r d ( F i g . 86). T h e s i m p l e s t w o u l d b e f o r t h e l e f t - h a n d m a n t o
w a r r i o r s attack w i t h w e a p o n s held i n m e n a c i n g positions. D u r -
d r a w h i s s w o r d as w e l l , u s i n g t h e p r o p e r r i g h t h a n d s o t h a t h i s
i n g the A r c h a i c p e r i o d , the m o t i f of a m a n d r a w i n g his s w o r d
scabbard w o u l d have to point outward. A t t i c black- and red-
a p p e a r s i n a n u m b e r o f contexts, a n d i n e a c h case the gesture
figure
embodies
dishing an e m p t y scabbard w i t h loose baldric, a gesture
an
element
of
surprise
or
threat.
It
t h e a n t i c i p a t o r y m o m e n t b e f o r e a c t i o n a n d serves mounting
anger;
there
is
an
unpreparedness
represents to indicate
distinct
scenes of quarrelling heroes also s h o w one
figure
branthat
i m p l i e s a threat e r u p t i n g f r o m f r u s t r a t i o n a n d anger. T h e s c a b -
from
b a r d m a y be t h r u s t i n t o the face o f the a d v e r s a r y o r h e l d h i g h to
the c o n f r o n t a t i o n o f e s t a b l i s h e d e n e m i e s . 3 5 9 T h e l e f t - h a n d f i g -
the chest of the defendant; the s w o r d s e e m s a l m o s t s e c o n d a r y .
ure c o u l d be seated b u t m o r e likely stands, g i v e n the fact that n o
I n m o s t instances, A t t i c b l a c k - f i g u r e artists prefer a s y m m e t -
trace o f h i s legs o r a t h r o n e s u r v i v e s o n the l o w e r f r a g m e n t . 3 6 0
rically
A
man who
hastily
draws
his s w o r d
in front of
another
their
balanced scabbards
composition and
waving
with their
both
quarrellers
swords;
enhance the i m p r e s s i o n
between quarrelling compatriots.361
d r a w his s w o r d w h i l e the o t h e r threatens w i t h his s c a b b a r d . 3 6 4
pear m a i n l y in A t t i c vase painting and o n A r g i v e reliefs, take t w o
f o r m s : (a) a f a c e - t o - f a c e
ap-
shieldband
confrontation
be-
A
second possible arrangement for M 8
by
having
artists
s t a n d i n g m a n describes the sort o f a n g r y c o n f r o n t a t i o n t y p i c a l T h e s e scenes, w h i c h
of spontaneity
shaking
red-figure one
hero
w o u l d h a v e the left-
h a n d q u a r r e l l e r h o l d a n u n s h e a t h e d s w o r d p o i s e d at h i s w a i s t
t w e e n t w o quarrellers, o r (b) a m o r e c o m p l e x scene, in w h i c h
w h i l e c l u t c h i n g the s c a b b a r d to his chest. T h e o t h e r
additional heroes restrain m e n w h o r u s h to attack one another.
t i v e s — t h e s c a b b a r d b r a n d i s h e d i n the face of the adversary, the
C i v i l i a n attire f o r either o r b o t h o f the quarrellers
s w o r d raised b e h i n d a n d over the h e a d or d r a m a t i c a l l y
e o u s l y e m p h a s i z e s the i m p r o m p t u sets the s c e n e o f f the battlefield.362 most
painted
examples,
the
simultan-
nature of the dispute O n
quarrellers
the s h i e l d b a n d s stride
toward
and and each
alterna-
thrown
b a c k f r o m the s c a b b a r d — c a n n o t be a c c o m m o d a t e d w i t h i n the field
o f the m e t o p e . N o r are a n y o f the ' r e s t r a i n e d '
positions
viable unless the scene c o n t i n u e d o n a f l a n k i n g m e t o p e . I n this case, the p r e s e r v e d m e t o p e w o u l d r e p r e s e n t t h e r i g h t h a l f o f a
e.g., Aigisthos defending himself against Orestes, Herakles liberating Theseus and Peirithoos or unsheathing his sword against satyrs attacking Hera, Menelaos threatening Helen, Odysseus challenging Kirke, or Theseus displaying his courage to Aithra. Aigisthos: LIMC ι (1981), p. 372, nos. 2-3, 39-40, s.v. 'Aigisthos' (R. M. Gais). Herakles liberating Theseus and Peirithoos on shieldband reliefs: Kunze 1950, pp. 110-13, Form XXIX^/s, supplement 7.4; Bol 1989, p. 161, H86, pi. 82; LIMC 7 (1994), p. 238, no. 84, s.v. 'Peirithoos'. Herakles defending Hera on a metope from the First Heraion at Foce del Sele: Zancani Montuoro and Zanotti-Bianco 1954, no. 7, pp. 141—5, pi. 61 (called Elektra and Orestes by Van Keuren 1989, pp. 57-63). Menelaos on a skyphos, Boston, Museum of Fine Arts 13.186: ARV2 458,1; Ghali-Kahil 1955, pi. 48; LIMC 4 (1988), p. 530, no. 166, s.v. 'Helene'. Odysseus on a 'Pseudo-Chalkidian' black-figure neck amphora from Vulci: LIMC 6 (1992), p. 53, no. 19, s.v. 'Kirke' (F. Canciani). Theseus on a cup, St Petersburg, Hermitage B649 (St83o): LIMC 1 (1981), pp. 422-3, no. 25, s.v. 'Aithra Γ, (U. Kron). In the tondo of a cup by the Painter of the O x f o r d Brygos, two kneeling men also draw their swords, but the context is unclear: Barrett and Vickers (1978, p. 23, pi. 2a) review several views including the spirits of Marathonian warriors; add Hemelrijk (1984, n. 856), w h o raises the possibility that the pair stand watch. 3yj
360 The iconographie choices involving a man seated on a throne or high platform (altar or bema) are limited. O n a shieldband relief, R. M. Gais ( L I M C 1 (1981), p. 372, no. 5, s.v. 'Aigisthos') identifies the scene of a man drawing his sword on an enthroned, supplicating figure as Orestes and Aigisthos, but Bol (supra n. 359) sees instead two seated figures and identifies the scene as Theseus and Peirithoos in the Underworld. Generally, Orestes grabs the seated Aigisthos by the forelock or neck as he plunges his sword: LIMC 1 (1981), pp. 372-4, nos. 1 - 1 3 , s.v. 'Aigisthos'; Prag 1985, pp. 10-32. Archaic scenes of Herakles liberating Theseus from the Underworld require Peirithoos (supra n. 359). 361 Robert 1881, pp. 213-21; Beazley 1950, pp. 312-13, fig. 2; Kunze 1950, pp. 172-5; Heldensage3,, pp. 418-23; Mcnnenga 1976, pp. 103-12; D. Williams 1980, p. 141, n. 35; LIMC ι (1981), pp. 325-6, nos. 71-8, s.v. 'Aias Γ (Ο. Touchfeu); Pipili 1987, pp. 25-6. >62 Rarely, one man wears armour; cf. cup by Douris, Vienna, Kunsthistorisches Museum 3695: LIMC 1 (1981), p. 325, no. 71, s.v. 'Aias I'.
scene, w i t h the l e f t - h a n d
figure
restraining the a n g r y h e r o f r o m
a t t a c k i n g a s e c o n d quarreller d e p i c t e d o n the adjacent m e t o p e to the left.365 T h e s i m p l e r c h o i c e s e e m s m o r e likely.
363 Shieldband, Athens, National Museum 6962: Wolters 1895, pp. 477-8, pi. 14.1; Kunze 1950, p. 173; Touloupa 1991, p. 264, figs. 37-9. Kunze (1950) and Sartiaux (1915) also note the connection with M8. 364 Scabbard thrust in the face of the adversary: fragments of a cup by Oltos, Florence, Archaeological Museum 3923 ( C V A Florence 3, pi. 73.1); lekythos by the Edinburgh Painter, Paris, Louvre C A 5 4 5 ( A B L 217,24; ABV 476); neck amphora by the Berlin Painter, Madrid, National Archaeological Museum L185 (CVA Madrid 2, pi. 22.ia-b); lekythos from Taranto (Heldensage 3 4 1 9 ^ 3 ; Q . Quagliati, Il Museo Nazionale di Taranto (Rome 1932), p. 54,4). Scabbard held high to the chest of the defendant: lekythos by the Athena Painter, Berlin, Antikcnsammlung F2000 ( L I M C 1 (1981), p. 326, no. 75, s.v. 'Aias I'); oinochoe by the Taleides Painter, Paris, Louvre F340 ( L I M C 1 (1981), p. 326, no. 77, s.v. 'Aias I'). Scabbard thrust at adversary: cup by the Penthesilea Painter, Ferrara, Museo Nazionale di Spina T i 8 e {ARV2 882,35; N · Alfieri and P. E. Arias, Spina (Munich 1958), pl. 31); early Mannerist column krater from Padula, Museo Archeologico di Lucania occidentale (ARV2 584,19^5); possibly Brygos Painter cup, Malibu, J. Paul Getty Museum ( L I M C ι (1982), p. 325, no. 72, s.v. 'Aias I'; D. Williams 1980, pi. 36,1). Scabbard held to chest: cup by Douris, Vienna, Kunsthistorisches Museum 3695 (supra n. 362); cup by the Brygos Painter, London, British Museum E69 ( L I M C ι (1981), p. 325, no. 73, s.v. 'Aias I'; D. Williams 1980, pi. 35,1). Combination: Leagros Group hydria, London, British Museum B327 ( A B V 363,38; Beazley 1986, p. 75, pi. 84.1; CVA British Museum 6, pi. 86.3); fragments of cup by Oltos, Florence, Museo Archeologico Etrusco 1B20, 3B16-18, 12B70 (Beazley Archive no. 200448). To these groups may belong fragmentary cup by Makron, Paris, Louvre C 1 1 2 7 1 (D. Williams 1980, pi. 34,3.4) and fragments of a cup by Douris, Paris, Cabinet des Médailles 675, 600, 597, γιγ(ραη), 774, L.224, 586(parts) ( A R V 2 428,14; D . Williams 1980, p. 139, n. 18). 36""' Compare Lakonian cup fragment (Pipili 1987, pp. 25-6, no. 78, fig. 36) and shieldband plate (Kunze 1950, supplement 13,1). See also Attic black-figure neck
THE
205
SCULPTURE
T h e s c e n e , t h e n , i s b e s t r e s t o r e d as a q u a r r e l o n t h e p o i n t o f
p o t t e r y are o f t e n i d e n t i f i e d as O d y s s e u s a n d A j a x , e v e n w i t h o u t
c o m i n g t o b l o w s b e t w e e n h e r o e s w h o are o t h e r w i s e allies. I t
the pile o f a r m s . 3 7 2 B y contrast, the definite r e p r e s e n t a t i o n s
r e m a i n s to c h o o s e specific heroes a m o n g the m a n y w h o
Amphiaraos
quar-
rel, h o l d g r u d g e s , a n d c o m e t o b l o w s i n b o t h t h e T r o j a n a n d t h e T h e b a n stories. T h e
Iliad
Aethiopis
and
Little
Iliad
feature the quarrel b e t w e e n A j a x a n d O d y s s e u s o v e r the a r m s of Achilles. T h e
Odyssey
Lykourgos
of N e m e a
of are
f o u n d i n P e l o p o n n e s i a n art a n d a r e s o i d e n t i f i e d b y i n s c r i p t i o n . 3 7 3
d w e l l s o n the w r a t h of A c h i l l e s o v e r
A g a m e m n o n ' s seizure of Briseis. T h e
quarrelling w i t h K i n g
I f the interpretation o f the scene o n the m e t o p e M 8 hinges o n geographic
significance,
then
the
location
of
Assos
in
the
southern T r o a d favours a representation of H o m e r i c Ajax and
( i 1.543-7) m e n t i o n s this quarrel a n d
O d y s s e u s q u a r r e l l i n g o v e r the a r m s o f A c h i l l e s . T h e s t o r y a n d
alludes to a f a m o u s altercation between O d y s s e u s a n d A c h i l l e s
the h e r o e s b e a r d i r e c t l y o n the m y t h i c a l h i s t o r y o f this region,
( 8 . 7 5 ) ; O d y s s e u s q u a r r e l s w i t h D i o m e d e s o v e r t h e P a l l a d i o n as
f o r the q u a r r e l h a p p e n e d at T r o y . A j a x h a d a c u l t i n the T r o a d ,
well.366 A c c o r d i n g to A i s c h y l o s , A p o l l o d o r o s , a n d others, the
a n d his t u m u l u s , a l o n g w i t h a shrine a n d a statue o f the hero,
S e v e n a g a i n s t T h e b e s g e t o n n o better. T y d e u s a l t e r n a t e l y q u a r -
s t o o d near R h o i t e i o n / 7 4 T h e T r o j a n episode also m a k e s sense
rels
with
Amphiaraos,
Amphiaraos dispute these
with
many
pictorial
bears
the d i s p u t e
a grudge
against
Lykourgas.367
King quarrels
tradition:
Polyneikes,
find
certain
King
Tydeus
However, expression over
and
Lykourgas;
o f the age difference r e p r e s e n t e d i n the t w o
also
would
only in
the a r m s
has
three
the
a of
archaic
of
Achilles,
o v e r the P a l l a d i o n , a n d the altercation
between
Amphiaraos and
the a r g u m e n t
or
be the y o u n g e r
figures
on M8: Ajax
m a n t o the right, a n d O d y s s e u s ,
the
o l d e r m a n t o t h e left. B y c o n t r a s t , t h e s t o r y o f t h e S e v e n a g a i n s t Thebes
h a s little r e l e v a n c e to t h e r e g i o n a n d e v e n less to a
t e m p l e d e d i c a t e d to A t h e n a .
Lykourgos.368
Metope
T h e q u a r r e l s are d i f f i c u l t t o d i s t i n g u i s h w i t h o u t i n s c r i p t i o n s
Mi:
chase
scene
o r specific i c o n o g r a p h i e details.369 T h e q u a r r e l o v e r the P a l l a -
O n metope M i , one
d i o n r e q u i r e s t h e s t a t u e ; w h i l e n o t i m p o s s i b l e , it is u n l i k e l y t o
108; F i g . 8 7 ) . T h e n u d e , b e a r d e d m a l e o n t h e l e f t a g g r e s s i v e l y
h a v e b e e n part o f the A s s i a n c o m p o s i t i o n . F o r the o t h e r
strides f o r w a r d to g r a s p the e l b o w o f the f l e e i n g
quarrels, the scene m a y regional
significance.370
have The
two
been interpreted according few
certain
representations
figure
c h a s e s a n o t h e r t o t h e r i g h t ( P i s . 93,
figure,
who
to
glances r o u n d a n d raises o n e h a n d i n a l a r m . T h e latter b a r e l y
of
fits
the s c u l p t u r a l
field:
the h e a d b r u s h e s the u p p e r taenia, the
t h e q u a r r e l o v e r t h e a r m s o f A c h i l l e s ( t h a t is, t h o s e t h a t i l l u s -
l e f t a r m h u g s t h e e d g e o f t h e r e l i e f , a n d p a r t o f t h e l e f t f o o t is
t r a t e t h e a r m s as w e l l as t h e q u a r r e l ) b e l o n g t o A t t i c a r t ; s e v e r a l
cut o f f i n the rebated r i g h t edge. I n b r e a k i n g t h o u g h the right
r e d - f i g u r e e x a m p l e s i n c l u d e the v o t i n g scene o n the
border, the s c u l p t o r sacrifices b a l a n c e f o r the a p p e a r a n c e
side of the vase.371
O n
this basis, s i m i l a r quarrels
opposite on
Attic
of
a c t i o n , b u t t h e o f f - c e n t r e a r r a n g e m e n t d o e s n o t a p p e a r to be i c o n o g r a p h i c a l l y s i g n i f i c a n t ; there are n o r e m a i n s o f a step o r
amphora, University of Chicago ( A B V 318,6; AJA 47 (1943) pp. 386-7, fig. i A ) ; cup by Douris in Vienna (supra n. 362); cup by the Brygos Painter in the Getty (supra n. 364); early Mannerist column krater, Padula (supra n. 364). Note also cup potted by Kachrylion, London, British Museum E13 ( A R V 2 109; LIMC 1 (1981), p. 326, no. 78, s.v. 'Aias I*. A shieldband relief from Olympia (Β 1896), on which two nude men restrain a third from drawing his sword, may be one half of a quarrel: Kunze 1950, pp. 20, 22, 171—3, pi. 45. Kunze compares the scene to one on a Chalkidian amphora (St Petersburg, Hermitage 1479: Rumpf 1927, pis. 109, i n ) but feels it cannot be associated conclusively with scenes of the Trojan quarrel. 366 Quarrel over the Palladion: Heldensage3 419. Note cup by Makron, Saint Petersburg, Hermitage B649(St83o): ARV2 460,13; LIMC 1 (1981), p. 437, no. 6, s.v. 'Akamas et Demophon', (U. Kron). 367 Tydeus vs. Amphiaraos: Aischylos, Seven against Thebes 570-5; Apollodoros, Library 3.6.8. Tydeus vs. Polyneikes: Apollodoros, Library 3.6.1. Tydeus vs. Lykourgos: Statius, Thebaid 5.660. Amphiaraos vs. King Lykourgos: Pausanias 3.18.12 (Throne of Apollo, Amyklai). 368 Classical representations include the quarrel between Adrastos and Amphiaraos, Attic red-figure column krater, Naples, Museo di Capodimonte 958 ( L I M C ι (1981), pp. 702-3, no. 69, s.v. Amphiaraos'. (I. Krauskopf)), or Achilles' quarrel with Agamemnon (fourth-century scenes now preserved in Roman wall painting and mosaics) ( L I M C 1 (1981), pp. 104-6, nos. 428-34, s.v. 'Achilleus'.
For difficulties, see Beazley 1950, p. 312; D. Williams 1980, p. 141, n. 38; Blatter 1983, pp. 17-22; Beazley 1986, p. 75; Pipili 1987, p. 26. 37 " Mennenga 1976, p. 112. 371 LIMC ι (1981), pp. 325-6, nos. 71-3, 81, 83-4, s.v. 'Aias I', i.e., cup by Douris in Vienna and cups by the Brygos Painter in the Getty and British Museum. For additional instances of the vote, sec D. Williams 1980, p. 142 and n. 39; LIMC ι (1981), pp. 326-7, nos. 80, 82, 85, 86, s.v. 'Aias Γ. Possibly fragments by the Kleophrades Painter: see Boardman 1976b, pp. 6-7, pi. 2.2. 369
p o r t a l in the l o w e r r i g h t c o r n e r , w h i c h m i g h t s u g g e s t that the figure
r u n s i n s i d e a b u i l d i n g o r m o u n t s a n altar. A l t h o u g h t h e
figures
are stiff a n d the c o m p o s i t i o n c l u m s y , the s c u l p t o r d o e s
m a k e a n effort to d i s t i n g u i s h the p h y s i q u e a n d m o v e m e n t the t w o characters. T h e e m p h a t i c a l l y s t r i d i n g m a l e w h o
of
gives
chase has m u s c u l a r thighs, a l o n g p o i n t e d beard, a n d a head nearly one-quarter of his total height. T h e s l i m l y p r o p o r t i o n e d right-hand
figure
m o v e s s o m e w h a t m o r e g r a c e f u l l y a n d has a
y o u n g e r , m o r e delicate p h y s i q u e . T h e
figures
have s o m e styl-
istic features i n c o m m o n w i t h H e r a k l e s o n A 5 ( c o m p a r e ankle b o n e s , t e n d o n s i n the b a c k o f the t h i g h , a n d s q u a t n e s s o f the figures
generally), b u t n o t e n o u g h to assure the s a m e sculptor
at w o r k . T h e pursuit can h a r d l y be a n o n y m o u s , but f o r lack of ident i f y i n g a t t r i b u t e s , it h a s b e e n c a l l e d s i m p l y ' m a n c h a s i n g
an
3 7 2 For the Akropolis shieldband, Touloupa 1991, p. 264, suggests Ajax and Diomedes in single combat for the sword taken from Sarpedon as prize (Homer, Iliad 23), but that combat should appear as a full monomachy, not a quarrel. 3 7 3 Throne of Apollo at A m y k l a i (Pausanias 3.18.12); inscribed shieldband plate (Kunze 1950, supplement 13.1); inscribed Lakonian cup fragment (Pipili 1987, pp. 25-6, no. 78, fig. 36); Chalkidian hydria (Blatter 1983, fig. ia-d). Quarrel possibly part of Statius' poem, Thebaid 5.660; see Mennenga 1976, p. 108; also Gantz 1993, pp. 511-2. 374 Pausanias 1.35.3; Philostratos, Heroikos 668; Strabo 13.595-30- Farneil 1921, p. 309; J. C o o k 1973, p. 88.
206
THE (· —
—,
=40
»
Ì
Throne of Apollo at Amyklai: Pausanias 3.18.15. Foce del Scic: Zancani Montuoro and Zanotti-Bianco 1954, pp. 325-9, pis. 48, 92-3; Boardman 1968, pp. 52-3, nos. 90-2; LIMC 2 (1984), pp. 310-11, nos. 1066-76, s.v. 'Apollon', (Ο. Palagia). Loeb Tripod Β, Munich, Staatliches Antikensammlung SL66: LIMC 2 (1984), p. 338, no. 2, 'Apollon/Aplu', (I. Krauskopf); Schefold 1992, pp. 68-70; LIMC 8 (1997), pp. 37-41, s.v. 'Tityos', (R. Vollkommer). 38f> The fact that both figures are unarmed eliminates the rape of Kassandra, all Amazon chase/abductions, Achilles chasing Polyxcna, and Menelaos pursuing Helen. 387 For literary references and objects: Ghali-Kahil 1955, pp. 305-13, (type III is the chase); also LIMC 4 (1988), pp. 507-12, nos. 28-54, s - v · 'Helene.' First rape of Helen as the possible subject for metopes 30, 31, and 33 from the First Heraion at Foce del Sele: Simon 1967, pp. 294-5. Fifth-century scenes of Theseus chasing women: LIMC 7 (1994), p. 945, nos. 286-90, s.v. 'Theseus'.
Pausanias 3.18.15 (rape on the Throne of Apollo, Amyklai); 5.19.2 (rescue by Dioskouroi on Chest of Kypselos); 2.22.7 (Stesichoros); 1.41.5 (Pindar). 388
or gestures t h a n those present o n
correctly,
l a y s h o l d o f the N e r e i d as she tries t o escape h i m b y
attributes.384
has n o n e o f the a p p r o p r i a t e
figures
i n g . 3 8 9 I n Nemian
mutat-
3.32-6, the earliest s u r v i v i n g literary a c c o u n t
o f t h e e v e n t , P i n d a r s u g g e s t s t h a t P e l e u s h a s t o c a t c h T h e t i s as w e l l as w r e s t l e her: παλαιαίσι γεγαθε
δ εν aperçus
Πηλεύς
άναξ, ύπε ραλλον
os και Ίωλκον εΐλε μόνος άνευ και ποντιαν
Θετιν
αίχμάν
ταμών
στρατιάς,
κατεμαρφεν
εγκονητί.
Among the tales of the brave deeds of old King Peleus, how he rejoiced when he cut his allsurpassing spear, And how he captured Iolkos single-handed without a host of men, And caught the Sea-goddess Thetis in swift pursuit.390 Scenes of Peleus e m e r g i n g f r o m his a m b u s h or i n h o t pursuit of the fleeing N e r e i d
find
f a v o u r i n the
first
half o f the
sixth
century, a n d they r e m a i n an i m p o r t a n t w a y
of
the m y t h w e l l i n t o the
century.391
first
m o m e n t c h o s e n varies. O n ian?)
and
three
Siana cups
h a l f o f the
fifth
a b r o n z e t r i p o d leg by
Thetis and other Nereids.392 O n
the C
representing
Painter, P e l e u s
a n d a plate b y L y d o s , he has just c a u g h t h o l d of her.393 A kothon shows
ment."94 N o n e
chases
a M e l i a n a m p h o r a , a shield-
b a n d relief, a n o t h e r s l i g h t l y later S i a n a c u p b y t h e C
figure
The
(Peloponnes-
Painter, black-
a B o e o t i a n variation o n the same
e x c e p t the s h i e l d b a n d relief i l l u s t r a t e s
mo-
Thetis
s h i f t i n g s h a p e at t h i s s t a g e i n t h e s t o r y . 3 9 5 E a r l y r e p r e s e n t a t i o n s
389 Schefold 1968, pp. 42-3, 85, pi. 70; Heldensage3 321-9; Krieger 1973; DL III, pp. 365-7; Schefold 1992, pp. 207-11; LIMC 7 (1994), pp. 255-64, 268-9, nos. 47-190, s.v. 'Peleus'; Barringer 199 5, pp. 69-77; LIMC 8 (1997), pp. 7-9, s.v. 'Thetis', (R. Vollkommer). Although uncommon in architectural sculpture, Marconi also proposes this scene for Temple E at Selinous: Marconi 1994, pp. 128-9, 2 4 0 - 1 , W j .
Translation: Farnell 1930, p. 167. For discussion of the ambush, see Krieger 1973; Pipili 1987, pp. 26-7; LIMC 7 (1994), pp. 268-9, s - v · 'Peleus'; Barringer 1995, pp. 71-3; LIMC 8 (1997), pp. 13-14, s.v. 'Thetis'. 390 391
392 Bronze tripod leg, N e w York, Metropolitan Museum of Art 5 8.11.6,59.11.1 : LIMC 6 (1992), p. 806, no. 29T, s.v. 'Nereides'. The tripod leg is dated c.660-625 but considered by some a forgery: cf. von Steuben 1968, p. 102, n. 188; Pipili 1987, p. 92, n. 252. Siana cups, Munich, Staatliches Antikensammlung 8966, and Saint Petersburg, Hermitage B351: LIMC 7 (1994), pp. 255-6, nos. 51-2, s.v. 'Peleus'. Fragment by the C Painter, private collection: LIMC 8 (1997), p. 7, no. 6 ( = 'Peleus' no. 53), s.v. 'Thetis.' For fleeing Nereids by Kleitias that may have shown this scene, Akropolis 594: Beazley 1986, pi. 29.5; LIMC 6 (1992), p. 788, no. ι, s.v. 'Nereides'. 393 Melian amphora, Kavalla, Archaeological Museum A1086: LIMC 8 (1997), p. 8, no. 8, s.v. 'Thetis'; LIMC 7 (1994), p. 256, no. 61, s.v. 'Peleus'. Shieldband relief: LIMC 7 (1994), pp. 256-7, no. 71, s.v. 'Peleus'; Bol 1989, H62, pl. 75. Siana cup, Taranto, National Museum IG4442: LIMC 7 (1994), p. 256, no. 62, s.v. 'Peleus'. Plate fragment by Lydos, Florence, Archaeological Museum 102b, d: LIMC 7 (1994), p. 256, no. 63, s.v. 'Peleus'; Krieger 1973, no. 80, pi. 2a; Callipolitis-Feytmans 1974, pi. 21.3. 394 F. Brommer suggests the pair may represent Odysseus and Nausicaa (Brammer 1980; Brommer 1983b, pp. 95-6, n. 1), but J. Boardman maintains Peleus and Thetis (Boardman 1981; Boardman 1985b, p. 208; also Kilinski 1990, p. 50). 395 For the scene on the Chest of Kypselos, Pausanias does not describe the precise moment, but the fact that Thetis produced a snake mutation suggests it was the wrestle (Pausanias 5.18.5; Splitter 2000, pp. 36-7).
THE
184
SCULPTURE
m o s t often s h o w Peleus bearded; A t t i c black-figure scenes of
w i t h o u t c o n n e c t i o n s i n t h e T r o a d : P e l e u s is s a i d t o h a v e
the chase c l u s t e r i n g a r o u n d the e n d o f the s i x t h c e n t u r y reflect
c o m p a n i e d H e r a k l e s i n his sack of Troy, a n d Thetis w a s
the general trend f a v o u r i n g y o u t h f u l heroes b y s h o w i n g P e l e u s without
a beard
and
Thetis
with
or
without
mutations.396
Peleus often w e a r s a tunic o r sash, b u t he c a n also
confront
the N e r e i d n a k e d . 3 9 7 Scenes of Peleus
oured
in
Minor.402
various
ways
along
the
M o r e o v e r , the e p i s o d e
northwest
fits
coast
ac-
hon-
of
Asia
w e l l w i t h t h e sea
story
i n v o l v i n g H e r a k l e s a n d T r i t o n o n relief A 3 , i n w h i c h
Thetis'
N e r e i d sisters p l a y a s u p p o r t i n g role.403
chasing Thetis
also appear o n three
late
archaic tripods and a chariot f o u n d in Etruria.398 A l l represent
Metope
the m o m e n t w h e n P e l e u s has laid h o l d of T h e t i s , either b y the
Mio:
supplication
scene
a r m , shoulder, o r chest. H e r gestures m a t c h t h o s e of the fleeing
I n v e s t i g a t i o n s o n the a k r o p o l i s o f A s s o s i n 1980 b r o u g h t
figure
l i g h t a large, f r a g m e n t a r y relief b e l o n g i n g to the u p p e r
o n the m e t o p e f r o m A s s o s ; o n T r i p o d A
she also l o o k s
b a c k at h e r a g g r e s s o r , a n d o n T r i p o d s Β a n d C , h e r t u n i c s l o p e s
thirds
a p p r o p r i a t e l y . W h i l e n o t identical w i t h the relief f r o m
Assos,
l o w e s t c o u r s e o f the late f o r t i f i c a t i o n w a l l d i r e c t l y w e s t o f the
these scenes p o i n t u p the p o p u l a r i t y o f this particular
motif
t e m p l e ' s f o u n d a t i o n ( P i . n o a - b ; F i g . 88). T h e g r e a t e r p a r t o f
over others for representing Peleus and Thetis.
of a sculptured
metope
that had
been built
to
two-
into
the
t h e r e l i e f h a d b e e n e x p o s e d a n d is, t h e r e f o r e , b a d l y w o r n . I t s compos-
d i m e n s i o n s a n d f o r m p r o v e w i t h o u t q u e s t i o n that the m e t o p e
itional parallels place the scene o n o u r m e t o p e w i t h i n a w e l l -
b e l o n g s t o t h e f r i e z e c o u r s e o f t h e t e m p l e , e v e n t h o u g h it i s
established archaic iconographie tradition of Peleus
c a r v e d o u t o f a soft tuff. I t m u s t be p a r t o f the extensive repairs
I f w e accept that the c h a s e d
figure
is f e m a l e , t h e n
pursuing
T h e t i s . I n gesture a n d dress, the f e m a l e suits T h e t i s , a n d o t h e r
m a d e to the w e s t e n d o f the t e m p l e i n the L a t e A r c h a i c p e r i o d ,
scenes
w h e n tuff w a s
of
the chase
prove
that
a mutation
is n o t
essential,
p a r t i c u l a r l y at this m o m e n t i n t h e e n c o u n t e r . 3 9 9 O t h e r f l e e i n g N e r e i d s are n o t c r u c i a l t o the i c o n o g r a p h y . T h e the n u m b e r of a n c i l l a r y the m e t o p e iconographie and
can accommodate parallels—general
widespread
portance
figures,
in geographic
of the t h e m e
field
also used for small architectural patches
and
s m a l l e l e m e n t s ( s e e C h a p t e r 5, ' M a j o r r e p a i r s ' ) .
dictates
A b o u t s t y l e w e c a n s a y little, b u t w e c a n d e c i p h e r c e r t a i n k e y
a n d , like the s h i e l d b a n d reliefs,
i c o n o g r a p h i e features of the t h r e e - f i g u r e d c o m p o s i t i o n . T o the
the p r o t a g o n i s t s . 4 0 0
only
i n nature, diverse
in
origin—demonstrate
in archaic
art
but
do
not
The
media, the
im-
suggest
a
s p e c i f i c s o u r c e f o r t h e s c e n e at A s s o s .
left, a b e a r d e d m a l e
a n t i c o n o g r a p h i e r o l e at A s s o s b e c a u s e o f its p l a c e i n t h e T r o j a n
l o o k s t o w a r d the central
w h i c h are p a r t l y p r e s e r v e d i n f r o n t o f the c e n t r a l
figure.
In
figure.
His
r i g h t s h o u l d e r is s l i g h t l y r a i s e d ; t h e r i g h t a r m h a s b r o k e n a w a y . A
A scene w i t h Peleus c a p t u r i n g Thetis w o u l d p l a y an i m p o r t -
figure
h i s left h a n d , h e h o l d s a n u p r i g h t s p e a r , t h e h e a d a n d s h a f t o f
triangular p r o t r u s i o n a b o v e his w a i s t o n the right c o u l d be
the right directed
hand
or
toward
the p o i n t e d
the
central
tip figure.
of
a scabbard Both
legs
or
are
sword broken
saga. T h e u n i o n of Peleus a n d T h e t i s b r i n g s f o r t h A c h i l l e s , w h o travels t h r o u g h
the r e g i o n near A s s o s
on
his w a y
to
Troy.
T h e t i s b r i n g s to A c h i l l e s the m a g n i f i c e n t set o f a r m o u r
over
w h i c h A j a x and O d y s s e u s eventually quarrel o n metope M 8 .
401
T o g e t h e r , t h e t w o s c e n e s f r a m e the life o f A c h i l l e s . W h i l e
the
p u r s u i t d o e s n o t o c c u r i n the v i c i n i t y o f A s s o s , the p a i r is n o t
M10
f—.254
396 e.g., LIMC 7 (1994), p. 256, nos. 64-8, s.v. 'Peleus' (on no. 67, Peleus is bearded). 397 Peleus naked: Krieger 1973, pp. 55-6. Note shieldband reliefs from Perachora (Payne 1940, p. 147, pi. 49.2-3; LIMC 7 (1994), p. 255, no. 49, s.v. 'Peleus') and from Olympia, Archaeological Museum B8062 and B5116 (Bol 1989, H54, pl. 72 (ambush), H62, pl. 75 (pursuit), dated 560-550 BC; LIMC 7 (1994), pp. 255-6, nos. 50, 71, s.v. 'Peleus'). See also a Boeotian plate, Paris, Louvre CA2569 (Krieger 1973, no. 167, pi. 2b (last quarter of the sixth century)). 398 Loeb tripods, Munich, Staatliches Antikensammlung SL66, SL67, SL68: LIMC 7 (1994), p. 257, nos. 74-6, s.v. 'Peleus'; Sprenger and Bartoloni 1983, pp. 107-8, pis. 101, 103. Chariot, Perugia National Museum: LIMC 7 (1994), p. 257, no. 77, s.v. 'Peleus'; Höckmann 1982, pp. 111-14, fig. 71, pi. 28. 399 Even scenes of the struggle frequently do not illustrate mutations: e.g., LIMC 7 (1994), pp. 258-64, nos. 80-1, 84, 86, 109, i n , 113, 115-16, 119, 120, 122-5, I 2 7 - 3 2 > J3$> I 37 - ^> I 4° _ 3> 147~%> TJ°> 1 S^j 154, 156, 158, 173-4, 187, s.v. 'Peleus'; LIMC 8 (1997), p. 8, nos. 9-10, s.v. 'Thetis'.
Additional examples: Krieger 1973, pp. 81-8. 401 According to Homer (Iliad 20.92), Achilles sacked the town of Pedasos on his way to Troy. Strabo (13.1.57) states that Pedasos was deserted in his time but could be clearly seen from the akropolis at Assos. Some scholars (e.g., Leaf 1923, pp. 251-8, 289-95, an s - v · 'Helene'. Supplication scenes with Klytaimnestra exist as well, but they are not as compelling, because Klytaimnestra usually sits on the usurped throne and the attack against her is murderous; cf. Vermeule 1966, pp. 1-22; Giuliani 1979, pp. 67-71 and notes; Prag 1985, pp. 35-43; LIMC 6 (1992), p. 77, no. 30, s.v. 'Klytaimnestra', (Y. Morizot). 4 1 4 Menelaos holding only the sword: Spartan base (Ghali-Kahil 1955, no. 24, pi. 42; LIMC 4 (1988), p. 539, no. 230, s.v. 'Helene)'. Menelaos holding only sword and scabbard: Mykonos pithos 2240 ( L I M C 4 (1988), p. 538, no. 225, s.v. 'Helene');
186
THE
While
not identically
repeated i n other scenes of
SCULPTURE
Menelaos
r e l i e f A 3 . 1 p r e f e r t o see t h e s c e n e as t h e r a n s o m o f H e k t o r , b u t
c o n f r o n t i n g H e l e n , the g e s t u r e o f s u p p l i c a t i o n fits the
tenor
the m o s t w e c a n s a y w i t h c o n v i c t i o n is t h a t the
o f t h e i r r e u n i o n . I n s e v e r a l i n s t a n c e s i n late a r c h a i c a n d
early
favours a Trojan theme.
c l a s s i c a l art, e s p e c i a l l y i n s c e n e s o f p u r s u i t , H e l e n m a k e s
sup-
plicating
gestures
toward
Menelaos,
although
she
does
not
Metope M2: runners
directly t o u c h his chin.415 T h e i m p l o r i n g t o u c h can also be an act o f w o o i n g o r a s i g n o f deference w h e n b e g g i n g a f a v o u r . S u c h a g e s t u r e f r o m H e l e n t o M e n e l a o s c o u l d h o l d all
416
three
meanings: deference to her rightful h u s b a n d , supplication
to
p a c i f y his threat, a n d s u g g e s t i o n o f sexual appeal. T h e third
figure
sentations
o f the
secondary
figures
recovery
of
o n Attic black-figure
Helen,
although
repre-
most
of
the
are w a r r i o r s , y o u t h s , o r o l d m e n . 4 1 7 B e c a u s e
the f e m a l e o n o u r m e t o p e s e e m s to be d r a w i n g the c o u p l e , she w o u l d
m o r e l i k e l y be a fleeing
The two nude men on M 2
r u n as a l o o s e l y o v e r l a p p i n g
t o r s o s a n g l e d f o r w a r d , b a c k legs stiff, f r o n t legs raised, a r m s o u t s t r e t c h e d ( P i s . 89, 109; F i g . 89). A s
in m o s t
pair, and
archaic
r e p r e s e n t a t i o n s , the r u n n e r s m o v e w i t h p r o p e r left a r m a n d leg
o n the m e t o p e m a y be s i m i l a r to the ancil-
lary females f o u n d occasionally
iconography
away
from
maidservant
t h a n the d i v i n e A p h r o d i t e w h o intercedes o n H e l e n ' s
behalf.
l e a d i n g t o g e t h e r . 4 2 0 T h e s c u l p t o r c a r v e d t h e m as a t i g h t l y i n t e g r a t e d pair; the r e s u l t i n g d o u b l e d a n d c r o s s e d d i a g o n a l s create o n e o f the m o r e v i s u a l l y c o m p l e x a n d energetic
compositions
i n the frieze c o u r s e . F i e also i n t e n t i o n a l l y differentiated b e a r d s a n d h a i r s t y l e s to create s o m e
their
c o n t r a s t in age.421
p r e s e r v e d facial p r o f i l e o f the l e f t - h a n d
figure
The
s h o w s that he
w o r e a l o n g , p o i n t e d beard. A s f o r the r i g h t - h a n d
figure,
the
A s she t u r n s a w a y , she raises her h a n d in a startled gesture o f
outline o f the c h i n s u g g e s t s that he w a s either s m o o t h - c h e e k e d
surprise, perhaps fear.4is
o r h a d a s h o r t b e a r d s i m i l a r to that o f H e r a k l e s o n relief A 5 .
W e h a v e l i m i t e d o u r d i s c u s s i o n to subjects that a d m i t artistic p a r a l l e l s , b u t it r e m a i n s p o s s i b l e t h a t t h e s c e n e o n t h i s m e t o p e represents a story that w o u l d
be recognized
locally,419 or
a
B o t h w e a r s h o u l d e r - l e n g t h hair, b u t the b e a r d l e s s ( o r
short-
b e a r d e d ) m a n ' s h a i r c u r l s u n d e r m o r e c r i s p l y at t h e b a c k . T h e runners'
large
heads,
small,
rounded
buttocks,
c h a i c p e r i o d . F i r s t a m o n g the latter c o u l d be the scene f r o m the
pieces, the
Iliad
t h a n m o s t o f the o t h e r s c u l p t u r e s . T h e reliefs c o u l d be the w o r k
honour
her s o n A c h i l l e s . T h e t i s w o u l d t h e n be i n the centre, t o u c h i n g Z e u s ' c h i n as H o m e r d e s c r i b e s . T h e s t a f f h e l d b y t h e l e f t w o u l d be a sceptre rather t h a n a spear, a n d the f e m a l e
figure
figure
the far r i g h t c o u l d be H e r a , r a i s i n g her h a n d i n protest.
to
figures'
of F l e r a k l e s o n relief A 5 . O n
and
s w a y b a c k s recall the
(1.498-527) in w h i c h Thetis supplicates Z e u s to
figure
tightly
s t o r y n o t o t h e r w i s e r e p r e s e n t e d i n s u r v i v i n g art f r o m the A r -
both
t o r s o s a n d legs are c a r v e d i n flatter relief
of the s a m e sculptor. W h e n M 2 w a s d i s c o v e r e d , the p a i r w a s s i m p l y called r u n n e r s and, w i t h o u t m u c h discussion, attached to genre rather
than
The
i d e n t i f i c a t i o n offers a n attractive p o s s i b i l i t y that, like the r a n s o m of H e k t o r o r the r e c o v e r y of H e l e n , w o u l d be a p p r o p r i a t e
M2
A
d e c o r a t i o n f o r a t e m p l e i n t h e T r o a d . T h i s s c e n e w o u l d a l s o fit h a n d s o m e l y w i t h t w o other scenes that also m a y involve Thetis and Achilles on M i
a n d M 8 , n o t to m e n t i o n the N e r e i d s
on -.231-
Paris cup, Louvre Camp. 10268 ( L I M C 4 (1988), p. 539, no. 235, s.v. 'Helene'). Without helmet: Etruscan clay vases, Paris, Louvre C618 (Ghali-Kahil 1955, no. 40, pi. 75.2); Paris, Louvre C641 (Ghali-Kahil 1955, no. 41, pi. 44.3). For variation with spears: Ghali-Kahil 1955, pp. 106-10. Included by Brommer in his list of Menelaos leading Helen away (Heldensage 3 409, A3, A8, A9, Α ι 5 , A16, A17; p. 410, A24, A27, A36) although they are sometimes interpreted as the departure of a warrior; cf. Clement 1958, pp. 55, 71-2. 4 1 5 Helen extends her right hand toward Menelaos' chin on the earliest extant pursuit scene, a Nikosthenic amphora by Oltos, Paris, Louvre G3 ( L I M C 4 (1988), p. 540, no. 237, s.v. 'Helene'), as well as on several other examples, including LIMC 4 (1988), pp. 540-1, no. 238-41, 245-6, 24S, s.v. 'Helene'.
Neumann i965,pp. 67-72. O n a black-figure hydria (Art Dealer: Hesperia Art Bulletin 2 (1957) no. 64) and a painted tripod, Paris, Louvre F151 ( L I M C 4 (1988), p. 548, no. 319, s.v. 'Helene'), a woman sometimes called Aphrodite faces the couple, holding a wreath, in mirror image of the Helen figure. O n several Attic red-figure vases belonging to the first half of the fifth century, females rather than males dominate, e.g., LIMC 4 (1988) pp. 540-3, nos. 243-4, 247> 2 4^, 22, 264-70, s.v. 'Helene'. 416 417
4 i s Aithra remains a possibility; see Plutarch, Theseus 34. For Helen and Aithra in later art: LIMC 1 (1981), pp. 425-6, nos. 55-8, s.v. 'Aithra I'. 4 1 9 A s may be the case for the three-figured scene on the Kybele Monument from Sardis, in which a female supplicates a male, probably seated, at the right, while a second male approaches from the left, brandishing a sword: Hanfmann and Ramage 1978, no. 7, panel R, pp. 49-50, fig. 50.
PWtttf—I—I—I—I
0 FIGURE
1
1—I
.5
1—I
1
1m
89. M2: Two runners.
420 In contrast to natural gait, in which the opposite arm is coordinated with the leading leg; cf. Gründe! 1934, pp. 24-6. 421 Compare three runners who all have different beards in the Tomb of the Olympic Athletes, Tarquinia: Akerström 1981, pp. 7 - 1 1 , figs. 1.2, 2.2; Steingräber 1986, pp. 333-4, pi. 125.
T H E SCUL myth.422 T h e subsequent discovery of a metope with similarly
211
PTURE T h e v i s u a l c o r r e s p o n d e n c e b e t w e e n the m e t o p e f r o m
Assos
p a i r e d m a l e r u n n e r s f r o m the f i r s t H e r a i o n at F o c e del Sele,
a n d the o n e f r o m F o c e del Sele s u g g e s t s that b o t h c o u l d illus-
h o w e v e r , raises the p o s s i b i l i t y that m e t o p e M 2 m a y h a v e m e a n -
trate the s a m e event. T h e t w o s u b j e c t s p r o p o s e d f o r the F o c e
i n g b e y o n d t h e p a l a i s t r a as w e l l . T h e m e t o p e f r o m F o c e d e l S e l e
d e l S e l e m e t o p e i n v o l v e t h e h e r o e s m e n t i o n e d a b o v e : (a) t h e
g a i n s m y t h o l o g i c a l s i g n i f i c a n c e as p a r t o f a l a r g e r c o m p o s i t i o n
Dioskouroi
w i t h m a l e s c h a s i n g f e m a l e s , 4 2 ' ' a n d t h e r e i n lies the
Peirithoos abducting Helen.429 A t
difficulty
w i t h the r u n n i n g pair f r o m A s s o s . A l t h o u g h the scene seems to
pursuing
the L e u k i p p i d a i ,
a n d (b)
Theseus
F o c e del Sele, b o t h
and inter-
p r e t a t i o n s r e l y o n t h e j u x t a p o s i t i o n o f at l e a s t t w o m e t o p e s ( 3 0
w a n t c o m p l e t i n g , it c a n n o t b e c o n v i n c i n g l y a s s o c i a t e d w i t h a n y
a n d 3 1 f o r t h e D i o s k o u r o i a n d t h e L e u k i p p i d a i ; 3 0 , 3 1 , a n d 33
o t h e r extant m e t o p e f r o m the temple. W e h a v e a l r e a d y rejected
f o r t h e a b d u c t i o n o f H e l e n at t h e c u l t d a n c e o f H e r a ) a n d t h e
the c o m b i n a t i o n w i t h M i
p a i r i n g o f f e m a l e as w e l l as m a l e
and
her
rescue
by
the
(chase) to illustrate the rape o f H e l e n Dioskouroi.
Since
the p a i r
carry
no
figures.
E r i k a S i m o n identifies
the a b d u c t i o n o f H e l e n b y c o n t e x t rather t h a n
composition.
w e a p o n s , the s c e n e c a n n o t j o i n w i t h t h e c e n t a u r o n M 7 t o d e p i c t
C o m p a r a b l e c h a s e s c e n e s d o n o t a p p e a r i n art u n t i l w e l l i n t o
T h e s e u s a n d P e i r i t h o o s ' battle w i t h centaurs, w h i c h i n a n y case
t h e fifth c e n t u r y , a n d e v e n t h e n it is u n c e r t a i n t h a t H e l e n is t h e
is n o t d e p i c t e d as a c h a s e . 4 2 4 A K a l y d o n i a n b o a r h u n t u s i n g
M4
victim.
is e q u a l l y
ap-
rape
unsatisfactory.
Occasionally
unarmed
runners
p r o a c h the hunt, b u t a r m e d hunters, a n agitated boar, a t t a c k i n g h o u n d s , o r the d e a d A n k a i o s d e f i n e the scene.425
was
continued
on
another, n o w - l o s t
identified
chariots,
archaic
absent
representations
both
at
Assos
and
of
metope.
Several
Sele.430 A n d w h i l e the s t o r y of T h e s e u s a n d H e l e n m a y
thematic
o f the T r o a d , o r the rest o f the i c o n o g r a p h i e p r o g r a m m e o f the t e m p l e at A s s o s , as f a r as w e k n o w . W i t h o u t a p a i r o f
m a l e s w h o m a y be c o m p e t i t o r s b u t are n o t a d v e r s a r i e s .
m a i d e n s , w e are b a c k t o s q u a r e one.
d o n o t flee f r o m a n a g g r e s s o r ( n e i t h e r m a n l o o k s b a c k o v e r h i s shoulder), but they c o u l d pursue characters depicted o n
(an)
I f w e c a n m a k e n o h e a d w a y t h r o u g h a n a l o g y w i t h F o c e del
most look
u n i s o n s e e m e q u a l l y a p p r o p r i a t e : the D i o s k o u r o i o r
longs
and Peirithoos.426 U s u a l l y the inseparable D i o s k o u r o i
appear
fleeing
Sele, are w e left t o c o n c l u d e that the m e n are s i m p l y w h a t t h e y
a d j a c e n t m e t o p e ( s ) t o the r i g h t . T w o sets o f h e r o e s w h o act i n Theseus
del have
c o n n e c t i o n f o r either s t o r y w i t h the cult o f A t h e n a , the r e g i o n
m y t h o l o g i c a l e p i s o d e s d e p i c t e d i n art i n v o l v e a p a i r o f r u n n i n g They
either
Foce
a special m e a n i n g i n a s a n c t u a r y o f H e r a , there is n o
T h e p o s s i b i l i t i e s e x p a n d c o n s i d e r a b l y if w e a s s u m e that the scene
Securely
involve
to
like—runners—and, athletic
genre?
Foot
therefore, that the scene
be-
racing
and
was
the
earliest
r e m a i n e d o n e of the m o s t p r e s t i g i o u s events i n G r e e k
athlet-
as s m o o t h - c h e e k e d y o u t h s , b u t o c c a s i o n a l l y t h e y a r e b e a r d e d
ics.4"1 T h e scene of b a n q u e t i n g ( A 4 ) and p o s s i b l y the eques-
i n a r c h a i c art, a n d P a u s a n i a s
trian
specially m e n t i o n s that o n
the
C h e s t of K y p s e l o s o n e of the D i o s k o u r o i rescuing H e l e n w a s
(M9)
raise
the
possibility
that
representations
aristocratic good-life c o u l d well have a place in the
of
the
iconog-
b e a r d e d w h i l e the o t h e r w a s n o t (5.19.2).427 T h e s e u s a n d P e i r -
r a p h y o f t h e t e m p l e at A s s o s . M o s t c o m m o n l y , h o w e v e r , t h e s e
i t h o o s act together w h e n t h e y r o u t centaurs, a b d u c t H e l e n , o r
t h e m e s find r e p r e s e n t a t i o n i n c h a r i o t o r h o r s e r a c i n g , a n d t h e i r
are t r a p p e d i n t h e U n d e r w o r l d
abduct
c o r o l l a r y , h u n t i n g . I n a n a r c h i t e c t u r a l c o n t e x t , t h e f o o t r a c e as a
P e r s e p h o n e . T h e s e u s a p p e a r s b o t h as a y o u t h a n d as a b e a r d e d
g e n e r i c e x e m p l a r o f a r i s t o c r a t i c v i r t u e is a m o r e u n u s u a l c h o i c e .
while
m a n i n the A r c h a i c p e r i o d ; P e i r i t h o o s
attempting
more
to
often plays
the
older part.428
The
foot
race f r a m e d
within
a mythological
context
games
of
Pelias
or
Patroklos
appear
in
art
just
before
the s e c o n d q u a r t e r o f the s i x t h c e n t u r y . 4 3 2 C h a r i o t races Norton 1897, p. 509; Mendel 1914, p. 21; Sartiaux 1915, p. 44. 423 Zancani Montuoro and Zanotti-Bianco 1954, pp. 330-S, pis. 20, 49, 94-5; Van Keuren 1989, pp. 133—9. 424 For centauromachy with Theseus, Peirithoos, and usually others: LIMC 7 (1994), pp. 943-5, s.v. 'Theseus', (J. Neils). Very occasionally heroes chase or are chased by centaurs; Baur 1912, pp. 138-9, no. 177. 422
4 2 s Supra n. 114, and supra n. 324. For runners coming up to a boar hunt, note Corinthian hydria, Vatican 124: CorVP 268,6; La Coste-Messelière 1936, pl. 4g. 426 For other heroic pairs the iconography is unsuitable. The duo lacks the attributes of Herakles and Iolaos, the wings of the Boreads, and the armour of Homeric warriors. The sons of Theseus, Akamas and Demophon, act together but mainly when they rescue their grandmother Aithra; they are always the same age (LIMC ι (1981), pp. 426-8, nos. 59-78, s.v. 'Aithra Γ, (U. Kron). 427 The Dioskouroi have horses and frequently carry lances, but these attributes are not always represented during the Archaic period. O n the Dioskouroi in general: LIMC 3 (1986), pp. 567-93, s.v. 'Dioskouroi', (A. Hermary). O n their attributes: Zancani Montuoro and Zanotti-Bianco 1954, p. 336. For Polydeukes bearded: Chalkidian fragment, Reggio, National Museum 1027-1028 (LIMC 3 (1986), p. 583, no. 194, s.v. 'Dioskouroi'). The pair usually appears bearded when they participate in the Kalydonian boar hunt, as on the François Vase. 428 Theseus and Peirithoos: LIMC 4 (1988), pp. 507-10, nos. 27-42, s.v. 'Helene', (L. Kahil); LIMC 7 (1994), p. 233, no. 3 (François krater = Theseus
has
g r e a t e r t r a c t i o n . A t h l e t i c e v e n t s s u c h as t h e c e l e b r a t e d f u n e r a l
w r e s t l i n g c o n t e s t s are f a v o u r e d , b u t , a c c o r d i n g t o
and
Pausanias
(5.17.9-11), the funeral g a m e s of Pelias illustrated o n the C h e s t o f K y p s e l o s i n c l u d e d the f o o t race w i t h n a m e d
contestants—
M e l a n i o n , Neitheus, Phalareus, Argeios, and I p h i k l o s — a s well no. 279), pp. 235-9, s.v. 'Peirithoos', (E. Manakidou). Smooth-cheeked Theseus and bearded Peirithoos, e.g., Euthymides amphora, Munich, Staatliches Antikensammlung 2309: LIMC 4 (1988), p. 510, no. 41, s.v. 'Helene'. 429 Dioskouroi: Zancani Montuoro and Zanotti-Bianco 1954, pp. 33°-8. Theseus and Peirithoos: Simon 1967, pp. 294-5. Van Keuren 1989, pp. 133-9, follows Simon but assigns only one metope with fleeing females to the scene. 430 LIMC 3 (1986), pp. 583, 585, nos. 194 and probably 207 (Siphnian Treasury south frieze), s.v. 'Dioskouroi'; LIMC 4 (1988), pp. 508-10, nos. 30-8, s.v. 'Helene' (some late archaic examples (p. 510, nos. 41-2) do not have the chariot, but Helen is being carried off in the identical manner to those scenes that do include the chariot). 431 Pausanias 5.8.6; Xenophancs fr. 2 (from Athenaios, Deipnosophists 413^)· Footrace: K y l e 1987, pp. 178-80; Miller 2004, pp. 31-46. Footraces in honour of a deity: Pemberton 1978, pp. 30-1, 33; Pemberton 2000. 432 Roller 1 9 8 1 ; LIMC 1 ( 1 9 8 1 ) , p . 1 1 9 , nos. 4 9 1 - 4 , s.v.'Achilleus', (A. KossatzDeissmann); LIMC 7 ( 1 9 9 4 ) , p. 277-80, s.v. 'Peliou athla', (R. Blatter).
THE
188
SCULPTURE
as b o x i n g , d i s c u s t h r o w i n g , a n d c h a r i o t r a c i n g . O n t h e b a s i s o f the i n s c r i p t i o n
Phal[areus]
o n an Attic black-figure
fragment
f r o m the a k r o p o l i s that illustrates t w o nude, r u n n i n g
males,
fragment M 6
m a y join M 9
to c o m p l e t e the horse's h i n d
legs.
T h e d i m e n s i o n s o f the t w o f r a g m e n t s are c o m p a t i b l e , b u t the b r e a k s are n o w w e a t h e r e d , m a k i n g a p r e c i s e j o i n u n l i k e l y . T h e
B e a z l e y i d e n t i f i e s t h e s c e n e a s t h e f u n e r a l g a m e s o f P e l i a s as
condition of metope M 9
m a k e s it i m p o s s i b l e t o a s s i g n it t o a
well.433
clearly defined sculpture
group.
I n each instance, an i n s c r i p t i o n t r a n s f o r m s
genre
to
epic; s u c h m i g h t also h a v e b e e n the case f o r the scene o n M 2 .
A
single pair o f r u n n e r s c o u l d s i g n i f y the contest.434 O r the f o o t race c o u l d
be c o n t i n u e d
o v e r several a d d i t i o n a l
metopes
c o m b i n e d w i t h other metopes representing additional
or
games,
The horse's
rider o n the m e t o p e withers,
other, either
with
gripping
both the
sits b o l d l y hands
horse's
upright
clenched, mane
or
close to
one
above
holding
the the
painted
reins a n d p e r h a p s a s m a l l painted g o a d . 4 3 7 T h e p r o p e r
right
judges, o r prizes. T h e other general m y t h o l o g i c a l category, the
f o o t d a n g l e s f r e e b e n e a t h t h e h o r s e ' s b e l l y ; t h e left f o o t i s n o t
foot
s h o w n . T h e f a c i a l f e a t u r e s are b a d l y w e a t h e r e d . T h e
r a c e as t h e c o m p e t i t i o n
to w i n
a bride or a
kingdom,
features in m y t h b u t n o t i n archaic art.435 As
receding
c h i n that recalls an E a s t G r e e k profile m a y be accidental, but,
it s t a n d s , w e c a n d o l i t t l e m o r e t h a n l i m i t t h e
possible
as p r e s e r v e d , b o t h t h e h o r s e a n d r i d e r b e a r a s t r i k i n g s i m i l a r i t y
interpretations of this scene to a chase o r contest. I f a chase, the
t o a late a r c h a i c t e r r a c o t t a
r o m a n t i c exploits o f the D i o s k o u r o i o r T h e s e u s a n d P e i r i t h o o s
d i s c o v e r e d i n the n e k r o p o l i s at A s s o s . 4 3 8 T h e stiff a n d
figurine
of an equestrian
are the m o s t p r o m i s i n g p o s s i b i l i t i e s , b u t l a c k i n g a d d i t i o n a l re-
h i g h o u t l i n e o f the s h o u l d e r m a y
include l o n g hair
recently rather
hanging
liefs, w e c a n t a k e the s u g g e s t i o n n o further. N e i t h e r p a i r b r i n g s a persuasive cultic connection. I f a contest, heroic funeral g a m e s a r e p o s s i b l e , a n d t h o s e f o r P a t r o k l o s are m o s t c o m p e l l i n g , w i t h
M9
the o l d e r m a n O d y s s e u s a n d the y o u n g e r the L e s s e r A j a x , p r o p erly in front o f O d y s s e u s until he trips ( H o m e r ,
Iliad
23.778-9).
T h e identification w o u l d d e p e n d o n inscriptions or related i c o n ography
o n adjacent metopes. S h o u l d w e
metope M i
be r i g h t i n
.65-
.225—I
seeing
as P e l e u s a n d T h e t i s , a n d m e t o p e M 8 as t h e q u a r r e l
b e t w e e n A j a x a n d O d y s s e u s f o r t h e a r m s o f A c h i l l e s , t h e n it is q u i t e p o s s i b l e t h a t t h e r u n n e r s o n M 2 a l s o d e p i c t a n e v e n t s u c h as funeral g a m e s c o n n e c t e d w i t h the T r o j a n saga.
Metope M6: horse legs T h e e q u i n e h i n d legs depicted o n the f r a g m e n t a r y m e t o p e
M 6
have a l w a y s been t h o u g h t to be p a r t o f a centaur s i m i l a r to the o n e o n M 7 , e v e n t h o u g h t h e y are set s l i g h t l y f u r t h e r a p a r t t h a n t h e c e n t a u r s ' l e g s 4 3 6 ( P i . 112; F i g . 9 0 ) . T h e d i s c o v e r y o f
M6
the
h o r s e a n d rider o n m e t o p e M 9 raises the m o r e l i k e l y p o s s i b i l i t y that these h i n d legs b e l o n g to a regular horse. T h e t w o mentary metopes M 6
and M 9
frag-
m a y w e l l j o i n to c o m p l e t e the
rear p a r t o f that g a l l o p i n g h o r s e . U n f o r t u n a t e l y , the b r e a k s
on
b o t h a r e w o r n , as is t h e f r o n t s u r f a c e o f M 9 i n t h i s a r e a ; s h o r t o f b r i n g i n g t h e t w o t o g e t h e r ( M 6 is i n I s t a n b u l ; M 9
in
Çanak-
kale), the j o i n c a n n o t be p r o v e d . I f M 6 represents an a d d i t i o n a l m e t o p e , t h e n there m u s t h a v e b e e n a s e q u e n c e of riders
(or
c e n t a u r s ) o n the frieze c o u r s e .
Metope My: horse and rider The
fragmentary
metope
M9,
discovered in
K»t)—I—I—I 1973, d e p i c t s
a
rider o n a g a l l o p i n g h o r s e m o v i n g r i g h t (PI. h i ; F i g . 90). T h e
4 j 3 Akropolis 2209: LIMC 7 (1994), p. 278, no. 3, s.v. 'Peliou athla'; Splitter 2000, p. 28. 434 In Homer, Iliad 23.778-9, three heroes run in the footrace at the games for Patroklos, but Homer concentrates on Odysseus and the lesser Ajax. 435 E M. Cornford in Harrison 1962, pp. 231-3. 436 Clarke 1898, p. 171; Sartiaux 1915, pp. 46-7; Finster-Hotz 1984, p. 104.
0 FIGURE
1
1
.5
1—I—I—I
1
1m
90. M6 and M9: Man on horseback.
4j>7 Generally, galloping riders hold the reins higher or with one hand, but see rider on a tile with stamped relief from Delphi (LeRoy 1967, pp. 9 2 - j , no. S122, pi. 32) or riders on the Eurytos Krater, Paris, Louvre E63 j ( C o r V P 147,1; Schefold 1968, pi. 3). 438 Stupperich 1992, p. 16, pi. 9.1.
THE d o w n the b a c k , b u t here, a g a i n , the s u r f a c e is b a d l y
SCULPTURE
chipped.
equestrian
189 kalypter
from
Kamarina.444
A
similarly
draped
T h e f i g u r e d o e s n o t h a v e a b e a r d , b u t n e i t h e r is there a n y s i g n
c l o t h w o r n o n a rider a p p l i q u é i n the L o u v r e h a s been called
o f b r e a s t s ; t h e r i d e r is p r o b a b l y a y o u n g
a s h o r t m a n t e l , w h i c h w o u l d h e l p to e x p l a i n the p o i n t e d cor-
man. through
the
ner.443 T h e c h i t o n i s k o i w o r n b y A m a z o n s are c o m p a r a b l e , b u t
A r c h a i c p e r i o d , w i t h b a c k legs t h r u s t i n g o f f the g r o u n d
and
not
The
horse
gallops
in
the
forelegs raised in a half-rear.
439
manner
favoured
I t s l i g h t b u i l d has the lines o f a
racehorse rather than a p o n y . 4 4 0 T h e l o n g , cylindrical
trunk
quite
as
long
and without
the
quasi-pointed
corner.446
S a d d l e c l o t h s are rare i n m a i n l a n d G r e e k art d u r i n g the A r c h a i c p e r i o d , 4 4 7 b u t t h e y are c o m m o n i n the E a s t (first f o r A s s y r i a n s ,
tapers t o w a r d the h i n d q u a r t e r w i t h the c r o u p r i s i n g a b o v e the
t h e n f o r P e r s i a n s ) a n d enter E a s t G r e e k art a n d t h e I o n i c i z i n g
l o i n i n a n a l m o s t s t r a i g h t a s c e n t . T h e h o r s e ' s h e a d is
W e s t d u r i n g the s e c o n d half of the sixth century.448 R e p r e s e n -
drawn
b a c k to the chest in an o v e r b e n t arch; a dilated nostril p u n c t u -
tations d o n o t s u g g e s t a s t a n d a r d shape; s o m e are larger
ates the b r o a d m u z z l e i n a s l i g h t b u l b . 4 4 1 T h e m o u t h is o p e n f o r
m o r e r e c t a n g u l a r t h a n the c l o t h o n the A s s o s m e t o p e ,
b r e a t h i n g , a n d the l i p s are p a r t e d to receive a bit that,
have crenellated o r tessellated borders, and o n e v a r i e t y consists
along
w i t h the reins, w a s p r o b a b l y painted. T h e t w o holes a l o n g the
o f a series o f d e c o r a t e d triangles f o l l o w i n g the rider's leg
line o f the c h e e k s t r a p are t o o s h a l l o w t o h o l d a n a t t a c h e d m e t a l
A
bit a n d harnessing. A
evidence c a n be read b o t h w a y s .
g r o o v e b e h i n d the cheek f o r m s a n e c k
f o l d , a n d a n eye c a n just be m a d e o u t a l o n g the r i d g e o f the face.
and
many
449
d r a p i n g m a n t e l m a y r e m a i n the m o s t l i k e l y c h o i c e , but the
A
fillet-like
b a n d set o f f f r o m the f o o t i n h i g h e r relief just
A p o i n t e d , u p r i g h t e a r rises f r o m t h e p o l l j u s t b e h i n d t h e b u s h y
a b o v e his right ankle suggests a s e c o n d aspect o f the
f o r e l o c k . 4 4 2 T h e m a n e is n o t s e t o u t i n r e l i e f , b u t t h e c o n t o u r o f
a c c o u t r e m e n t . I t c o u l d be the t o p e d g e o f a p a i r o f s o f t shoes o r
the n e c k b e h i n d the f o r e l o c k
l o w b o o t s , the h e m t o a p a i r o f t r o u s e r s o r l e g g i n g s , o r the
o t h e r reliefs f r o m
is p u r p o s e f u l l y
the t e m p l e w h e r e
b l u r r e d , as
such blurring
on
indicates
d e m a r c a t i o n b e t w e e n the t w o . T h i s k i n d o f a p p a r e l
rider's
associated
the p a s s a g e b e t w e e n s o l i d a n d v o i d b e n e a t h c l o t h i n g (note the
w i t h t h e e a s t e r n e q u e s t r i a n d r e s s c a n b e f o u n d i n t h e art o f
N e r e i d s o n A 3 ) . H e r e it p r o b a b l y s i g n a l s t h e b e g i n n i n g s o f a n
w e s t e r n A n a t o l i a d u r i n g the s e c o n d half of the s i x t h century.430
u p r i g h t p a i n t e d c r e s t . B o t h l e g s are b r o k e n o f f a t t h e k n e e , b u t
T h e s a m e attire a p p e a r s i n the L a t e A r c h a i c p e r i o d i n sculpture,
e n o u g h o f the left f o r e l e g s u r v i v e s t o i n d i c a t e a n a s y m m e t r y i n t h e n o w - l o s t c a n n o n s a n d h o o f s . A r e c o n s t r u c t i o n is s u g g e s t e d i n F i g u r e 90. Two
s u r v i v i n g details in the m u c h - w e a t h e r e d surface
scrutiny. T h e
first
bear
is a p i e c e o f f a b r i c s e e n i n relief a g a i n s t the
horse. I t c o u l d be the s p r e a d i n g skirt of a c h i t o n i s k o s , a s h o r t mantel, o r p o s s i b l y a saddlecloth. Its outline appears just beh i n d the rider's knee, curves
downward,
comes
to a
gently
p o i n t e d corner, a n d t h e n a s c e n d s to the j u n c t u r e b e t w e e n the horse's l o i n a n d c r o u p . T h e shape of the c l o t h m o s t r e s e m b l e s the o n e a p p e a r i n g panel w i t h t w o
figures,
o n an E t r u s c a n silver
possibly Amazons,
closely repoussé
on horseback;
it
t o o has b e e n called b o t h a s a d d l e c l o t h a n d the trailing e n d of an extended
chitoniskos.443
The
s a m e c o n f u s i o n arises w i t h
an
Anderson 1961, p. 32; Farkas 1969, pp. 58-66. For proportions: Richter 1930, p. 14; Markman 1943, pp. 148-68, fig. 4. From the point of the shoulder to the top of the withers is slightly less than one head; from back to abdomen is much less than one head. 439
440
441 Contrast the horse's rectangular head to the pointed snouts of horses on Klazomenian sarcophagi (e.g., R. M. C o o k 1981, pis. 6-7 (B8), 16 (D2), 19 (E2a), 40-2 (GÌ), 52 ( G i i ) , 74 (G32)); or the curving Roman noses of Persian horses (Anderson 1961, pis. 8, 39) on the frieze from Building G from Xanthos, London, British Museum B 3 1 1 - B 3 1 3 (Pryce 1928, vol. 1.1, pp. 144-6, pl. X X X ; Jenkins 2006, pp. 168-72, fig. 165) and at Xanthos, no. 3532 (Coupel and Metzger 1969, pp. 225 8, figs. 2-3).
broken edge of the border originally came to a sharp, arrow-like point approximating the kind of tassel often found on saddlecloths. Arguing against this interpretation is the fact that there is not a clear demarcation between the buttocks of the rider and the back of the cloth. Szeliga 1983, p. 545; Szeliga 1986, pi. 18.4. Hitzl 1983, pp. 9-10, fig. 7. Compare similar effect created by the short mantle Hephaistos wears on an Attic black-figure kantharos, Dresden ZV1466: LIMC 4 (1988), p. 640, no. 142a, s.v. 'Hephaistos', (A. Hermary). Other types of clothing can drape across a horse's rump, e.g., the long Persian jacket (cf. Klazomenian sarcophagus, Izmir, Basmahane Museum 3493: R. M. C o o k 1981, G i i , pi. 52, fig. 22) or the Thracian cloak (cf. riders on the Loeb tripods: Höckmann 1982, pl. 65); these garments usually appear in combination with a chiton. 444
445
446 Cf. Chalkidian amphora, Saint Petersburg, Hermitage Museum 1479 (Rumpf 1927, pl. 109); and later examples (e.g., von Bothmer 1957, pis. 77.5, 78.1-6). 447 Hephaistos's mule on the François vase is an exception: Brommer 1978, pi. 1.2. 448 Assyrian, Persian, and East Greek saddlecloths: Anderson 1961, pis. 3b, 4a, ja, 5b, 6a, 6b, 1 ia; Farkas 1969, pp. 64-6; Akurgal 1976, pp. 198-9, fig. 5. 449 Large rectangular cloths: Klazomenian sarcophagus, London, British Museum 86.3-26.1 and Istanbul Archaeological Museumi427 (R. M . C o o k 1981, p.9, no. B8, pis. 6-7; possibly G14, pi. 55.1 as well); Rhodian amphora, London, British Museum 67.5-6.44 ( C V A British Museum 8, misc. East Greek, pi. 1.2); frieze from Building G, Xanthos (supra n. 441); parapet frieze, Temple of Artemis at Ephesos (Pryce 1928, B168, fig. 97). Smaller cloths with tessellated or fringed borders appear in East Greek pottery, for example: Klazomenian slim amphora (supra n. 442); Klazomenian broad amphora fragment, London, British Museum
442 For hairstyle, compare relief from Athens, Akropolis no. 1340 (Brouskari 1974, fig. 92); right trace horse in chariot procession on the Vix krater (C. M. Robertson 1975, pi. 45, 46b). For examples on painted pottery, see Klazomenian slim amphora by the Petrie Painter, London British Museum 88.2-8.69a and b ( C V A British Museum 8, pi. 4.1).
88.2-8.70d ( C V A British Museum 8, Clazbf, pi. 12.1); Ionian dinos, Würzburg, Martin von Wagner Museum H 5352 (Brommer 1978, pi. 11.3); Ionian dinos in Paris, Louvre 10.233 (MonPiot 43 (194S) pp. 33-7, pi. 5); Klazomenian sarcophagus, Leipzig University Museum T.3340 (R. M. C o o k 1981, p. 38, no. G12, pi. 53)· For triangles, see Düver revetments (Akerström 1966, figs. 70, 75) and right horse on Klazomenian sarcophagus, London, British Museum 86.3-26.2 (R. M. Cook 1981, p, 18, no. E2a, pi. 18, fig. 12).
443 London, British Museum: LIMC 1 (1981), pp. 655-6, no. 7, s.v. 'Amazones Etruscae', (P. Devambez); Sprenger and Bartolini 1983, pp. 109-10, pi. H I . The electrum border seems to pass underneath the pleated border of the chiton, and a trace of what could be the front edge of a saddlecloth appears just in front of the rider. Incised marks near the lower left corner of the cloth indicate that the now
450 Trousers: Bovon 1963, pp. 579-602; Vos 1963, pp. 40-1; Greenewalt 1971, p. 40, n. 29, pis. 8-15. Shoes: Greenewalt 1 9 7 1 ^ . 4 1 and references; Bonfante 1975, p. 203; Morrow 1985, p. 38. See also equestrian costume on the Düver revetments (Akerström 1966, figs. 70, 75) and costumes on the Temple of Artemis at Ephesos (Pryce 1928, B132, p. 61; B193, p. 82, fig. 118; B231, p. 90, fig. 146).
190
THE
SCULPTURE
o n the s o - c a l l e d P e r s i a n rider f r o m the A k r o p o l i s , a n d i n A t t i c vase painting, w h e r e Skythians, Persians, a n d A m a z o n s
wear
various f o r m s of trousers and shoes.431
excerpted f r o m a larger c o m p o s i t i o n . W i t h o u t k n o w i n g o f this m e t o p e , C l a r k e r e s t o r e d the epistyle o f the east façade w i t h a h o r s e r a c e ( F i g . 6). I n s u c h a d e s i g n , t h e r i d e r o n M 9
would
T h e scene o n this m e t o p e is n o t o b v i o u s l y m y t h o l o g i c a l . T h e
s e r v e , l i k e t h e s p h i n x e s , c e n t a u r , o r b o a r , as a v i s u a l r e f r a i n o f
r i d e r is n o t a n A m a z o n , n o r n e e d he b e a P e r s i a n o r a S k y t h i a n , f o r
the m o r e d e v e l o p e d scene. W e n o w k n o w , h o w e v e r , that the
s a d d l e c l o t h , l e g g i n g s , a n d s h o e s are p e r f e c t l y at h o m e i n w e s t e r n
epistyle
A n a t o l i a . S o m e painted scenes s h o w T r o i l o s g a l l o p i n g off w i t h -
b l o c k s w i t h n e w t h e m e s are u n l i k e l y . O n t h e o t h e r h a n d , h a l f
o u t l o o k i n g b a c k at his attacker,452 b u t o u r scene lacks i d e n t i f y i n g
the d e c o r a t e d m e t o p e s are m i s s i n g ; s o m e o f t h e m c o u l d
have
a t t r i b u t e s ( s u c h as P o l y x e n a ' s d r o p p e d h y d r i a , w h i c h c o u l d , a d -
b o r n a d d i t i o n a l riders to m a k e a race o r cavalcade ( a n d w e
may
mittedly, have b e e n in the n o w - l o s t l o w e r r i g h t section o f the
h a v e at l e a s t o n e , if t h e f r a g m e n t o f h i n d h o o f s ( M 6 ) d o e s n o t i n
relief). O t h e r k e y
fact j o i n w i t h m e t o p e M 9 ) . I n c o m b i n a t i o n w i t h the
figures,
A c h i l l e s i n a m b u s h o r chase, a n d a
is
better
preserved
the rider(s) c o u l d
than
f l e e i n g P o l y x e n a , w o u l d h a v e t o be a s s i g n e d t o n o w - l o s t m e t o p e s .
on M2,
V i e w e r s m a y h a v e b e e n r e m i n d e d o f t h e l i f e o f P e l e u s , if t h e
a s s o c i a t i o n s are a g a i n s u g g e s t i v e .
Clarke
knew;
be part of funeral
additional
runners
games.
Trojan
m e t o p e w i t h a b o a r ( M 4 ) w e r e a d j a c e n t , o r o f f u n e r a l g a m e s , if the equestrian w e r e next to the m e t o p e w i t h r u n n e r s
(M2).453
H e r e again, i n s c r i p t i o n s m a y h a v e m a d e the scene. O n
I C O N O G R A P H I C
its o w n , t h e i m a g e o f h o r s e a n d r i d e r c a n s e r v e as
T H E M E S
an
e m b l e m of aristocratic wealth, valour, a n d social position, tak-
In
argued
that
ing o n heroic overtones.434 Cavalcades have a place in archaic
m e a n i n g f u l relationships c a n o b t a i n b e t w e e n the v a r i o u s
and
a r c h i t e c t u r a l s c u l p t u r e as e a r l y as t h e s e v e n t h c e n t u r y . 4 5 5
s e e m i n g l y d i s p a r a t e s c e n e s o n t h e e p i s t y l e if w e l o o k
Gal-
l o p i n g r i d e r s b e l o n g to g r o u p s e n g a g e d i n the h u n t , the race, o r the cavalcade ( b o t h m i l i t a r y a n d civilian); t h e y m a y h a v e been integral
members
of
more varied processions
as w e l l . 4 3 6
In
discussing
the architectural
sculpture, I
have
first
to
the basic f u n c t i o n of each image. W h i l e m o s t o f the individual scenes appear in archaic architectural sculpture elsewhere, their c o m b i n a t i o n at A s s o s i s t h u s f a r u n i q u e , i n p a r t b e c a u s e
the
c o n t r a s t to the general a p p r o p r i a t e n e s s o f the cavalcade f o r a
d e s i g n e r s o f the t e m p l e d r e w o n s u c h a w i d e a r r a y o f s o u r c e s —
c o n t i n u o u s frieze, the single g a l l o p i n g m o u n t ( A m a z o n s
m a i n l a n d , E a s t G r e e k , a n d A n a t o l i a n — a n d r e - c r a f t e d t h e m t o fit
cluded)
remains
unknown
in
ours.437 I n other media, square
archaic fields
metopes
other
exthan
u s u a l l y are r e s e r v e d f o r
the scale, v i s u a l
field,
a n d p u r p o s e o f the temple. A n
overtly
unified p r o g r a m m e g o v e r n e d b y one idea does n o t emerge be-
the p r a n c i n g or w a l k i n g m o u n t . 4 3 S T h e visual c o n t r a d i c t i o n of
c a u s e , as f a r as w e c a n tell, t h a t w a s n o t a g o a l o f s a c r e d a r t i n t h e
a g a l l o p i n g m o u n t i n a c o n s t r i c t e d field s u g g e s t s t h e s c e n e w a s
Archaic period. L a c k of an overarching p r o g r a m m e ,
however,
d o e s n o t m e a n that the subjects d i s p l a y e d o n the temple represent a s i m p l e g a t h e r i n g o f d i s c o n n e c t e d , if v a g u e l y Persian rider, Akropolis no. 606: Brouskari 1974, pp. 59-60, fig. 106; Eaverly 1995, pp. 100-6, no. 9, pis. 15-16. Dress of Amazons, Thracians, and Skythians: Shapiro 1983. Skythian body stockings and shoes depicted in Attic vase painting: Vos 1963, pp. 40-51; Barringer 2004. Representations of Persians wearing trousers and shoes: G o w 1928, pp. 142-52; Bovon 1963, pp. 579-602; Vos 1963, p. 44 and nos. 5-9. A m a z o n dress: von Bothmer 1957; LIMC 1 (1981), pp. 586-653, s.v. 'Amazones', (P. Devambez). 4,1
e.g., LIMC ι (1981), pp. 80-5, nos. 282, 287, 288, 292, 297, 301, 303, 307, 308, 310, 313, 316, 333, 342, s.v. 'Achilleus', (A. Kossatz-Deissmann). 453 For Peleus, see Willemsen 1963, p. 132. 454 Dentzer 1982, pp. 438-41; Woysch-Méautis 1982, pp. 27-39; LIMC 6 (1992), pp.1019-81, s.v. Heros equitans', (H. Koukouli-Chrysanthaki et al.); Barringer 2001, for the aristocratic hunter on horseback. Later, the numerous horse and rider plaques from Ilion attest to an important regional hero cult in the Hellenistic period; Barr 1996, pp. 133-57. 452
Frieze from Temple A , Prinias: Pernier 1914, pp. 48-54, fig. 19. 456 Hunt or cavalcade, revetment from Thasos (Launey, EtThas I, 1944, pi. 7); sima plaques from Larisa (Akerström 1966, pis. 26.1, 27.1); revetment from Düver (Akerström 1966, p. 219, fig. 70); stamped tile from Delphi (supra n. 437). Fragments of mounted horses (not surely galloping) are associated with the frieze from the Massiliot treasury at Delphi (Picard and La Coste-Messelière 1928, p. 44, nos. 81-3, fig. 23; Bookidis 1967, p. 326, F73) and possibly the anonymous Aeolic treasury at Delphi (Picard and La Coste-Messelière 1928, p. 177, no. 10, fig. 65; Bookidis i and relief from Velletri, Museo Nazionale, Naples: Andrén 1940, no. 446, pl. 127. 455
457 Galloping Amazons can form part of a larger sequence of metopes, e.g., on the Athenian Treasury at Delphi: La Coste-Messelière 1957, no. 10, pp. 84-7, pis. 34, 35. 458 There are a few exceptions, e.g., the rider on the predella of the stele of Lyseas, Athens, National Museum 30 (Richter 1961, no. 70, figs. 159-60; further bibliography in Kaltsas 2002, p. 73, no. 105); or the rider on a Klazomenian
apposite,
m o t i f s . I f w e c a n s p e a k o f a p r o g r a m m e , i t is i n t h e a g g r e g a t e o f specially
chosen
images,
myths,
and
cycles,
designed
v i e w e d b o t h separately a n d i n juxtaposition, the
to
be
connections
b e t w e e n t h e m f o r g e d t h r o u g h the v i e w e r s ' k n o w l e d g e , experience, a n d w i l l i n g n e s s t o e n g a g e their r e l a t i o n s h i p s — i n
short,
their h o r i z o n of expectations. E a c h scene w a s selected f o r the w a y i n w h i c h it w o u l d c o v e r a n i m p o r t a n t b a s i s t h a t m i g h t b u i l d t o w a r d a c o m p l e t e e n s e m b l e (as o p p o s e d t o u n i f i e d p r o g r a m m e ) , including apotropaic images, p o w e r symbols, and mythological a n d social e x e m p l a r s o f h u m a n values. C o l l e c t i v e l y , the i m a g e s h e l p to create the c o n d i t i o n s o f s a c r e d space. W h i l e n o t the later trajectory o f m a i n l a n d G r e e k architectural sculpture, the b r o a d c o m b i n a t i o n c o n t i n u e d t o r e s o n a t e o n a f u n d a m e n t a l level i n the east, i n p l a c e s s u c h as X a n t h o s i n L y k i a . 4 5 9
sarcophagus, Berlin University (R. M. C o o k 1981, pp. 45-6, no. G24, pi. 72). O n l y in the Classical period and then under the influence of the Parthenon does a galloping rider become fashionable in the square field of grave and votive reliefs; cf. Woysch-Méautis 1982, pis. 4.11-12, 5.16-20. 439 Jenkins 2006, pp. 151-85. Perhaps it is no coincidence that the same medley of heraldic sphinxes, lion combats, striding bull, and banqueting appears on a spectacular silver belt from Grave 24 at Vani in Kolchis, dated to the second half of the fourth century BC, Georgian National Museum 24-2006/28: Chi 2008, PP· I75~97> % 17, pis. 47-8·
THE I n t h e t e m p l e at
Assos,
SCULPTURE
m a n y o f the scenes w o r k t o g e t h e r to
191
sibilities—the recovery of H e l e n b y Menelaos, Priam's ransom
f o r m a c o h e r e n t e x p r e s s i o n o f the p o w e r s of, a n d r e l a t i o n s h i p
o f H e k t o r ' s b o d y , o r T h e t i s ' appeal to Z e u s — a r e all part of the
between, the civilized a n d natural w o r l d s o v e r w h i c h the g o d -
T r o j a n saga. T h r e e of the ' T r o j a n ' m e t o p e s ( Μ ι , M 2 , a n d
dess o f the p o l i s presides. T h e s e t h e m e s establish b r o a d
w e r e f o u n d t o the w e s t o f the t e m p l e , r a i s i n g the
but
Mio)
possibility
i m p o r t a n t p a r a m e t e r s . M u c h o f t h e i m a g e r y o n t h e e p i s t y l e is
t h a t t h e y f o r m e d a s e r i e s o n t h e w e s t f a ç a d e ( S e e C h a p t e r 8,
strongly
' A r r a n g e m e n t o f the S c u l p t u r e ' , p p .
apotropaic. T h e
half-animal—belong
confronted
sphinxes—half-woman,
in a liminal realm; paired and
t h e s e m y t h i c a l c r e a t u r e s a r e p r e s e n t as g u a r d i a n s , n o t o n l y
of
t h e o t h e r i m a g e r y o n the e p i s t y l e b u t a l s o o f the t e m p l e itself. The
b u t t i n g b u l l s a n d l i o n s d e v o u r i n g p r e y are v i s u a l
meta-
198-200).
Trojan themes resonate appropriately o n a temple
heraldic,
south
of
Troy,
and
indeed,
the
principal
located
characters
d e p i c t e d i n the p r o p o s e d s e q u e n c e w e r e v e n e r a t e d i n the r e g i o n . A c h i l l e s w a s h e l d in great e s t e e m i n the T r o a d ; a c c o r d i n g
p h o r s r e p r e s e n t i n g the natural a n d elemental p o w e r s o f sexual
to H o m e r , he e v e n p a s s e d t h r o u g h the v i c i n i t y o f A s s o s
p o t e n c y a n d p h y s i c a l s u p r e m a c y . W h i l e b e l o n g i n g to the nat-
his
u r a l w o r l d , the l i o n a n d the b u l l are a l s o i m m a n e n t in the hearts
of A s s o s
o f m e n , w h o c a n i m a g i n e b e i n g as s t r o n g as t h e l i o n o r as v i r i l e
antiquity.461 A j a x also h a d a cult in the Troad, near R h o i t e i o n ,
as t h e b u l l . M o s t s i g n i f i c a n t , h o w e v e r , is t h e c o m b i n a t i o n o f t h e
as
s y m p o s i o n w i t h the c e n t a u r o m a c h y . T h e achieved
centuries
symposion
i n v o l v e s m e n w h o r e s t at ease, w h i l e t h e f l a w e d o n e
involves
half-men, half-beasts in w i l d disarray a n d conflict. T h e
cen-
t a u r o m a c h y h a p p e n s in m o u n t a i n territory; the s y m p o s i o n has its p l a c e i n t h e p o l i s . T o g e t h e r , t h e s e s c e n e s b e a r w i t n e s s t o t h e successful
and failed expression of
xenia
and
pbilotes,
ideas
a r o u n d w h i c h m u c h of archaic G r e e k society w a s structured. H e r a k l e s , n o t o n l y as
alexikakos
b u t a l s o as t h e h e r o c l o s e s t
to Troy.46"
way
we
A
tumulus
near Sigeion, served
noted
in
after
temple
with
him,
as a n i m p o r t a n t
conjunction
the
associated
with
at
metope
Assos
was
on
north
landmark
M8.462
built,
in
Some
the
Trojan
columnae caelatae
t h e m e a g a i n f o u n d a place o n the frieze a n d
at the T e m p l e o f A p o l l o S m i n t h e u s , t h e c l o s e s t m a j o r
monu-
m e n t to A s s o s . 4 6 3 A
s e c o n d t h e m e in the d e c o r a t e d m e t o p e s centres o n sexual
c o n f l i c t a n d i n c l u d e s the rape o f E u r o p e ( M 5 ) , either chasing Thetis ( M i )
or a n extended scene w i t h the
and recovery of H e l e n ( M i
and M 2 ) , and perhaps
Peleus
first
rape
Menelaos
to the natural w o r l d , p l a y s a p i v o t a l role i n the d e c o r a t i o n of
c o n f r o n t i n g H e l e n ( M i o ) . I n t h i s seqtience, there is n o p l a c e f o r
the temple. H e drives o f f the v i o l a t i n g centaurs i n the centaur-
the quarrel o v e r the a r m s o f A c h i l l e s ( M 8 ) , unless o n e i m a g i n e s
o m a c h y , a n d h i s c h a r a c t e r p e r m e a t e s the s y m p o s i o n , if o n l y b y
that the scene represents, instead, A c h i l l e s
association. Herakles wrestling Triton, a story about w h i c h w e
quarrelling over Briseis. T h a t a single, all-embracing
are i g n o r a n t ,
fits less
c a n n o t be f o u n d to u n i f y the v a r i o u s i m a g e s i n the D o r i c frieze
expressed
terms
obviously
into
a hierarchy
so
clearly
and
Agamemnon concept
and
d o e s n o t i n itself w e a k e n the case either f o r a T r o j a n sequence
p u r e l y n a t u r a l f e a s t i n g . A l t h o u g h there are r e a s o n s t o s u s p e c t
o r for o n e that explores p o w e r p l a y s i n v o l v i n g sexual mastery.
in
of
proper
and
improper
A t t i c a f f i l i a t i o n s i n its i n c l u s i o n a t A s s o s , t h i s
drinking,
agon
essentially
I n p r o g r a m m e s c o m p r i s e d o f m a n y i m a g e s , archaic artists often
p i t s h e r o a g a i n s t h a l f - m a n , h a l f - b e a s t as w e l l . T h e c e n t a u r o m a -
depict several thematically
c h y is a t e r r e s t r i a l e n g a g e m e n t ; t h e s t r u g g l e w i t h T r i t o n e n g a g e s
s u s t a i n a s i n g l e s t o r y l i n e w h e n t h e o p p o r t u n i t y e x i s t s t o tell
the o t h e r great p a r t o f the w o r l d h u m a n s
several. E x a m p l e s i n c l u d e s o m e o f the m o s t celebrated
must
successfully
c o n f r o n t : t h e sea. H e r a k l e s a c t s i n h i s r o l e o f m o n s t e r - f i g h t e r , conquering
beasts
that
straddle
the
boundary
between
h u m a n , natural, a n d supernatural w o r l d s . A d d i t i o n a l l y ,
the
Hera-
related scenes but c h o o s e
the F r a n ç o i s Throne
of
Vase, the
Apollo
Chest
of
at A m y k l a i ,
Kypselos the
Temple C
Sele, to n a m e a few. T h e square, i s o l a t e d
link
the
sculptured
at
the
Delphi,
a t S e l i n o u s , o r t h e first T e m p l e o f H e r a a t F o c e d e l fields
of the
Doric
frieze e n c o u r a g e d i v e r s e e x p r e s s i o n as p o w e r f u l l y as the c o n -
ical k i n g o f M y s i a , o f w h i c h the T r o a d w a s part. associations
works
at O l y m p i a ,
Monopteros
the fact that his s o n , T e l e p h o s , w a s the m o s t i m p o r t a n t
Secondary
to
o f a r c h a i c G r e e k art a n d a r c h i t e c t u r e , i n c l u d i n g t h e C h i g i Vase,
kles c o u l d c l a i m s o m e a u t h o r i t y i n the t e r r i t o r y o f A s s o s , g i v e n myth-
not
Doric
frieze
t i n u o u s f r i e z e a n d t r i a n g u l a r p e d i m e n t d i s c o u r a g e it. I n d e e d ,
course w i t h scenes o n the epistyle. Several i m a g e s that appear
one
b e l o w — a g a l l o p i n g centaur, c o n f r o n t e d sphinxes, a n i m a l s — a r e
ture, b u t a l s o i n the s e p a r a t e d scenes o n s h i e l d b a n d reliefs a n d
repeated
v a s e s . T o t a l n a r r a t i v e u n i t y is r a r e a n d c o m e s late. P a r t i a l u n i t y ,
in abbreviated
f a s h i o n i n the frieze c o u r s e
above,
finds
b i n d i n g the t w o c o u r s e s v i s u a l l y a n d a d d i n g coherence to the
with
overall sculptural p r o g r a m m e of the temple.
explained
I n the metopes, events in the T r o j a n cycle p r o v i d e the m o s t likely e x p l a n a t i o n for several narrative scenes a n d even for a
s u c h o v e r l a p p i n g p r o g r a m m e s n o t o n l y in architec-
some
scenes
standing
on
their
in sequence, characterizes
o f discrete yet repeated
fields.
own
and
others
archaic G r e e k
best
handling
T h e frieze d e c o r a t i o n o n
the
t e m p l e at A s s o s is n o e x c e p t i o n .
s e q u e n c e . T h e identifiable e p i s o d e s r a n g e f r o m the q u a r r e l o v e r the a r m s o f A c h i l l e s ( M 8 ) to the chase a n d capture o f T h e t i s (Mi)
a n d the funeral g a m e s o f P a t r o k l o s ( M a , p o s s i b l y
M9).
A f o u r t h m e t o p e , M i o , a l t h o u g h a later r e p l a c e m e n t , p r o b a b l y also
b e l o n g s to the T r o j a n cycle
as w e l l . T h e
scene here
s u s c e p t i b l e to different i n t e r p r e t a t i o n s , b u t the s t r o n g e s t
is
pos-
460
c
Supra n. 401. 461 For the importance of the cult of Achilles in historical times and the difficulty of pin-pointing the location of the tomb, see Shaw 2001, pp. 164-81; Burgess 2005; Burgess 2009, pp. 1 1 1 - 1 6 . 462 Supra n. 374. 463 Özgünel 2001.
8
Arrangement of the Sculpture P L A C E M E N T OF T H E EPISTYLE
SCULPTURED
o n e has satisfactorily b e e n able to r e c o n s t r u c t the epistyle
BLOCKS
using
all the p i e c e s ,
and
it g r e a t l y
sculptured
complicates
any
attempt to d o so.
T h e n e w l y discovered sculpture a n d the fresh observations
on
the architecture o f the t e m p l e have n o t o n l y u n d e r m i n e d
the
Evidence for distinguishing original f r o m replacement sculpture
is far m o r e
subjective
than
it is f o r
distinguishing
the
reconstructions proposed b y Joseph Thacher Clarke and Felix
capitals, geison, a n d t y m p a n o n . T h e f e w criteria that can
Sartiaux
p r o p o s e d t e n d n o t to resolve the basic p r o b l e m that t o o
(see
Appendix
III),
but
they
have
also
introduced
s i g n i f i c a n t p r o b l e m s f o r a n y n e w p r o p o s a l as w e l l . M o s t portantly,
the
(galloping
centaurs),
(lions
new
threatening
restored
fragments
a
A i o
that
(lions
boar)
savaging
prove
to the façades, n o t
complete
that
reliefs
a deer),
these
to the flanks
reliefs
appear
to belong
assigned to positions
to the façades
and
too
few
at t h e c o r n e r s . I n t h e c a s e o f
A13
damage, w e
are
best
o n e d e c o r a t e d epistyle b l o c k o v e r the n o r t h w e s t corner,
had
been
have to a c c o u n t f o r the r e p l a c e m e n t
can
be
minimal
and
reliefs
as t h e y
im-
A8/A48
be
many
o f at
least and
several p l a i n b l o c k s a l o n g the n o r t h w e s t flank. I n the case
of
previously. T h e undecorated epistyle b l o c k A 3 6 demonstrates
extensive d a m a g e , w e c o u l d c o n s i d e r the entire r e p l a c e m e n t o f
t h a t t h e s c u l p t u r e d i d n o t w r a p a r o u n d t h e c o r n e r at t h e s o u t h -
s c u l p t u r e at t h e w e s t e n d o f t h e b u i l d i n g a n d p o s s i b l e
w e s t ( a n d t h e r e f o r e p r e s u m a b l y n o t at the n o r t h w e s t
t o the n o r t h e a s t c o r n e r as w e l l .
either).
T h e p r y m a r k s o n c o r n e r capitals C 2 a n d C 2 4 indicate that o n
W i t h i n several potentially c o m p e t i n g f o r m s o f evidence
t h e w e s t c o r n e r s , at least, t h e b l o c k s o n t h e f a ç a d e p r o j e c t e d t h e
the restored
full length of the entablature. T h e
distinguish
reconstructed sequence
of
g e i s o n has f u r t h e r l i m i t e d the p o s s i b l e a r r a n g e m e n t s f o r s c u l p t u r e a l o n g t h e f l a n k s at the s o u t h e a s t e n d . The
most important
n e t r e s u l t is t h a t t h e r e are t o o
many
r e l i e f s t h a t n e e d t o find a p l a c e o n t h e f a ç a d e a n d n o w c a n n o t b e restored
to
the
that the partial
corners.
This
destruction
the A r c h a i c p e r i o d
may
situation
and
is t h e
rebuilding
have had a more
best
damage
others
are
sequence certain
real
of
decorated
parameters; the
some
building,
are
predictable
while
o f D o r i c a r c h i t e c t u r e as w e k n o w
it. T h e y a r e s e t o u t
below,
reconstructed
the
outside
for can
in advance
for
if
we
norms
arguments
even
blocks,
the
of
to
epistyle
sequence
of
reliefs.
evidence
of the temple serious impact
in
Extent of decoration and eastern emphasis
on
the s c u l p t u r e d epistyle that w e c a n necessarily r e c o g n i z e o n the
O f t h e 15 s u r v i v i n g s c u l p t u r e d e p i s t y l e b l o c k s , o n e r e l i e f e x i s t s
basis
intact ( A 1 4 ) a n d six o t h e r s are f u l l y r e c o n s t r u c t e d f r o m
of
style
or
technical
features.
Clearly,
the
colonnade
frag-
a r o u n d t h e n o r t h w e s t c o r n e r fell, t a k i n g w i t h it s e v e r a l e p i s t y l e
ments ( Α ι , A 2 , A 3 , A 4 , A 6 , and A i o ) . T h e composition of
blocks.
additional
Sculptured
reliefs
would
have
to
be
replaced
or
reliefs c a n be restored c o n f i d e n t l y , a l t h o u g h
five their
r e w o r k e d , at least o n t h e w e s t e n d . Q u i t e p o s s i b l y the d e s t r u c -
exact lengths r e m a i n conjectural ( A 5 , A 7 , A 8 , A 1 3 , a n d
tion was
F o r the r e m a i n i n g t h r e e f r a g m e n t a r y reliefs, all w i t h the s m a l l e r
greater. D a m a g e d
material, being consecrated,
may
n o t h a v e b e e n r e m o v e d f r o m t h e site, as w a s t h e c a s e i n o t h e r
scale a n i m a l c o m b a t s
archaic sanctuaries, f o r e x a m p l e the earlier p e d i m e n t s f r o m the
p o s i t i o n is less certain. T h e d i m e n s i o n s o f relief A 9 f a v o u r
s e c o n d T e m p l e o f A p h a i a at A e g i n a , o r t h e c a c h e o f
three-figured c o m p o s i t i o n . Relief A 1 2 m u s t be completed w i t h
architec-
tural material f r o m the Η - T e m p l e a n d O l d T e m p l e o f
Athena
(A9, A n ,
a second pair of animals. Reliefs A n
o n the A t h e n i a n A k r o p o l i s . W e t h u s c a n n o t b e c e r t a i n t h a t all
the h i n d legs o f the deer o n A n
o f t h e s u r v i v i n g p i e c e s b e l o n g e d o n t h e b u i l d i n g at t h e
same
probably
time, o r that s o m e reliefs a l w a y s s t o o d i n their o r i g i n a l
posi-
t i o n s . M o r e r e l i e f s t h a n c a n fit h a v e d i m e n s i o n s a p p r o p r i a t e t o the façades; the o n l y relief that s e e m s
t o b e l o n g at a
corner
a n d A 1 2 ) , the original
A15).
At
coma
a n d A 1 2 c o u l d join, b u t
a n d the l i o n o n A 1 2
would
overlap.
least
eight
of
the
sculptured
blocks
have
the
longer
axial spacing, w i t h large m e t o p e - s p a c e s a n d large regulae chara c t e r i s t i c o f t h e f a ç a d e s ( Α ι , Αι,
A3, A4, A5, A8, Aio,
A13;
( Α 12) m a y h a v e b e e n w o r k e d o n w h a t s h o u l d b e its
exposed
T a b l e 4 a ) . T h r e e r e l i e f s ( A 6 , A 7 , A i 1) c o m b i n e l o n g a n d s h o r t
face. T h e e x t a n t s c u l p t u r e i n all l i k e l i h o o d r e p r e s e n t s
original
elements that l o o k a w k w a r d o n the façade but m a k e sense for
and replacement material. T h i s situation helps explain w h y
no
reliefs
on
or
near
the
flank
corners.
One
relief
(A9)
fits
a
A R R A N G E M E N T OF THE standard
flank
intercolumniation.
c.o.io m .
short
for
the
flanks
Another
and
would
relief fit
(A14),
better
on
is the
p r o n a o s w i t h its partner, A 1 5 . 1
SCULPTURE
together
I93
in a continuous
decorative
arrangement
that
must
h a v e h a d , at c e r t a i n j u n c t u r e s , a w k w a r d t r a n s i t i o n s i n
terms
o f scale, c o m p o s i t i o n , a n d subject.
I n a d d i t i o n , 18 s u r v i v i n g p l a i n e p i s t y l e b l o c k s , five o f w h i c h
Reconciling
these
different
visual
strategies—series,
pen-
c a n be f u l l y reconstructed, indicate that a large part o f the f l a n k
dants, directional, a n d closed c o m p o s i t i o n s — r e m a i n s
central
w a s u n d e c o r a t e d , i n c l u d i n g the s o u t h w e s t corner. P r e s u m a b l y ,
t o r e c o n s t r u c t i n g the s e q u e n c e o f reliefs. O t h e r a r c h a i c m o n u -
t h e n o r t h w e s t c o r n e r w a s p l a i n as w e l l . T h e s c u l p t u r e t h e r e f o r e
m e n t s are n o t e s p e c i a l l y h e l p f u l i n e s t a b l i s h i n g g u i d i n g
m u s t h a v e b e e n c o n c e n t r a t e d a t t h e e a s t e n d o f t h e b u i l d i n g , as
p r i n c i p l e s . W e k n o w little a b o u t the w a y t r a n s i t i o n s f r o m o n e
w e w o u l d expect g i v e n the o r i e n t a t i o n o f the plan. T h e
subject
alignment
of the third
column
with
the p r o n a o s ,
axial
found
at
to
another
were
accomplished
G r e e k frieze. T h e reliefs f r o m A s s o s
the
high
archaic
relationship
A s s o s , l a t e r o b t a i n s i n t h e H e p h a i s t e i o n , w h e r e it is i n t e n t i o n -
to pedimental
ally c o o r d i n a t e d w i t h the sculptural p r o g r a m m e
drastic c h a n g e s o f scale w e r e entirely acceptable. M o s t
exterior a n d a c r o s s the p r o n a o s . A
b o t h o n the
similar concept appears to
scale
sculptures, where
in
bear s o m e
design
continuous
friezes
are
paratactic o r g a n i z a t i o n
too
fragmentary
to
and large
determine
b e a t w o r k at A s s o s . H o w e v e r , t h e e n t a b l a t u r e o f t h e p r o n a o s
w h e t h e r o r not, in a frieze w i t h several subjects, o n e
d i d n o t c r o s s t h e p t e r o m a t o j o i n w i t h t h e flank p e r i s t y l e i n t h e
w a s c o n t i n u e d a r o u n d a corner. T h e g o r g o n s a n d
subject
m a n n e r o f t h e H e p h a i s t e i o n , t h e s e c o n d T e m p l e o f P o s e i d o n at
l i o n s w r a p the c o r n e r s o f the epistyle o n the T e m p l e o f A p o l l o
recumbent
S o u n i o n , o r t h e T e m p l e o f N e m e s i s at R h a m n o u s . 2 N o r d i d it
at D i d y m a , w h i l e o n t h e S i p h n i a n T r e a s u r y , t h e c o r n e r w a s a
w r a p the i n t e r i o r o f the east p t e r o m a .
c o n v e n i e n t p l a c e f o r c h a n g i n g t h e s u b j e c t . E i t h e r s t r a t e g y is
In
s u m , the p l a n o f the b u i l d i n g — a s
well
as t h e
number,
length, and regulae-spacing of surviving decorated (and undec-
v i a b l e i n d e t e r m i n i n g t h e r e c o n s t r u c t i o n at A s s o s . As
modern
viewers,
we
are s t r o n g l y
conditioned
to
use
o r a t e d ) b l o c k s — p o i n t s t o a s c u l p t u r a l a r r a n g e m e n t w i t h reliefs
sculpture
a c r o s s b o t h f a ç a d e s , a l o n g t h e first t w o i n t e r c o l u m n i a t i o n s
d r a w u s a r o u n d the structure, to g u i d e us to the entrance, to
of
to navigate
a building. W e
e x p e c t it
to
instruct o u r behaviour a n d condition our expectations.3 Struc-
the eastern f l a n k s , a n d a c r o s s the p r o n a o s .
turally,
Compositional
as a w a y
considerations
we
are
strongly
predisposed
toward
centrality,
bi-
lateral s y m m e t r y , a n d t i g h t t h e m a t i c g r o u p i n g . H i g h
archaic
vase
ancient
painting
our
best
how
A 4 8 ) ; (2) p a i r s o f b l o c k s w i t h antithetical s p h i n x e s o r b u l l s
(Ai
sphinxes—or
the s t r o n g l y
composition,
the
n o t s o s t r i c t l y b o u n d . T h e m o d e r n e y e b a l k s at s e e i n g h e r a l d i c
(A5-A8/
frieze
of
f o u r g r o u p s : (1) the c e n t a u r o m a c h y
Pholoe
approached
evidence
Greek
on M t
artist
offers
O n the basis o f s u b j e c t a n d c o m p o s i t i o n , the reliefs d i v i d e i n t o
and
centred c o m p o s i t i o n s
they
are
s u c h as t h e
a n d A 2 , A 1 4 a n d A 1 5 ) ; (3) l i o n s s a v a g i n g p r e y ( A 9 - A 1 3 ) ; a n d ,
Aio
(4) t w o reliefs w i t h h u m a n
t a c t i c a l l y m i n d e d a n c i e n t d e s i g n e r m a y n o t h a v e f o u n d it t o
figures
carved on a
monumental
l i o n s — o f f axis o r w i t h o u t p e n d a n t . H o w e v e r , the para-
be unsettling. T h e
s a m e c a n be said for the a n c i e n t
A 4 ) . T h e c e n t a u r reliefs f o r m a series c a r v e d at a u n i f o r m s m a l l
whose
around
scale w i t h a c t i o n m o v i n g f r o m left to r i g h t . T h e felines s a v a g i n g
strictly linear a n d w h o , i n a n y case, n e v e r v i e w e d the t e m p l e
p r e y m a y a l s o f o r m a s e r i e s , b u t t h e s c e n e s are c o n c e i v e d
through
scale, H e r a k l e s w r e s t l i n g T r i t o n , a n d the S y m p o s i o n ( A 3
and
on
t w o different scales. R e l i e f s A i o a n d A 1 3 , d e s i g n e d w i t h larger i m a g e r y , h a v e c l o s e d c o m p o s i t i o n s ; the d e s i g n s o f f r a g m e n t a r y reliefs A 9 , A n , a n d A 1 2 , w i t h the s m a l l e r l i o n s , c o m b i n e o p e n a n d closed c o m p o s i t i o n s . T h e antithetical beasts ( A 1 - A 2 ,
A14-
A 1 5 ) appear to be p e n d a n t s , s u g g e s t i n g a n a r r a n g e m e n t
based
o n bilateral s y m m e t r y . T h e
monumental
figurai
scenes
(A3—
A 4 ) , related in scale a n d style, also s e e m to be v i s u a l l y
con-
movements
the
medium
of
the b u i l d i n g
may
a comprehensive,
not
viewer,
have
been
scaled
elevation
epistyle,
however
drawing. Any
reconstruction
of
the
sculptured
a w k w a r d , m u s t fit t h e a r c h i t e c t u r a l f r a m e a n d f o l l o w t h e c o n s t r u c t i o n a l f e a t u r e s s u g g e s t e d b y the e x t e n s i v e t e c h n i c a l data. The
architectural
parameters
that
must
be m e t
include
the
following. New
evidence for the p l a n eliminates Sartiaux's
idea of a
n e c t e d , b u t it is d i f f i c u l t , as w e s h a l l see, t o r e s t o r e t h e m t o t h e
graduated
s a m e side o f the b u i l d i n g . N o n e o f the
d e n c e r e g a r d i n g t h e m u t u l a r s p a c i n g o n t h e g e i s o n l e s s e n s the
figures
b r i d g e s the joints
b e t w e e n o n e b l o c k a n d another. T h e reliefs thus g i v e the p r e s s i o n o f h a v i n g b e e n c o n c e i v e d as i n d i v i d u a l u n i t s
intercolumniation
(Table
ib). H o w e v e r ,
new
evi-
im-
v a l u e o f t h e p l a n as a g u i d i n g f a c t o r , a t l e a s t f o r t h e s o u t h a n d
strung
w e s t sides w h e r e the f r i e z e d i v e r g e d m a r k e d l y f r o m t h e axes o f the c o l u m n s . A s a p o i n t o f reference, e s p e c i a l l y f o r t h e east a n d n o r t h , the ideal axial l e n g t h s o f e p i s t y l e b l o c k s i n d i c a t e d b y the
Relief A 1 4 (bulls) marks an interaxial space of 2.346 m., virtually the same as the undecorated epistyle block, A28/A29 (Table 4a). There is only one place on the flank where the geison suggest this arrangement, and since it is in the middle of the south side and A28/A29 cannot be restored to the pronaos (the markings on the bed surface exclude it), it makes best sense to place the plain block on the flank and restore the two reliefs with bulls to the pronaos. 1
2 Contra Clarke 1898, fig. 78; see Chapter 4, 'Description and Reconstruction of the Original Building', pp. 90-1, and nn. 125-6.
p l a n are as f o l l o w s :
3
Osborne 2000.
A R R A N G E M E N T OF T H E
194
SCULPTURE
Plan II (alignment of penultimate column with wall)
Plan I (equal intercolumniations) 2.614 2.754/3.014 2.447 2.587/2.847* c.2.86
Façade normal Façade corner Flank Flank corner Pronaos, centre Pronaos, sides
2.656 2.694/2.954" 2.447 2.587/2.847* c.2.86
Façade Façade corner Flank Flank corner Pronaos, centre Pronaos, sides
C.2.29/C.2.55
C.2.29/C.2.55
First dimension measures to the centre of the corner triglyph; second dimension includes the full corner triglyph.
New
data
Sartiaux
or
information
regarding
the
unrecognized
spacing
of
the
by
regulae
Clarke
or
includes
the
following. 1) T h e d i m e n s i o n s o f r e l i e f A i o are n o w c o m p l e t e . T h e l e n g t h of
central
(c.0.84 m .
régula and
m
(0.573
0.73 m . )
·)
an
S 7—71 ; tomb at Agios Athanasios, Tsimbidou-Avloniti 2005, pp. 114-42, pis. 27, 30-1, 32-7.
-σ α
"G C rt 4-> G E O O iH ÌH
ω -O G g S -4—(
μΗ μΗ
E C ο ο υ u
A, C
Jï-3
«Γ -σ Η " r t
„
b< Γ3
ο -σ Ι-.
~ο
ο ο
1
O
Ή X ιΌι
M M
X VD
Ζ U
•H
•H
X
X
>Ti PO "S £
;
n £ tG (Λ Sπ! T> -H 'χ euu — Ο υ G £ £ < υ Υ t>ß > 4-1 -, -a I-, ci PO 'Srt
C
Υ
FS -a CJ "Ο ' X 1H U (Λ PO
t/5
Ii
-a PO
"G u
£ —
rt
u «ι* ω rt cj λ ω "δ £ G υ ß -λ M—ι ~ 'Γ!Ξ M-, 3D 3 C G G S G G W> G G ο G ro ΟT \
W
Ooo
Ν ve
»^Tt-I^ro
0\ Κ ιλ G\ Η rj-t\oo N K K K K N K K 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0
Ν
Ν
Ν
Ν
ο ο ο •ΊI ο οο
ο ON Ο σ\ Φ- ^ Ι ο Ο Ο ΟI ο οο ο 2s ο ο (J
c?
c £ ω J2 _C ·. -< ^ N
OL
Ν (s C\ O
ri ΓΛ N
Υ
Ν
Ν
pH RS CQ
Ν oo O NO ΓΛ CO L\ Φ O ON Ν Ν Ν ΗΗ Ν
NO 1Λ O\ R\
O
υ
co
Ο
ci
OO Ι-1
no
-φ
^
«ν
ri Ν
co
Ο ΟΟ
ν
on
w
Ν
Ν
N
H
H
UH
>N cs
pq M NO
ON «Ν R*-* Ν NO CO M Ν ON
Ν
NO" oo NO Φ
ΊΓ
Q I 5
Ο
Ν
N
Ο ON m CO
οο
-Φ
I-
«
ON OO L-< ON ^O TF T-I O ON «S W
ÛÛÛÛ
CL,
ε
α
I
r X Χ! X χ χχ χ IH U IH L, 3 3 3 3 IT Ά ΊΛ ΙΛ rt VJ
3 w; bc ÇT 'C "C
'C
'
öb
-3
OH OH
bp tiß 1 00 £ -C ω S « / ε 4-» ON Ω — rt Si -ο Μ 3 "ο *° 13 < J? UÌ β CL, _rt
ω .2rt L, rt u, 3 -C «
Ο
* J
< «F
k
ε -Β
FAD ο
s 2 Χ
Κ 'Ν Ο «
ο fad S fad fad
b 3
T . G
>
^
b-3 3
S
X
OH
Ο
RT
G Οi to Si — «υ ï Ώ Ë .y H
Γ3
G
>
^ ΓΛ OO CO ΟΟ IV
d o d o
IV tv Ο fi ON Ο Ν
^ Q1 c •r "- ο £ n Js l-> ΟΟ ΓΛ ΟΟ Γν η σ\ CA oc NO IV NO VO L-s NO ο ο ο ο ο
—
Ω
Ρ S t, ^ g*
οο ^
IH fi Ν Ν ΟΟ IVNO Γν Ο
tH S P-, .À> S
£ J Ö
FI ON
Ν ΙΛ ON NO
^ •d ^q S Η Η
fi Ν Ο
a,
'Sh JC tì H
fi σ\
Ο Ο Ο IH
'on ι Ot
Ο οο Ιν Ο
ON fi Ο M
υ -G
Ο Ο Ο Ν φ 0 Ν
c
c ω JC 4 bß & £ h es 3 3 es Ο -σ υ υ C Ο OH Ο < OH Ω Ü L > O. '-Γ OH - C bß rt C rt Oh .2 J J2 , no. 7; Hamiaux 1992, no. 68, p. 74. Condition: Length complete in one fragment broken along bottom edge; only a small part of lower taenia survives beneath right-hand sphinx. Both upper corners badly damaged and vertical joint faces
APPENDIX roughly chipped, leaving no signs of original anathyrosis. Right edge of relief surface may have been rebated along upper taenia; left side was not. Preserved on top surface: hole for left clamp and one pry mark (other cutting modern). A small moulding, now badly chipped, crowns upper taenia. Back surface sawed off. Surface of relief chipped and weathered. Left sphinx lacks hindquarters, forepaws, tail, and chin. Right sphinx lacks its face, much of the wing, lower haunch, and forepaws. A bridge of stone had been left between the noses of the two sphinxes, but otherwise the sculpture appears finished. Tops of wings curl outward for a maximum projection of c.0.04 m. M4 Grazing Boar (PI. 104; Fig. 83) Louvre inv. no. 2827 Find-spot: Not recorded; removed from akropolis in 1838. Bibliography: Clarac 1841, pp. 1162-3, ηο·7> pi· n 6 B ; Texier 1849, p. 207, pi. 114; Clarke 1898, pp. 284-5, fig· 735 Clarke, Bacon, and Koldewey 1902-21, p. 151, fig. 19; Sartiaux 1915, pp. 47-8, no. X X I ; Finster-Hotz 1984, pp. 105-6, 147, no. 8, fig. 39; Hamiaux 1992, p. 75, no. 70. Condition: Nearly complete in one piece. Both upper corners, surface of lower taenia, and most of the crown moulding broken away. Preserved on upper surface: hole for left clamp, possible pry mark (other cutting modern). Both vertical edges of front face badly chipped; neither appears to have been rebated. Both joint faces have anathyrosis. Bed surface covered by museum installation. Back surface sawed off. Condition of the relief surface fair. Parts of the snout, tusk, and bristles chipped along right edge of block; hoofs and proper left legs chipped along the lower taenia. Relief low and flat, with a maximum projection of c.0.03 m. Mj
Europe on the Zeus Bull (Pis. 89, 106; Fig. 85) Istanbul inv. no. 780
Find-spot: Discovered by Dörpfeld and Wolters in 1896 on the northwest slope of the akropolis. Bibliography: Norton 1897, pp. 507-14, fig. 1 (called fragment of the epistyle); Clarke, Bacon, and Koldewey 1902-21, pp. 147, fig. 9, 151, fig. 20; Sartiaux 1915, p. 48, no. X X I I , fig. 28; Mendel 1914, p. 22, no. 265; Zahn 1983, no. 7; Finster-Hotz 1984, pp. 99, 143, no. 1, fig. 33; LIMC 4 (1988) p. 81, no. 80, s.v. 'Europe I', (C. M. Robertson). Condition: Incomplete in two fragments, joined roughly through the centre of the metope; broken right and above. Upper taenia and C.0.12 m. of upper relief surface lost. Both lower corners broken away; lower taenia chipped where preserved. Left joint face has anathyrosis. Right face lost, but the scene to this side roughly complete; the greatest preserved dimension, c.0.85 m., probably approximates the full length of the metope. Lower taenia sharply bevelled. Top and left lower corner filled in plaster. Bed surface covered by museum installation. Sculptured surface in very poor condition, especially the right-hand fragment. Bull lacks horn, part of ear, proper left front hoof, top of back haunches, and parts of knotty tail. Proper right fore- and hind legs chipped, and most facial features, except the line of the mouth, now erased. Rider, seated side-saddle on the bull, broken off just below the knees. Relief, as preserved, projects c.0.05 m.
M6
I
275
Equine Hoofs (PI. 112; Fig. 90) Istanbul inv. no. 242
Find-spot: Discovered by Clarke and Bacon in 1882 near the southeast corner of the temple's foundation (Figs. 2, 34). Bibliography: Clarke 1898, pp. 142, 170, 171, fig. 39, 286, fig. 75; Clarke, Bacon, and Koldewey 1902-21, p. 151, fig. 21; Mendel 1914, p. 22, no. 266; Sartiaux 1915, pp. 46-7, no. X X ; Finster-Hotz 1984, pp. 104, 145-6, n o . 5.
Condition: Incomplete to right, top, and back. A small part of left and bed surfaces survive. Block rebated along left front edge. Surface of relief in fair condition. Preserved are a horse's hind hoofs, fetlocks, part of a leg, and end of the tail. The greatest projection of relief, as preserved, is c.0.027 m. Could join M9. M7
Galloping Centaur (PI. I05a-b; F i g . 84)
Louvre inv. no. 2826 Find-spot: Not recorded; removed from the akropolis in 1838. Bibliography: Clarac 1841, pp. 1159-60, no. 3, pl. 116A; Texier 1849, p. 207, pi. ii4ter.2; Clarke 1898, p. 285, fig. 72; Clarke, Bacon, and Koldewey 1902-21, p. 151, fig. 22; Sartiaux 1915, p. 46, 110. X I X ; Finster-Hotz 1984, pp. 104, 146, no. 6, fig. 37; Hamiaux 1992, p. 74, no. 69. Condition: Complete in one piece; corners and parts of lower taenia badly chipped. Upper taenia has crown moulding; lower taenia slightly bevelled. Holes for both clamps survive on upper surface. Left edge of relief surface rebated, cutting right through the centaur's tail. Right edge chipped, rebate unlikely (contra Clarke and Sartiaux). Both lateral joint faces have anathyrosis. Surface of relief partially eroded. Centaur's face, arms, and forelegs weathered; tail blurred behind joint of the hock and cut down in rebate. Most facial features appear to have been carved. Remains of a large right eye, full nose, and rounded cheeks barely distinguishable on the weathered surface. Hair, at least on the left-hand side of the face, cut to shoulder length. Centaur's head angled outward from the plane of the relief (compare to wings of the sphinxes on Ai, A2, and M3) for a maximum projection of c.0.03 5 m · M8
Quarrelling Heroes (Pis. 93, 107; Fig. 86) Istanbul inv. no. 248
Find-spot: Discovered by Clarke and Bacon in 1881; two different find-spots recorded: near AA in the Byzantine wall or above the stylobate of the temple (Fig. 2, AA). Although Clarke states otherwise, the implication is that the fragments were discovered separately. Bibliography: Clarke 1882, pp. 33, 117, pi. 22; Clarke 1898, p. 287, fig. 77; Clarke, Bacon, and Koldewey 1902-21, pp. 147, fig. 6, 151, fig. 23; Mendel 1914, pp. 20-1, no. 263; Sartiaux 1915, pp. 45-6, no. XVIII; F i n s t e r - H o t z 1984, pp. 100-2, 144, no. 3, fig. 35.
Condition: Incomplete in two non-adjoining fragments. Upper fragment preserves part of top and right sides; lower fragment retains part of bed and right side. Left side lost. A gap of c.0.08 m., running through the thorax of the right-hand figure, separates the face of the two fragments (now restored in plaster). Upper right corner damaged; right joint face has anathyrosis; hole for right clamp preserved on top surface. Small crown moulding has a half-round profile. Very little of
28ο
A P P E N D I X III
the lower taenia (which must have been quite narrow) remains. Bed surface covered by museum installation. Surface of relief worn and pitted; details obscured but general elements clear enough. Right figure lacks arms between shoulder and wrist, much of chest, and most of feet. Shallow relief lines preserved at the neck and mid-thigh outline a short tunic. Only the head of the lefthand figure survives. Maximum projection of relief, c.0.03 m. M9
Horse and Rider (PI. i n ; Fig. 90) Çanakkale inv. no. 3782
Find-spot: Not recorded; discovered in 1973. Bibliography: Unpublished. Condition: Incomplete in one large fragment broken left, bottom, and at upper right corner. Part of top surface, right joint face, and upper taenia with crown moulding survive. Extant right face does not retain anathyrosis. Traces of left clamp hole survives in the break. Surface worn and pitted. Rider lacks back of the head. Horse lacks forelegs below forearm, hindlegs below the stifle, and the tail; back haunches and thigh badly worn. Relief has a maximum projection of c.o.036 m. Could join M6.
Mio
Supplication Scene with Three Figures (PL n o a - b ; Fig. 88) Assos depot
Find-spot: Discovered by Wescoat on 30 July 1980, in the late fortification wall, in the region 5-6 m. west of the western foundation, and 5-6 m. south of the southern foundation (Fig. 34). Bibliography: Stupperich 1996, pp. 39-40, fig. 4. Condition: Only upper part survives but to roughly complete length; top corners and edges severely battered. Neither lateral joint face preserves anathyrosis. Surviving part of upper taenia has beginning of a crown moulding. Preserved on top surface: remains of holes for both clamps, two pry marks. Entire lower part of the block (to a height of c.0.20 m.) lost. Block carved in soft, porous, tuff rather than andesite. Relief surface extremely worn and pitted on c.o.30 m. part of the block exposed above the surface of the earth. In certain areas, all trace of sculpture erased. Part of relief protected beneath the soil only slightly better preserved. The surviving relief has a maximum projection of c.0.03 5 m.
APPENDIX II
Concordance For Catalogue Numbers of Sculptured Blocks The table below correlates the number assigned to each sculptured relief in this volume with those assigned by Felix Sartiaux (1915) and Ursula Finster-Hotz ( 1 9 8 4 ) .
No.
Description
Sartiaux
Finster-Hotz
AI
Confronted sphinxes Confronted sphinxes Herakles wrestling Triton Symposion Herakles pursuing human-legged centaurs Four centaurs galloping right Four centaurs galloping right Five centaurs galloping right Lioness bringing down a bull Lion and lioness devouring a deer Seated lion; lioness attacking a deer Lion savaging a stag Two lions harassing a boar Battle of rival bulls Battle of rival bulls Chase scene Two runners Confronted sphinxes Grazing boar Europe on the Zeus Bull Equine hoofs Galloping centaur Quarrelling heroes Horse and rider Supplication scene
VIII VII II I III IV V VI XI XII XIV XIII XV IX X XVII XVI XXI XXIII XXII XX XIX XVIII
7
A 2 A3 A
4
A5 A A
6 7
A8/48 A9 AIO A N
Α12 A13 A14
Aij MI M2 M3
M4 M5 M6 My M8 M9
MIO
8
6 I 2
3 4 15 12 13
Η II
9 10
4 2
7 8 I
5 6 3
APPENDIX III
Earlier Proposals for the Arrangement of the Sculptured Epistyle Texier's reconstruction (Hg- 4) Charles Texier offered the first reconstructed elevation of the temple, incorrect in nearly every detail save the placement of relief sculpture across the epistyle and metopes.1 Texier only offered an elevation of the eastern façade, working with the reliefs of bulls, which he placed over either corner, because they are significantly shorter than the other reliefs. He then positioned pairs of lions savaging prey ( A n and A9) to frame one pair of sphinxes (A2). Despite Texier's lack of interest in actual dimensions and faithful rendering of architectural forms, which both Clarke and Sartiaux criticized bitterly, his proposal contains the principle element around which Clarke organized his reconstruction, i.e., the central placement of the heraldic sphinxes, and a decisive aspect of Sartiaux's second reconstruction, i.e., corner placement of the confronted bulls. Clarke's reconstruction (Table ib, Plan I; Figs. 5-6, 94) The original excavator, Joseph Thacher Clarke, based his reconstruction of the architectural sculpture on the premise that the columns of the façade (like those of the flank he had uncovered) were equally spaced, at axial intervals of 2.614 m-~ He interpreted the differences in the axial lengths of the epistyle blocks (Table 4a) as unintentional variations around the standard. The discovery of the relief with Herakles and centaurs (A5) near the southeast corner of the temple provided the basis for his disposition of the scenes. Despite differences in figurai scale, he classed relief A5 with reliefs A3 and A4 (Herakles and Triton, Symposion). Because of the importance of their iconography and their greater length, Clarke restored these reliefs to the corners of the façades. He assigned the relief with Herakles and Pholos (A5) to the southeast corner near where it was found; he then restored Herakles wrestling Triton (A3) to the northeast corner because he regarded it as superior in style to the Symposion (A4) and the best compositional complement to the relief with Herakles and Pholos (A5). The Symposion (A4) he placed over the southwest corner. Lacking information on the way in which the corner of the epistyle was constructed, Clarke saw no difficulty in restoring the blocks from the flank projecting on to the façade. On the analogy of the three reliefs with fleeing centaurs (A6, A7, and A8) that obviously belonged with the main scene of Herakles and Pholos (A5), Clarke assumed that the other two figurai reliefs were also part of larger narratives extending over several blocks. In this
Texier 1849, pp. 200-2, 206, pi. 112. Clarke 1898, pp. 247-91; Clarke, Bacon, and Koldewey 1902-2, p. 153, fig. 1. For Sartiaux's criticisms, see Sartiaux 1915, pp. 84-9, 95-103. 1
2
programme, the reliefs with mythological compositions (that is A3, A4, and A5) would be framed on the façade and flanked by the secondary reliefs. At the southeast corner, Clarke placed centauromachy A6 in the second position on the façade, and assigned A8 to the first position on the southern flank. Because his reconstruction would not allow A7 to join the left side of A8, he proposed an additional relief and placed A7 over the third intercolumniation on the flank. To balance the arrangement of centaurs, Clarke proposed a similar scheme for framing the relief of Herakles and Triton (his Hesione) with three mythological reliefs on the flank and one on the façade. He did not specify what the proposed reliefs on the flank might look like; the relief he envisaged for the façade appears to be a horse race, perhaps a competition during funeral games. Clarke held to this format at the western end of the building as well, restoring two reliefs on the flank and one on the façade to frame the Symposion (A4; Clarke's Hippolyte sequence). He assigned A13 (lions attacking a boar) to the western façade and combined the rest of the lion groups (A9-A12) into two reliefs restored to the northwest flank. These animal scenes would act as the frame for a hypothetical fourth mythological relief at the northwest corner, for which Clarke proposed the theme of Herakles hunting the Erymanthian boar. Clarke assigned the sphinxes (Αι, A2) to the central intercolumniations of both façades to separate the four mythological sequences. He placed the bulls (A14, A15) in the side intercolumniations of the pronaos. Clarke's reconstruction offers a practical solution to the problem of reconciling the different groups of reliefs. By placing the visual emphasis on the four corners, he gives each mythological scene an equally important position and uses the central axis marked by the pairs of sphinxes to separate the four proposed mythological sequences. In wrapping each series around the corners of the temple, the reconstruction accentuates the important oblique view (comparable, for example, to the sculpture on the archaic Temple of Apollo at Didyma). Moreover, the scheme takes account of key archaeological information, such as find-spots, and the architectural data, for example the fact that some of the reliefs with centaurs had large metope-spaces and regulae while others had small ones. There are, however, fundamental problems with the reconstruction. Some sculptured blocks are surely lost today, but not as many as ten; the number of surviving plain epistyle blocks is too great. While a scene such as the symposion might be repeated in the manner of the reduplicated centaurs, the relief of Herakles wrestling Triton can be expanded to nothing much more than a stream of fleeing Nereids. The existing Nereids already look like an attempt to stretch the scene to fill the field; four more blocks are unimaginable. Scenes of Herakles hunting the Erymanthian boar have no connection with animal combats of the nature shown on reliefs A9-A13. Relief A i o does not join relief A9; and, joining A n and A12 still leaves at least four full reliefs of lions bringing down prey. Two of them (Aio and A13) have
A P P E N D I X I I I 303 .52,
.98
1
.53 , .74 , .56 , .81
1
1
1
1
, .54
1
1
.68 , .56 , .75
1
1
1
.56
.76 , .55 , .70 , .55 , .70 , .55 ,
1
1
1
—Η
1
1
.90
1
i
.57
.85
!
52
1 1
Clarke East
.52
|
.86
|
.56
|
.81
|
.56
.74
|
|
.57
|
.73
|
.56 , .76
|
.56 , .78
t
.56 , .775 ^ .56 | .775
|
.56 , .76
|
.56 | .80
|
.52
Clarke West
.52 , .685 , .52 , .75 , .52 , .725 , .52 , .852 , .52 , .63 , .52
.675 .52
Clarke Pronaos ^52 , .755
48 | -70
52
|
.70 ,-52
|
.70
52
|
-765
575 .737
52
.52
|
1
.70 , .52 . .70 , .52 , .69 , .52 , .69
1
1
i
!
1
1
ι J [2.435] 2.447
[2.61] 2.447
'
.485 .835
2.447
H 0 FIGURE
1
.48 , .83
1
H (—
2.447
2.447
h 5
94. Clarke's proposal for the reconstruction of the sculptured epistyle.
L [2.86]
[2.52]
Clarke NW Flank
Clarke SE Flank
1
W^.
L
[2.71] 2.447
1
10m
1
.52
28ο
APPENDIX
spacings characteristic of the façade rather than the flank. While Clarke is right in principle that the standard unit was interpreted flexibly, we would have to allow for a greater margin of error than Clarke himself does (0.05 m.) in order to accommodate the sequence of reliefs he suggests.3 A further problem is that Clarke restores all four corners with the block from the flank projecting onto the façade, in a range of thicknesses designed to complete the different lengths of the partial regulae. This form of construction was surely not used at the western end of the building; the symposion cannot be restored to the southwest corner. Moreover, the plain epistyle block A36 belongs over the southwest corner of the flank, proving that at least this end of the flank did not carry sculpture. If we allow for a different manner of corner construction on the east than is demonstrated at the west, then the general design presented by Clarke for the eastern side could work. Relief A8/48 must go to the façade in place of A6, for we now know it is too large for the flank. Relief A3 (Herakles and Triton) can fit the northeast corner with the flank block presenting its full thickness to the façade. The capital C16, which has pries left of axis by 0.15 m., could take the position E2N. Geison block HG3/15 could go above the right side of A i . 4 If we assume the minimum allowable length for the régula on the right side of relief A3 and the maximum on the right side of A i , then the missing block between the two reliefs, c.2.515 m. long, could accommodate metopes c.0.705 m. long and a triglyph c.o. 56 m. long. No surviving block fits this description. The chief problem with this reconstruction for the east façade is that it causes problems elsewhere. Relief A7 can take the first position on the southern flank, but A6 can only take the second position if we allow the internal régula and mutule to be slightly misaligned. Sartiaux's reconstructions (Table ib, Plans III and IV; Figs. 7, 95-6) In contrast to the basic assumption made by the American excavators, French archaeologist Felix Sartiaux interpreted the variations in the axial length indicated by each epistyle block as intentional adjustments responding to a complex system of intercolumniation across the façades of the temple.3 The influence of Ionic architecture evident in a
3 Clarke (1898, pp. 85-6,94-5) states twice that the tooling on the bed surface of the epistyle proved that the triglyphs were aligned with the axes of the column within 0.05 m. However, the triglyph over the penultimate column marked by A3 would be off-axis by at least + 0.096 m.; the triglyph marked by A4 would fall short of the axis by — 0.075 m. Clarke's calculations for the axial length of A3 are not consistent; cf. measurements set out on pages 251 and 259. He contracted the amount by which the triglyph was off-axis by expanding the thickness of the epistyle (0.84 m. rather than 0.80 m.), by shrinking the size of the columnar triglyph (0.54 m. rather than the more likely 0.56 m.), and by proposing that the right metope-space was smaller than it is (0.81 m. rather than >0.82 m.). His calculation earlier in the text suggested 0.855 m · Bacon follows the smaller dimension in the final folio drawing, p. 145, here, Fig. 6. Similar contradictions appear in calculations for A5 on pp. 254-5. If the restored length of the block to the outer face of the frieze was equal to 3.085 m., and the right metope was 0.74 m., and the central régula 0.53 m., then the left metope could not have been 0.93 m., as stated on p. 287, but would have to have been 0.98 m. Rather than attempt to adjust his calculations in Figure 94, I have simply remediated the final metope. The restored metope-lengths of 0.76 m. listed on p. 287 arc too large. 4 The mctope-space indicated by the mutule and via on HG3/15 could easily be C.0.80 m. (0.41 + 0.212 + >0.165 = >0 -7%7 m ·)· D Sartiaux I9i5,pp. 89-95, 103-26, figs. 42-8.
III
continuously sculptured course and the widely spaced columns of the pronaos suggested to him a coordinated system derived from the Ionic principle of a wide central intercolumniation flanked by ever-diminishing spans between the columns. He offered two possible arrangements based on this principle, with their dimensions derived from Clarke's Assian foot of 0.319 m. (see Table ib, Plans III and IV). In the first proposal, he took the central interaxial space as equal to that of the pronaos, calculated at 9 Assian feet (2.871 m.), with the other axial spacings successively diminishing in size from 8.5 Assian feet (2.7115 m.) to 7.5 Assian feet (2.392 m.). His second proposal again had the central interaxial space of the fronts equal to that of the pronaos, with the rest of the interaxial spaces equal to 8 Assian feet (2.552 m.). Sartiaux then outlined four structural criteria and one visual condition for assigning each relief to a position: ι The displacement of the epistyle joint from the axis of the column which it surmounts was not more than 0.10 m. 2 The triglyphs fell on the axes of the columns. 3 The length of the régula reflected the length of the triglyph that it underlay. 4 At the corner, the flank block projected onto the façade to complete the corner régula. 5 The sequence was acceptable from a decorative point of view. For both his plans, Sartiaux placed the centauromachy across the eastern façade, with the relief of Herakles and Pholos (A5) in the central position. In his first proposal, A8 went to the left of centre, A7 over the left corner, and A6 over the right corner (Fig. 93). In the corresponding arrangement for the western façade, Herakles and Triton (A3) received the central position, with the symposion (A4) to the right of centre and the sphinxes, Ai and A2, over the right and left corners respectively. The reliefs of lions with prey (A9-A13) were arranged along the flanks near the west end. For the reliefs of bulls (Α14 and Ai 5), Sartiaux favoured the first of three options: a) over the pronaos; b) terminating the scenes of animals along the flanks; or c) exchanged with the sphinxes (Ai and A2), which would then go to the pronaos. In his second proposal for the centauromachy, A8 went over the left corner, followed by A7, with A6 over the inner right space (Fig. 95). In the second plan for the western façade, Herakles and Triton (A3) remained in the centre and the symposion (A4) moved to the southwest corner. The sphinxes (Ai and A2) are eliminated from the façade but not reassigned to another position (except possibly the pronaos, with the bulls going to the flanks). Sartiaux's proposals are elegant and ingenious; they give logic to the idiosyncrasies of the design, allow the most important reliefs to take pride of place on the façades, and require a minimum number of now-lost reliefs to fill gaps in the sequence. Unfortunately, neither proposa', works, even if we discard all his premises.6 Firstly, the discovery of stylobate block Si2 proves the eastern colonnade did not follow the spacing of the pronaos columns. In most Doric instances of the double contraction and its Ionic correlate, the arrangement is predicated on the principle of aligning the cella wall 6 In any case the premises are not valid. The western corner capitals demonstrate the façade blocks projected onto the flank, at least at that end (premise 4); the spacing of mutules near the corners of the southeastern flank proves that the triglyph could be significantly off the axis of the column (premise 2); there is reason to believe that certain regulae may have been shorter than the triglyph they underlay (premise 3); and the stain marks on the soffit of the epistyle blocks and the pry mirks on the tops of the capitals indeed show that the joints of the epistyle blocks can be off-axis by more than 0.10 m. (premise 1).
APPENDIX III .56,
.83
—ι
,.48, .70 , .55 , .765
1—ι
1—ι
.575,
.83
1—ι
,.57,
1—I
.93
281
,.53,.815
,.54
.57
|
1—I
1—I
.776 , .55
1—I
.78
.56
.81
1—I
.535.675
1
1——I
56
1
Sartiaux I East
.54
|
.77
[
.56
|
-775
|
.54
.73
|
|
.56
|
.735
|
.56
|
.90
|
|
.91
.56
|
.76
|
.56
|
.83
|
.56
.79
|
|
.56
|
.64
|
.52
|
Sartiaux I West
.52
.685
.52
.75
.52
.725
.52
.852
.52
.63
.52 .675
.52
A15 •325,
,
[2.40]
.48 , .83
,.48 , .705 , .53 , .68 , .50 , .685 , .50 , .805 , .52 , .805 , .52
!—I
i—ι
J A11
1—I
1
1
JÂÏÔ
[2.41]
[2.485]
2.447
2.447
1
1
.145
2.86
I h Sartiaux Pronaos
—I
2.51
[2.58]
2.55
|.52|
1
ÂÏ2I
:
.83
.54
.695
.52
.54
|
.75
Ä9T
[2.86]
J
[2.875]
2.447
1 FIGURE
1
2.447
1
1
1 5
.74
57
L
1
1
1
JA13
[2.465]
[2.41]
2.447
2.447
Sartiaux SW Flank
0
52
Jj
c
Sartiaux NW Flank
-745
1
95. Sartiaux's first proposal for the reconstruction of the sculptured epistyle.
1 10m
.64
.48
APPENDIX III
28ο .52,
.80
.575, .80
,.56,
.84
.48,-70
,.56,
.93
,.53, .80
,.50,
.81
,535, .675 , .56 , .83 ,.56,
.84
,.52
.83
,.56
Sartiaux II East
.52,
.81 ,.56,
.82 ..56.
.71 ..56.
.72 , .56 . .902
..574.
.82
.56
.72
56
.71
.56
.76
.555,
Sartiaux II West
I FIGURE
I 0
1
1
1
1
1 5
1
1
1
1
1 10m
96. Sartiaux's second proposal for the reconstruction of the sculptured epistyle.
with the penultimate column: in Doric, the outer face of the wall with the axis of the column; in Ionic, the axis of the wall with the axis of the column. In Sartiaux's first plan, the outer face of the cella wall would be 0.15 m. inside the axis of the penultimate column. It is unlikely that an architect would adopt a complex system of intercolumniation without the principle that underlay it. Second, his solution for handling the corner of the epistyle is incorrect, at least on the western side. Third, in both his schemes, Sartiaux is obliged to restore some of the corner triglyphs as 0.5 6 m., but we know that at least three of the four were only c.0.52 m.7 Fourth, the newly discovered fragments for animal reliefs Aio and A13 demonstrate that these blocks belong to the façade rather than the flank. We turn to details of Sartiaux's first proposal for the east. The architectural information preserved on the relief of Herakles and the centaurs (A5), especially the anathyrosis on the bed surface, the remains of the left partial régula (which marks the metope as c.0.83 m.), and the position of the pry for the right metope (which indicates a
7 Sartiaux restores the frieze course as 0.04 m. longer than the plane face of the epistyle, i.e., 13.93 m · rather than 13.89 m. (by his measurements). Markings on the upper surface of the epistyle blocks, however, prove that the frieze was aligned with the plane face of the epistyle. One could subtract 0.02 m. from each end and adjust some of Iiis restored measurements to create a system with the proper frieze length and correct triglyph length, but the fundamental problems still remain.
metope 0.855 m ·) do not allow for A5 to be placed in the central position in any plan. The wider the central intercolumniation, the worse off-axis it would be to the left. The spacing of the mutules over the southeast intercolumniation requires both metopes to be at least 0.80 m. and the triglyph to be 0.56 m., as opposed to Sartiaux's arrangement of 0.83 m., 0.48 m., and 0.70 m. At the northeast corner, the geison marks the first metope as roughly 0.80 m.; 0.64 m. is impossible.8 Both corner triglyphs are 0.52 m., not 0.56 m. On the west, Sartiaux's first proposal has certain attractions, for there are geison blocks (HG9/HG10) with a metope-space c.0.90 m. long that could accommodate the Triton relief (A3). The arrangement works with the anathyrosis and stain marks on the bed surfaces of the reliefs. There are two fundamental problems, however. Placing the sphinxes (Ai) next to the symposion (A4) creates a régula 0.607 m · long, and in any case the southwest corner block of the façade must complete the length of the frieze. In his second proposal, Sartiaux aligns the axis of the penultimate column of the façade with the outer face of the cella wall, satisfying at least that aspect of Doric design. On the east, however, the reconstructed geison blocks show that the southeast corner metope was 8 The combined length of via and mutule on the northwest corner block is 0.606 m. Adding a second via of between 0.16-0.22 m. would produce a metopespace of 0.766-0.826 m.
APPENDIX c.0.840 m., not 0.765 m.; the centaurs (A8/48) cannot fit there. Again for the west, the symposion (A4) cannot surmount the southwest corner, but perhaps most problematic is the fact that the scheme can only accommodate two reliefs, leaving unaccounted both sphinx reliefs (Αι, A2). Itier's reconstruction Sartiaux published another reconstruction of the façades proposed by P. J . Itier, based on the architectural principle of graduated intercolumniations and the design principle that the closed compositions of bulls and sphinxes framed the narrative scenes on each façade.9 On 9
Sartiaux 1915, pp. 115-17, figs. 50-3.
III
283
the east, sphinxes flank three blocks of centaurs, with A5 in the centre. On the west, the bulls flank the symposion and Triton reliefs. Sartiaux remarks on the degree to which this scheme causes the frieze to depart from the alignment of the colonnade, even with graduated intercolumniations, but acknowledges that lack of alignment may have been a real possibility (as we know it was for the southeast flank). More fundamental are the problems with the construction of the corners, with the placement of the fourth relief of centaurs {Ay), and with the assignment of the large-scale animal reliefs A i o and A13.
A P P E N D I X IV
Catalogue of Other Important Architectural Material from the Akropolis Several blocks scattered on the surface of the akropolis have features in common with material from the temple but do not appear to belong to the monument as we know it. Collectively, this material attests to significant additional building activity on the akropolis, for which we also have the rock-cut foundations north of the temple. Only blocks of unusual form or specific feature are included here. Many more remain, half buried and scattered down the slopes. Most of the blocks included here were found to the east of the temple, raising the possibility that at least some belong to a monumental altar. Although no remains of a foundation for an altar are visible today, the area has never been fully excavated and the Byzantine structure east of the temple may well rest on or have obliterated much of the original structure. The scale of the krepis blocks Βι, Β2, and possibly Β13, suggests a monumental structure, perhaps even with steps in the Ionian fashion.1 If so, we may need to rethink the function of the so-called anta capital B23, which could possibly form a crown or wall-base moulding. Several blocks, including B3, B4, B5, Β6, Bi8, and B21, have the same distinctive ornamental rustication found on the temple krepis and some of the wall blocks. They, too, were found chiefly to the east of the temple. Their technical features and other tooling match the blocks from the temple, but most of them cannot fit on it. The through blocks B3, B5, and B21 are similar in height and in clamping; they probably belong to the same course of the same monument. The upright block B4 may belong with this group, but it possibly could be a jamb from the temple. Fragmentary block Β18, a through block with linear rustication, could belong with this group, but it may also have a place on the temple. Several blocks included here ( B u , B15, B16, B17, B19, B22, and B29) may belong to the temple as entablature backers set behind the frieze or the upper part of the epistyle. We do not have secure evidence for the handling of that zone. It is possible that some of this material could be part of the temple wall, but none of these blocks is exactly like the material that clearly belongs to the wall. The blocks could also belong to an altar.
1 The size of such a structure could hardly equal the great monuments i.e. the Rhoikos Altar at Samos, the Altar of Poseidon at Monodendri, the Altar of Apollo at Cyrene, or that proposed for the Kroisos Temple at Sardis, but it could be similar in scale to, e.g., the Altar of Aphrodite at Naucratis (c.3.8om. χ 3.35m.), the Altar of Hera at Olympia (5.90m. χ 3.80m.), the Altar of Ge at Olympia (5.40m. χ . 5.40m.), the Altar of the Chians at Delphi (8.5m. χ 2.2m.), the stepped Altar at Delos (3.02m. χ 3.395m.), or the later stepped Altar of Zeus Agoraios in the Athenian Agora (8.76m. χ 5.43m.). For monumental stepped altars, Yavis 1949; Hoffmann 1953; Sahin 1972; Ohnesorg 2005b.
At least one block (B20) belonged to the original temple and was later reçut, but not to become part of the tympanon. Blocks B8 and Bio may be reworked as well. Other blocks with interesting features include a possible window frame (B9), door jamb (B4), two long, thin blocks that could be a thranos or wall crown (B12, B27), a block with lewis cutting (B14), and two stele bases (B25, B26). Βι
Corner krepis block (Fig. 97). Find-spot: East of the temple, south of the Byzantine structure in quadrant O/12. Dimensions: H: 0.285 m · L: 2465 m. W: 0.846 m.
One corner broken. The block is finely worked on the top surface and two adjacent vertical faces. The bed surface has anathyrosis; the inner long face is roughly worked. The one lateral joint (now worn) has a corner cut out, and while the cutting is not worked to a fine finish, it appears to be more than a break. The block has similar characteristics to blocks of the first step from the temple (i.e., height of 0.285 m-> projecting boss on the face, and a pry mark on the lateral joint face ), but it does not fit the one remaining position in that course, which is no longer than 1.765 m. and no wider than 0.79 m. The block is too narrow to belong to the stylobate of the temple and too wide to be a through block from the cella wall. It must belong to another substantial structure that once stood east of the temple. The top surface has two large, shallow sockets, set c.1.17 m. apart on centres, whose function is not immediately apparent. The two pry marks on the top surface, indicate that a long narrow blocks, c.1.525 m. rested on top of this block. B2
Corner krepis block (Fig. 98). Find-spot: East of the temple, south of the Byzantine structure in quadrant O/12. Dimensions: H: 0.42/0.38 m. L: 1.46 m. W: 1.004/0.76 m.
Complete. Corner through block with lifting boss on longer face; short end has pry hold cut in bed. The lateral joint face has anathyrosis and two pry marks cut near the top of the face; the back face has been cut on a broken diagonal to the main face. The bed surface is worked roughly at an angle, so that the block tapers from one side to the other, suggesting that it was bedded on irregular ground (compare to a similar treatment of B 3 ). The upper surface is worked to an even finish, but is not as smooth as the finished surfaces; it has no features. The system of pry marks and the lifting boss match features found on the temple, but this block does not belong. B3
Corner through block with ornamental rustication (Fig. 99). Find-spot: East of the temple, P/12; south of the Byzantine structure in quadrant O/12.
A P P E N D I X III Dimensions: H: c.o.347 _ 0 4 0 5 1.075 m.
m·
L: 1.021/1.055 m. W: 0.99/
Complete. Two of the vertical faces are decorated with ornamental rustication formed by a pattern of raised ridges and rough depressions. The other two sides have been dressed down to join with blocks c.0.48 m. and 0.705 m. thick. On side A, the adjacent block is fastened by a hook clamp, but near side Β there is only the round socket for a dowel to secure the superimposed course. The upper surface of B3 is smoothly dressed to a depth of c.0.45 m. by c.0.70 m. to carry the next course. The markings on the block suggest a toichobate with orthostates, but not for the temple. The height and technical treatment of the block is close to Β 5 and B21; all probably belong to the same course of the same monument. B4
Large ashlar block with ornamental rustication; jamb? (Fig. 100). Find-spot: North of the temple near the windmill, Μ/11. D i m e n s i o n s : 1.945 m. χ 0.626 m. χ 0.314 m.
Complete. One of the large faces has ornamental rustication; the opposite side is roughly finished and at one end is dressed down twice. The long narrow sides are very smoothly worked. One bears an irregular dowel cutting, the other side is rough along one edge. The consistency of the surface suggests that it may have been partly worked to this finish. One small side has four pry marks cut parallel to the large face. The function of the block is unclear. The ornamental rustication must decorate a vertical face, and the fine treatment of the long narrow sides suggests that they, too, were exposed. The block is approximately the same thickness as the under-threshold. Possibly it formed part of a jamb. In itself, it is not tall enough to complete the door jamb. Β5
Ashlar through block with ornamental rustication (Fig. 99). Find-spot: East of the temple, P/12; south of the Byzantine building in quadrant 0/12. D i m e n s i o n s : H : 0.378 m. L: 0.981 m. W : 0.71/0.68 m.
Complete. A through block, but too wide for the cella wall of the temple. The face was dressed with linear ornamental rustication. The bed surface and back face are roughly worked. Each lateral joint face has anathyrosis and was attached to the adjacent block with a hook clamp. A pry mark on one of the short vertical faces indicates that the block was set into position by the same setting method used for the first step course of the temple. The upper surface has been smoothly dressed and bears several sets of pry marks which indicate that the blocks of the next course were shifted in at least two directions. The left side of Β 5 may join the right side of B21. The approximate size of the blocks in the next course, as indicated by the pry marks, is c.0.45 m. The height of the block is close to Β3 and B21; all probably belong to the same course of the same monument. B6
Small fragment with ornamental rustication. Find-spot: Southeast of the temple, O/11. D i m e n s i o n s : > 0.41 m. χ >0.405 m. W : >0.25 m.
Broken on all sides. The fragment has a face dressed to two surfaces: ornamental rustication, with a band (presumably above) dressed down 0.008m. to a smooth surface. B7
Ashlar block. Find-spot: East of the temple. Dimensions: H: 0.37 m. L: 0.69 m. W: 0.82 m.
Complete. A through block with three pry marks on the upper surface, suggesting a toichobate surmounted by orthostates. The position of the pry marks (i.e., perpendicular to the length) identify the length of the block as 0.69 m. The width of the block, 0.82 m., makes it too wide for
285
the wall of the temple, and it does not belong to the corner of the intersection of the door wall. Compare height to blocks Β 5 and B21. B8
Reworked block? (Fig. 101). Find-spot: East of temple, O-P/12. Dimensions: 0.53 m. x (o .29 m. on one side, 0.348 m. on the other) χ > 0.88 m.
Broken at both ends. The narrow sides of the block are both smoothly worked, and each bears a rectangular cutting similar in size and position to the lifting sockets on the tympanon blocks. One socket, however, cuts through the side of the block and could not, in its current position, have been very useful. One surface, presumably the back, is dressed to two different levels, but both are roughly worked. On the dresseddown surface, a shallow socket ending in the break may be a vestige from the original function of the block. The opposite face has no features; its surface is roughly worked. B9 Ashlar block; part of a window sill or jamb? (Fig. 101). Find-spot: Partly buried west of temple; M/8. D i m e n s i o n s : 0.867 m. χ 0.514 m. χ 0.24 m.
Complete. The main face is very smoothly worked; it bears two dowel holes, c.o.03 m. square, one of which preserves the lead casing. Both of the long sides are cut at slightly less than a 900 angle to this main face; one is very smoothly worked and the other is rough. One short end clearly has anathyrosis; the other is rough, with no preserved evidence of anathyrosis. The back face is worked to two different surfaces, both rough, and bears two small dowel holes, one rounded, one more rectangular, and both c.o.02 m. in greatest dimension. The dowel holes in the main face are centred longitudinally and look like dowels for a metal grill. The block could belong to a window jamb or sill. If it belonged to the temple, it would have to be completed by an additional narrow block, which seems unlikely. Bio
Thin block with bevelled edge; possibly reçut? Find-spot: Lying on the temple, N/10. D i m e n s i o n s : 0.515 χ 0.15 χ >0.52 m.
Broken on both sides. The preserved dimensions are consistent with the paving stones, but there are cuttings on what would be the top and bed surfaces. One face has the remains of a shallow dowel hole; the other face has a very finely worked bevelled portion, and a less wellworked horizontal area, but the rest of this surface has a slightly raised, undressed surface. The bevelled edge could be related to the tympanon, but the slope of 15.60 is too steep. B11
Ashlar block; entablature backer? Find-spot: East of temple. D i m e n s i o n s : H : 0.273 m. L: >1.09 m. W: 0.488 m .
Broken at one end. The top and bed surfaces have anathyrosis. One pry cutting on top surface. The preserved short end is cut at an angle and has a shift-hole cut in the bed similar to those found on blocks from the temple. One vertical face is very smoothly worked, while the other remains quarry-dressed, with long, linear groves left by the pick. The block has the dimensions and workmanship to belong to the temple as the third backing course for the entablature (i.e., behind the lower part of the triglyph). Compare to Β15. Β12
Ashlar block. Find-spot: South of temple. D i m e n s i o n s : 0.297 m. x 1.356 m. χ 0.182 m.
Complete. The block is very thin for its length, but not wide enough to be a paving stone. Possibly thranos or epikranitis? Compare to block B27.
28ο B13
A P P E N D I X III Fragment of a large through block; krepis? Find-spot: East of temple, O/14. Dimensions: H: 0.35 m. L: >1.23 m. W: >1.13 m.
Broken to side and back. Part of the front and the left joint faces survive. The fragment originally must have belonged to a large block. Compare height to blocks Β3 and B5. Β14
Block with lewis cutting (Fig. 101). Find-spot: West of the temple, M-N/6. Dimensions: H: 0.38 m. L: 1.05 m. bottom W: 0.388 m. top W: 0.418 m.
Complete. Trapezoidal-shaped block with smooth surfaces on all sides but the top, which is rough and retains the quarry marks of the pick and also the splitting wedges. The top surface has a lewis cutting. No other block from the temple or found on the akropolis has a lewis cutting, although there are examples in the lower city; see Clark, Bacon, and Koldewey 1902-21, p. 57 (bouleuterion); p. 63, fig. 9 (west agora gateway); p. 91, fig. 2, p. 95 ('bazaar'); p. 275 (column tomb no. XXI). The smooth surfaces are not as finely worked as material from the temple. The block does not belong to the temple, and its function is not readily apparent. B15
Ashlar block; entablature backer? Find-spot: North of the temple in the windmill, M/10-11. Dimensions: H: 0.28 m. L: >1.28 m. W: 0.495 m ·
Broken at one end. Top surface has anathyrosis and five pry marks clustered in two groups, c.0.50 m. apart. The bed surface and one vertical face are smoothly worked; the other vertical face is rough and broken. A cutting c.0.14 m. wide encircling the block was probably made when the block served in the windmill. The block has the dimensions and workmanship to belong to the temple as the third backing course for the entablature (i.e., behind the lower part of the triglyph). Compare with B11. The numerous pry marks suggest it supported a course of much smaller blocks. Β16
Ashlar block; entablature backer? (Fig. 100). Find-spot: East of the temple, P/13. Dimensions: H: 0.461 m. L: 1.292 m. W: 0.355
m-
Complete. Surfaces smooth but not to the finest finish. Two pry marks on top surface. The dimensions would suit an entablature backer, but the finish is not to the same level as other blocks assigned to this position. B17
Ashlar block. Find-spot: East of temple, P/13. Dimensions: H: 0.586 m. L: 1.647 m. W: c.0.36 m.
Complete. Front face bears a very fine finish; bottom surface and sides have anathyrosis. Top face bears three pry marks at irregular intervals (0.79 m. and 0.39 m. apart), as well as a very small hole near one end, possibly for a clamp. The back surface is extremely rough and irregular. Given the fine finish of the face, this block could belong to a backing course of the entablature, but it is taller than the blocks currently assigned to those courses. B18
Ashlar through block with ornamental rustication (Fig. 99). Find-spot: East of temple. Dimensions: H: 0.285 m - L ; >1.215 m · W: 0498 m.
Broken at both ends. Linear rustication pattern on vertical face. Back face is rough and possibly broken. Bed surface has anathyrosis. In current condition, the block is too narrow to belong to the wall of the temple. Compare to blocks B3-B5, although it is neither as tall nor as wide. B19
Ashlar block; entablature backer? Find-spot: North of temple in the windmill. Dimensions: H: 0.441 m. L: 1.315 m. W: 0.365 m.
Complete. The ends, bed, and top surface have anathyrosis. Three pries on the top surface. A cutting c.0.12 m. wide encircling the block was probably made when the block was used in the windmill. The block has the dimensions and workmanship to belong to the temple as the top backing course for the entablature, but the assignment is not certain. B20
Reçut geison block (Fig. 98). Find-spot: South of SW corner of the temple; O/8. Dimensions: H: 0.348 m. L: 0.990 m. W: 0.852 m.
Complete, although severely worn along one edge. Geison block from the original construction of the temple, re-cut for uncertain secondary purpose. The block bears vestigial traces of the original mutules, lifting sockets, and clamp cuttings. To judge from the shallowness of the lifting sockets, the position of the clamp holes and the treatment of the lateral faces, both original lateral faces have been trimmed (the left by c.o.ii m., and the right by c.0.07 m.). The size and spacing of the mutules suggests that the block originally belonged to one of the façades. Neither original mutule (even compensating for the amount that has been trimmed) equals a full triglyph-mutule, which suggests that the block was divided through the triglyph-mutule, as the original southern geison blocks demonstrate. However, the block does not cover an entire half-intercolumniation. Instead, it ends with the metope-mutule. The hybrid manner of division as well as the wide metope-space indicated (c.0.88 m.) suggests that the block belonged near one of the corners. The pry marks set perpendicular to the original geison face are in about the same position as the pries on the replacement horizontal geison used to shift the tympanon into position. The two pry marks set parallel to the face are c.0.61-0.63 m. from what would have been the face of original corona. There are no pry marks in this position on the replacement horizontal geison. These pry marks could relate to the later use of the block. Alternatively, they were used to set a thin tympanon block (similar to Τρίο) from the back. To reuse the block, masons trimmed off the corona, cut down the bed and top surface, and trimmed both sides. B21
Ashlar through block with ornamental rustication (Fig. 99). Find-spot: East of temple, M/13. Dimensions: H: 0.39 m. L: 0.945 m - W: 0.582 m.
Complete. Similar in treatment and technique to blocks from the temple, but too narrow to belong to the wall of the temple. The vertical face bears incised, linear rustication pattern similar to that on block Β5, which may join on the right. The back and bed surfaces are roughly worked. The smooth top surface has clamp cuttings at both ends to secure the adjacent lateral blocks. Blocks B3, Β5, and B21 probably belong to the same course of the same monument. B22
Ashlar block. Frieze backer? (Fig. 100). Find-spot: Q/9-10 (partially buried). Dimensions: H: 0.355 m · L ; 1-192 m. W: > 0.45 m.
Complete. Block with two pries cut in the top surface, c.0.67 m. apart. B23
Block with kyma reversa moulding; identified as an anta capital by the original excavators (PI. 61; Fig. 49). Find-spot: Near northeast corner of temple, M/11. Dimensions: H: 0.26 m.
Corner fragment preserving splayed fascia and cyma reversa moulding, identified by Clarke as the anta capital of the temple. As preserved there are no features on the top or bed surfaces. The block does not necessarily belong to the temple. Other possible functions include wall base or crown, or possible corner of a raking sima. For discussion, see Chapter 4, 'Description and Reconstruction of the Original Building', pp. 91-2.
A P P E N D I X III B24
B27
Fragment of hawksbeak moulding (Fig. 53). Find-spot: West of temple. Dimensions: >0.075 m - x >0-087 m · x >0-082 m.
B28
Ashlar block. Find-spot: Inside Byzantine structure northwest of the temple, K/ 7 . Dimensions: 0.33 m. χ 0.41 m. χ >0.785 m.
Stele base. Find-spot: Southeast of temple, O/12. Dimensions: H: 0.32 m. L: 0.804 m. W: 0.505m.
Broken at one end. Remains of a channel c.0.06 m. wide and 0.043 deep runs along one face.
Complete. Block supported a ste'e set in a socket c.0.60 m. long, 0.17 m. wide, and 0.125 m · deep, open on one side. Possibly the base was completed by a second block, or it was set against another structure that helped to secure the stele. B26
Ashlar block. Find-spot: West of temple in Byzantine wall. Dimensions: 0.30 m. x 1.35 m. χ 0.17 m.
Complete. The block is very thin for its length, but not wide enough to be a paving stone. Possibly thranos or epikranitis? Compare to Β12.
Small section of crowning hawksbeak carved in tuff, with the remains of a nail hole in the break. Presumably the piece served as a patch and was held in place by the nail. The upper section of the hawksbeak profile is especially well preserved. The flat top surface indicates the piece belongs to the horizontal or raking geison. B25
287
B29
Ashlar block. Find-spot: South of temple, S/io. Dimensions: H: 0.427 m. L: 0.891 m. W : 0.363 m.
Complete. The block has a shift-hole on its bed surface like those found on the temple. Possibly an entablature backer or wall block.
Stele base. Find-spot: Byzantine wall south of the temple, O/io Dimensions: H: ? L: 0.70 m. W: 0.33 m.
B30
Ashlar block. Find-spot: Southeast of the temple, Q/14. Dimensions: 0.505 m. χ 1.314 m. χ 0.333 m · Complete. Possibly an entablature backer or wall block.
Inbedded in Byzantine wall. The stele was set in a cutting 0.45 m. long by 0.17 m. wide. B1
.34
-+-.17-
1—.16-4-
r
r1
?r J 0
.846
ίν
Τ
.245
1 i l -I
.675-
J J
2.465
Η—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—I—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—I—I .5 1 1.5 2 FIGURE 97. Block B i , found east of the temple.
I 1—ι—ι—Η—ι 2.5 3m
ύ
>
il
'-s)
28ο
A P P E N D I X III
IlHllliill
0
ι—ι—ι—ι—+—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—I—I—I—I—I—I—I
.5
1
1.5
2
1
2.5
1—1—I—ι
1
3m
FIGURE 98. Block B2 (above), found east of the temple. B20 (below), originally belonging to the geison but reçut for a different purpose.
APPENDIX
IV
2 .405-
-Τ—τ-·
( \
α
f
Γ
ì
} )
! 1
ν
'>
' - -
. Λ
imi
-
ν',.νν,'ΛΠ Pi V i V 1 · I
. ' . ι' > , ι ι V
: , IJ I I I H I V ) „•'
ft
ç
>*
.285
.369 X · '·
B18
!
X j J v j
B21
B5 - W
.680
Η
h
t
-\—ι—ι—t—h
H—I
1—I
1.5
1—h
H—I—I—I—I—I
2.5
FIGURE 99. Rusticated blocks B3, Β18, B U , Β 5, found east of the temple.
3m
APPENDIX
290
IV
.330
ψ.
'·
,
'
' ' "'ν
- ·
1: 1.
• . '
· ;
-
·•"
• · '
"r
... ' V.
».
' ;
Λ
.622
•
· Ι · 1 ' • Ίt •. I
B4
.·
.'
-
• X '
r.·
. •
•
;
.626
t.
· ·
.26
r
u
f—,.
^ ··—---. — _
-1.292-
.461
B22
B16
m—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι
0
.5
1
1.5
2
2.5
3m
FIGURE 100. Block Β4 (above), possibly a door jamb. Block B22 (lower left) and block Β i6 (lower right), found east of the temple
A P P E N D I X III
291
.418
wm—I—ι—ι—ι—ι—ι—I—ι
0
.5
1
1
1
1
1
1
1
1
1.5
1
1
1
.388
1
1
2
1—I
1—I—I
2.5
1
1
1
1—I
3m
FIGURE IOI. Block B8 (above), possibly reworked. Block B9 (middle), part of a window frame? Block Β14 (below) with lewis cutting, found on the akropolis but not belonging to the temple.
WORKS CITED Adam, S. 1966. The Technique of Greek Sculpture, Oxford. Adkins, A . W. H. 1963. ' "Friendship" and "Self-Sufficiency" in Homer and Aristotle', Classical Quarterly ns. 13, pp. 30-45. Ahlberg-Cornell, G. 1984. Herakles and the Sea-Monster in Attic Black-Figure Vase Painting, Swedish Institute in Athens, series 4, vol. 33, Stockholm. . 1992. Myth and Epos in Early Greek Art; Representation
and
Interpretation, Jonsered.
Arapogianni, X. 2002. 'The Doric Temple of Athena at Prasidaki', in Excavating Classical Culture, ed. M. Stamatopoulou and M. Yeroulanou, Oxford, pp. 225-8. Auberson, P. 1968. Eretria; fouilles et recherches, I, Temple Daphnéphoros; architecture, Bern.
d'Apollon
Audiat, J. 1933. FdD II.6. Le Trésor des Athéniens, Paris.
Akerström, A. 1966. Die architektonischen Terrakotten Swedish Institute in Athens, series 4, vol. i r , Lund.
Kleinasiens,
. 1978. 'The Figured Architectural Terracotta Frieze: Its Penetration and Transformation in the East and in the West in the Archaic Period', in The Proceedings of the Xth International Congress of Classical Archaeology, Ankara-Izmir 1973, Ankara, vol. 1, pp. 319-27. . 1981. 'Etruscan tomb painting, an art of many faces', OpRom 13» PP· 7-34-
Akurgal, E. 1961. Die Kunst Anatoliens, Berlin. . 1962. 'The early period and the golden age of Ionia', A]A 66, pp. 369-79. . 1965. 'Zwei archaische Bildwerke aus Kyzikos', AntK 8, pp. 99-103. . 1976. 'Fragments de figurines en terre cuite de style phrygien récent', RA, pp. 195-204. . 1983. Alt-Smyrna, vol. I, Ankara. Akurgal, M. 2007. 'Hellenic Architecture in Smyrna, 650-546 B.C.', in Frühes Ionien; Eine Bestandsaufnahme. Panionion-Symposion Gûzelçamli, 26. September-i. Oktober 1999, ed. J. Cobet, V. von Graeve, W.-D. Niemeier, and Κ. Zimmermann, Mainz, pp. 125-36. Allen, S. H. 2002. ' "Americans in the East": Francis Henry Bacon, Joseph Thacher Clarke, and the AIA's Investigations at Assos', in Excavating our Past. Perspectives on the History of the Archaeological Institute of America, ed. S. H. Allen, Boston, pp. 63-92. Altekamp, S. 1991. Zu griechischer Architekturornamentik im sechsten und fünften Jahrhundert v. Chr.: exemplarische archäologische Auswertung der nicht-dorischen Blattornamentik. Europäische Hochschulschriften, vol. 37, Mainz. Amandry, P. 1952. 'Observations sur les monuments de l'Héraion d'Argos', Hesperia 21, pp. 222-74. . 1953. FdD II.8. La Colonne
des naxiens et le Portique
athéniens, Paris. . 1977. 'Statue de taureau en argent', Etudes delphiques.
des
Bakir, T. 1974. Der Kolonettenkrater 625 und 550 v. Chr., Würzburg. Bammer, A. Cologne.
1985. Architektur
Keramikforschun-
in Korinth und Attika
und
Gesellschaft
zwischen
in der
Antike,
Bancroft, S. 1979. 'Problems concerning the Archaic Acropolis at Athens' (diss. Princeton). Bankel, H. 1991. 'Ein griechischer Dachstuhl aus H o l z und Stein', in Bautechnik der Antike. Diskussionen zur archäologischen Bauforschung 5, ed. A. Hoffmann, E.-L. Schwandner, W. Hoepfner, and G. Brands, Mainz, pp. 14-16. . 1993. Der spätarchaische Tempel der Aphaia auf Aegina. mäler antiker Architektur 19, Berlin.
Denk-
. 2004. 'Farbmodelle des spätarchaischen Aphaia-Tempels von Agina', in Bunte Götter. Die Farbigkeit antiker Skulptur, Munich, pp. 70-83. Banti, L. 1966. 'Eracle e Pholos in Etruria', StEtr 34, pp. 371-9. Barletta, Β. 1983. Ionic Influence in Archaic Sicily: The Monumental Art, Gothenburg. . 1990. ' A n "Ionian Sea" Style in Archaic Doric Architecture', AJA 94, pp. 45-72. . 2000. 'Ionic Influence in Western Greek Architecture: Towards a Definition and Explanation', in Die Ägäis und das westliche Mittelmeer; Beziehungen und Wechselwirkungen 8. bis y Jh. v. Chr. Akten des Symposions, Wien, 24. bis 2j März 1999, ed. F. Krinzinger, Vienna, pp. 203-16. .
2001.
The
Origins
of
the
Greek
Architectural
Orders,
Cambridge. . 2005. 'The Architecture
and Architects of
Parthenon', in The Parthenon from Antiquity J. Neils, N e w York.
the
Classical
to the Present, ed.
Barnett, R. D. 1957. Ά Syrian Silver Vase', Syria 34, pp. 243-8.
105,
2nd edn, London. Barr, A . 1996. 'Horse and rider plaques at Ilion. A preliminary study of the hellenistic hero cult in Asia Minor', Studia Troica 6, pp. 133—57.
. 197 5. A Catalogue of the Nimrud Ivories in the British Museum,
delphique,
1970-1981',
BCH
. 1984. 'Notes de topographie et d'architecture delphiques', BCH 108, pp. 177-98. A m y x , D. 1961. 'The Medallion Painter', AJA 65, pp. 1-15. Anderson, J. Κ. 1961. Ancient Greek Horsemanship, Andrén, A . 1940. Architectural Temples, Leipzig.
Aupert, P. 1979. FdD II.14. Le Stade, Paris. Bakir, G. 1981. Sophilos. Ein Beitrag zu seinem Stil, gen IV, Mainz.
BCH
Supplément IV, Paris, pp. 272-93. . 1981. 'Chronique pp.673-769.
Andronicos, M. 1984. Vergina: The Royal Tombs and the Ancient City, Athens.
Berkeley.
Terracottas from
Etrusco-Italic
Barrett A . and M. Vickers. 1978. 'The Oxford Brygos C u p Reconsidered,' JHS 98, pp. 17-24. Barringer, J. M. 1995. Divine Escorts; Nereids in Archaic and Classical Greek Art, Ann Arbor. . 2001. The Hunt in Ancient Greece, Baltimore.
294
WORKS
Barringer, J. M. 2004. 'Skythian Hunters on Attic Vases', in Greek Vases: Images, Contexts, and Controversies, ed. C. Marconi, Columbia Studies in the Classical Tradition, vol. 25, Leiden. . 2005. 'The Temple of Zeus at Olympia; heroes and Athletes', Hesperia 74, pp. 211-41. . 2008. Art, Myth, and Ritual in Classical Greece, N e w York. Ba§aran, S. 2000. 'Aeolische Kapitelle aus Ainos (Enez)', IstMitt 50, pp. 157-70. Baughan E. 2006. 'The Image of the Reclining Banqueter in the Archaic Sculpture of Ionia', AIA Abstracts, Montreal, http://www. archaeological.org/webinfo.php ?page= 10248&searchtype=abstract& ytable=20o6&sessionid=2H&paperid=696 (accessed 10 December 2010). Baur, P. V. C. 1912. Centaurs in Ancient Art, Berlin. Bayne, N. 2000. The Grey Wares of North-West Anatolia, AMS 37, Bonn. Beazley, J. D. 1950. 'Some Inscriptions on Vases: V', AJA 54, pp. 310-22. . 1986. The Development of Attic Black-Figure, rev. edn, Berkeley. Benndorf. Ο. 1873. Die Metopen von Selinunt, Berlin. Benson, J. 1967. 'The Central Group of the Corfu Pediment', in Gestalt und Geschichte; Festschrift Karl Schefold zu seinem 60. Geburtstag am 26. Januar 1965, AntK Beiheft 4, ed. M. Rohde-Liegle, H. A. Cahn and H. C. Ackermann, Bern, pp. 48-60. . 1989. Earlier Corinthian Workshops, Allard Pierson series, Scripta Minora 1, Amsterdam. . 1995. 'Human Figures and Narrative in Later Protocorinthian Vase Painting', Hesperia 64, pp. 163-77. Bérard, C., C. Bron, J.-L. Durand, F. Frontisi-Ducroux, F. Lissarrague, A . Schnapp, and J.-P. Vernant. 1989. A City of Images: Iconography and Society in Ancient Greece, trans. Deborah Lyons, Princeton. Bergquist, Β. 1990· 'Sympotic Space', in Sympotica; A Symposium on the Symposion, ed. Ο . Murray, Oxford, pp. 37-65. Bernabò Brea, L. 1949-51. 'L'Athenaion di Gela e le sue terrecotte architettoniche', ASAtene ns. 11-13, pp. 12-19. . 1986. Il tempio di Afrodite di Akrai, Cahiers du Centre Jean Bérard 10, Naples. Bessac, J.-C. 1986. L'outillage traditionnel du tailleur de pierre de l'Antiquité à nos jours, Paris. . 1988. 'Problems of identification and interpretation of tool marks on ancient marbles and decorative stones', in Herz and Waelkins 1988, pp. 41-53. Betancourt, P. P. 1977. The Aeolic Style in Architecture, Princeton. Bevan, E. 1986. Representations of Animals in Sanctuaries of Artemis and Other Olympian Deities, Oxford. Beyer, I. 1974. 'Die Reliefgiebel des alten Athena-Tempels der Akropolis', AA, pp. 639-51. . 1976. Die Tempel von Dreros und Prinias A und die Chronologie der kretischen Kunst des 8. und 7. Jhs. V. Chr., Freiburg. . 1977. 'Die Datierung der grossen Reliefgiebel des alten Athenatempels der Akropolis', AA, pp. 44-74. Bischop. D. 2006. 'Gefässe aus Metall', Ausgrabungen in .Assos 1993, AMS 57, pp. 215-26. Blake, M. 1930. 'The Pavements of the Roman Buildings of the Republic and Early Empire', Memoirs of the American Academy in Rome 8, pp. 7-159.
CITED Blatt, FI., R. Tracy, and B. Owens. 2006. Petrology: Igneous, Sedimentary and Metamorphic, 3rd edn, N e w York. Blatter, R. 1983. 'Adrastos als Friedensstifter', AA, pp. 17-22. Blech, M. 1982. Studien zum Kranz bei den Griechen, Berlin. Biegen, C . W., J. L. Caskey, M. Rawson, and J. Sperling. 1950. Troy I, General Introduction: The First and Second Settlements, Princeton. Blome, P. 1982, Die figürliche Bildwelt Kretas in der geometrischen und früh archaisch en Periode, Mainz. Blümel, C. 1963. Die archaisch griechischen Skulpturen der Staatlichen Museen zu Berlin, Berlin. Boardman, J. 1959. 'Chian and Early Ionic Architecture', Antiquaries Journal 39, pp.170-218. . 1967. Chios: Greek Emporio. BSA Supplementary Papers 6, London. . 1968. Archaic Greek Gems, London. . 1970. Greek Gems and Finger Rings, London. . 1972. 'Herakles, Peisistratos and Sons', RA, pp. 57-72. . 1974. Attic Black Figure Vases: A Handbook, London. . 1975. Athenian Red Figure Vases, the Archaic Period: A Handbook, London. . 1975b. 'Herakles, Peisistratos and Eleusis', JHS 95, pp. 1-12. . 1976a. Ά Curious Eye Cup', A A , pp. 281-90. . 1976b. 'The Kleophrades Painter at Troy', AntK 19, pp. 3-18. . 1978. Greek Sculpture of the Archaic Period, London. . 1979a. 'The Karchesion of Herakles', JHS 99, pp. 149-51. . 1979b. Ά Symposium in Aberdeen', in Studies in honour of Arthur Dale Trendall, Sydney, pp. 3 5-7. . 1981. 'No, N o , Nausicaa \ Journal of the Walters Art Gallery 39, p. 38. . 1984. 'Signa tabulae priscae artis', JHS 104, pp. 161-3. . 1985. Greek Sculpture. The Classical Period, London. . 1985b. Rev. of F. Brommer, Odysseus. Die Taten und Leiden des Helden in antiker kunst und Literatur, in Classical Review ns. 35, p. 208 . 1989. 'Herakles at Sea', in Festschrift für Nikolaus Himmelmann, ed. H.-U. Cain, Η. Gabelmann, and D. Salzmann, Mainz, pp. 191-5. . 1990a. 'Symposion Furniture', in Sympotica; A Symposium on the Symposion, ed. O. Murray, Oxford, pp. 122-31. . 1990b. 'The Greek Art of Narrative', in Eumousia; Ceramic and Iconographie Studies in honour of Alexander Cambitoglou, ed. J.-P. Descoeudres, Sydney, pp. 57-62. . 1998. Early Greek Vase Painting, London. . 2000. Persia and the West: An Archaeological Investigation of the Genesis of Achaemenid Art, London. Boersma, J. S. 1970. Athenian Building Policy from 56 i/o to 405/4 BC, Groningen. Bohn, R. and C. Schuchhardt. 1889. Altertümer von Aegae, Berlin. Bol, P. 1978. Grossplastik aus Bronze in Olympia. OlForsch IX, Berlin. . 1989. Argivische Schilde. OlForsch XVII, Berlin. Börner, F. 1974. 'Der Kampf der Stiere', Gymnasium 81, pp. 503-13. Bond, G. 1981. Euripides: Herakles; with introduction and commentary, Oxford. Bonfante, L. 1975. Etruscan Dress, Baltimore. Bookidis, N . 1967. Ά Study of the Use and Geogi'aphic Distribution of Architectural Sculpture in the Archaic Period' (diss. Bryn Mawr College).
319 W O R K S . 1990. 'Ritual Dining in the Sanctuary of Demeter and Kore at Corinth: Some Questions', in Sympotica; A Symposium on the Symposion, ed. Ο . Murray, Oxford, pp. 86-94. Bookidis, N . and R. Stroud. 1997. Corinth 18.3. The Sanctuary of Demeter and Kore: Topography and Architecture, Princeton. Borchhardt, J. and E. Bleibtreu. 2008. 'Wildschweinjagd zwischen Ost und West', in Vom Euphrat bis zum Bosporus. Kleinasien in der Antike. Festschrift für Elmar Schwertheim zum 6y Geburtstag, ed. E. Winter et al., AMS 65, Bonn, pp. 61-101. Borrel, B. and D. Rittig. 1998. OlForsch X X V I . Orientalische griechische Bronzereleifs aus Olympia. Der Fundkomplex Brunnen 77, Berlin.
und aus
Brouskari, M. S. 1974. The Acropolis Museum: A Descriptive logue, Athens.
Cata-
Brown, W. L. i960. Etruscan Lion, Oxford. Buchholz, H . - G . 1993. 'Kämpfende Stiere', in Aspects of Art and Iconography: Anatolia and Its Neighbors. Studies in Honour of Nimet Özgüc, ed. M. J. Mellink, E. Porada, and T. Ö z g ü c , Ankara, pp. 91-106. Budde, L. 1963. Eine Tierkampf group e aus Sinope. Antike Plastik 2, Berlin. Bühler, W. i960. Die Europa des Moschos. Hermes Einzelschriften no. 13, Wiesbaden. . 1968. Europa; ein Uberblick über die Zeugnisse des Mythos in
Bothmer D. von. 1957. Amazons in Greek Art, Oxford.
der antiken Literatur und Kunst, Munich.
. 1984. Ά Greek and Roman Treasury', B M M A 42, pp. 5-72. . 1986. Observation on proto-volute kraters', in Corinthiaca: Studies in Honor of Darreil A. Amyx, ed. M. del Chiaro, Columbia, Mo., pp. 107-16. . 1987. Greek Vase Painting, Metropolitan Museum of Art, N e w York. Bovon, A . 1963. La representation des guerriers perses et la notion de barbare dans la 1ère moité du Ve siècle', BCH 87, pp. 579-602. Brendel, Ο . 1978. Etruscan Art, Harmondsworth. Briggs, W. 1980. Narrative and Simile from the Georgics in the Aeneid, Leiden. Brijder, H. A . G . 1983. Siana Cups I and Komast Cups, Amsterdam. Brinkmann, V. 1985. 'Die aufgemalten Namensbeischriften an N o r d - und Ostfries des Siphnierschatzhauses', BCH 109, pp. 77-130. . 1994. Beobachtung zum formalen Aufbau und zum Sinngehalt der Friese des Siphnierschatzhauses,
CITED
Munich.
Bundgaard, J. 1974. Excavation of the Athenian Akropolis Copenhagen.
1882-1890,
. 1976. Parthenon and the Mycenaean City on the Heights, C o p enhagen. Burford, A . 1969. Greek Temple Builders at Epidauros, Toronto. Burgess, J. 2005. 'Tumuli of Achilles' in The Homerizon: Conceptual interrogations in Homeric Studies, June 27-July 1, 2005, online: http://chs.harvard.edu/wa/pageR?tn=ArticleWrapper&bdc= 12& m n = i 8 2 o (accessed 10 December 2010). . 2009. The Death and Afterlife of Achilles, Baltimore. Burkert, W. 1991. 'Oriental Symposia. Contrasts and Parallels', in Dining in a Classical Context, ed. W. Slater, Ann Arbor, pp. 7-24. Buschor, E. 1922a. 'Burglöwen', AM 47, pp. 92-106. . 1922b. 'Der Dreileibige', AM 47, pp. 53-60. . 1924. Grössenverhältnisse attischer Porosgiebel: zum fünfzigjährigen Bestehen des Deutschen Archäologischen Instituts in Athen, Athens.
Brinkmann, V. ed. 2004. Bunte Götter: die Farbigkeit antiker Skulptur, Munich.
. 1929. Die Tondächer der Akropolis. Simen, Berlin.
Brize, P. 1980. Die Geryoneis des Stesichoros und die frühe griechische Kunst. Beiträge zur Archäologie no. 12, Würzburg.
. 1933a. 'Heraion von Samos: Porosfriese', AM 58, pp. 1-21.
. 1985. 'Samos und Stesichoros. Zu einem früharchaischen Bronzeblech', AM 100, pp. 53-90. Brockmann, A. D. 1968. Die griechische Ante: Eine Untersuchung, Marburg.
Typologische
Brommer, F. 1977. Der Parthenonfries, Mainz. . 1978. Hephaistos.
Der Schmiedegott
in der antiken
Kunst,
Mainz. . 1980. 'Theseus and Nausicaa',/o«??M/ of the Walters Art Gallery
. 1930. 'LIeraion von Samos, frühe Bauten', AM 55, pp. 1-99. . 1933b. 'Altsamische Grabstelen', AM 58, pp. 22-46. . 1941. 'Meermänner', SBMünchen 2, pp. 3-43. . 1957. 'Altsamischer Bauschmuck', AM 72, pp. 1-34. Buschor E. and W. von Massow. 1927. 'Vom Amyklaion', AM 52, pp. 1-85. Büsing, H. 2006. 'Ionische Kapitelle aus dem archaischen Panionion', in Maiandros. Festschrift für Volkmar von Graeve, ed. R. Biering, V. Brinkmann, U. Schlotzauer, and B. F. Weber, Munich, pp. 55-60. . 2007. 'Forschungen und Ausgrabungen in der Mykale 20012006. Die Architekturglieder des Tempels', IstMitt 57, pp. 157-67.
38, pp. 109-12. . 1983a. 'Herakles und Nereus', in Image et céramique grecque.
Büsing-Kolbe, A . 1978. 'Frühe griechische Türen', Jdl 93, pp. 66-174.
Actes du Collogue de Rouen 25-26 novembre 1982, ed. F. Lissarrague and F. Thelamon, Rouen, pp. 103-9.
Callipolitis-Feytmans, D. 1974. Les Plats attiques à figures noires, Paris.
. 1983b. Odysseus, Die Taten und Leiden des Heldens in antiker Kunst und Literatur, Darmstadt. . 1984. Herakles 2. Die unkanonische stadt.
Taten des Helden,
Darm-
. 1985. 'Herakles und Theseus auf Vasen in Malibu', in Greek Vases in the f. Paul Getty Museum. Occasional Papers on Antiquities 3, pp. 183-228. . 1986. Herakles, N e w Rochelle.
translated and enlarged by Shirley Schwarz,
Broneer, O . 1939. 'The Head of Herakles in the Pediment of the Old Athena Temple', Hesperia 8, pp. 91-100. . 1971. Isthmia. I. The Temple of Poseidon, Princeton.
Camp, J. M. 1986. The Athenian Agora. Updated edn, N e w York. Caskey, L. D. 1925. Catalogue of Greek and Roman Sculpture, Museum of Fine Arts, Boston, Cambridge, Mass. Casson, S. 1933. Technology of Early Greek Sculpture, Oxford. Charbonneaux, J. 1963. La Sculpture grecque et romaine au Musée du Louvre, Paris. Chase, G. H. 1902. 'The Shield Devices of the Greeks', Harvard Studies in Classical Philology 13, pp. 61-127. . 1908. 'Three Bronze Tripods Belonging to James Loeb, Esq', AJA 12, pp. 287-323. Chi, J. ed. 2008. Wine, Worship and Sacrifice: the Golden Ancient Vani, N e w York.
Graves of
296
WORKS
CITED
Childs, W. A. P. 1993. 'Herodotos, archaic chronology, and the temple of Apollo at Delphi', Jdl 108, pp. 399-441. . 1994. 'The Date of the Old Temple of Athena on the Athenian Acropolis', in The Archaeology of Athens and Attica under the Democracy. Proceedings of an International Conference held at the American School of Classical Studies at Athens, December 4-6, 1992, Oxford, pp. 1-6. Childs, W. A. P. and P. Demargne. 1989. FdXanthos V i l i . Le Monument des Néréides. Le Décor sculpté, Paris. Chiotis, E. and G. Papadimitriou 1995. 'Quarrying of Dimensional Stones in the Hellenistic Period at Kefalos Bay on the Island of Kos', in The Study of Marble and other Stones Used in Antiquity. Asmosia III Athens, ed. Y. Maniatis, Ν . Herz, and Y. Basiakos, London, pp. 7 - 1 1 .
. 1989. 'The Francis-Vickers Chronology', JHS 109, pp. 164-70. . 1997. Greek Painted Pottery, 3rd edn, N e w York. . 1999. Ά List of Carian Orientalizing Pottery', Oxford Journal of Archaeology 18.1, pp. 79-93. Cook, R. M. and P. Dupont. 1998. East Greek Pottery, New York. Cooper, F. A . 1978. The Temple of Apollo at Bassai: a Preliminary Study, N e w York. . 1983. 'The Reconstruction Project: 1980-1983', in The Temple of Zeus at Nemea: Perspectives and Prospects, ed. F. Cooper, et al., Athens, pp. 50-79. . 1996. The Temple of Apollo Bassitas. The Architecture, vols. I, III, IV, Princeton. Cooper, N . K. 1990. 'Archaic Architectural Terracottas from Halieis and Bassai', Hesperia 59, pp. 65-93.
Choiseul Gouffier, M.-G.-A.-F. de. 1809. Voyage pittoresque de la Grèce, vol. 2, Paris. Clarac, Comte Frédéric de. 1841. Musée de sculpture antique et moderne; ou Description historique et graphique du Louvre et de toutes ses parties, etc., vol. 2.2, Paris. Clarke, J. T. 1880. 'Notes on Greek Shores', First Annual Report of the Archaeological Institute of America, pp. 145-63. . 1882. Preliminary Report of the Investigations at Assos during the year 1881. Papers of the Archaeological Institute of America, Classical Series I, Boston. . 1898. Report on the Investigations at Assos, 1882,1883. Papers of the Archaeological Institute of America, Classical Series II, Part 1, N e w York. Clarke, J. T., F. Bacon, and R. Koldewey. 1902-21. Investigations at Assos, Cambridge, Mass. Clay, D. 2004. Archilochos Heros: the Cult of Poets in the Greek Polis. Center for Hellenic Studies vol. 6, Washington. Clement, P. 1958. 'The Recovery of Helen', Hesperia i j , pp. 47-73. Coldstream, N. 1994. Ά Figured Attic Geometric Kantharos from Kition', in Report of the Department of Antiquities, Cyprus, pp. 155-9.
Coulton, J. J. 1967. Ά tympanum fragment at Perachora', BSA 62, pp. 207-10. . 1968. 'The Stoa at the Amphiaraion, Oropos', BSA 63, pp. 146-83. . 1973. 'The Columns and Roof of the South Stoa at the Argive Heraion', BSA 68, pp. 66-85. . 1974a. 'Lifting in Early Greek Architecture', JHS 94, pp. 1-19. . 1974b. 'Towards Understanding Doric Design: The Stylobate and Intercolumniations', BSA 69, pp. 61-86. . 1975. 'The Second Temple of Hera at Paestum and the Pronaos Problem', JHS 95, pp. 13-24. . 1977. Ancient Greek Architects at Work; Problems of Structure and Design, London. . 1979. 'Doric Capitals: A Proportional Analysis', BSA 74, pp.81-153. . 1983. 'Greek Architects and the Transmission of Design', in Architecture et société de l'archaïsme grec à la fin de la république romaine. Actes du Colloque international organisé par le Centre national de la recherche scientifique et l'École française de Rome, Rome 2-4 décembre 1980, Collection de l'École française de Rome, vol. 66, ed. P. Gros, Paris, pp. 453-68.
Comstock, M. and C . C. Vermeule. 1976. Sculpture in Stone: The Greek, Roman and Etruscan Collections in the Museum of Fine Arts, Boston, Boston. Congdon, L. K. 1974. 'The Assos Journals of Francis H. Bacon', Archaeology 27, pp. 83-95. Conrad, J. R. 1957. The Horn and the Sword: The History of the Bull as Symbol of Power and Fertility, N e w York. Conti, M. C. 1994. Il più antico fregio dallo Heraion del Sele. Scultura architettonica e comunicazione visiva, Florence. Cook, J. M. 1965. 'Old Smyrna: Ionic Black Figure, and other SixthCentury Figured Wares', BSA 60, pp. 114-42. . 1973. The Troad, Oxford. . 1988. 'Cities around the Troad', BSA 83, pp. 7-19. Cook, J. M. and R. V. Nicholls. 1998. Old Smyrna Excavations: The Temples of Athena, The British School at Athens, Supplementary vol. 30, Athens. Cook, R. M. 1933-4. 'Fikellura Pottery', BSA 34, pp. 1-98. . 1981. Clazomenian Sarcophagi, Mainz. . 1983. The Persian Empire, London. . 1987. 'Pots and Propaganda', JHS 107, pp. 167-9.
. 1984. 'The Parthenon and Periklean Doric', in Parthenon-Kongress Basel. Referate und Berichte, 4. bis 8. April 1982, ed. E. Berger, Mainz, pp. 40-4. . 2000. 'Fitting Friezes. Architecture and sculpture', in Periplous. Papers on Classical Art and Archaeology Presented to Sir John Boardman, ed. Ο . Palagia, London, pp. 70-9. Coupel, P. and H. Metzger. 1969. 'Reliefs inédits de l'acropole de Xanthos', RA, pp. 225-32. Courbin, P. 1953. 'Les Origines du canthare attique archaïque', BCH 77, pp. 322-45. . 1980. EAD XXXIII. L'Oikos des Naxiens, Paris. Courby, F. 1927. FdD II.2. Le Sanctuaire d'Apollon. La Terrasse du temple, Paris. . 1931. EAD XII. Les Temples d'Apollon, Paris. Crowley, J. 1989. The Aegean and the East: An Investigation into the Transference of Artistic Motifs between the Aegean, Egypt, and the Near East in the Bronze Age, Jonsered. D'Acunto, M. 1995. Ί cavalieri di Priniàs ed il tempio A', AnnAStorAnt 2, pp. 15-55. Daltrop, G. 1966. Die Kalydonische Jagd in der Antike, Hamburg and Berlin.
WORKS Danner, P. 1989. Griechische Akrotere der archaischen und klassischen Zeit, Rome. Daux, G. 1923. FdD II.3. Sanctuaire d'Athèna Pronaia. Les Deux trésors, Paris. Daux, G. and E. Hansen. 1987. FdD II.16. Le Trésor de Siphnos, Paris. Davies, M. 1991. Poetarum melicorum Graecorum fragmenta, I, O x ford. Dawkins, R. M. 1929. Sanctuary of Artemis Orthia at Sparta, London. Delight, T. 1943. 'The Banquet-Libations of the Greeks' (diss. Bryn Mawr). Demangel, R. 1923. FdD II.3. Sanctuaire d'Athèna Pronaia. Les Temples de tuf, Paris. . 1932. La Frise ionique, Bibliothèque des Ecoles françaises d'Athènes et de Rome, vol. 136, Paris. Demargne, P. 1974. FdXanthos V. Tomhe-maisions, tombes rupestres et sarcophages. Les épitaphes lyciennes, Paris. Demisch, H. 1977. Die Sphinx, Stuttgart. . 1984. Erhobene Hände; Geschichte eine Gebärde in der bildenden Kunst, Stuttgart. Dentzer, J.-M. 1969. 'Reliefs au banquet dans l'Asie Mineure du V e siècle av. J.C.', RA, pp. 195-224. . 197T. 'Aux origines de l'iconographie du banquet couché', RA, pp. 215-58.
. 1982. Le Motif du banquet couché dans le Proche-Orient et le monde grec du VIIeau IVesiècle avant J. C., Bibliothèque des Écoles françaises d'Athènes et de Rome, vol. 246, Rome.
CITED
297
Durm J. 1892. Handbuch der Architektur, Part 2.1, Die Baustile. Historische und technische Entwicklung. Die Baukunst der Griechen, Darmstadt. Dusinberre, E. 1999. 'Satrapal Sardis: Achaemenid Bowls in an Achaemenid Capital', AJA 103, pp. 73-102. . 2003. Aspects of Empire in Achaemenid Sardis, Cambridge. Dyggve, E. 1948. Das Laphrion, der Tempelbezirk von Kalydon, Copenhagen. . i960. Lindos. Fouilles et recherches; 1902-1914 et 1952. III.I. Le Sanctuaire d'Athana Lindia et l'architecture lindienne, Copenhagen. Eaverly, Μ. Α . 1995. Archaic Greek Equestrian Sculpture, A n n Arbor. Eldredge Ν . and S. J. Gould. 1972. 'Punctuated equilibria: an alternative to phyletic gradualism', in Models in Paleobiology, ed. T. J. M. Schopf, San Francisco, pp. 82-115. Ellinghaus, C. 1990. 'Korinthische und attische Keramik', Ausgrabungen in Assos, AMS 2, pp. 63-6. Erlenmeyer, M.-L. and H. Erlenmeyer. 1953. 'Über griechische und altorientalische Tierkampfgruppen', AntK 1, pp. 53-67. Étienne, R. and M.-T. Le Dinahet. eds. 1991. L'espace sacrificiel dans les civilisations Méditerranéennes de l'antiquité. Actes du Colloque tenu à la Maison de l'Orient, 4-6 juin 1988, Paris. Fagerström, Κ. 1988. Greek Iron Age architecture: Developments through changing times. Studies in Mediterranean Archaeology, vol. 81, Goteborg. Fairbanks, A. 1928. Catalogue of the Greek and Etruscan Vases in the Museum of Fine Arts, Boston, Cambridge, Mass.
Dessenne, A . 1957. Le Sphinx, Etude iconographique, Bibliothèque des Écoles françaises d'Athènes et de Rome, vol. 186, Paris.
Faraone, C. 1992. Talismans and Trojan Horses; Guardian statues in ancient Greek Myth and Ritual, Oxford.
Detienne, M. 1986. The Creation Chicago.
of Mythology, trans. M. Cook,
Farkas, A. 1969. 'The Horse and Rider in Achaemenid Art', Persica 4,
Dickens, G. 1912. Catalogue of the Acropolis Museum, vol. 1, Archaic Sculpture, Cambridge.
. 1974. 'The Temple of Poseidon: A Missing Sima and Other
Farnell, L. R. 1921. Greek Hero Cults and Ideas of Immortality, Oxford. . 1930. The Works of Pindar, London. Faustoferri, A . 1993. 'The Throne of Apollo at Amyklai: its Significance and Chronology', in Sculpture from Arcadia and Laconia, ed. Ο. Palagia and W. Coulsen, Oxford, pp. 159-66. . 1996. Il trono du Amyklai e Sparta: Bathykles al servizio del potere, Naples. Fedak, J. 1990. Monumental Tombs of the Hellenistic Age, Toronto. Fehr, Β. 1971. Orientalische und griechische Gelage, Bonn. Fellows, C. 1839. A Journal written during an excursion in Asia Minor, London. Felsch, R. C. S., K. Braun, M. Jacob-Felsch, G. Hübner, A . Nitsche, M. Salta, and P. Ellinger. 1987. 'Kalapodi Bericht über die Grabungen der Artemis Elaphebolos und des Apollon von Hyampolis
Matters,' AJA 78, pp. 211-38. . 1976. 'The Roof of the Hephaisteion', AJA 80, pp. 223-46. Dörig, J. 1984. 'Der Dreileibige', AM 99, pp. 89-95. Dörpfeld, W. 1884. 'Der Tempel von Sunion', AM 9, pp. 324-37. . 1914.'Die Ausgrabungen a u f K o r f u i m Frühjahre 1914, AM 39,
Felsch, R. C . S., H. J. Kienast, and H. Schuler. 1980. 'Apollon und Artemis oder Artemis und Apollon? Bericht von den Grabungen im neu endeckten Heiligtum bei Kalapodi', AA, pp. 38-118. Ferrari, G. 2002. 'The Ancient Temple on the Acropolis at Athens',
Dinsmoor, W. Β. 1913. 'Studies of the Delphian Treasuries', BCH 37, pp. 5-83.
. 1947. 'The Hekatompedon on the Athenian Acropolis', A]A 51, pp. 109-51.
. 1961. 'The Basis of Greek Temple Design: Asia Minor, Greece, Italy', Atti del settimo Congresso internazionale di archeologia classica, Roma-Napoli 1959, Rome, pp. 355-68. . 1975. The Architecture of Ancient Greece, 3rd edn, London. Dinsmoor, W. B. and W. B. Dinsmoor, Jr. 2004. The Propylaia to the Athenian Akropolis. vol. II. The Classical Building, Princeton, 2004. Dinsmoor Jr., W. B. 1973. 'The Kardaki Temple Re-examined', AM 88, pp. 165-74.
pp. 161-76.
ΡΡ· 57-77-
1978-1982', AA, pp. 1-99.
AJA 106, pp. 11-35.
duBois, P. 1982. Centaurs and Amazons, Women and the Pre-History of the Great Chain of Being, Ann Arbor.
Fiechter, E. 1918. 'Amyklae. Der Thron des Apollon', Jdl
33,
Dugas, C . 1928. EAD X. Les Vases de l'Héraion, Paris. Dunbabin, Κ. M. D. 1991. 'Triclinium and stibadium', in Dining in a Classical Context, ed. W. Slater, Ann Arbor, pp. 121-48.
Filges, A. 1992. 'Korinthische und attische Keramik der archaischen und klassischen Zeit', Ausgrabungen in Assos 1990, AMS 5,
pp.107-245.
pp.109-40.
298
WORKS
CITED
Filges, Α . 1993. 'Korinthische und attische Keramik der archaischen und klassischen Zeit II', Ausgrabungen in Assos 1991, AMS 10, pp. 101-33.
Ghali-Kahil, L. 1955. Les Enlèvements et le retour d'Hélène textes et les documents figurés, Paris.
Filow, B. D. 1927. Die Archaische Nekropole Ochrida-See, Berlin.
von Trebenischte am
Gill, D. W. J. 1988. 'The Temple of Aphaia on Aegina. The Date of the Reconstruction', BSA 83, pp. 169-77.
Finster-Hotz, U. 1984. Der Bauschmuck des Athenatempels von Assos. Studien zur Ikonographie, Rome. Fittschen, K. 1969. Untersuchungen zum Beginn der Sagendarstellungen bei den Griechen, Berlin.
Ginouvès, R. and R. Martin. 1985, 1992. Dictionnaire méthodique de l'architecture grecque et romaine, Collection de l'École française de Rome, vol. 84, Rome.
Floren, J. 1987. Die griechische Plastik, vol. 1, Die geometrische archaische Plastik, Munich. Fol, Α., Β. Nikolov, and R. F. Hoddinott 1986. The New Treasure from Rogozen, Bulgaria, London.
und
Thracian
Fol, A . and N . G. L. Hammond. 1988. 'Persia in Europe, Apart from Greece', CAH~, Cambridge, pp. 234-53. Forsen, J., B. Forsen, and E. 0 s t b y 1999. 'The sanctuary of Agios Elias. Its significance, and its relations to surrounding sanctuaries and settlements', in Defining ancient Arkadia. Symposium, April 14, 1998, Copenhagen, pp. 169-91. Fougères, G. and J. Hulot. 1910. Sélinonte, la ville, l'acropole et les temples; relevés et restaurations par Jean Hulot, architecte... texte par Gustave Fougères, Paris. Fraisse, P. and C. Llinas. 1995. E AD X X X V I . Documents ture hellénique et hellénistique, Paris.
d'architec-
Francis, E. D. and M. Vickers. 1981. 'Leagros Kalos', Proceedings of the Cambridge Philological Society 207, pp. 97-136. . 1983. 'Signapriscae artis. Eretria and Siphnos',//fS 103, pp. 43-67. Fränkel, H. 1975. Early Greek Poetry and Philosophy, Oxford. Frankfort, H. 1996. The Art and Architecture of the Ancient Orient, 4th rev. edn, London.
dans les
Giovino, M. 2007. The Assyrian Sacred Tree. A History of Interpretations, Göttingen. Giuliani, L. 1979. Die archaischen Metopen von Selinunt, Mainz. Glynn, R. 1977. ' A n Iconographie Study of Herakles' Struggles with the Sea Deities Nereus and Triton on Attic Black Figure Vases' (M.Phil, thesis, Oxford). . 1981. 'Herakles, Nereus and Triton: A Study of Iconography in Sixth Century Athens', A]A 85, pp. 121-32. Goethart, F. and H. Schleif. 1962. Der Athenatempel
von Ilion, Berlin.
Goldberg, M. 1982. 'Archaic Greek Akroteria', AJA 86, pp. 193-217. Goldstein, M. S. 1978. 'The Setting of the Ritual Meal in Greek Sanctuaries, 600-300 B.C.' (diss. Berkeley). Gould, J. 1973. 'Hiketeia', JHS 93, pp. 74-103. Gow, A . S. F. 1928. 'Notes on the Persae of Aeschylus', JHS 48, 133-58. Graef, B., and E. Langlotz. 1909-33. Die antiken Akropolis zu Athen, Berlin.
Vasen von der
Grandjean, Y. and F. Salviat. 2000. Guide de Thasos, 2nd edn, Athens. Greenewalt, Jr. C . 1971. ' A n Exhibitionist from Sardis', in Studies presented to George M. A. Flanfmann, ed. D. G. Mitten, J. G. Pedley, and J. A. Scott, Mainz, pp. 29-46. Gruben, G. 1963. 'Das archaische Didymaion', Jdl 78, pp. 78-177.
Freydank, J. 2006. 'Korinthische, attische, und einheimische Keramik der archaischen und klassischen Zeit', Ausgrabungen in Assos 1993, AMS 57, pp. 69-101.
. 1972a. 'Kykladische Architektur', Münchner Jahrbuch der bildenden Kunst 23, pp. 6-36.
Freyer-Schauenburg, B. 1974. Samos XI. Bildwerke Zeit und des strengen Stils, Bonn.
Forschungskampagnen 1970 und 1971', AA, pp. 319-79. . 1982a. 'Naxos und Paros. Vierter vorläufiger Bericht über die
der archaischen
Friedländer, P. 1948. Epigrammata. Greek Inscriptions in Verse from the Beginnings to the Persian Wars, Bekeley. Fuchs, W. 1979. Die Skulptur der Griechen, 2nd edn, Munich.
. 1972b. 'Naxos und Paros. Dritter vorläufiger Bericht über die
Forschungskampagnen pp.159-95.
1972-1980,
1. Archaische Bauten',
AA,
. 1982b. 'Der Burgtempel A von Paros. Naxos-Paros. Vierter
Furtwängler, Α . 1906. Aigina das Heiligtum der Aphaia, Munich. Furtwängler, Α . and Η. Kienast. 1989. Samos III. Der Nordbau im Heraion von Samos, Bonn.
vorläufiger Bericht', AA, pp. 197-229.
Gabelmann, H. 1965. Studien zum frügriechischen
. 1991. 'Anfänge des Monumentabaus auf Naxos', in Bautechnik der Antike. Diskussionen zur archäologischen Bauforschung 5, edn A. Hoffmann, E.-L. Schwandner, W. Hoepfner, and G. Brands, Mainz, pp. 63-71.
Löwenbild,
Berlin.
Gàbrici, E. 1927. 'Il sanetuario della Malophoros a Selinunte', MonAnt 32, Rome. • Ι 933~5· 'Per la storia dell'architettura dorica in Sicilia', MonAnt 35, cols. 137-262. Gaiser, K. 1985. Theophrast in Assos, Heidelberg. Galinsky, G . K. 1972. The Herakles Theme, Oxford. Gall, H. von. 1966. Die paphlagonischen Felsgräber. Istanbuler Mitteilungen, Beihefte 1, Tübingen. Gantz, T. 1993. Early Greek Myth. A Guide to Artistic and Literary Sources, Baltimore. Gebauer, J. 1992. 'Die archaische geglättete graue Keramik', Ausgrabungen in Assos 1990, AMS 5, Bonn, pp. 65-101. . 1993. 'Verschiedene graue Waren', Ausgrabungen in Assos 1991, AMS 10, Bonn, pp. 73-100. Gerkan, A . von. 1925. Milet 1.8, Kalabaktepe, Athenatempel und Umgebung, Berlin.
. 1985. 'Weitgespannte Marmordecken in der griechischen Architektur', Architectura 15, pp. 105-16.
. 1996. 'Griechische Un-Ordnungen', in Säule und Gebälk. Struktur und Wandlungprozess griechisch-römischer ed. E-.L. Schwandner, Mainz, pp. 61-77.
Zu
Architektur,
. 1997. 'Naxos und Delos. Studien zur archaischen Architektur der K y k a d e n ' , J d I 112, pp. 261-416. . 2001. Griechische
Tempel und Heiligtümer,
rev. edn of Die
Tempel der Griechen (1966, 1986) Munich. Gruben, G. and W. Koenigs. 1968. 'Der "Hekatompedos" von Naxos', AA, pp. 693-717. Gründel, L. 1934. Die Darstellung Kunst, Würzburg.
des Laufens in der griechischen
Guarducci, M. 1975. Epigrafia greca, vol. III, Epigrafi di carattere privato, Rome.
323 W O R K S Gullini, G. 1974. 'Sull'origine del fregio dorico', Memorie dell'Accademia delle Scienze di Torino 4a-3i, pp. 1-73. . 1981. 'Origini dell'architettura greca in Occidente', ASAtene ns. 43, pp. 97-126. Hahland, W. 1964. 'Didyma im 5. Jahrhundert ν. Chr.', J d l 79, pp. 142-240. Hamiaux, M. 1992. Musée du Louvre. Département des antiquités grecques, étrusques, et romaines. Les Sculptures grecques I. Des Origines à la fin du IVesiècle avant J.C., Paris. Hampe, R. i960. Ein früh attisch er Grabfund, Mainz. Hanfmann, G. M. A. 1975.From Croesus to Constantine. The Cities of Western Asia Minor, Ann Arbor. . 1976. O n Lydian and Eastern Greek anthemion stelai', RA, pp. 35-44. . 1984. 'The Double Lion from Hypaepa', Festschrift für Leo Mildenburg; Numismatik, Kunstgeschichte, Archäologie, ed. Α. Houghton et al., Wettern, pp. 85-9. Hanfmann, G. M. A. and N. Ramage. 1978. Sculpture from Sardis. The Finds through 1975, Sardis R2, Cambridge, Mass. Hanfmann, G. M. A. and J. Waldbaum. 1975. A Survey of Sardis and the Major Monuments outside the City Walls, Sardis Ri, Cambridge, Mass. Hansen, E. 1991. 'Versetzen von Baugliedern am griechischen Tempel', in Bautechnik der Antike. Diskussionen zur archäologischen Bauforschung 5, ed. A. Hoffmann, E.-L. Schwandner, W. Hoepfner, and G. Brands, Mainz, pp. 72-9. Harl-Schaller, F. 1972-3. 'Die archaischen "Metopen" aus Mykene', ÖJh 50, pp. 94-116. Harrison, Ε. Β. 1965· The Athenian Agora XI. Archaic and Archaistic Sculpture, Princeton. Harrison, J. E. 1962. Epilegomena to the Study of Greek Religion and Themis, New York. Hartner, W. 1965. 'The Earliest History of the Constellations in the near East and the Motif of the Lion-Bull Combat', Journal of Near Eastern Studies 24, pp. 1-16. Haslam, M. W. 1986. The Oxyrhynchus Papyri, vol. 53, London. Heberdey, R. 1919. Altattische Porosskulptur, ein beitrag zur geschichte der archaischen griechischen Kunst, Vienna. Heiden, J. 1995. Die Tondächer von Olympia, OlForsch 24, Berlin. Hellmann, M.-C. 2002. L'architecture grecque, vol. ι, Les principes de la construction, Paris. . 2006. L'architecture grecque, vol. 2, Architecture religieuse et funéraire, Paris. Hellmann, M.-C. and P. Fraisse. 1979. EAD XXXII. Le Monument aux hexagones et le portique des Naxiens, Paris. Hellner, N. 2006. 'Bedeutungstragende Steinbearbeitung am Athenatempel von Assos', Ausgrabungen in Assos 1993, AMS 57, pp. 227-34. Hellström, P. and T. Thieme. 1982. Labraunda I.3, The Temple of Zeus, Stockholm. Hemelrijk, J. M. 1963. 'Some Ear Ornaments in Archaic Cypriot and East Greek Art', BABesch 38, pp. 28-51. . 1984. The Caeretan Hydriae, Kerameus 5, Mainz. Herfort-Koch, M. 1986. Archaische Bronzeplastik Lakoniens, Münster. Herman, G. 1987. Ritualised Friendship and the Greek City, Cambridge. Herrmann, J. and A. van den Hoek. 2005. 'The Sphinx: Sculpture as a Theological Symbol in Plutarch and Clement of Alexandria', in The
CITED
Wisdom of Egypt: Jewish, Early Christian, and Gnostic Essays in Honour of Gerard P. Luttikhuizen. Arbeiten zur Geschichte des Axntiken Judentums und des Urchristentums, vol. 59, ed. A. Hilhorst and G. Van Kooten, Leiden, pp. 285-310. Herrmann, K. 1976. 'Beobachtungen zur Schatzhaus-Architektur Olympias', in Neue Forschungen in griechischen Heiligtümern: Internationales Symposion in Olympia vom το. bis 12. Oktober 1974, ed. U. Jantzen, Tübingen, pp. 321-50. . 1991. 'Versatzmarken und Steinmetzzeichen aus Olympia', in Bautechnik der Antike. Diskussionen zur archäologischen Bauforschung 5, cd. A. Hoffmann, E.-L. Schwandner, W. Hoepfner, and G. Brands, Mainz, pp. 83-9. Herz, N. and M. Waelkins, eds. 1988. Classical Marble: Geochemistry, Technology, Trade. Proceedings of the NATO Advanced Research Workshop on Marble in ancient Greece and Rome, Boston. Hill, Β. Η. 1912. 'The Older Parthenon', AJA 16, pp. 535-58. . 1966. The Temple of Zeus at Nemea, Princeton. Hitzl, I. 1991. Die griechischen Sarkophage der archaischen und klassichen Zeit, Jonsered. Hitzl, K. 1983. 'Bronzene Applik vom Hals eines Volutenkraters in Mainz', A A , pp. 5-11. Höckmann, U. 1982. Die Bronzen aus dem Fürstengrab von Castel San Mariano bei Perugia, vol. 1, Munich. Hodge, A. T. i960. The Woodwork of Greek Roofs, Cambridge. . 1975. 'Bevelled Joints and the Direction of Laying in Greek Architecture', AJA 79, pp. 333-47. Hoepfner, W. 1997. 'The Architecture of Pergamon', in Pergamon. The Telephos Frieze from the Great Altar, ed. R. Dreyfus and E. Schraudolph, San Francisco, pp. 23-57. . 2002. 'Farbe in der griechischen Architektur', in Color in ancient Greece. The role of color in ancient Greek art and architecture, 700-31 B.C. Proceedings of the conference held in Thessaloniki, i2th-i6th April 2000, ed. M. Tiverios and D. Tsiaphake, Thessaloniki, pp. 37-45. Hoffelner, K. 1988. 'Die Metopen des Athener-Schatzhauses. Ein neuer Rekonstruktionsversuch', AM 103, pp. 77-117. . 1999. Alt-Ägina I.3. Das Apollon-Heiligtum. Tempel, Altäre, Temenosmauer, Thearion, Mainz. Hoffmann, H. 1953. 'Foreign Influence and Native Invention in Archaic Greek Altars', AJA 57, pp. 189-95. . 1997. Sotades. Symbols of Immortality on Greek Vases, Oxford. Hoisten, S. von. 2007. The Feline-Prey Theme in Archaic greek Art. Classification—Distribution—Origin—Iconographical context. Stockholm Studies in Classcial Archaeology 13, Stockholm. Hogarth, D. G. 1908. Excavations at Ephesus. The Archaic Artemision, London. Hollinshead, M. 1999. ' "Adyton," "Opisthodomos," and the Inner Room of the Greek Temple', Hesperia 68, pp. 189-218. Holloway, R. R. 1965. 'Conventions of Etruscan painting in the Tomb of Hunting and Fishing at Tarquinii', AJA 69, pp. 341-7· . 1966. 'Architettura sacra e matematica pitagorica a Paestum', Parola del Passato 21, pp. 60-4. . 1973. A View of Greek Art, Providence. . 1986. 'The bulls in the "Tomb of the Bulls" at Tarquinia', AJA 90, pp. 447-52. . 1988. 'Early Greek Architectural Decoration as Functional Art', AJA 92, pp. 177-83·
300
WORKS
Hölscher, F. 1972. Die Bedeutung archaischer Tierkampfbilder. Beitrage zur Archäologie, vol. 5, Würzburg. Hölscher, T. 1997. 'Ritual und Bildsprache; Zur Deutung der Reliefs an der Brüstung um das Heiligtum der Athena Nike in Athen', AM 112, pp. 143-63. Holtzmann, B. 1979. 'Une nouvelle sima archaïque de Thasos', Thasiaca BCH Supplément V, Paris, pp. 1-9. . 1986. 'Deux reliefs orientalisants de Thasos', in Archaische und klassische griechische Plastik. Akten des internationalen Kolloquiums von 22.-2y April 1985 in Athen, ed. H. Kyrieleis, vol. 1, Mainz, pp. 73-8. . 1994. EtThas XV. La Sculpture de Thasos. Corpus des reliefs I. Reliefs à theme divin, Paris. Homolle, T. 1896. 'Le temple de Delphes. Son histoire', BCH 20, pp.641-54. Hostetter, E. 1994. Lydian Architectural Terracottas: a Study in Tile Replication, Display, and Technique, Atlanta. Howe, T. P. 1955. 'Zeus Herkeios; Thematic Unity in the Hekatompedon Sculptures', AJA 59, pp. 287-301. Hunt, L. 1817. D r Hunt and Professor Carlyle, in Memoirs relating to European and Asiatic Turkey, edited from manuscript journals. No. VI, ed. R. Walpole, London. Hurwit, J. 1977. 'Image and frame in Greek art', A]A 81, pp. 1-30. . 1985. The Art and Culture of Early Greece, 1100-480 B.C., Ithaca. . 1999. The Athenian Acropolis, N e w York. Huxley, G. 1966. The Early Ionians, London. Huyot, J.-N. Notes d'un voyage de Paris à Smyrne, ι8ιγ-2ΐ, Bibliothèque Nationale, Paris, M.N.F. 664, 691, 1080-1081. Intzesiloglou, B. 2002. 'The Archaic Temple of Apollo at ancient Metropolis (Thessaly)', in Excavating Classical Culture: Recent archaeological discoveries in Greece, ed. M. Stamatopoulou and M. Yeroulanou, Oxford, pp. 109-13. Isler, H. P. 1978. 'The Meaning of the Animal Frieze in Archaic Greek Art', NumAntCl 7, pp. 7-28. Jacopi, G. 1931. Clara Rhodos, vol. IV : Esplorazione archeologica di Camiro; Scavi nelle necropoli Camiresi, 1929-1930, Rhodes. Jahn, Ο . 1870. Die Entfuhrung der Europa, Vienna. Jameson, M. 1994. 'Theoxenia', in Ancient Greek Cult Practice from the Epigraphical Evidence. Proceedings of the Second International Seminar on Ancient Greek Cult, organized by the Swedish Institute at Athens, 22-24 November 1991, ed. R. Hägg, Stockholm, PP· 35-57· Jameson, M. and J. Papachristodoulou. 1972. 'Die archaischen Inschriften von Tiryns', Vestiga 17, Akten des VI Internationalen Kongresses für Griechische und Lateinische Epigraphik, Munich, pp. 421-5. Jannot, J.-R. 1984. Les Reliefs archaïques de Chiusi. Collection de l'École française de Rome, vol. 71, Rome. Jantzen, U. 1972. Samos VIII. Ägyptische und orientalische Bronzen aus dem Heraion von Samos, Bonn. Jeffery, L. H. 1976. Archaic Greece. The City States, c./oo-joo, London. Jenkins, I. 2006. Greek Architecture and its Sculpture, Cambridge, Mass. Johansen, F. K. 1967. The Iliad in Early Greek Art, Copenhagen. Johnson, F. P. 1936. 'The Kardaki Temple', AJA 40, pp. 46-54. Johnston, A. and B. D. Wescoat. 1988. 'An Inscribed Capital From the Temple of Athena at Assos', Anatolica Epigraphica 11, pp. 1-8.
CITED Junker, K. 1993. Der ältere Tempel im Heraion am Sele. Verzierte Metopen im architektonischen Kontext, Böhlau. Kaempf-Dimitriadu, S. 1979. Die Liebe der Götter in der attischen Kunst des j . Jahrhunderts v. Chr., Basel. Kähler, H. 1949. Das griechische Metopenbild, Munich. Kalpaxis, A. E. 1976. Früharchaische Baukunst in Griechenland und Kleinasien, Athens. Kalpaxis, T. E. 1986. Hemiteles. Akzidentelle Unfertigkeit und 'Bossen— Stil' in der griechischen Baukunst, Mainz. Kaltsas, N. 2002. Sculpture in the National Museum, Athens, Los Angeles. Karageorghis, V. 1965. 'Some Cypriote Painters of Bulls in the Archaic Period', Jdl 80, pp. 1-17. Karakasi, K. 2003. Archaic Korai, Los Angeles. Karouzou, S. 1963. Αγγεία του Αναγυρούντος, Athens. Kästner, V. 1994. 'Kleinasien und Griechenland Dachterrakotten nacharchaischer Zeit aus Pergamon', in Proceedings of the International Conference on Greek Architectural Terracottas of the Classical and Hellenistic Periods, December 12-1j, 1991, Hesperia Supplement 27, ed. Ν . Winter, Princeton, pp. 253-68. Katterfeld, E. 1911. Die griechischen Metopenbilder, Strassburg. Kienast. H. 1992. 'Die Basis der Geneleos-Gruppe', AM 107, pp. 29-42. Kilinski II, K. 1990. Boeotian Black Figure Vase Painting of the Archaic Period, Mainz. Kirk, G. 1970. Myth. Its Meaning and Function in Ancient and Other Cultures, Berkeley. Kissas, K. 2008. Archaische Architektur der Athener Akropolis: Dachziegel, Metopen, Geisa, Akroterbasen, Wiesbaden. Klein, N . L. 1991. 'The Origin of the Doric Order on the Mainland of Greece. Form and Function of the Geison in the Archaic Period' (diss. Bryn Mawr). . 1997. 'Excavations of the Greek Temples at Mycenae by the British School at Athens', BSA 92, pp. 247-322. Kleine J. 1973. Untersuchungen zur Chronologie der attischen Kunst von Peisistratos bis Themistokles, IstMitt Beihefte 8, Wiesbaden. Knell, H. 1972. 'Eretra: Zur Grundkrissrekonstruktion des älteren und des jüngeren Apollontempels', AntK 15, pp. 40-8. . 1990. Mythos und Polis. Bildprogramme griechischer Bauskulptur, Darmstadt. Koldewey, R. 1890. Die antiken Baureste der Insel Lesbos, Berlin. . 1891. Neandria. Programm zum Winkelmannsfeste der archaeologischen Gesellschaft zu Berlin, vol. 51, Berlin. Koldewey, R. and O . Puchstein. 1899. Die griechischen Tempel in Unteritalien und Sicilien, Berlin. Koch, H. 1955. Studien zum Theseustempel in Athen, Berlin. Koenigs, W. 1972. 'Beobachtungen zur Steintechnik am ApollonTempel von Naxos', AA, pp. 380-5. . 1980a. 'Ein archaischer Rundbau', in Kerameikos XII, Berlin. . 1980b. 'Milet 1978-1979: Bauglieder aus Milet II', IstMitt 30, pp. 56-91. K o n t o l e o n , N . M . 1965. Αρχαϊκή
Ζωφόρος
εκ Πάρου',
in
Χαρίστηριον
eis Αναστάσιον Κ. Ορλάνδον, vol. I, Athens, pp. 34^-4 τ 8· . 197°· Aspects de la Grèce préclassique, Paris. Korres, M. 1993. 'Wilhelm Dörpfelds Forschungen zum Vorparthenon und Parthenon', AM 108, pp. 59-78. . 1994a. 'The History of the Acropolis Monuments', in Acropolis Restoration. The CCAM Interventions, ed. R. Economakis, London, pp. 35-51.
WORKS . 1994b. 'Der Plan des Parthenon', RM 109, pp. 53-120. . 1995. From Pentelicon to Parthenon, Athens. . 1997a. 'Die Athena-Tempel auf der Akropolis', in Kult und Kultbauten auf der Akropolis. Internationales Symposion vom 7. Bis 9. Juli 1995 in Berlin, ed. W. Hoepfner, Berlin, pp. 218-43. . 1997b. 'An early Attic Ionic capital and the Kekropion on the Athenian Acropolis', in Greek Offerings; Essays on Greek art in honour of John Boardman, Oxbow Monograph 89, ed. Ο. Palagia, pp. 95-107. . 2000. The Stones of the Parthenon, Athens. Korres, M. and X. Bouras. 1983. Μελέτη αποκαταστάσιμης του Παρθενώνος I, Athens. Korshak, Y. 1987. Frontal Faces in Attic Vase Painting of the Archaic Period, Chicago. Kourou, N. 1989. 'Aegean Orientalizing versus Oriental Art: The Evidence of Monsters', in The civilizations of the Aegean and their diffusion in Cyprus and the eastern Mediterranean, 2000-600 B.C. Proceedings of an international symposium, [Larnaca] 18-24 September 1989, ed. V. Karageorghis, pp. 111-23. . 2001. 'The Sacred Tree in Greek Art. Mycenaean versus Near Eastern Tradition', in La Questione delle influenze vicino-orientali sulla religione greca. Stato degli studi e prospettive della ricerca. Atti del colloquio internazionale, Roma 20-22 maggio 1999, ed. S. Ribichini, M. Rocchi, and P. Xella, Rome, pp. 31-53. Kozelj. T. 1988a. 'Les carrières de marbre dans l'Antiquité', in Marbres Helléniques, Brussels, pp. 20-33. . 1988b. 'Extraction of Blocks in Antiquity: Special Methods of Analysis', in Herz and Waelkins 1988, pp. 31-9. Krauskopf, I. 1974. Der Thebanische Sagenkreis und andere griechische Sagen in der etruskischen Kunst, Mainz. Krauss, F. 1957. 'Die Säulen des Zeustempel von Olympia', in Robert Boehringer, eine Freundesgabe, ed. E. Boehringer and W. Hoffmann, Tübingen, pp. 365-87. . 1959. Die Tempel von Paestum I. Der Athenatempel. Denkmäler antiker Architektur 9, Berlin. Krieger, X. 1973. Der Kampf zwischen Peleus und Thetis in der griechischen Vasenmalerei. Eine typologische Untersuchung, Erlangen. Krön, U. 1988. 'Kultmahle im Heraion von Samos archaischer Zeit. Versuch einer Rekonstruktion', in Early Greek Cult Practice. Proceedings of the Fifth International Symposium at the Swedish Institute at Athens, ed. R. Hägg, Stockholm, pp. 135-47. Kunze, E. 1931. Kretische Bronzereliefs, Stuttgart. . 1950. OlForsch II. Archaische Schildbänder, ein Beitrag zur frühgriechischen Bildgeschichte und Sagenüberlieferung, Berlin. . 1967. 'Helme', Olympiabericht VIII, pp. 111-83. Kyle, D. G. 1987. Athletics in Ancient Athens, Leiden. Kyrieleis, H. 1981. Führer durch das Heraion von Samos, Athens. La Coste-Messelière, P. Frotier de. 1931. FdD IV.3. Art archaïque (fin). Sculptures des temples, Paris. . 1936. Au Musée de Delphes. Recherches sur quelques monuments archaïques et leur décor sculpté, Bibliothèque des Écoles françaises d'Athènes et de Rome, vol. 138, Paris. . 1942. 'Chapiteaux doriques de Delphes', BCH 66-7, pp. 22-65. . 1957. FdD IV.4. Sculptures du trésor des Athéniens, Paris. . 1963. 'Chapiteaux doriques du haut archaïsme', BCH 87, pp. 639-52.
CITED
301
Lacroix, L. 1949. Les Reproductions de statues sur les monnaies grecques; la statuaire archaïque et classique. Bibliothèque de la Faculté de philosophie et lettres de l'Université de Liège, fase. 116, Liège. La Genière, J. de. 1983. 'A propos des métopes du monoptère de Sicyone à Delphes', Comptes rendues des séances de l'Académie des inscriptions et belle-lettres, pp. 158-71. . 2003. Ά la recherche du "temple des métopes archaïques" du Sele' , in Sanctuaires et sources dans l'antiquité: les sources documentaires et leurs limites dans la description des lieux de culte, Naples, pp. 97-102. La Genière, J. de, G. Greco, and R. Donnarumna, 1997. 'L'Héraion de Foce del Sele. Découvertes récentes', CRAI, pp. 333-49. . 1999. 'L'Héraion du Sele. Nouvelles découvertes', CRAI, pp. 501-8. Lamb, W. 1931-2. 'Antissa', BSA 32, pp. 41-67. Lambrinoudakis, V., et al. 2002. 'Naxos—Das Heiligtum von Gyroula bei Sangri. Eine neugefundene, drei Jahrtausende alte Kultstätte der Demeter', A W 33, pp. 387-406. Langlotz, E. 1920. Zur Zeitbestimmung der strengrotfigurigen Vasenmaleri und der gleichzeitigen Plastik, Leipzig. . 1932. Griechische Vasen in Würzburg, Munich. . 1975. Studien zur nordostgriechischen Kunst, Mainz. Lapalus, E. 1947. Le Fronton sculpté en Grèce; des origines à la fin du IY siècle. Etude sur les origines, l'évolution, la technique, et les thèmes du décor tympanal. Bibliothèque des Écoles française d'Athènes et de Rome, vol. 165, Paris. Laroche, D. and M.-D. Nenna. 1990. 'Le Trésor de Sicyone et ses fondations', BCH 114, pp. 241-84. Laubscher, H. O. 1963-4. 'Zwei neue Kuroi aus Kleinasien', IstMitt 13-14, pp. 73-87. Launey, M. 1944. EtThas I. Le Sanctuaire et le culte d'Héraklès à Thasos, Paris. Lauter, H. 1979. 'Bemerkungen zum archaischen Tempel von Koressia', AA, pp. 6-16. Laviosa, C. 1972-3. 'Un rilievo arcaico di Iasos e il problema del fregio nei tempie ionici', ASAtene, ns. 34-5, pp. 397-481. Lawrence, A. W. 1996. Greek Architecture, 5 th rev. edn, R. A. Tomlinson, N e w Haven. Leaf, W. 1923. Strabo on the Troad. Book XIII, Cap. 1. Cambridge. Leake, W. M. 'Journey through some provinces of Asia Minor, in the year 1800 communicated by Lieut. Col. Leake', in Travels in Various Countries of the East; Being a Continuation of Memoirs Relating to European and Asiatic Turkey, ed. R. Walpole, London. . 1824. Journal of a tour in Asia Minor, with comparative remarks on the ancient and modern geography ofthat country, London. Lehmann, Κ. 1998. Samothrace. A Guide to the Excavations and the Museum, 6th edn, rev. J. R. McCredie, Thessaloniki. Leipen, N. ed. 1984. Glimpses of Excellence, A Selection of Greek Vases and Bronzes from the Elie Borowski Collection, Toronto. Lemos, Α. Α. 1991. Archaic Pottery of Chios: The Decorated Styles, Oxford. . 2000. 'Aspects of East Greek Pottery and Vase Painting', in Die Ägäis und das westliche Mittelmeer, ed. F. Krinzinger, Vienna,
ΡΡ· 377-91· LeRoy, C. 1967. FdD II. 12. Les Terres cuites architecturales. La Sculpture décorative en terre cuite, Paris. Lesher, J. H. 1992. Xenophanes of Colophon; fragments; a text and translation with commentary, Toronto.
302
WORKS
Levine D. 1985. 'Symposium and the Polis', in Theognis of Megara. Poetry and the Polis, ed. T. Figueira and G. Nagy, Baltimore. Lissarrague, F. 1990a. The Aesthetics of the Greek Banquet: Images of Wine and Ritual, trans. A. Szegedy-Maszek, Princeton. . 1990b. 'Around the Krater. An Aspect of Banquet Imagery', in Sympotica. A Symposium on the Symposion, ed. Ο . Murray, Oxford, pp. 196-209. Lohmann, H. 2006. 'The discovery and excavation of the archaic Panionion in the Mycale (Dilek Daglan)', Kazi sonuçlari toplantisi 28.2, pp. 575-90. Lohmann, H., H. Büsing, F. Hulek, et al. 2007. 'Forschungen und Ausgrabungen in der Mykale 2001-2006', IstMitt 57, pp. 59-193. Lonsdale, S. 1990. Creatures of Speech: Lion, Herding, and Hunting Similes in the Iliad, Stuttgart. Lucas, G. 2005. The Archaeology of Time, London. Luce, S. B. 1924. 'Studies of the Exploits of Heracles on Vases. I. Heracles and the Erymanthian Boar', AJA 28, pp. 296-325. Luni, M. 2001. 'Le temple dorique hexastyle dans le sanctuaire découvert hors de la porte sud à Cyrène', Académie des Inscriptions et Belles-Lettres, Comptes Rendus, pp. 1533-52. . 2003. 'Sfìnge e acroterio de nuovo tempio dorico esastilo di Cirene', RendLinc 14, pp. 423-48. . 2006. 'Un nuovo tempio per Cirene', Archeo 22, No. 7, pp. 4 ^ 5 3 .
Luschey, H. 1939. Die Phiale, Bleicherode. McAllister, M. 1969. Ά Temple at Hermione, Hesperia 38, pp. 169-73. McGlade, J. 1999. 'The times of history: archaeology, narrative, and non-linear causality', in Time and Archaeology, ed. T. Murray, London, pp. 139-63. McGowan, E. 1995. 'Tomb Marker and Turning Post: Funerary Columns in the Archaic Period', AJA 99, pp. 615-32. Madigan, B. 1992. The Temple of Apollo Bassitas, vol. 2, The Sculpture, Princeton. Mallwitz, A. 1961. 'Architektur eines Schatzhauses', Olympiabericht VII, Berlin, pp. 29-55. . 1972. Olympia und seine Bauten, Munich. Manser, J. 1987. Zwei Ostgriechische Gesichtskantharoi', AntK 30, pp. 162-8. Marconi, C. 1994. Le Metope dell'Heraion, Modena. . 2007. Temple Decoration and Cultural Identity in the Archaic Greek World, N e w York. Marconi, P. 1931. Himera: lo scava del tempio della Vittoria e del Temenos, Rome. Marconi Bovio, J. 1958. 'Rilievi inediti Selinuntini', ArchCl 10, pp. 55-9. Marcovich, M. 1978. 'Xenophanes on Drinking-Parties and Olympic Games', Illinois Classical Studies 3, pp. 1-26. Markman, S. D. 1943. The Horse in Greek Art, Baltimore. Markoe, G. 1985. Phoenician Bronze and Silver Bowls from Cyprus and the Mediterranean, Berkeley. . 1989. 'The Lion Attack in Archaic Greek Art: Heroic Triumph', Classical Antiquity 8.1, pp. 86-115. Marinis, S. de. 1961. Tipologia del banchetto nell'arte etrusca arcaica, Rome. Marszal, J. R. 1998. 'An Epiphany for Athena: the Eastern Pediment of the Old Athena Temple at Athens', in ΣΤΕΦΑΝΟΣ. Studies in Honor of Brunhilde Sismondo Ridgway, ed. Κ. Hartswick and M. Sturgeon, Philadelphia, pp. 173-80.
CITED Martin, R. 1965. Manuel d'architecture grecque, ι. Matériaux et techniques, Paris. . 1976. 'Bathyclès de Magnésie et le Thrône d'Apollon à A m y k lae', RA, pp. 205-18. Massow, W. von 1916. 'Die Kypseloslade', AM 41, pp. 1-117. Mazarakis Ainian, A. 1997. From Rulers' Dwellings to Temples: Architecture, Religion and Society in Early Iron Age Greece (c.noo-yoo B.C.), Jonsered. Mellink, M. J. 1974. 'Notes on Anatolian Wall Painting', in Mélanges Mansel, vol. 1, Ankara, pp. 537-47. . 1975. 'Excavations at Karata§-Semayük and Elmali, Lycia, 1974', AJA 79, pp. 349-55·
. 1988. 'Anatolia', CAH2, Cambridge, pp. 211-33. . 1998. Kizilbel: An Archaic Painted Tomb Chamber in Northern Lycia, Philadelphia. Mendel, G. 1914. Catalogue des sculptures des Musées Ottomans, vol. II, Constantinople. Mennenga, I. 1976. 'Untersuchungen zur Komposition und Deutung homerischer Zweikampfszenen in der griechischen Vasenmalerei' (diss. Berlin). Merkelbach, R. 1976. Die Inschriften von ./Issos, Bonn. Merritt, B. D., H. T. Wade-Gery, and M. F. McGregor. 1939-54. The Athenian Tribute Lists, 4 vols., Cambridge, Mass. Mertens, D. 1974. 'L'architettura', in Metaponto. AttiCSMG 13, Taranto, 14-19 October 1973, Naples, pp. 187-235. . 1976. 'Zur archaischen Architektur der achäischen Kolonien in Unteritalien', in Neue Forschungen in griechischen Heiligtümern: Internationales Symposion in Olympia vom 10. bis 12. Oktober 1974, e d· U. Jantzen, Tübingen, pp. 167-96. . 1979. 'Der ionische Tempel von Metapont. Ein Zwischenbericht', RM 86, pp. 103-39. . 1983. 'Per l'urbanistica e l'architettura della Magna Grecia', in Megàle Hellas. Nome e immagine. AttiCSMG 21, Taranto 2-5 October 1981, pp. 97-141. . 1984. Der Tempel von Segesta und die dorische Tempelbaukunst des griechischen Westens in klassischer Zeit, Mainz. . 1988. 'Zur Entstehung der Entasis griechischer Säulen', in Bathron. Beiträge zur Architektur und verwandten Künsten für Heinrich Drerup zu seinem 80. Geburtstag von seinem Schülern und Freunden, ed. F. Hiller, Saarbrucken, pp. 307-18. . 1989. 'Die Mauern von Selinunt. Vorbericht der Arbeiten des Deutschen Archäologischen Instituts Rom 1971-75 und 1985-87', RM 96, pp. 87-154. . 1993. Der alte Heratempel in Paestum und die archaische Baukunst in Unteritalien, Mainz. . 1996. 'Die Entstehung des Steintempels in Sizilien', in Säule und Gebälk. Zu Struktur und Wandlungsprozess griechisch-römischer Architektur, ed. E.-L. Schwandner, Mainz, pp. 25-38. . 2000. 'Lo ionico nell'architettura dell'Occidente. Problemi e questioni', in Magna Grecia e Oriente mediterraneo prima dell'età ellenistica. Atti del Trentanovesimo convegno di studi sulla Magna Grecia, Taranto 1-5 ottobre 1999, Taranto, pp. 519-56. . 2006. Città e monumenti dei Greci d'Occidente. Dalla colonizzazione alla crisi di fine V secolo a.C., Rome. Mertens-Horn, M. 1986. 'Studien zur griechischen Löwenbildern', RM 93, pp. 1-61. . 1988. Die Löwenkopf-Wasserspeier des griechischen Westens im 6. und Jahrhundert v. Chr., Mainz.
WORKS . 1992. 'Die archaischen Baufriese aus Metapont', RM
99,
pp. 1-122. . 1996. 'In der Obhut der Dioskuren. Zur Deutung des Monop-
CITED
303
Noël, D. 1983. ' D u vin pour Héraklès', in Image et céramique grecque. Acts du Colloque de Rouen 25-26 novembre 1982, ed. F. Lissarrague and F. Thelamon, Rouen, pp. 141-50. Norton, R. 1897. 'Two Reliefs from Assos', AJA, pp. 507-14.
teros der Sikyonier in Delphi', IstMitt 46, pp. 123-30. Metzger, H. 1963. FdXanthos II. L'Acropole lycienne, Paris. Miller, M. C . 1997. Athens and Persia in the Fifth Century B.C.: A Study in Cultural Receptivity, Cambridge. Miller, S. G. 1978. The Prytaneion, Its Function and Architectural Form, Berkeley. . 1981. 'Excavations in Nemea', Hesperia 50, pp. 45-67. . 2004. Ancient Greek Athletics, N e w Haven. Mommsen, H. 2002. 'Das Tritonabenteuer bei Exekias', in Essays in Honor of Dietrich von Bothmer ed. A . Clark and J. Gaunt, Amsterdam, pp. 225-32. Moore, M. B. 1982. 'Ceramics', in Samothrace. Excavations Conducted by the Institute of Fine Arts, New York University, vol. 5, The Temenos, ed. P. W. Lehmann, Princeton, pp. 317-94. Moore, Μ. B. and M. Z. P. Philippides. 1986. Agora XXIII, Attic Black-figured Pottery, Princeton. Moret, J.-M. 1984. Oedipe, la Sphinx, et les Thébains. Essai de mythologie iconographique, Geneva.
Nylander, C . 1966. 'Clamps and Chronology. Achaemenian problems, 2', Iranica Antiqua 6, pp. 130-46. . 1970. Ionians in Pasargadae, Studies in Old Persian architecture, Uppsala. Oberleitner, W. 1994. Das Heroon von Try sa; ein lykisches Furstengrab des 4. Jahrhunderts v. Chr., Mainz. Ohly, D. 1976, 2001. Die Aegineten, vols. I, II—III, Munich. Ohnesorg, A . 1990. 'Archaic Roof Tiles from the Heraion on Samos', Hesperia 59, pp. 181-92. . 1993. Inselionische Marmordächer. Denkmäler tektur, vol. 18.2, Berlin.
antiker
Archi-
. 2005. 'Naxian and Parian Architecture: General Features and N e w Discoveries', in Architecture des, ed. M. Yeroulanou and
and Archaeology in the CyclaM. Stamatopoulou, Oxford,
pp. 135-52.
. 2005 b. Ionische Altäre. Formen und Varianten einer turgattung aus Insel-und Ostionien, Berlin.
Architek-
Morgan, C . 1962. 'The Sculptures of the Hephaisteion: I', Hesperia 31, pp.2x0-19.
Oliver, A. 1977. Silver for the Gods: 800 Years of Greek and Roman Silver, Toledo.
Morris, S. 1984. The Black and White Style, N e w Haven. Morrow, K. D. 1985. Greek Footwear and the Dating of Sculpture, Madison.
Oppermann, M. 1990. Vom Medusabild zur Athenageburt; Bildprogramme griechischer Tempelgiebel archaischer und klassischer Zeit, Leipzig.
Mrogenda, U. 1990. 'Die Figürlichen Terrakotten', Ausgrabungen in Assos, AMS 2, pp. 35-53.
Orlandini, P. 1968. 'Gela, topografia dei santuari e documentazione archeologica dei culti', RivIstArch 15, pp. 20-66.
Müller, P. 1978. Löwen und Mischwesen in der archaischen griechischen Kunst. Eine Untersuchung über ihre Bedeutung, Zürich.
Orlandos, Α . Κ. 1915· 'Preliminary Dowels', AJA 19, pp. 175-8. . 1966. Les Matériaux de construction et la technique architecturale des anciens grecs, 2 vols, Paris.
Müller-Wiener, W. 1982. 'Neue Weihgeschenke aus dem Athena-Heiligtum in Priene', AA, pp. 691-702. Murray, O . 1980. Early Greece, Brighton. . 1983a. 'The Symposion as Social Organization', in The Greek Renaissance of the Eighth Century BC: Tradition and ed. R. Hägg, Stockholm, pp. 195-9.
Innovation,
. 1983b. 'The Greek Symposion in History', in Tria Corda: Scritti in onore di Arnaldo Momigliano, ed. E. Gabba, Como, pp. 257-72. . 1983c. 'Symposium and Männerbund', in Consilium Eirene 16. Proceedings of the 16th International Eirene P. Oliva and A . Frolikóva, Prague, pp. 47-52.
Conference,
ed.
. ed. 1990. Sympotica. A Symposium on the Symposion, Oxford. Muss, U. 1983. Studien zur Bauplastik des archaischen Artemisions von Ephesos (diss. Bonn). . 1994. Die Bauplastik des archaischen Artemisions von Ephesos. Sonderschriften des vol. 25, Vienna.
Osterreichischen
Archäologischen
Instituts,
'Αρχαιολογικού
Αρχαιολογικής
Αλίφειρα Εταιρείας,
. 1976—8. FI Αρχιτεκτονική
και τα μνημεία
της. Βιβλιοθήκη
της
v o l . 58, A t h e n s .
του Παρθενώνος,
Athens.
Osborne, R. 2000. 'Archaic and Classical Greek Temple Sculpture and the Viewer', in Word and Image in Ancient Greece, ed. Ν . Κ. Rutter and Β. A . Sparkes, Edinburgh, pp. 228-46. 0stby, E. 1978. 'The temple of Casa Marafioti at Locri and some related buildings', ActaArchArtHist 1.8, pp. 25-47. . 1980. 'The Athenaion of Karthaia', OpAth XIII 14, pp. 189-223. . 1987. 'Osservazioni sui templi di Locri Epizefirii', ActaArchArtHist 2.6, pp. r—58. . 1992. 'Der dorische Tempel von Pherai', OpAth, pp. 85-113. . 1995a. 'Scavi di Pallantion. Templi di Pallantion e dell'Arcadia. Confronti e sviluppi', ASAtene vols. 68-9, n.s. 51-2 (1990-1) pp. 285-391. . 1995b. 'Chronological Problems of Archaic Selinus', in Ancient
Nabers, N . and S. F. Wiltshire. 1980. 'The Athena Temple at Paestum and Pythagorean Theory', Greek, Roman and Byzantine Studies 21, pp. 207-15. N a k a s i s , A . 2004. 0
. 1967—8. H αρκαδική εν Αθήναις
ναός
Δελτίου',
της Αθηνάς
Μακίστου.
Δημοσιεύματα
του
vol. 87. Athens.
Neer, R. 2001. 'Framing the Gift: The Politics of the Siphnian Treasury at Delphi', CA 20, pp. 273-336. . 2002. Style and Politics in Athenian Vase-Painting: The Craft of Democracy, ca. 530-460 B.C.E., N e w York. Neumann, G. 1965. Gesten und Gebärden in der griechischen Berlin.
Kunst,
Sicily. ActaHyp 6, pp. 83-101. . 2000. 'Delphi and Archaic Doric Architecture in the Peloponnese', in Delphes. Cent ans après la grande fouille. Essai de bilan. Actes du colloque international, Athènes-Delphes, 17-20 septembre 1992, BCH suppl. 36, ed. A . Jacquemin, pp. 239-62. . 2005. 'Archaic Temple Architecture in Arcadia', in Ancient Arcadia: Papers from the Third International Seminar on ancient Arcadia held at the Norwegian Institute at Athens, γ-jo May 2002, ed. E. 0stby, Athens, pp. 493-506. . 2006. 'Continuatio, renovatio and innovatio. The birth of the Doric temple', ActaAArtHist
20, pp. 9-38.
WORKS
304
Ovadiah, A. 1980. Geometric and Floral Patterns in Ancient Mosaics, Rome. Overbeck, J. 1871. Griechische Kunstmythologie, Leipzig. Özgen, I., and J. Öztürk. 1996. Heritage Recovered: The Lydian Treasure, Istanbul. Özgünel, C. 2001. Smintheion. Troas'da Kutsal Bir Alan, Giilpinar'daki Apollon Smintheis Tapinagi, Ankara. Özyigit, Ö . 1994. 'The City Walls of Phokaia', REA 96, pp. 77-109. Pace, B. 1938. Arte e civiltà della Sicilia antica, 2 vols, Rome. Padgett, J. M. 2003. The Centaur's Smile. The Human Animal in Early Greek Art, Princeton. P a p a n i k o l a o u , A . 1998a. Ή της ακροπόλεως
οικοδομική
της Καρθαίας
κατά
δραστηριότητα τον 6Ο και
στην νότια
50 αι. π.Χ.
, in
κλιτύ Kea-
Kythnos. History and archaeology. Proceedings of an international symposium, Kea-Kythnos 22-25 June 1994, Athens, pp. 555-82. . 1998b. Ή
στέγη
του
ναού
της
Αθηνάς
στην
Καρθαία',
in
Kea-
Kythnos. History and archaeology. Proceedings of an international symposium, Kea-Kythnos 22-25 June 1994, Athens, pp. 583-608. Parisi Presicce, C. 1984. 'La funzione delle aree sacre nell'organizzazione urbanistica primitiva delle colonie greche alle luce della scopterta di un nuovo santuario periferico di Selinunte', Arch Ci 36, pp. 19-132. Paritida, E. C. 2000. The Treasuries of Delphi, Jonsered. Paspalas, S. A . 2000. Ά Persianizing cup from Lydia', OJA
19,
PP·135-74·
Paton, J. M. and G. P. Stevens. 1927. The Erechtheum, Cambridge, Mass. Payne, Η. 1931. Necrocorinthia: A Study of Corinthian Art in the Archaic Period, Oxford. . 1940, 1962. Perachora: the Sanctuaries of Hera Akraia and Limenia. Excavations of the British School of Archaeology at Athens, 1930-33, 2 vols., Oxford. Payne, H. and G. M. Young. 1936. Archaic Marble Sculpture from the Acropolis, London. Pedley, J. 1982. Ά Group of Early Sixth century Korai and the Workshop on Chios', A]A 86, pp. 183-91. Pedley, J. and M. Torelli. 1993. The Sanctuary of Santa Venera at Paestum, Rome. Pemberton, E. 1978. 'Vase Painting in Ancient Corinth', Archaeology 31.6, pp. 27-33. . 2000. 'Agones Hieroi. Greek Athletic Contests in their Religious Context', Nikephoros 13, pp. 111-23. Penrose, E C. 1888. An Investigation of the Principles of Athenian Architecture, 2nd edn, N e w York. Perni er, L. 1914. 'Templi arcaici sulla Patela di Prinias in Creta', ASAtene 1, pp. 18-111. . 1935. Il Tempio e l'altare di Apollo a Cirene, Bergamo. Pesce, G. 1947-48. 'Il "GranTempio" in Cyrene', BCH 71-2, pp. 307-58. Pfaff, C. A. 200χ. Ά Re-evaluation of the Roof of the South Stoa at the Argive Heraion', BSA 96 pp. 261-79. . 2003a. 'Archaic Corinthian Architecture; ca. 600-480 B.C.', in Corinth, the Centenary, ed. C. K. Williams and N . Bookidis, Princeton, pp. 95-140. . 2003b. The Argive Heraion I. The Architecture of the Classical Temple of Hera, Princeton. Pfrommer, M. 1986. 'Milet 1985. Ein Bronzebecher des 6. Jahrhunderts aus Milet', IstMitt 36, pp. 34-6.
CITED Pfuhl, E. and H. Möbius. 1977. Die ostgriechischen Grabreliefs, Mainz. Philipp, H. 2004. Archaische Silhouettenbleche und Schildzeichen in Olympia, OlForsch X X X , Berlin. Picard, C. 1941. 'Une Cimaise thasienne archaïque', MonPiot 38, pp. 55-92. Picard, C. and P. Frotier de La Coste-Messelière. 1928. FdD IV.2, Art archaïque: Les Trésors 'ioniques', Paris. Pipili, M. 1987. Laconian Iconography of the Sixth Century B.C., Oxford. . 1998. 'Archaic Laconian vase-painting: some iconographie considerations', in Sparta in Laconia: proceedings of the 19th British Museum Classical Colloquium held with the British School at Athens and King's and University Colleges, London 6-8 December 1995, ed. W. G. Cavanagh and S. E. C. Walker, London, pp. 82-96. Piri Re'is (Hadji Muhiddin Piri Ibn Hadji Mehmed). 1988. Kitab-I Bahriye Piri Reis, ed. E. Zekâi Okte, English trans. R. Bragner, Istanbul. Plassart, A. 1928. EAD XI. Les Sanctuaires et les cultes du Mont Cynthe, Paris. Plommer, H. 1970. 'Vitruvian Studies', BSA 65, pp. 179-90. Polliti, J. J. 1972. Art and Experience in Classical Greece, Cambridge, Mass. Pompeo, L. 1999. Il complesso archiettonico del tempio M di Selinunte. Analisi tecnica e storia edel monumento, Florence. Pomtow, H. 1911. 'Die beiden Tholoi zu Delphi', Zeitschrift für Geschichte der Architektur 4, pp. 171-214. Popham, M. R. with I. S. Lemos. 1996. Lefkandi III: the Toumba Cemetery. The Excavations of 1981, 1984, 1986 and 1992-4, BSA Suppl. vol. 29, Oxford. Poujoulat, J. J. F. 1834. In Joseph François Michaud and Jean Joseph François Poujoulat, Correspondance d'Orient, vol. iii, letter 69, Paris, pp. 218-19. Poulaki, E. 2001. Χία και Άνθεμούσια, Katerini. Poulsen, F. 1922. Etruscan Tomb Paintings, their Subjects and Significance, Oxford. Prag, A. J. N. W. 1985. The Oresteia. Iconographie and Narrative Tradition, Chicago. Prokesch von Osten, A . 1837. Denkwürdigkeiten und Erinnerungen aus dem Orient. Aus Julius Schnellers Nachlass herausgegeben von Dr. Ernst Münch III, Stuttgart. Pryce, F. N . 1928. Catalogue of sculpture in the Department of Greek and Roman Antiquities of the British Museum, I.x, Prehellenic and Early Greek, London. Pullan, R. Popplewell 1865. The Principal Ruins of Asia Minor, London. Raczyriski, E. 1825. Malerische Reise in einigen Provinzen des Osmanischen Reichs. Aus dem Polnischen des Herrn Grafen Eduard Raczyriski übersetzt, Breslau. Ramage, Α. 1978. Sardis M5. Lydian Houses and Architectural Terracottas, Cambridge, Mass. Rasmussen, T. and N . Spivey. eds. 1991. Looking at Greek Vases, Cambridge. Rathje, A. 1994. 'Banquet and Ideology. Some N e w Considerations about Banqueting at Poggio Civitate', in Murlo and the Etruscans. Art and Society in Ancient Etruria, ed. R. D. De Puma and J. P. Small, Madison, pp. 95-9. Ratté, C. J. 1989a. 'Lydian Masonry and Monumental Architecture at Sardis' (diss. University of California, Berkeley).
WORKS . 1989b. 'Five Lydian felines', AJA 93, pp. 379-93. . 1993. 'Lydian Contributions to Archaic East Greek Architecture', in Les Grands ateliers d'architecture dans le monde égéen du VIesiècle av. J.C., ed. J. des Courtils and J.-C. Moretti, Paris, pp. 1-12. Raubitschek, A . 1949. Dedications from the Athenian Akropolis: A Catalogue of the Inscriptions of the Sixth and Fifth Centuries BC, Cambridge. Raubitschek, I. 1950. 'Ionicizing-Doric Architecture. A Stylistic Study of Greek Doric Architecture of the Sixth and Fifth Centuries B.C.' (diss. Columbia University, University Microfilms, 1980). R h o m a i o s , K . A . 191 5. 'Περί τών év Κέρκυρα αρχαιολογικής Αρχαιολογικού •
.
1952·
Σχολής Δελτίου,
αναφέρει AD
'Τεγεατικόν
ανασκαφών
ò έφορος αρχαιοτήτων',
της
Γερμανικής
'Αρτέμιδος
Κνακεάτιδος',
Ασέαν',
Ιερόν Αθηνάς Σωτείρας
ArchEph,
pp.
και Ποσειδώνος
κατά την
. 1985. 'The Parthenon frieze and the Apadana reliefs at Persepolis. Reassessing a programmatic relationship 5 , AJA pp. 103-20.
89,
Rose C . Β. 1991. 'The theater of Ilion', Studia Troica ι, pp. 69-77. . 1995. 'The 1994 Post-Bronze Age Excavations at Troia', Studia Troica 5, pp. 81-105. . 1997. 'The 1996 Post-Bronze Age Excavations at Troia', Studia Troica 7, pp. 73-110. . 2003. 'The Temple of Athena at Ilion', Studia
Troica 13,
pp. 27-88. . 2008. 'Separating Fact from Fiction in the Aeolian Migration', Hesperia 77, pp. 399-430. Rose, H. J. 1974. A Handbook of Greek Mythology, 6th edn, London.
ArchEph,
Rotroff, S. and J. Oakley. 1992. Debris from a Public Dining Place in the Athenian Agora, Hesperia Supplement XXV, Princeton.
pp. 1-31. 1957·
305
τοΰ
Παράρτημα
I, pp. ~J~J—84·
'ιερόν
CITED
Αρκαδικήν
Roux, G. 1961. L'Architecture de l'Argolide aux IYet J.-C., Paris. Rumpf, A . 1927. Chalkidische
114-63.
Rice, Μ. 1998· The Power of the Bull, N e w York. Richter, G. Μ. Α . ΐ93°· Animals in Greek Sculpture, London. . 1943. 'The Drove', AJA 47, pp. 188-93.
avant
Vasen, Berlin.
Rykwert, J. 1996. The Dancing Column. Cambridge, Mass. Sahin, M. S. 1972. Die Entwicklung täre, Bonn.
. 1961. The Archaic Gravestones of Attica, London.
IIFsiècles
On Order in
der griechischen
Architecture,
Monumentalal-
. 1970. Kouroi, Archaic Greek Youths. A Study of the Development of the Kouros type in Greek sculpture, 3rd edn, London.
Sakellaraki, E. 1995. Chalkis; History, Topography and Museum, Athens.
Richter, G . M. A . and Μ. Milne. 1935. Shapes and Names of Athenian Vases, N e w York.
Salzmann, D . 1982. Untersuchungen zur den antiken Kieselmosaiken von den Anfängen bis zum Beginn der Tesseratechnik, Berlin.
Richter, Ο . F. von. 1822. Otto Friedrichs von Richter Wallfahrten im Morganlande. Aus seinem Tagebüchern und Briefen dargestellt von J. P. G. Ewers, Berlin, pp. 466-7.
Santangelo, M. 1961. Selinunte, Rome. Sartiaux, F. 1915. Les Sculptures et la restauration du temple d'Assos en Troade, from RA 22 (1913) and 23 (1914), Paris.
Ridgway, B. S. 1966. 'Notes on the Development of the Greek Frieze', Hesperia 35, pp. 188-95. . 1970. The Severe Style in Greek Sculpture, Princeton. . 1972. Catalogue of the Classical Collection
of the Museum of
Art, Rhode Island School of Design, Providence. . 1981. Fifth Century Styles in Greek Sculpture, Princeton. . 1991. 'Archaic Architectural Sculpture and Travel Myths', Dialogues d'histoire ancienne 17.2, pp. 95-112.
. 1918. 'L'Archéologie française en Asie Mineure et l'expansion allemande', Paris. Schattner, T. 1996. 'Architrav und Fries des archaischen Apollontempels von Didyma',/^/ n i , pp. 1-23. Schauenburg, Κ. 1971. 'Herakles bei Pholos', AM 86, pp. 43-54. . 1982. 'Zu einem spätarchaischen Kolonettenkrater in Lugano', Numismatica ed antichità classica, Quaderni Ticinesi 11, pp. 9-31.
. 1993. The Archaic Style in Greek Sculpture, rev. edn, Chicago, 1993.
Schede, M.1928. Meisterwerke der türkischen Museen zu Konstantinopel. Griechische und römische Skulpturen des Antikenmuseums, Berlin.
. 1999. Prayers in Stone. 600-100 B.C.E., Berkeley.
Schefold, K. 1951. 'Das Dämonische in der griechischen Kunst', Hermeneia; Festschrift O. Regenbogen, Heidelberg, pp. 28-39.
Greek
Architectural
Sculpture, ca.
Riemann, H. 1935. Zum griechischen Peripteraltempel; seine Planidee und ihre Entwicklung bis zum Ende des 5 Jhds., Düren. . 1943. 'Zum Artemistempel von Korkyra', Jdl 58, pp. 32-8. . 1950. 'Der peisistratidische Athenatempel auf der Akropolis zu
. 1981. Die
Göttersage
in der klassischen und
. 1964. 'Zum Olympieion von Syrakus', RM 71, pp. 229-37. Robert, C . 1881. Bild und Leid, Berlin. of Greek and Roman
Architecture,
. 1992. Gods and Heroes in Late Archaic Greek Art, Cambridge. der Griechen in der Früh-und
Hocharchaischen Kunst, Munich. Scheibler, I. i960. Die symetrische Bildform in der Flächenkunst, Kallmümz über Regensberg.
frühgriechischen
. 1961. 'Olpen und amphoren des Gorgonmaler',/ä?/ 76, pp. 1-47·
Robertson, C . M. 1975. History of Greek Art, Cambridge. Rocco, G. 2008. La Ceramografia protoattica; Pittori e (710-630 a.C.), Rahden/Westf.
hellenistischen
Kunst, Munich. . 1993. Götter- und Heldensagen
Athen', M dl 3, pp. 7-39.
Robertson, D. S. 1971. Handbook 2nd edn, Cambridge.
. 1968. Myth and Legend in Early Greek Art, London.
botteghe
Schiffler, B. 1976. Die Typologie des Kentauren in der antiken Kunst vom 10. bis zum Ende des 4. Jhs. v. Chr., Frankfurt and Berlin.
Rolley, C . 1994. La sculpture grecque, vol. ι, Des origins au milieu du Vsiècle, Paris.
Schilardi, D . 1986. Ά Fragment of a Marble Relief-Sarcophagus from Paros', in Archaische und klassische griechische Plastik. Akten des internationalen Kolloquiums von 22.-25. April 1985 in Athen, ed. H. Kyrieleis, vol 2, Mainz, pp. 13-26.
Root, M. C . 1973. ' A n Etruscan Horse Race from Poggio Civitate', AJA 77, pp. 121-37.
Schleif, H. 1933. 'Der grosser Altar der Hera von Samos', AM 58, pp. 174-210.
Roller, L. 1981. 'Funeral Games in Greek Art', AJA 85, pp. 107-19.
330 W O R K S Schliemann, Η. ι88ο. Ihos: The City and Country London.
of the Trojans,
. 1884. Troja. Results of the latest researches and discoveries on the site of Homer's Troy and in the heroic tumuli and other sites, made in the year 1882. And a narrative of a journey in the Troad in 1881, London. Schmitt Pantel, P. 1980. 'Les repas au prytanée et à la tholos dans
CITED
Seiler, F. 1986. Die griechische Tholos. Untersuchungen zur Entwicklung, Typologie und Funktion kunstmässiger Rundbauten, Mainz. Serdaroglu, Ü. 1983. '1981 Y1I1 Assos Çah§malari', IV Καζι Toplantisi 1982, Ankara, pp. 181-2.
Sonuçlan
. 1990. 'Zur Geschichte der Stadt Assos und ihrer Ausgrabungen', Ausgrabungen
in Assos, AMS 2, pp. 1-4.
. 1995. Assos, Istanbul, 1995.
l'Athènes classique. Sitesis, trophé, misthos: réflexions sur le mode de nourriture démocratique', Annali del'istituto universitario orientale di Napoli, seminario di studi del mondo classico 2, pp. 55-68.
Servais, J., J. P. Sodini, A . Lambraki, et al. 1980. EtThas IX. Aliki I. Les Deux sanctuaires. Les carrières de marbre a l'époque paléochrétienne, Paris.
. 1985. 'Banquet et cité grecque. Quelques questions suscitées par
Sevinç, N . 1996. Ά N e w Sarcophagus of Polyxena from the Salvage Excavations at Gûmûççay', Studia Troica 6, pp. 251-64.
les recherches récentes', Mélanges de l'Ecole française de Rome 97, pp. 135-58. . 1990a. 'Sacrificial Meal and Symposion. Two Models of Civic Institutions in the Archaic City?', in Sympotica; A Symposium on the Symposion, ed. Ο . Murray, Oxford, pp. 14-23. . 1990b. 'Collective Activities and the Political in the Greek
. 1992. La Cité au banquet. Histoire des repas publics dans les cités grecques, Collection de l'École française de Rome vol. 157, Rome. Schnapp, A. 1979. 'Images et programmes: Les figurations archaïques de la chasse au sanglier', RA, pp. 195-218. . 1997. Le Chasseur et la cité; Chasse et érotique dans la Grèce ancienne, Paris. Schnapp-Gourbeillon, A . 1981. Lions, héros, masques; les représentations de l'animal chez homere, Paris. der
Schubert, F. and S. Grunaeur-von Hoerschelman. 1978. und Photographie: fünfzig Mainz.
Beispiele zur Geschichte
Akropolis, Archäologie
und
Method,
Schuchhardt, W.-H. 1935-6. 'Die Sima des alten Athenatempels der Akropolis', AM 60-1, pp. 1 - 1 1 1 .
Southern Collections, N e w Orleans. . 1983. 'Amazons, Thracians, and Scythians', Greek, Roman, and Byzantine Studies 24, pp. 105-14. Shear, T. L. 1914. Ά pp. 285-96.
Sculptured Basis from Loryma', AJA
18,
Shear, T. L. Jr. 1971. 'The Athenian Agora: Excavations of 1970', Hesperia 40, pp. 241-79. . 1994. Ίσονόμους
τ Αθήνας έποιησάτην.
T h e A g o r a and the D e m -
ocracy', in The Archaeology of Athens and Attica under the Democracy, ed. W. D. E. Coulson, O . Palagia, T. L. Shear, Jr., H. A. Shapiro, and J. Frost, Oxford, pp. 225-48. Shepard, K. 1940. The Fish-tailed Monster in Greek and Etruscan Art, N e w York. Shoe, L. T. 1936. Profiles of Greek Mouldings, Cambridge, Mass. . 1952. Profiles of Western Greek Mouldings, Rome. Simantoni-Bournia, E. 2004. La Céramique grecque à reliefs; ateliers insulaires du VIIIeau V'csiècle avant J.-C., D r o z . Simon, E. 1967. 'Die Vier Büsser von Foce del S e l e ' , j d l 82, pp. 275-95.
. 1963. 'Archaische Bauten der Akropolis von Athen', AA, cols.
Sinn, U . 1981. 'Das Heiligtum der Artemis Limnatis bei K o m bothekra', AM 96, pp. 25-71.
797-824. Schuller, M. 1982. 'Der dorische Tempel des Apollon Pythios auf Paros', AA, pp. 245-64. . 1985. 'Die dorische Architektur der Kykladen in spätarchaischer Z e i t \ J d I 100, pp. 319-98. . 1991a. Der Artemistempel antiker Architektur
Sider, N e w York, pp. 164-81. Shapiro, H . A. ed. 1981. Art, Myth and Culture; Greek Vases from
City', in The Greek City from Homer to Alexander, ed. Ο . Murray and S. Price, Oxford, pp. 199-213.
Schräder, H. 1939. Die archaischen Marmorbildwerke Frankfort.
Shaw, J.-P 2001. 'Lords of Hellas, O l d Men of the Sea', in The New Simonides; Contexts of Praise and Desire, ed. D . Boedeker and D.
im Delion
auf Paros.
Denkmäler
vol. 18.1, Berlin.
. 1991b 'Die Wandkonstruktion dorischer Tempel auf den K y k laden', in Bautechnik der Antike. Diskussionen zur archäologischen Bauforschung 5, ed. A . Hoffmann, E.-L. Schwandner, W. Hoepfner, and G . Brands, Mainz, pp. 208-15. Schwandner, E.-L. 1976. 'Der ältere Aphaiatempel auf Aegina', in Neue Forschungen in griechischen Heiligtümern. Internationales Symposion in Olympia vom 10. bis 12. Oktober 1974, e d· U- Jantzen, Tübingen, pp. 103-20.
. 1984. Εκτυπον.
Der sog. Hera-Kopf aus Olympia', AM
99,
pp. 77-87. Sismanides, K . 1996. 'Αρχαία Μακίδονία
και Θράκη
Στάγ€ΐρα'.
To Αρχαιολογικό
Εργο
στη
loa, pp. 279-95·
Slater, W. J. 1981. 'Peace, the Symposium, and the Poet', Classical Studies 6.2, pp. 205-14.
Illinois
Small, J. P. 1971. 'The Banquet Frieze from Poggio Civitate', StEtr 39, pp. 25-61. . 1994 'Eat Drink and Be Merry: Etruscan Banquets', in M urlo and the Etruscans. Art and society in ancient Etruria, ed. R. D. D e Puma and J. P. Small, Madison, pp. 85-94. Sodini, J.-P., A . Lambraki, and T. Kozelj. 1980. EtThas IX. Aliki,1. Carrières de marbre a l'époque paléochrétienne, Paris, 1980. Spawforth, A . 2006. The Complete
Les
Greek Temple, London.
Denkmäler
Splitter, R. 2000. Die Kypseloslade in Olympia. Form, Funktion, und Bildschmuck: Eine Archäologische Rekonstruktion mit einem Kata-
Scott, M. 1982. 'Philos, Philotês and Xenia , Acta Classica: Proceedings of the Classical Association of South Africa 25, pp. 1-19.
log der Sagenbilder in der korinthischen Vasenmalerei und einem Anhang zur Forschungsgeschichte, Mainz.
Scranton, R. 1969. 'Greek Building', in The Muses at Work, ed. C .
Sprenger, M . and G. Bartoloni. 1983. The Etruscans; their History, Art,
. 1985. Der ältere Porostempel der Aphaia aufAegina. antiker Architektur
16, Berlin.
Roebuck, Cambridge, Mass., pp. 2-35. Segal, C . 1974. 'The Raw and the C o o k e d in Greek Literature. Structure, Values, Metaphor', Classical Journal 69.4, pp. 289-308.
and Architecture,
N e w York.
Stähler, Κ. 1972. 'Zur Rekonstruktion und Datierung des Gigantomachiegiebels von der Akropolis', in Antike und Universalgeschichte.
WORKS Festschrift Η.E. Stier zum 70. Geburtstag am 25.5.1972, ed. R. Stiehl and G. A . Lehmann, Münster, pp. 88-112. Steingräber, S. 1986. Etruscan Painting: Catalogue Raisonné of Etruscan Wall Paintings, English edn D. and F. Ridgway, N e w York. Sterrett, J. R. S. 1883. 'Inscriptions of Assos', Papers of the American School of Classical Studies at Athens 1, pp. 1-90. Steuben, H . von 1968. Frühe Sagendarstellungen Athen, Berlin.
307
. 1996b. 'Neue Reliefs vom Athena-Tempel von Assos', Ausgrabungen in Assos 1992, AMS 21, pp. 33-42. . 1996c. 'Grabungen in der Nekropole von Assos 1989-1994', Thetis 3, pp. 49-70. Svenson-Evers, H. 1996. Die griechischen Architekten archaischer und klassischer Zeit, Frankfurt.
in Korinth
und
Szeliga, G. 1983. Ά Representation of an Archaic Greek Saddle Cloth from Sicily', A]A 87, pp. 545-7.
Stewart, A . 1990. Greek Sculpture: An Exploration, N e w Haven. . 2008a. 'The Persian and Carthaginian Invasions of 480 B.C.E. and the Beginning of the Classical Style, 1. The Stratigraphy, Chronology and Significance of the Acropolis Deposits', A]A 112,
. 1986. 'The Composition of the A r g o Metopes f r o m the Monopteros at Delphi', AJA 90, pp. 297-305. Technau, W. 1937. 'Die Göttin auf dem Stier', Jdl, pp. 76-103. Texier, C . 1849. Description
de L'Asie
Mineure faite par ordre du
gouvernement français de 1833 à 183-/, vol. II, Paris.
pp· 3 7 7 - 4 1 2 ·
. 2008b. 'The Persian and Carthaginian Invasions of 480 B.C.E. and the Beginning of the Classical Style, 2. The Finds from Other Sites in Athens, Attica, Elsewhere in Greece, and on Sicily, 3. The Severe Style. Motivations and Meaning', A]A 112, pp. 581-615. Stibbe, C . M. 1972. Lakonische Vasenmaler des sechsten Jahrhunderts v. Chr., London. . 1978. 'Lakonische Kantharoi', Meded 5, pp. 23-42. . 1989. Laconian Mixing Bowls: A History of the krater Lakonikos from the Seventh to the Fifth Century B.C., Part 1, Amsterdam. . 1991. 'Dionysos in Sparta', BABesch 66, pp. 1-44. . 1994. Laconian Drinking Vessels and Other Open Shapes, A m sterdam. . 2000. The Sons of Hephaistos: Aspects of the Archaic
Greek
Bronze Industry, Rome. . 2004. Lakonische Vasenmaler des sechsten Jahrhunderts ν. Chr. Supplement,
CITED
Mainz.
Stillwell, R. 1932. Corinth Ι,ι, Introduction: topography,
architecture,
Cambridge, Mass. Stiros, S. C . 1996. 'Identification of Earthquakes from Archaeological Data', in Archaeoseismology, pp. 129-52.
ed. S. Stiros and R. E. Jones, Athens,
Thomas, R. F. 1988. Virgil's Georgics, Cambridge. Thompson, H . 1990. The Athenian Agora: A Guide to the Excavation and Museum, 4th edn, Athens. Thönges-Stringaris, R. M. 1965. 'Das griechische Totenmahl', AM 80, p p . 1-99. T i v e r i o s , M . 1976. 0 Λυδό? κ α ι το εργο αττικής
μελανόμορφης
αγγειογραφίας,
του. Συμβολή
στην
ερευνά
της
Athens.
Tölle-Kastenbein, R. 1983· 'Bemerkungen zur absoluten Chronologie spätarchaischer und frühklassicher Denkmäler Athens', AA,
1983,
573-84· Tomlinson, R. A. 1963. 'The Doric Order. Hellenistic Critics and Criticism', JHS 83, pp. 133-45. Touchais, G. 1980. 'Chronique des fouilles et découvertes archéologiques en Grèce en 1979', BCH 104, pp. 581-688. Touloupa, E. 1991. 'Early Bronze Sheets with Figured Scenes from the Acropolis', in New Perspectives in Early Greek Art. Studies in the History of Art, vol. 32, ed. D . Buitron-Oliver, Hannover, pp.241-71. Travlos, J. 1971. Pictorial Dictionary of Ancient Athens, N e w York. Tschira, A . 1941. 'Keildübel', AM 66, pp. 166-9.
Strocka, V. M. 1977. 'Neue archaische Löwen in Anatolien', pp. 481-512.
AA,
Strong, D . 1966. Greek and Roman Silver Plate, London. Stucchi, S. 1961. 'Le fasi costruttive dell'Apollonion di Cirene', Quaderni di Archeologia della Libia IV, pp. 55-81. . 1975. Monografìe di Archeologia naica, Rome.
Theodorescu, D. 1970. 'Notes histriennes', RA, pp. 29-54.
Cire-
Stupperich, R. 1990a. 'Vorbericht über die Grabung in der WesttorNekropole von Assos im Sommer 1989', Ausgrabungen in ylssos, AMS 2, p p . 7-22. . 1990b. 'Kurzer Vorbericht über die Grabungen in der WesttorNekropole von Assos im Sommer 1989 und 1990', Boreas pp. 27-36.
13,
. 1992. 'Zweiter Vorbericht über die Grabung in der Westtorin Assos
1990, AMS 5, pp. 1 - 3 1 . . 1993. 'Dritter Vorbericht über die Grabung in der WesttorNekropole von Assos im Sommer 1991', Ausgrabungen
in Assos
1991, AMS 10, p p . 1 - 3 5 . . 1995. 'Ein archaisches Kriegerrelief aus Gagara', Studien
zum
antiken Kleinasien 3, pp. 127-38. . 1996a. 'Vierter Vorbericht über die Grabung in der WesttorNekropole von Assos im Sommer 1992', Ausgrabungen 1992, AMS 21, p p . 1 - 3 1 .
T s i m b i d o u - A v l o n i t i , M . 2005. Μακεδονικοι Αγιο Αθανάσιο
Libica IX. Architettura
Nekropole von Assos im Sommer 1990', Ausgrabungen
Tsiafakis, D . 2003. ' " Π Ε ΑΩΡΑ": Fabulous Creatures and/or Demons of Death?', in The Centaur's Smile: The Human Animal in Early Greek Art, ed. J. M. Padgett, Princeton, pp. 73-104.
in Assos
των ταφικών
Θεσσαλονίκης. μνημείων
Συμβολή
της Μακεδονίας,
τάφοι
στον Φοίνικα
στη μελέτη
της
και
στον
εικονογραφίας
Athens.
Tuchelt, Κ. 197°· L)ie archaischen Skulpturen von Didyma. Beiträge zur frühgriechischen Plastik in Kleinasien. Istanbuler Forschungen vol. 27, Berlin. · 1973_4· 'Didyma 1972/73', IstMitt 23-4, pp. 139-68. . 1976. 'Zwei gelagerte Gewandfiguren aus D i d y m a ' , pp. 55-66.
RA,
Tusa, V. 1983. La Scultura in pietra di Selinunte, Palermo. Utili, F. 1992. 'Früh-und hocharchaische bemalte Schalen', Ausgrabungen in Assos 1990, AMS 5, pp. 33-63. . 1993. 'Ostgriechische Teller', Ausgrabungen in Assos 1991, AMS 10, pp. 53-72. . 1996a. 'Archaische ostgriechische Lekanai', Ausgrabungen Assos 1992, AMS 21, pp. 59-70.
in
. 1996b. 'Die archaischen Gräber aus E' IV", Ausgrabungen
in
/4s50s 1992, AMS
21, p p . 4 3 - 5 7 .
. 1999. Die archaische Nekropole von Assos, AMS 31, Bonn. . 2006a. 'Archaische Ostgriechische Amphoren und Kannen', Ausgrabungen
in Assos 1993, AMS 57, pp. 49-60.
WORKS
3Ο8
Utili, F. 2006b. 'Chiotischer Kelch', Ausgrabungen in Assos 1993, AMS 57, pp. 61-3. . 2006c. 'Ein Aryballos des "Malers von Berlin F1090" Ausgrabungen in Assos 1993, AMS 57, pp. 65-8. Ure, P. N. 1913. Black Glaze Pottery from Rhitsona in Boeotia, Oxford, 19T3. . 1927. Sixth and Fifth Century Pottery from Rhitsona, Oxford. Vallet, G. 1956. 'Le Group de Polyphème et la céramique "Chalcidienne" ', REA 58, pp. 42-50, Vallois, R. 1944-78. VArchitecture hellénique et hellénistique à Délos jusqu'à l'éviction des Déliens 166 av. J.C. Bibliothèque des Ecoles françaises d'Athènes et de Rome vol. 157, Paris. Van Buren, Mrs E. D. 1923. Archaic Fictile Revetments in Sicily and Magna Graecia, London. . 1926. Greek Fictile Revetments in the Archaic Period, London. Van der Meijden, H. 1993. Terrakotta-Arulae aus Sizilien und Unteritalien, Amsterdam. Vanderpool, E. 1938. 'The Rectangular Rock Cut Shaft', Hesperia 7, pp. 363-411. Van Keuren, F. 1989. The Frìeze from the Hera I Temple at Foce del Sele, Rome. Venturi, R. 1966. 'Nonstraightforward Architecture: A Gentle Manifesto', in Complexity and Contradiction in Architecture, N e w York. Verbanck-Piérard, A . 1982. 'La rencontre d'PIéraklès et de Pholos: Variantes iconographiques du Peintre d'Antiménès', in Rayonnement Grec. Hommages à Charles Delovoye, ed. L. HadermannMisquich and G. Raepsaet, Brussels, pp. 143-54. Vermeule, E. D. T. 1966. 'The Boston Oresteia Krater', A]A 70, pp. 1-22. . 1979. Aspects of Death in Early Greek Art and Poetry, Sather Classical Lectures 46, Berkeley. Vickers, M. 1986. From Silver to Ceramic, Oxford. Villanueva Puig, M.-C. 1987. 'Sur l'identité de la figure féminine assise sur un taureau dans la céramique attique à figures noires', in C. Bérard, ed. Images et sociétés en Grèce ancienne. L'iconographie comme méthode d'analyse, Lausanne, pp. 131-42. Vlassopoulou, C. and E. Touloupa. 1990. 'Decorated Architectural Terracottas from the Athenian Acropolis: Catalogue of Exhibition', Hesperia 59, pp. i-xxxi. V o k o t o p o u l o u , I. 1 9 7 5 . Χαλκαι μελέτην
της αρχαίας
. 1997·
Αργυρά
ελληνικής «rat χάλκινα
κορινθιουργείς Χαλκουργίας, έργα
τέχνης
ττρόχοι:
συμβολή
εις
την
Athens. στην αρχαιότητα,
Athens.
Vollkommer, R. 199 1 · 'Zur Deutung der Löwenfrau in der frühgriechischen Kunst', AM 106, pp. 47-64. Vos, M. F. 1963. Scythian Archers in Archaic Attic Vase-Painting, Groningen. Waelkins, M., P. De Paepe, and L. Moens. 1988. 'Quarries and the Marble Trade in Antiquity', in Herz and Waelkins, pp. 11-28. . 1990. 'The Quarrying Techniques of the Greek World', in Marble. Art historical and scientific perspectives on ancient sculpture. Papers of the symposium Malibu April 28-30, 1988, Malibu, p p · 47-72·
Waldbaum, J. 1983. The Archaeological Exploration of Sardis. vol. M4: Metalwork from Sardis. The Finds through 1974, Cambridge, Mass. Waldstein, C. 1902. The Argive Heraeum, 2 vols., Boston. Walter, H. 1960. 'Sphingen', Antike und Abendland 9, pp. 63-71. 1968. Samos V. Frühe samische Gefässe: Chronologie und Landschaftsstile ostgriechischer Gefässe, Bonn.
CITED Walter-Karydi, E. 1970. Studien zur griechischen Vasenmalerei, AntK Beiheft 7, Bern. . 1973. Samos VI.i. Samische Gefässe des 6. Jahrhunderts v. Chr.-, Landschaftsstile ostgriechischer Gefässe, Bonn. . 1985. 'Genelaos', AM 100, pp. 91-104. Wati'ous, L. V. 1998. 'Crete and Egypt in the Seventh Century BC: Temple A at Prinias', in Post Minoan Crete. Proceedings of the First Colloquium on Post-Minoan Crete held by the British School at Athens and the Institute of Archaeology, University College London, 10-11 November 199s, ed. W. G. Cavanagh, M. Curtis, J. N . Coldstream, and A . W. Johnston, London, pp. 75-9. Webb, P. 1996. Hellenistic architectural sculpture: figurai motifs in western Anatolia and the Aegean Islands, Madison, Wise. Weber, B. 2002. 'Die Saulenordnung des archaischen Dionysostempels von Myus', IstMitt 52, pp. 221-71. Weber, H. 1965. 'Myus. Grabung 1964', IstMitt 15, pp. 43-64. . 1967. 'Myus. Grabung 1966', IstMitt 17, pp. 128-43. Weber-Lehmann, C. 1985. 'Spätarchaische Gelagebilder in Tarquinia', RM 92, pp. 19-44. Weickert, C. 1929. Typen der archaischen Architektur in Griechenland und Kleinasien, Augsburg. Welter, G. 1941. Troizen und Kalaureia, Berlin. Wescoat, B. D. 1981. 'The Temple of Athena at Assos: Recent Investigations', A]A 85, pp. 223-4. . 1982. 'The Temple of Athena at Assos: Style and Date', AJA 86, pp.289-90. . 1986. 'The Temple of Athena, Assos: 1982-1985', AJA 90, pp. 194-5. . 1987. 'Designing the Temple of Athena at Assos; Some Evidence from the Capitals', AJA 91, pp. 553-68. . 1988. 'Some Architectural Evidence for the Sources and Program of the Athena Temple at Assos', Πρακτικά του XII Διεθνούς Συνεδρίου
Κλασικής
Αρχαιολογίας,
Αθήνα
4—ΙΟ
Σεπτεμβρίουΐ983,
vol. 4> Athens, pp. 205-21. . 1995· 'Wining and Dining on the Temple of Athena at Assos', in The Art of Interpreting. Papers in the History of Art from The Pennsylvania State University, vol. IX, ed. S. Scott, pp. 293-320. Wesenberg, Β. 1983. 'Parthenongebälk und Siidmetopenproblem', Jdl 98, pp. 57-86. Wide, S. and L. Kjellberg. 1895. 'Ausgrabungen auf Kalaureia', AM 20, PP-267-326. Wiegand, T. 1904. Die archaische Poros-architektur der AkropoIis zu Athen, Cassel and Leipzig. Wiegartz, H. 1994. 'Aolische Kapitelle', AMS 11, pp. 117-32. Wiencke, M. 1954. 'An Epic Theme in Greek Art', AJA 58, pp. 285-306. Willemsen, F. 1963. 'Archaische Grabmalbasen aus der Athener Stadtmauer', AM 78, pp. 104-53. Williams, C. and H. Williams. 1990. 'Excavations at Mytilene, 1989', Classical Views n.s. 9, pp. 181-93. . 1991. 'Excavations at Mytilene, 1990', Classical Views n.s. 10, pp.175-91. Williams II, C. K. 1984. 'Doric Architecture and Early Capitals in Corinth', AM 99, pp. 67-75. Williams, D. 1980. 'Ajax, Odysseus, and the Arms of Achilles', AntK 23, p p . 1 3 7 - 4 5 -
Williams, H. 1993. 'Archaic architectural fragments from Mytilene', in Les Grands ateliers d'architecture dans le monde égéen du VIesiècle av. J.-C., ed. J. des Courtils and J.-C. Moretti, Paris, pp. 83-7.
333 W O R K S Winter, F. 1903. Die Typen der figürlichen Terracotten, I, Berlin. Winter, F. E. 1976. 'Tradition and Innovation in Doric Design I: Western Greek Temples', A]A 80, pp. 139-45. . 1978. 'Tradition and Innovation in Doric Design II: Archaic and Classical Doric East of the Adriatic', A]A 82, pp. 151-61. . 1991. 'Early Doric Temples in Arkadia', Classical Views n.s. 10, pp. 193-220. . 2005. 'Arkadian temple-designs', in Ancient Arcadia: Papers from the Third International Seminar on Ancient Arcadia held at the Norwegian Institute at Athens, 7-/0 May 2002, ed. E. 0stby, Athens, pp. 483-92. Winter, N. 1993. Greek Architectural Terracottas from the Prehistoric to the End of the Archaic Period, Oxford. Witte, J. de. 1842. 'Bas-reliefs d'Assos', Annali dell'Instituto di Corrispondenza Archeologica 13, pp. 317-20. Wolf, S. R. 1993. Herakles beim Gelage; Eine motiv- und bedeutungsgeschichtliche Untersuchung des Bildes in der archaisch-frühklassischen Vasenmalerei, Böhlau. Wolters, P. 1895. 'Bronzereliefs von der Akropolis zu Athen', AM 20, pp. 473-82. Woysch-Méautis, D. 1982. La Représentation des animaux et des êtres fabuleux sur les monuments funéraire grecs. De l'époque archaïque à la fin du IVe siècle av. J.C., Lausanne. Wroth, W. [1894] 1964a. Catalogue of the Greek Coins ofTroas, Aeolis, and Lesbos, repr. Bologna. . [1892] 1964b. Catalogue of the Greek Coins of Mysia, repr. Bologna. Wurster, W. 1971. Alt-Àgina I.r. Der Apollontempel, Mainz.
CITED . 1973. 'Dorische Peripteraltempel mit gedrungenem Grundriss', AA, p p . 200-11.
Yavis, C. G. 1949. Greek Altars, St Louis, Mo. Yeroulanou, M. 1998. 'Metopes and Architecture: The Flephaisteion and the Parthenon', BSA 93, pp. 401-25. Young, R. S. 1981. The Gordion Excavations Final Reports, vol. I: Three Great Early Tumuli, University Museum Monograph 43, Philadelphia. Zahn, E. 1983. Europa und der Stier, Würzburg. Zancani Montuoro, P. and U. Zanotti-Bianco. 1951. Heraion alla Foce delSele I. Ilsantuano. Il tempio della Dea. Rilievi figurati vani, Rome. . 1954. Heraion alla Foce del Sele II. 'Ilprimo thesauros', Rome. Zancani Montuoro, P. and D. Mertens. 1972-3. 'Divinità e templi di Sibari e Thurii', AttiMagnaGrecia, n.s. 13-14, pp. 57-68. Ziegenaus, Ο . 1957. 'Der Südbau; Ergänzende Untersuchungen', AM 72, pp. 65-76. Zimmermann, K. 1990. 'Archaische Dachterrakotten aus Histria', Hesperia 59, pp. 223-3. . 1991. 'Griechische Altäre in der Tempelzone von Histria', in L'espace sacrificiel dans les civilisations Méditerranéennes de l'antiquité. Actes du Colloque tenu a la Maison de l'Orient, 4-6 juin 1988, ed. R. Etienne and M.-T. Le Dinahet, Paris, pp. 147-54. . 1994. 'Traufziegel mit Reliefmäander aus dem Schwarzmeergebiet', Hesperia Supplement X X V I I , pp. 221-51. . 2007. 'Frühe Dachterrakotten aus Milet und dem Pontosgebiet', in Frühes Ionien. Eine Bestandsaufnahme. Panionion-Symposion Gûzelçamli 26. September-i. Oktober 1999, ed. J. Cobet, V. von Graeve, W.-D. Niemeier, and K. Zimmermann, pp. 631-6.
INDEX Achaemenid-style silver vessels 168 'Achaian' Doric 213, 214, 215, 220, 222, 223, 224, 225, 235, 236 Achilles 164, 181, 182, 184, 185-6, 188, 190, 191 Adramyttion, Gulf of ι, 201, 238 adyton 208-9, 23^> 2 4 I - 4 Aegean 1, 127, 167, 168, 211, 225-31, 232, 233, 240; see also Cyclades Aegina Temple of Aphaia I 57, 215, 220, 221, 238, 241, 245, 249, 252, 255, 259, 262, 265 Temple of Aphaia II 101, 124, 128, 192, 209, 212, 221, 228, 232, 241, 245, 249, 252, 255, 259, 262, 265, Fig. 93.4 Temple of Apollo II 221 Temple of Apollo III 223, 241, 245, 249, 252, 255, 259, 262, 265 Aeolia 156, 166, 202, 203, 225, 228, 229, 231, 232 Aethiopis 181 Agamemnon 181, 191 Agios Athanasios, Macedonian Tomb at 240 Ahlberg-Cornell, Gudrun 162-3 Aigisthos 185 Ainos 203 Aischylos 181 Aitolia 173 Ajax 181, 184, 188, 191, 234 Akalan, architectural terracottas from 151, 156 Akerström, Ake 84, 86, 237 Akragas Temple of Athena 217, 232, 243, 247, 251, 257, 261, 264, 266 Temple of Demeter 243, 247, 251, 257, 266 Temple of Hera Lakinia 243, 251, 254, 257, 261 Temple of Herakles 214, 215, 217, 222, 232, 236, 244, 247, 251, 254, 257, 261, 264, 266 Temple of Zeus 215, 217, 232, 244, 247, 251, 254, 257, 261, 264, 266 Akrai, Temple of Aphrodite 209, 244, 248, 251, 254, 257, 261, 264, 266 allegory, mythological 128, 162-3 Alipheira, Temple of Athena 212, 215, 222, 223, 224, 237, 239, 241, 245, 249, 252, 255, 259, 262, 265 Alyattes, sack of 229 Amphiaraos 181 Amyzon 156 Amyklai, Throne of Apollo 156, 191, 203, 205, 222, 226, 245, 249, 252, 255, 262, 265 Anatolia 127, 128, 132, 133, 135, 136, 143, 156, 166, 167, 168, 189, 190, 202, 203, 204, 211, 214, 225-31, 233, 235, 238, 239, see also Aeolia, Asia Minor, East Greece, Ionia, Mysia, Troad andesite 19 impact on sculpture 130 animal combat 4, 127, 129, 141-151, 175, 192-198, 233, 278, see also bulls, lions Ankaios 187 Antaios 161 Antandros 202 Antiope 182 Apollo 149, 171, 179, 183 Apollodoros 181 Apollonios 164 apotropaic imagery 128, 133, 141, 149, 173, 175, 176, 190, 191 Argos 209-10 Capitals C, D, and E 213, 252, 255, 262, 265
Temple of Hera I 241, 245, 259 Temple of Hera II 216-7, 22 ^ aristocratic valour, scenes of 128, 170, 171, 187, 190 Arkadia 204, 209-10, 213, 217, 223-4, 238-9 Artemis 140, 183 Asea: Temple of Athena Soteira and Poseidon 209, 223, 241, 245, 249, 252, 255, 259, 262, 265 Temple at Hagios Elias 223, 241, 245, 249, 252, 255, 259, 262, 265 Asia Minor 1, 10, 86, 88, 125, 136, 140, 141, 147, 184, 202-3, 22 7-8, see also Aeolia, Anatolia, Ionia, Mysia, Troad Assos akropolis, other architectural material from 284-91, Figs. 97-101 coinage 7, Fig. 3 history 7-8, 201-3 lower city 7, 13, 88, 125, 126, 286 nekropolis, 14, 15, 17, 202-3 archaic finds from 166-7, I88, 202-3, 233> 235 post-antique fortification walls 7-8, 9, 10, 15, 18, 43, 56, 114, 145, 146, 184, 195 Temple of Athena: architectural elements of akroteria 15, 19, 28, 88-9, 104, 122, 123-4, I37> 22 7~8, 232, Fig. 47 anta 28, 35, 40, 91-2, 227, Fig. 48, Pi. 32 anta capital? 91-2, 227, 284, 286, Fig. 49, PI. 61 antefix 14, 17, 85-6, 88, 89, 123, 125, 221, 228, 232, 237-8, 239, Fig. 46a, PI. 57 ceiling 19, 77, 83, 90, 97, 105-6, 108, 123, 125-6, 232 cella 16, 17, 31, 35, 38, 40, 56, 83, 92-3, 97, 123, 125, 208-9 colonnade 30, 31, 33, 39, 41-56, 81, 100,101, 113, 114, 147, 192,195, 198, 207-10, 211—14, 219-20, 225,235, 238, 241-4, 280, 283 column 10, 17, 24, 31, 33, 38-9, 41-56, 82, 90, 101, 194, 201, 206, 207, 222, 223, 224-5, 227> 2 36-8, 249-51, Fig. 24 capital 7, 10, ix, 13, 17, 18, 20, 23, 28, 30, 41, 43-56, 57, 64-5, 72-5, 82, 90, 101, 124, 192, 194, 195, 198, 204, 212-4, 22I > 222, 225, 231, 235, 237-8, 252-4, 270, Figs. 22, 25-28, 4ia-b, Pis. 35—44b shaft 8, 10, 20, 27, 28-9, 38, 41-3, 45-6, 82, 90, 101, 212-14, 222, 227, 235, 237, Figs. 16, 20-3, 26a, Pis. 33-4 door and doorframe 40, 93, 97-9, 206, 227, 284, 285, Figs. 52, 100, see also door wall, threshold entablature 4, 18, 20, 28, 30, 40, 56-75, 90, 91, 93, 101-3, 114, 127, 130, 131, 150, 192, 195, 200, 206-7, 2 I I > 2 14 —2 1 222_ 4> 225~6> 227, 235, 237, 239, Fold-out figs. 8-10 entablature, backing courses of 69-72, Figs. 36-40, Pis. 51-2 epikranitis 19,90,97,285,287 epistyle 1, 4, 5, 11, 13, 14, 17, 18, 20, 23-4, 28, 29, 39, 41, 46, 47-8, 49, 54, 56-65, 67, 69, 72-4, 83, 90, 91, 101, 103, 114, 124, 127-173, 174, 175, 176, 179, 190, 191, 192-198, 214-5, 216, 219-226, 231, 234, 235, 238, 255-61, 278-83, Figs. 13,17, 29-33, 4ia-b, 48, 54, 68-81, Pis. 45~47b, 76-102C regula(e) 39, 58, 60, 64-5, 69, 72, 78, 103, 114, 131, 135, 1 53J 155» 165, 192, 193-8, 214, 215, 219-20, 238 144-5, sculptured blocks of, see sculpture taenia 60, 63-4, 72, 83, 131, 164, 215 facade 31, 33, 35, 38-40, 41, 64-5, 67, 72, 101, 103, 108, 113, 124, 130, 144, 146, 153, 155, 159, 165, 190, 191, 192-5, 196-8, 207-8, 210, 214, 219, 220, 221, 223-5, 23^> 2 4°
312
INDEX frieze course 4, 13, 23, 24, 29, 30, 64, 65-9, 78, 81-2, 83, 85, 89, 90-1, 100-3, I0(>~7> 113-14, 123-4, 173-90, 191, 194-5, l97i 198-200, 214, 215-17, 219-21, 222-4, 234> 236-8, 255-61 metope 4, 9, 14, 17, 18, 19, 64, 65-69, 78, 82, 90, 101, 103, 108, 113, 114, 124, 127-33, I53) 155J 164, 173-91, 198-200, 204, 206, 215-7, 220-1, 223, 234-6, 238, Figs. 34, 82-90, Pis. 89, 93, ι03-1ι2 sculptured metopes, see sculpture taenia 67, 69, 176, 181, 215-16, 221, 235-6, 237-8 triglyph 10, 11, 17, 28, 65, 67-9, 82, 83, 90, 101,103, 108, 113,124, 130, 131, 146, 194-9, 2I4> 215—16, 217, 219, 221, 223-4, 225J 231, 235, 236, 237, Fig. 35, Pis. 48-50 geison, horizontal and lateral 8, 10, 17, 19, 20, 21, 23, 24, 27-8, 30, 41, 65, 69, 75-82, 83, 85, 88, 89, 90, 100-1, 103-4, 120, 122-3, 125, 152-3, 192, 195, 196, 197, 19S, 211, 217-19, 224, 225, 229, 231, 232, 235, 236, 237, 239, 262-6, Figs. 10-12,42-4, 53,55-61, Pis. 53-6, 66-9 corona 77, 80, 82, 101, 104, 114, 115 mutule 65, 69, 77, 78, 81, 82, 100, 101, 103, 104, 106, 108, 109, 113, 124, 193, 194, 195, 196, 197, 199, 214, 217, 219, 220, 225, 235-8 drip 77, 124, 217, 225, 235, 237 via 30, 65, 77, 78, 79, 103, 105, 106, 108, 112, 113, 120, 217, 236, 262, 264 geison, raking 17, 23, 28, 81, 82, 87, 101, 103, 104, 108, 115-22, 123, 124, 217, 231-2, 234, Figs. 66, 91, 93, Pis. 74-5 krepis 14, 18-9, 23, 24, 31-8, 130, 211-12, 226, 238, Fig. 8, Pis. 2, 3a-b, 29-3ic, Fold-out fig. 2 euthynteria, 18, 20, 24, 31-2, 211, 228, 229 steps 20, 24, 29, 30, 31, 32-3, 35, 40, 81, 97, 210, 211-12, 229, 241-4 stylobate, 8, 20, 24, 30, 33, 38-9, 40, 97, 113, 209, 210, 211-12, 221, 223, 224, 225, 229, Figs. 18-9 lion's head waterspout 15, 17, 19, 88, 123, 141, 228, 232, PI. 60 mouldings astragal 69, 85, 86, 204, 216, 228, 234, 238 cavetto 76, 81, 91, 115-16, 217 hawksbeak, geison crown 19, 30, 75, 76, 77, 81, 82, 83, 85,91, 101, 103, 108, 115, 116, 217-9, 2 3 I - 2 , 235, 236, 238, 265-6, Figs. 53, 61, 91 hawksbeak, geison soffit 115, 116, 124, 232, 265-6, Figs. 66, 93 kyma reversa 91-2, 286 peristasis, see colonnade peristyle, see colonnade pronaos 14, 31, 35, 38, 39-40, 41, 56, 57, 83, 90-1, 97, 123, 127, 138, 159, 193-4, 196, 197, 199, 206, 207-11, 212, 226, 236, 237, 238, 240, 241-4, Fig. 48, PI. 32 pteroma (pteron) 14, 15, 17, 31, 38, 39-40, 56, 57, 83, 90-1, 97, 122, 193, 201, 203, 207-9, 211, 226, 227, 235-6, 240, PI. 4 roof 16, 28, 80, 82, 83-89, 100, 122-4, I25> s e e antefix, sima, lion's head waterspout tiling 14-15, 16, 19, 83, 85, 88, 103, 104, 123-4, I25> 2 2 7 - 8, Figs. 45, 46c, PI. 59 woodwork 19, 76, 83, 122-3 sekos 28, 39-40, 90-9, 207-208, 210, 227, 229, 235, 239, 245-49 sima 15, 17, 81, 83, 85, 86-8, 89, 104, 122, 123, 124, 125, 149, 175, 221, 227-8, 231, Fig. 46b, PI. 58a-b thranos 83, 284, 285,287 threshold 35, 93, 97-9, 227 toichobate 18, 28, 35, 38, 91, 92, 93, 97, 99, 285, Fold-out Fig. 1 tympanon 8, 19, 20, 23, 29, 30, 75, 82, 89,100, 108, 113, 114-22, 130, 195, 284, 285, 286, Figs. 62-5, Pis. 70-3, Fold-out Fig. 12
wall 10, 24, 28, 35, 38, 39-40, 57, 91, 92-9, 122, 227, 229, 241-4, 280-2, 284 blocks 20, 32, 93-7, 287, Fig. 50, Pis. 62-5 orthostates? 70, 93, 94, 229, 285, Fig. 51 date of 7-8, 201-40 design alignment 31, 39-40, 65, 82, 90, 113-14, 193,194, 195, 197,198, 206, 207, 208-11, 214, 215, 219-20, 226, 235-6, 237-8, 240, 241-4, 280, 282 contraction 39, 40, 206, 210-11, 223, 236, 238, 241-4, 280 interaxial spacing 38-9, 41, 64, 78, 81, 90, 108, 113-14, 209, 212, 219, 236,280 plan 4, 14, 18, 33, 38-40, 193-4, 201, 204, 206-11, 223, 224, 225, 226-7, 235-40, Fold-out figs, ι, 3-5 proportions 40, 50-5, 56, 65, 77, 83, 90, 90-2, 99, 101, 204, 206, 208-10, 211, 213, 214, 217, 221-5, 227> 23J» 232> 235~~4°> 245~54, 2 59~ é 4 scale, architectural 31, 201, 204, 206, 207, 208-13, 2I9> 222> 223> 225, 236, 237, 238, 239, 240 earlier reconstructions of 8-17, 278-83, Figs. 4-7, 94-6 sculpture 127-201 clothing 132-133, 159, 166, 169, 185, 189-90, 233 hairstyle 10,132,133, 135, 151, 152, 153, 154, 155, 156, 159, 162, 171, 173, 174, 175, 179, 182, 186, 188, 232, 233, 234, 235 isocephaly 131, 159, 165, 169 iconography, see individual reliefs, subjects, and themes narrative strategies 127-8, 149-50, 151, 163, 164, 170, 173, 175, 176, 191, 278 scale of imagery 127, 128, 131, 138, 140, 141, 143, 144, 146, 148, 149, 150, 151, 156, 158, 160, 161, 164, 169, 171, 173, 174, 190, 192, 193, 196, 197, 198, 225-6, 232, 233 sculptured epistyle A i and A2—confronted sphinxes 9,10, 13, 14,17, 28, 29, 65,127, 129, 131, 132, 133-8, 141, 154, 173, 174, 192-8, 232-3, 270-1, 278-83, Figs. 67-8, Pis. 76-9 A3—Herakles wrestling Triton 9, 10, 11, 13, 64, 114, 127, 129, 130, 131, 132, 133, 151, 158-64, 165, 166, 170, 177, 179, 182, 184, 185, 186, 189, 192-8, 206, 232, 234, 238, 271, 278-83, Fig. 80, Pis. 98100c A4—symposion 9, 10, 13, 127, 129, 130, 131, 133, 151, 156, 158, 159, 160, 164-73, J77> I79> 187, 192-8, 232-4, 271, 278-83, Fig. 8l, Pis. I0O-I02C A5, A6, A7, and A8—centauromachy on Mt. Pholoe 4, 9, 10, 13, 14, 15, 17, 18, 30, 64, 127, 129, 131, 132, 133, 135, 141, 151-8, 160, 168, 170, 175-6, 177, 181, 182, 185, 186, 192-9, 233-4, 271-2, 278-83, Figs. 76-9, Pis. 92-7 A9, Aio, A n , A12, and A13 - lions savaging prey 4, 9, 10, 11, 13, 14, 17, 18, 64, 91, 127, 129, 131, 133, 138, 141-51, 154> *73> *75> !76, 192-8, 233, 272-4, 278-83, Figs. 71-5, Pis. 82-91 A14 and A i 5—battle of rival bulls 9, 10, 13, 15, 30, 127, 129, 130, 131, 133, 138-41,176,179, 192-8, 233, 274, 278-83, Figs. 69-70, Pis. 80-1 sculptured metopes Mi—chase scene 181-4, Fig. 87, PI. 108 M2—runners 17 186-8, Fig. 89, PI. 109 M3—confronted sphinxes 173-4, Fig. 82, Pi. 103 M4—boar 174-5, Fig. 83, Pi. 104 M5—Europe on the Zeus Bull 17, 176-9, Fig. 85, PI. 106 M6—horse legs 15, 188, Fig. 90, PI. 112 M7—galloping centaur 175-6, Fig. 84, PI. io5a-b M8—quarrelling heroes 179-81, Fig. 86, PI. 107 M9—horse and rider 17-8, 188, Fig. 90, Pi. 111
INDEX Mio—supplication scene 4, 18, 19, ιοί, 103, 184-6, Fig. 88, Pis. iioa-b style of 8, 130-133, 135, 141, 143, 151, 155, 159, 176, 184, 193, 196, 198, 206, 217, 232-5 vessels depicted on 165-8, 171 technical features anathyrosis 20, 41, 57, 65, 69, 77, 85, 93, 97, 146, 196, 270, 271, 272, 273, 274, 275, 276, 282, 284, 285, 286 clamps and clamp cuttings 19, 24-7, 32, 33, 49, 67, 69, 72, 75, 81, 82, 93, 97, 100, 103, 104, 108,113, 114, 194, 197, 198, 211, 229, 231, 271, 273, 274,285 plain cutting 24-7, 32, 229-31, Fig. 14; Pis. 16-8 swallowtailed cutting 24, 27, 32-3, 211, 229, Fig. 15, Pis. 14-5 colour and painted details 30, 85, 125, 130, 131, 132, 133, 138, 141, 151, 159, 166, 188, 189, 217 direction of construction 29-30 dowels 27-8, 38, 41, 49, 81, 85, 108, 120, 122, 123, 124, 285 preliminary 24, 28, 194 foot unit 40, 82-3, 85, 204 lifting, shifting, and setting 20-4 lifting sockets with vertical channel 20-1, 81-2, 100, 101, 114, 231-2, Figs. 10-1 prying and pry marks 21, 23-4, 28, 29, 33, 38, 48, 56, 57, 64-5, 67, 69, 70, 72, 75, 81, 93, 97,99, 103,108,113,114,122,155,192,194, 220-1, 270, 271, 273, 274, 275, 276, 280, 282, 284, 285, 286, Pi. 13 setting lines 28, 39-40, 91, 92, 93 shifting and shift-holes 20-4, 29, 32-3, 48, 65, 69, 81, 122, 126, 194, 229, 270, 271, 272, 273, 274, 285, 286, 287, Fig. 13, PI. 13 U-shaped lifting channel 21-3, 82, 100, 103, 104, 108, 120, 231-2, Fig. 12 mason's marks 28-9, 30, 41, 60, 64, 65, 69, 75, 270, 271, Figs. 16-7, Pis. 19-26 nails and nail holes 19, 24, 28, 49, 80, 81, 82, 85, 97, 100, 101, 103, 104, 114, 122-4, I25> 22I > 2^7 quarrying 19-20, Pis. 5-8 rustication 20, 32, 93-4, 97, 228-9, 2^4> 2.85, 286, Figs. 50, 99-100, Pis. 29-3 ic, 63-5 tool marks 19-20, Pis. 9-12 Athena 7, 137-8, 140, 149-50, 151, 158, 163, 164, 173, 175, 179, 181, 183, 187 Athens 17, 140, 147-8, 161-3, ^4, 199-200, 201, 203, 205, 207, 213, 214, 215, 216, 221, 223-4, 233, 234, 235, 239 Agora Doric capital 252 Hephaisteion 17, 90, 193, 207, 232, 241, 245, 249, 252, 255, 259, 262, 265 Stoa Basileus / Royal Stoa 222, 249, 252, 255, 259, 262 Akropolis Building A 215, 217, 223, 237, 238, 252, 255, 259, 262, 265, Fig. 91.2 Building Β 25 5, 259, 262, 265 Building C 255, 259, 262, 265 Building D 255, 259, 262, 265 Building E 255, 259, 262, 265 Dörpfeld foundation, see Old Athena Temple H-Temple 192, 200, 204, 205, 207, 210, 211, 213, 214, 215, 216, 220, 221, 222, 223, 224, 225, 234, 237, 238, 241, 245, 249, 252, 255, 259, 262, 265, Fig. 92a Old Athena Temple 128, 192, 205, 207, 210, 217, 219, 221, 222, 224, 225, 231, 232, 234, 237, 238, 241, 245, 249, 252, 255, 259, 262, 265, Figs. 92c, 93.1 Parthenon 4, 57, 128, 140, 163, 199, 207, 216, 219, 226, 228 Athena Parthenos, helmet 137 Persian rider 190 Persian sack of 207
313
Poros pediments 128,147,148,150,158,160,161,162,163,206-7,233—4 Pre-Parthenon 207, 241, 245, 249 Propylaia 216, 228 Temple of Athena Nike 228 Kerameikos monument base 149 Round Building 223, 255, 259, 262 Pompeion, temporary structures near 140 Temple of Dionysos I 255 Attic pottery and vase painting 129, 147, 148, 149, 152, 157, 160, 161, 162, 165, 166, 167, 169, 171, 175, 177, 178, 180, 181, 182, 183-4, 185, 186, 188, 190, 202, 233, 234 Ambrosius Painter cup 171 C Painter Siana cup 183 Euphronios calyx krater 161 Gorgon Painter 233 Kleitias and Ergotimos, François vase 191 Lydos column krater, plate 140, 183, 233 Sophilos 233 Swan Group 202 Theseus Painter cup 171 Tleson Painter cup 179 Triptolemos Painter rhyton 170 Tyrrhenian amphorae 157 Würzburg, black-figure amphora with Europe inscribed 178 Attika 147, 171, 191, 201, 203, 204, 207, 208, 209, 235 base, from Lamptrai 171 Bacon, Francis Henry 4, 13-8, 33, 38, 67, 83, 92, 125, 202, 270 Bankel, Hansgeorg 209 Barringer, Judith 161, 164 Bassai, Temple of Apollo 216-7 Bathykles of Magnesia 203 Beazley, Sir John 188 Beyer, Immo 205, 264 Black Sea 125, 203, 228 boar i l , 13, 14, 18, 127, 133, 140, 141, 145, 146, 148-51, 174-5, 190, 192, 196, 198, 199, 233, 234, 273-4, 275, 278, Figs. 75, 83 Boardman, Sir John 152,162 Boeotian pottery 167, 183 Boston, Museum of Fine Arts 17, 89, 194 Calvert Stele 228 reliefs from the Temple of Athena at Assos, see Assos, Temple of Athena, sculpture, A i and A5 roof elements from the Temple of Athena at Assos, see Assos, Temple of Athena, architecture, antefix, lion's head water-spout, sima boxing 188 Briseis 181, 185, 191 Brize, Philip 163 Bronze Age 147, see also Mycenaean bull(s) 9, 10, i l , 13, 127, 128, 129, 130, 131, 133, 137, 138-41, 143-4, 147) 150, 173, 176, 179, 191, 193, 196, 197, 233, 272-3, 274, Figs. 6971, see also animal combat, Zeus Bull Caltagirone, sphinx relief from 173 Çanakkale, Archaeological Museum 188 metope from the Temple of Athena at Assos, see Assos, Temple of Athena, sculpture, M9 Polyxena Sarcophagus 132 cavalcade, see horse and rider centaur(s) and centauromachy 4, 9, 10, 11, 13, 14, 15, 18, 57, 127, 129, 130-1, 132, 133, 135, 141, 150, 151-8, 164, 168, 170-3, 175-6, 179, 187, 188, 190-1, 192-3, 195, 196-9, 233-4, 235, 236, 239, 271-2, 275, 278, 280
314
INDEX
chariot race 171, 187, 188, 226 Cheiron 151 Chersonesos 228 Chest of Kypselos 187, 191 Chios, Emporio 203 Chian mouldings 227 pottery 149, 167, 202 sculpture 132 Choiseul Gouffier, Marie-Gabriel-Florent-Auguste de 8 chronology, challenges in establishing archaic architectural 204-7, 222-3, 232-40 Chryse, Temple of Apollo Smintheus 191 Ciro (Krimissa), Temple of Apollo I (Alaios) 208, 243, 247 civilised order over chaos and barbarity 129, 149, 151, 158, 164, 171-3, 191 Clarac, Frédéric de 160, 170 Clarke, Joseph Thacher 4, 5-6, 13-8, 33, 35, 38, 39, 40, 43, 46, 67, 70, 82-3, 85, 86, 88-93, 97, 108, 123, 125-6, 140, 145-6, 160, 162, 170, 179, 181-2, 190, 192, 194, 197, 198, 202, 207, 270, 278-80 Cook, R. M. 149 Corinth 203, 209-10, 238 Apsidal Building 215 capitals 02-10 213, 252 late archaic temple 2ion.73 Temple of Apollo II 204, 209-10, 213, 214, 223, 224, 237, 241, 245, 249, 252, 255, 259, 262, 265 temporary structures at 170 Corinthian pottery 131, 138, 148, 149, 202 ambush of Thetis 161 boar hunt 175 centauromachy with Pholos 152, 156-7, 233, 235 sphinx and Athena 152 column krater, shape of 166 Chigi vase 191 Eurytos krater 170-1 Coulton, J. J. 50,204,210,213,232 Covel, John T. 8 Cyclades 147, 203, 217, 227, 229, 238, 239 Cypriote pottery 138, 169, 233 Cypriote sculpture 132, 166 Cyprus 128 Crisis of 1974 17 Cyrene 163,210,211,228 Temple of Apollo (archaic) 220, 222, 224, 241, 245, 249, 255, 259, 262, 265 Temple of Zeus 210, 217, 220, 223, 241, 245, 249, 252, 255, 259, 262, 265
Corinthian Treasury (formerly) 262, 265 Doric Treasury, Marmarla 245, 249, 252, 255, 260, 262, 265 Massiliot Treasury 91,227 Monopteros 177, 179, 191, 214, 215, 216, 219, 220, 223, 232, 234, 245, 249, 253, 255, 260, 262, 265 Old Tholos 213, 215, 217, 219, 232, 238, 245, 249, 253, 255, 260, 262, 265 Sikyonian Treasury 245, 249, 253, 256 Siphnian Treasury 91, 128, 228, 229, 231 Stadion Fountain(?) 222, 223, 249, 253, 256, 260 Temple of Apollo IV (pre 548) 204, 249, 256, 262 Temple of Apollo V (Alkmeonid) 128, 199, 216, 224, 237, 238, 241, 245, 249, 253, 256, 260, 262, 265 Temple of Athena Pronaia I 212, 227, 241, 249, 253, 260, 262 Temple of Athena Pronaia II 211, 216, 224, 241, 245, 249, 253, 256, 260, 262, 265 Demeter 182-3 Demisch, Heinz 137 Didyma altar with sphinx 136 Temple of Apollo (archaic) 193, 211, 226, 278 Dinsmoor, William Bell Sr 40, 206 Diomedes 181 Dionysos 140, 151, 169, 170, 171 Dioskouroi 182,183, 187, 188 Doric peripteros (oi) 31, 201, 203, 205, 206, 207-8, 209-10, 211, 223, 236, 238, 239, 240 Dörig, José 162 Dörpfeld, Wilhelm 17
Dardanelles 201-2 Delian League 202 Delos 210, 229 Grand Temple of Apollo 209, 241, 245, 249, 252, 255, 259, 262, 265 Building with Peristyle Court 231 Heraion 219, 227, 229, 241, 245, 249, 255, 259, 262, 265 Letoon 229 Monument of the Hexagons 229 Treasury 5 249, 252 Delphi 147, 148, 179, 205, 211, 212, 213, 214, 217, 220, 226, 229, 232, 235 Athenian Treasury 128, 130, 199, 200, 216, 219, 220, 232, 249, 255, 259, 262, 265, Fig. 93.6
feasting 170-3, see also symposion Fellows, Charles 11-3, 195 Fikellura pottery 141, 149, 169, 174, 233, 235 Finster-Hotz, Ursula 5, 140, 161, 163, 170, 179, 182, 270, 277 Foce del Sele Temple of Hera I 130, 156, 157, 183, 187, 191, 199, 214, 234, 235, 243, 247, 251, 254, 257, 261 Temple of Hera II 130, 199, 208, 209, 210, 212, 214, 223, 243, 247, 251, 254, 257, 261 footrace 187-8 Melanion, Neitheus, Phalareus, Argeios, Iphiklos (named contestants) 187-8 Francis, E. David 205 funeral games 187-8, 190-1, 278
East Greece 132-3, 135-6, 156, 168, 202, 203, 226, 228, 233, 235, 240 see also Anatolia, Asia Minor Egypt 137, 138 Eleusis, 140 Telesterion, archaic Fig. 91.3 entasis 41, 206, 212, 213, 236 Ephesos 140, 202 Temple of Artemis, archaic 138, 141, 156, 168, 169, 211, 226 Third Council of 8 equestrian, see horse and rider Eretria, Temple of Apollo II 204, 205, 208, 209, 213, 236, 237, 238, 242, 245, 249, 253, 256, 260, Fig. 91.4 Erythrai, sculpture 132 Etruria 147, 168, 169 Loeb archaic tripods from 184 silver repoussé panel from 189 Europe 17,127, 129,132-3,141,164, 176-9,191, 198, 216, 217, 234, 236, 275 Eurytos, house of 170-1
INDEX Ganymede 182 Gargara Aeolic capital 203 coin from 16,125 warrior relief from 226 Gela, Temple of Athena (B) 207, 219, 244, 248, 257 Geometric Period 31 Gergithes 202 Glynn, Ruth 162-3 Gordion 203, see also Phrygia gorgon 133,136,175, 193, 226 griffin 15, 89 Gruben, Gottfried 1 Gullini, Giorgio 205 guttae 60, 77, 78, 131, 206, 214-5, 2I7> 2 37' 23^> 2.55—8, 262, 264 Gyges 202 Halikarnassos, Maussolleion 226 Halios Geron 160 Hegesistratos 204 hekatompedon (a) 31,207 Hektor, ransom of 185-6, 191, 234 Helen 160, 182, 183, 185-7, 191 Hera 140, 169, 183, 186, 187 Heraklaia Minoa 179 Herakles 131, 137, 140, 151, 170-1, 179, 181-2, 184 alexikakos 158, 164, 191 and centaurs 14, 127, 131, 151-8, 173, 233, 235, 239 and Triton 11, 13, 127, 128, 129, 131, 158-64, 171, 179, 184, 191, 193, 206-7, 2 1 1 > 2 3 4 > 2 3 7 > 2 3 ^ ) 2 3 9 > 2 7 * apotheosis of 162, 170, 171 at the house of Eurytos 170-1 banqueting and drinking 131-2, 171,234 Hermes 169, 171, 185 Hermione, Temple of Poseidon 242, 246, 256 Herodotos 201, 202, 203 Hesiod 164, 172 Hesperides, garden of 162, 163 Himera, Temple of Victory 217, 236, 244, 248, 251, 254, 257, 261, 264, 266 Histria, architectural terracottas 228 Hoffman, Herbert 137 Hölscher, Fernande 140, 149, 150, 170 Holtzmann, Bernard 15 8 Homer 160, 163, 175, 180, 181, 186, 188, 191 Iliad 175, 181, 186, 188 Odyssey 160, 181 Homeric simile 150-1 horse and rider 17, 187-90 Howe, Thalia P. 163 Hunt, Leigh 8-9, 195 hunting 148-9, 171, 175, 187, 190, 278, see also Kalydonian boar hunt Huyot, Jean-Nicholas 10, 195 hybridity 128, 238-9 Iasos, charioteer frieze 226 Ilion 140, 202, 203 Temple of Athena 203 Imbros 201 Ionia 127, 128, 132, 136, 156, 166, 173, 202, 203, 204, 214, 221, 227, 228, 229, 231, 233, 235, 238, 239, see also Anatolia, Asia Minor Ionian Revolt 202, 207, 239 Istanbul 13 Archaeological Museum 17, 82, 194, see also Assos, Temple of Athena, sculpture, Α ι , A2, A6, Aio, A13, Μι, M2, M5, M6, M8
Italo-Corinthian pottery 202 Itier, P.J. 283 Jason 140 Johnston, Alan 56 Junker, Klaus 216 Kalabaktepe near Miletos, sima 228 Kalapodi, South Temple II: 207, 208, 210, 211, 213, 236, 238, 242, 246, 249, 253, 256 Kalaureia, Temple of Poseidon 242, 246, 256 Kalydon, Temple of Artemis 216, 234 Kalydonian boar hunt 148-9, 187 kantharos 152, 165, 167-8, 172 Karaköy, near Didyma, relief from 132, 226 Karia, metal bowl from 167 Karystos, Euboia, pediment 147 Kea 229 Karthaia Temple of Apollo 219 Temple of Athena 211, 222, 229, 232, 242,246, 249, 2
53>
2
5 24^, 25°> 253> 25^> 26o, 263, 265 Treasury II Syrakousai? 231, 246, 253, 256, 260, 263, 265, Fig. 91.6-7 Treasury III 'Rope-Hole Bldg'? 2178, 222, 256, 260, 263, 266 Treasury IV Epidamnos 246, 253, 256, 260, 263, 266 Treasury IX Selinous 215, 246, 253, 256, 260, 263, 266 Treasury Older Sikyonian? 256, 260, 263, 266 Treasury X Metapontion 246 Treasury XI Megara 222, 223, 232, 246, 250, 253, 256, 260, 263, 266, Fig· 93-5 Treasury XII Gela Forehall 215, 224, 246, 250, 253, 256, 260, 263, 266 omphalos bowl 167, 203, 233 opisthodomos 31,208-9,210 Orchomenos (Arkadia), temple 205, 209, 210, 213, 214, 238, 242, 246, 2jo, 253, 256 Orestes 185 0stby, Erik 209, 219 Ovid 178 Palladion 7, 181 palmette(s) 85, 87, 89, 221, 228, 238 Paris, Musée du Louvre 9, 13, 127, 194, 195, 270, see also Assos, Temple of Athena, sculpture, A2-A4, A7-A9, A11-A12, A14-A15, M3-M4, M7 Paros 211,229 capital S26/27 253 reliefs 147 Temple of Artemis 219, 228, 242, 246, 250, 256, 260, 263, 266, Figs. 91.9, 93.7 Parzarh, architectural terracotta from 135 Pausanias 182, 183, 187, 226 Peisistratos 163, 204, 205 Peleus 161, 164, 179, 183-4, 188, 190, 191, 234, 274 pelike :68
INDEX Peloponnese, architecture in 207, 208, 209, 214, 217, 224, 235, 238, see also mainland Greece and individual sites Peloponnese, art and metalwork 174, 181, 183, 185, see also individual regions and cities Peirithoos 170, 183, 187, 188 Perachora omphalos bowls from 167 shieldband relief from 177, 178 tiles 231 Temple of Hera Akraia II 232, 242, 246, 256, 260, 263, 266, Figs. 91.8, 93.2 perirrhanterion 170 Persia, Persians 100, 163, 168, 189, 190, 202, 207, 239 personnel 5 phiale 165, 172 mesomphalos 167, see also omphalos bowl philotes 191 philoxenia 129 Phokaia 229 Mt Pholoe 151,158, 193 Pholos 132, 133, 135, 151-8, 173, 196, 235, 239, 271-2, 278, 280, see also centaur(s) and centauromachy, Herakles and centaurs Phrygia 128 Phrygian: fibulae 202-3 omphalos bowls 167 pottery 138 tumuli 167 Pindar 183 Pipili, Maria 157, 169 Piri Re'is 8 Polyneikes 181 Polyxena 132, 190 Pompeii, archaic temple 212, 243, 247, 254, 257 Poseidon 11, 140, 162, 163, 164, 171 Poseidonia 179,208,211,216,232 Europe metope 177, 179, 204, 216, 234, 238 Temple of Athena 209, 210, 211, 222, 236, 239, 243, 247, 251, 254, 257, 261
Temple of Hera I 214, 220-1, 223, 236, 243, 247, 251, 254, 257, 261 Temple of Hera II 215, 216, 220, 223, 243, 247, 251, 254, 257, 261, 264, 266
Poujoulet, Jean Joseph François 10 Prasidaki, Temple of Athena 209, 242, 246, 250, 260 Priam 179, 185, 191 Prinias, Temple A, sphinx 135 programme 4, 5, 18, 128-9, I3I> !33> i4°> M 1 , j48> 149, 150, 151, 156, 158, 170, 171, 173, 187, 190-1, 193, 196, 237
Prokesch von Osten, Anton, 9-10, 195 Proteus 160, 164, 170 'pseudo-dipteral' 31,208 Psilikorfi, Temple of Artemis Knakeatis 205, 210, 212, 213, 215, 217, 220, 223, 224, 238, 242, 246, 250, 253, 256, 260, 263, 266
punctuated equilibrium 204-5 Raczyfiski, Eduard 9 Raoul-Rochette, Désiré 13 Rhamnous, Temple of Nemesis 193 Rhodes 202-3 Rhodian pottery 174,202 Rhoiteion 181, 191 Richter, Otto Friedrich von 9, 10, 195, 271, 273, 274 Ridgway, Brunhilde Sismondo 128, 149-50, 179 Riemann, Hans 40
317
Robert, Carl 170 Robertson, C. Martin 1, 133 Roscher, Wilhelm 158 rosette(s) 69, 136, 221 runners 127, 129, 183, 186-8, 190, 234, 274, see also footrace sacrifice 9, 10, 140, 149, 203 Salamis 162 Samos 202, 203 altar, Rhoikos 136,228 altar, archaistic 136,211 Genelaos monument 169 Hekatompedon II: 226 North Building 168, 226 South Building 136,211 Temple of Hera, Polykratean 136 Temple of Hera, Rhoikos 211 Sardis 140, 201 sphinx from 136 Kybele shrine 127,226 architectural terracottas from 87, 138, 140, 156, 228 Sartiaux, Felix 4, 17, 38, 39, 85, 140, 155-6, 160, 162, 170, 192-4, 196, 270, 277, 278, 280-3, Figs. 7, 95-6 satyrs 171, 178, 182 Schmitt Pantel, Pauline 172 Schnapp-Gourbeillon, Annie 151 Schuchhardt, Walter 222, 225 scotia 213, 236 Selinous 179, 205, 208, 216, 232, 235 Temple A 236, 244, 248, 251, 254, 257, 261, 264, 266 Temple C 191, 209, 213, 215, 217, 219, 220, 244, 248, 251, 254, 257, 261, 264,266
Temple D 209, 214, 217, 219, 220, 221, 222, 223, 224, 225, 236, 244, 248, 251, 254, 257, 261, 264, 266, Fig. 92d Temple Ell 215, 217, 220, 223, 244, 248, 251, 254, 257, 261, 264, 266
Temple F 130, 199, 204, 214, 215-16, 220, 222, 223, 244, 248, 251, 254, 258, 261, 264, 266
Temple G 210, 214, 220, 224, 244, 248, 251, 254, 258, 261, 264, 266
Temple M 217, 258, 261, 264, 266 Temple Y 177, 199, 204, 207, 213, 216, 217, 220, 223, 234, 244, 248, 251, 254, 258, 261, 264, 266
Europe metope 177 sphinx metope 135 Serdaroglu, Ümit 4, 18, 202 Seven Against Thebes 181 sexual potency and fertility 140-141, 178 shieldband reliefs 160, 174, 177, 178, 180, 183, 184, 185, 191, 234-5 Shoe, Lucy 232 Sicily 147, 148, 179, 204, 208, 209, 210, 212, 213-4, 215-7, 23
2 2 ° ' 22I > 23x>
5-7 Sigeion 162, 163, 172, 191 Temple of Athena Glaukopis 203-4 Simon, Erika 187 Skepsis 231 Solon 162, 172 Sounion Temple of Poseidon I 201, 207, 208, 209, 210, 211, 212, 236, 239, 242, 246, 250, 256, 260, 263, 266
Temple of Poseidon II 57, 193, 207 Sparta hero relief 167 Temple of Athena Chalkioikos 156
3
ι8
INDEX
sphinx 9, io, 13, 14, 15, 17, 65, 89, 123, 127, 128, 129, 131, 132, 133-8, 140, 141, 147, 154, 155, 173-4, !9°> 191, !93> !95> !9 6 -7, I98> l99, 228, 232-4, 236, 270-1, 274-5 Stageira, sculptured doorway 149, 233 Stesichoros 152, 179, 183 Stewart, Andrew 205 Strabo 201, 202, 203, 204 Stupperich, Reinhard 202 supplication 184-6, 198 Syme, grave stele 175 symposion 9, 10, 13, 127, 128, 129, 158, 159, 160, 164-73, I9I> '93> 196-8, 233-4, 271 Syrakousai Temple of Apollo 205, 213, 215, 219, 227, 244, 248, 251, 254, 258, 261, 264 Temple of Athena 215, 216, 244, 248, 251, 254, 258, 261, 264, 266 Temple of Zeus 244, 248, 251, 258, 264 Taras, Temple of Poseidon 243, 247, 251, 254, 257 Tegea, capitals A and Β 213, 253 Telephos 191 Tenedos 201, 202 Teos 203 Texier, Charles 10-1, 13, 18, 92, 160, 170, 278, Fig. 4 Thasos Aliki, South Building 227, 229, 241, 245, 249, 255, 259, 262 architectural terracottas from 151, 156 relief with Charités 165-6 wall construction and patterned wall blocks 229 Theognis of Megara 172 theoxenia 171 Thermon 210, 216 Temple of Apollo C 130, 234, 242, 246 Theseus 140, 182-3, 187-8 Thetis 161, 164, 179, 181-4, l 8 6, '88, 191, 234, 274, Fig. 87 Tiryns, capital 212, 253 Tityos 179, 183 Tokra 202
Trebenishte, bronze kraters from 166 Tree, sacred (Tree of Life) 133, 174 Triton i l , 13, 127, 128, 129, 131, 158-64, 166, 171, 179, 184, 191, 193, 196, 197, 198, 206-7, 2 I I > 234> 235> 237> 238> 2
39>
2
7*
Troad 1, 127, 160, 162, 163, 164, 172, 175, 179, 181, 184, 186, 187, 191, 201, 202, 203, 225, 228, 229, 231, 238, 240 Troilos 182, 190 Troy 140, 162, 181, 184, 185, 191 Trysa, Heroon 226 tuff 19, 30, 83, 88-9, 101, 103, 114-15, 123, 124, 184, 199, 276, 287 Tydeus 181 Utili, Frederico 202 Venturi, Robert 1 Vergina, Tomb II 4, 240 Vermeule, Emily 151 visual axiom 128 Vitruvius ι, 203, 219 West Greece see Magna Graecia, Sicily Wiegand, Theodor 231 Wild Goat pottery 131, 140, 141, 174 Winter, Frederick 209,214 Winter, Nancy 86 World War II 17,33,38 wrestling contest 183, 187, see also Herakles and Triton Xanthos 147, 190, 205, 238 Building G 138, 175, 233 Building H 136 Nereid Monument 226 xenia 158, 171, 191 Xenophanes 171, 173 Xerxes 202, 203, 239 Zeus 7, 140, 141, 182, 186, 191 Zeus bull 17, 127, 129, 141, 164, 176-9, 275
PLATES
I a - i b
PLATE Ι a. View of Assos from the north, with Pa§akoy in the foreground and Lesbos in the background. Photograph by author.
PLATE i b . View of Assos from the west, with reconstructed columns from the temple of Athena visible on the summit. Photograph by author.
PLATES
IC-ld
PLATE i c . View of Assos from the sea, with reconstructed columns of the temple visible from the summit. Photograph by author.
plate
i d . View of the akropolis from the south, with the theatre in the foreground and the agora in the middle ground.
P L A T E S 2-109
PLATE 2. Krepidoma of the temple from the north, as exposed in 1983, with remains of Byzantine houses in the middle g r o u n d . Photograph by author.
P L A T E S 3 b— 5
PLATE 3 b. Southwest corner of the temple showing rusticated masonry and paving flags.
PLATE 4. Sounding made in the pteroma at the southwest corner, October 1987. Photograph by author.
PLATE 5. Southern cliffs of the akropolis preserving quarry marks. Photograph by author.
P L A T E S 7-109
PLATE 6. Bedrock directly north of temple, with remains of wedge-shaped cuttings. Photograph by author.
P L A T E S 8-109
PLATE 8. Modern quarrying in the southern cliffs of the akropolis. Photograph by author.
PLATES
IO-I 2
clockwise from top left: PLATE το. Tooling on the top surface of column d r u m CD4. Photograph by author.
PLATE 1 1 . Mai'ks of the drove on the echinus o f c a p i t a l C I 7 . Photograph by author.
PLATE 12. Epistyle backer AB7; point and tooth-head hammer marks. Photograph by author.
PLATES
I 3 - I 4
PLATE 13. Southeast corner of the euthynteria with pry marks for first Step c o u r s e . Photograph by author.
fi*
•
PLATE 14. Clamp cutting on the euthynteria near the southwest c o r n e r . Photograph by author.
P L A T E S 18109
-α
ο t
OH
-ϋ c